Skip to main content

Full text of "The Riverside New Testament A Translation From The Original Greek Into The English Of To-Day"

See other formats


127 596 



THE RIVERSIDE NEW TESTAMENT 



EIVEESIDE 



STAMENT 



A TRANSLATION 

FROM THE ORIGINAL GREEK INTO 
THE ENGLISH OF TO-DAY 

BY 

WILLIAM G. BALLANTINE 




BOSTON AND NEW YOBK 

HOUOHTON MIPELDSr COMPANY 
jftfttarfte ytttat Camtaftgt 
1923 



COPYRIGHT, 1933, BY XIOUGHTON MIFFLIN COMPANY 
ALL RIGHTS RESERVED 



CAU8UDOI* 

PfclNTgp III TB1 JUk* 



PREFACE 

THERE are millions of people who understand no language 
readily except the living English of to-day. Surely they ought 
to have the New Testament the most important of books 
in that language. 

The majesty and beauty of the old King James Version 
the Westminster Abbey of English literature should not 
blind us to the fact that, for inquirers eager to know the divine 
message, it is three hundred years behind the times. Since King 
James's day the tireless researches of scholars have given us a 
more correct copy of the Greek original and a clearer under- 
standing of its meaning than our forbears possessed. Then, 
too, in the course of these centuries the English language has 
gone on changing, until now many words once familiar have 
been long forgotten and many still in use have taken on new 
significations. Present-day readers of the old version meet with 
many sentences that convey to them no meaning at all or a 
meaning that is mistaken. 

As long as fifty years ago, it was recognized that the situation 
had become an impossible one, and the Convocation of Canter- 
bury led off in the movement for revision. Out of this came the 
English Revised Version of 1881 and the American Revised 
Version of twenty years later. But these revisions did not aim 
to be more than revisions. They corrected faulty details while 
leaving the broad fundamental disadvantages untouched. 
Common people never could be much interested in them. 

To meet the present urgent need a number of translations 
Into modern English have recently been put forth* Some of 
these are of great merit, and yet every one of them seems to 
leave something still to be desired. The present attempt sees 
the light much as St. Luke's Gospel did. "Inasmuch as many 
others have been trying their hands at the task, it seemed good 
to me also/' having devoted many years to Biblical studies, to 
offer my contribution* In fact a profound sense of obligation 



vi PREFACE 

compelled it. For whoever enjoys the privilege of knowing 
divine truth is a debtor to all who use the same language. 

This translation has been made directly from the original 
Greek, Nestle's text being generally followed. In the English 
phrasing originality has been neither sought nor shunned. 
The translator owes much to "The Twentieth Century New 
Testament," Weymouth's "New Testament in Modern 
Speech," and Moffatt's "New Translation of the New Testa* 
ment/' and of course to the Revised Versions and the old 
King James Version. How freely he lias departed from any 
and all of these a slight examination will show. 

The ideal of a translator is to serve as a plate-glass window 
through which the man who does not read Greek will see in 
English just what he would see if he did read Greek. But the 
realization of this ideal is far from possible. Changing the 
figure, we may say that to translate from one language into 
another is like playing on the piano what was written for the 
violin. The fundamental melody may be faithfully reproduced* 
but many subtle effects which the composer intended are 
inevitably lost, and effects which ho did not intend arc added. 
The effort to reproduce Greek overtones has led to inueh un- 
natural straining of the English language in all of our versions 

No one knows better than a translator himself how far his 
work falls short of perfection, and how open it is to jmt 
criticism. Many defects spring from the vary natum of what 
is attempted. No one can avoid them. But d<*f*ct# due to 
ignorance or oversight can bo corrected in future editions, and 
the translator will be most grateful to have his attention called 
to them by any of his readers. 

Proper names have been left as they are in the American 
Revised Version. Whimsical and haphazard change* in uamoa 
are unscholarly in themselves and annoying to readers $a the 
use of maps and works of reference. 

Not only have English readers a right to have tie New 
Testament in the very language which they are using today; 
they have a right to have it in aa attractive form likes that of 
the other books they are now reading. The wholly unnatural 
form in which it has boon assumed hitherto Unit the New 



PREFACE vii 

Testament must be published its dim and crowded gray 
pages must be held accountable for much of the neglect to 
read it. The present version enjoys the inestimable advantage 
of coming from a press whose name dear to readers is a 
synonym for legibility and beauty. 

The translator cannot close this preface without a personal 
word to the unknown readers who have been constantly in his 
mind. Although a lifelong student of the New Testament in 
Greek and English, these days spent in the consideration and 
expression of its thoughts, sentence by sentence, have brought 
to him a fresh and holy surprise. Often has he paused in the 
work to ejaculate with St. Peter, "Master, it is fine for us to be 
here!" With the hope that you in reading it may often share 
the same thrill of joy and wonder, this translation is affection- 
ately offered, 

W. G. BALLANTINB 

SPRINGFIELD, MASS* 
January 1)1923* 



CONTENTS 

THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 1 

THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 57 

THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 92 

THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 151 

THE ACTS OP THE APOSTLES 196 

PAUL'S LETTER TO THE ROMANS 254 

PAUL'S FIRST LETTER TO THE CORINTHIANS 278 

PAUL'S SECOND LETTER TO THE CORINTHIANS 301 

PAUL'S LETTER TO THE GALATIANS 310 

PAUL'S LETTER TO THE EPHESIANS 324 

PAUL'S LETTER TO THE PHIUPPIANB 332 

PAUL'S LETTER TO THE COLOSSIANS 338 

PAUL'S FIRST LETTER TO THE THESSALONZANB 344 

PAUL'S SECOND LETTER TO THE THE&SALONIANB 349 

PAUL'S FIRST LETTER TO TIMOTHY 352 

PAUL'S SECOND LETTER TO TIMOTOT 359 

PAUL'S LETTER TO Trrus 364 

PAUL'S LBTTEE TO PHILEMON 367 

TELE LETTBE TO THE HEBREWS 369 

Tax LETTER OF JAMBS 387 

THE FIRST LETTER OF PETER 393 

TH SECOND LETTER OF PETER 400 

THE FIHBT LBTTEB OF JOHN 405 

THJE SJECONT> LETTBH OF JOHN 411 

TBB/TBIIWO LHPICTB OF JOHN* 412 

THS LBTTBE OF JUDB 413 

THE R&v$&moN OF JOHN 415 

INDBX 445 



THE 
RIVERSIDE NEW TESTAMENT 





THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 



THE ancestral lino of Jesus Christ, son of David, son of Abra- 
ham: 

Abraham was the father of Isaac; Isaac was the father of 
Jacob; Jacob was the father of Judah and his brothers; Judah 
was the father of Perez and Zerah (Tamar was their mother) ; 
Perez was the father of Hezron; Hezron was the father of 
Ram; Ram was the father of Amminadab; Amminadab was 
the father of Nahshon; Nahshon was the father of Salmon; 
Salmon was the father of Boaz (Rahab was his mother); 
Boaz was the father of Obed (Ruth was his mother) ; Jesse was 
the father of David the King. 

David was the father of Solomon (his mother had been 
Uriah's wife); Solomon was the father of Rehoboam; Reho- 
boam was the father of Abijah; Abijah was the father of Asa; 
Asa was the father of Jehoshaphat; Jehoshaphat was the 
father of Joram; Joram was the father of Uzziah; Uzziah was 
the father of Jotham; Jotham was the father of Ahaz; Ahaz 
was the father of Hczekiah ; Hozekiah was the father of Manas- 
seh ; Manaaaeh was the father of Amon; Amon was the father of 
Josiah; Joeiah was the father of Jechoniah and his brothers at 
the time of the Babylonian exile* 

After the Babylonian exile, Jechoniah was the father of 
Shoal tiel; Shealtiel was the father of Zerub babel; Zerubbabel 
was the father of Abiud; Abiud was the father of Eliakim; 
Eliakim was the father of Azor; Azor was the father of Sadoc; 
Sadoc was the father of Achim; Achim was the father of Eliud; 
Eliud was the father of Eloazar; Eleaaar was the father of 



2 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 

Matthan; Matthan was the father of Jacob; Jacob was the 
father of Joseph the husband of Mary, of whom was born 
Jesus, who is called Christ, 

So there were in all fourteen generations from Abraham to 
David, and fourteen generations from David to the Babylonian 
exile, and fourteen generations from the Babylonian exile to 
the Christ. 

The birth of Jesus was in this way: His mother Mary had 
been betrothed to Joseph, but before they came together she 
was found to be with child by the Holy Spirit. Joseph, her 
husband, being an upright man, and yet not willing to make 
her a public example, resolved to dismiss her privately. But 
while he was thinking this over, an angel of the Lord appeared 
to him in a dream and said, "Joseph, son of David, do not }** 
afraid to take Mary as your wife, for what has been conceived 
in her is of the Holy Spirit. She will bear a son and you shall 
call his name Jesus, for he will save his people from their sina." 
All this happened in fulfillment of what the Ix>rd Iwd spoken 
through the prophet: "Behold the virgin will conceive ami will 
bear a son, and they will call his name Immauuel" (which 
means, God is with us). 

When Joseph awoke from deep, he did as the an^d of the 
Lord had bidden him, and took his wife to his home. But he did 
not live with her as a husband until she had boroe A son, He 
called his name Jesus* 

XI 

AFTBB Jesus had boon born In Bethlehem, Jn Jud&a, in the day 
of Herod the King, wise men from the Ku#t arrived at Joruxi- 
lem, saying, " Where is he who has boon tx>rn King of the JOWM? 
For we saw his star in the East and have come to do hoimme 
to him." 

When King Herod heard it, he was disturbed, and f*o wan all 
Jerusalem, Then he called together all the high priest* tint) 
scribes of the people and inquired of them where the Chrint wo# 
to be born. They said to him, "In Bethlehem, in Judaea, For 
so it was written by the prophet, * Aad thoti, Bethlehem, hud 
of Judah, art by no means leaat amoug the leader* of Juduh; 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 3 

for from thee will come a leader who will shepherd my people 
Israel/" 

Then Herod 1 secretly summoned the wise men and learned 
from them exactly the time of the star's appearance, and as he 
sent them to Bethlehem he said, "Go and make careful in- 
quiries about the child, and when you have found him bring me 
word, so that I too may come and do homage to him." After 
hearing the king, they journeyed on, and the star which they 
had seen in the East went before them until it came and stood 
over where the child was. When they saw the star, they were 
very joyful. They entered the house and saw the child with 
Mary his mother, and they fell down and did him homage. 
Then they opened their treasures and presented to him gifts, 
gold and frankincense and myrrh. After this they were warned 
in a dream not to return to Herod, and so went by another 
road back to their own country. 

After they had gone, an angel of the Lord appeared in a 
dream to Joseph and said, " Rise up, and take the child and his 
mother and flee into Egypt, and be there until I tell you, for 
Herod will search for the child in order to kill him." So Joseph 
rose up, and took the child and his mother in the night and 
went away to Egypt, and was there until the death of Herod, 
In order that the word of the Lord spoken through the prophet 
might be fulfilled, "Out of Egypt I called my Son." 

Then Herod, seeing that he had boon outwitted by the 
wise men, became furious, and sent out and killed all the boy 
babies two years old and under in Bethlehem and all its neigh- 
borhood, guided by the date which he had carefully learned 
from the wise menu Then was fulfilled what was spoken through 
Jeremiah the prophet when he said, "A voice was hoard in 
Ramah, wailing and bitter lamentation, Rachel weeping for 
her children, and she would not be comforted because they 
are not." 

But after Herod had died, an angel of the Lord appeared in 
a dream to Joseph in Egypt and said, "Arise, and take the 
child and his mother and go into the land of Israel, for they 
arc dead who nought the child's life." So he arose, and took the 
child and his mother and came into the land of Israel. But 



4 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 

when he heard that Archelaus was reigning over Judsea in 
place of his father Herod, he was afraid to go there, and being 
directed in a dream he went away to the region of Galilee and 
settled in a town called Nazareth, so that what had been 
spoken through the prophets might be fulfilled, "He will be 
called a Namrene." 

ra 

IN those days John the Baptist came preaching in the wild 
part of Judaea and saying, "Repent; for the kingdom of heaven 
is at hand. For this is he who was foretold through Isaiah the 
prophet when he said: 'The voice of one crying aloud in the 
wilderness, Make ready the way of the Lord, make straight 
his paths.' " 

This John had his clothing of camel's hair and wore a leather 
belt around his waist, and his food was locusts and wild honey* 
Then went out to him Jerusalem and all Judsaa and all the 
neighborhood of the Jordan and were baptized by him in the 
Jordan River, confessing their sins. When ho saw many of the 
Pharisees and Sadducees coming for baptism, he said, " Brood 
of vipers, who directed you to fleo from the coming wrath? 
Produce fruit fitting for a change of heart, and do m>t 
think of saying to yourselves, *We have Abraham for our 
father,' for I tell you God is able out of these stones to nuae 
up children for Abraham. Now the axe is lying at the root of 
the trees. Every tree that docs not yield good fruit will be 
cut down and cast into the fire. I baptize you with water for 
a change of heart, but he who is coming after mo in more 
powerful than I; I am not worthy to cany hie shtx>$; ho will 
baptize you with the Holy Spirit and with fins. Ho haa hi* 
fan in his hand and will thoroughly ctean his thrmhinpc-iloor. 
He will gather his grain into his storehouse, but the chaff he 
will burn with fire unquenchable/' 

Then Jesus ccuae from Galilee to the Jordan to John to be 
baptised by him. But John opposed him, staying, " I haw nwl 
to be baptised by you, and do you come to me?'* J#ua re- 
plied, "Permit it now, for so it IB fitting for us to complete 
every righteous act." Then he permitted him. 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 5 

Jesus, as soon as he was baptized, went up from the water, 
and the heavens were opened and he saw the Spirit of God de- 
scending as a dove and coming upon him. A voice from the 
heavens said, "This is my Son, the beloved in whom I delight." 

IV 

THEN Jesus was led by the Spirit up into the wild country to 
be tempted by the Devil. After he had fasted forty days and 
forty nights he was hungry. Then the tempter came and said 
to him, "If you are the Son of God, teU these stones to turn into 
loaves of bread," But he answered, "It is written, 'Man shall 
not live on bread alone, but on every word that comes from 
the mouth of God/" 

Then the Devil took him with him to the holy city and 
placed him on the top of the temple and said to him, "If you 
are the Son of God, throw yourself down; for it is written, 
To his angels he will give charge of you, and on their hands 
they will bear you lest you strike your foot against a stone/ " 
Jesus said to him, "It is written, too, 'Thou shalt not try the 
Lord thy God/" 

Again the Devil took him with him to a very high mountain 
and showed him all the kingdoms of the world and their glory, 
and said to him, "All these things I will give you if you will 
fall down and do homage to me." Jesus said to him, "Begone, 
Satan, for it is written, 'To the Lord thy God alone shalt thou 
do homage, and him alone shalt thou serve/ " Then the Devil 
left him, and angels came and waited upon him. 

When Jesus heard that John had been betrayed, he went 
away into Galilee. Leaving Nazareth, he came and lived in 
Capernaum on the lake shore on the borders of Zebulun and 
Naphtali, so that the word spoken by the prophet Isaiah might 
be fulfilled ; " Land of Zebulun and land of Naphtali, road to the 
sea, country beyond the Jordan, Galilee of the Gentiles, the 
people that sat in darkness saw a great light and upon those 
sitting in the land and shadow of death light dawned/' 

From that time Jesus began to proclaim and say, "Repent, 
tor the kingdom of heaven is at hand." 

As ho was walking along the shore of the lake of Galilee, he 



6 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 

saw two brothers, Simon who is called Peter, and Andrew his 
brother, casting a net into the lake, for they were fishermen; 
and he said to them, "Follow me and I will make you fishers 
of men." They at once left the nets and followed him. Going 
on from there, he saw two other brothers James the Fon of 
Zebedeeand John his brother in their boat with Zelxxlec 
their father, mending their nets; and he called them. They at 
once left the boat and their father and followed him* 

Jesus went around through the whole of Galilee, teaching 
in the synagogues and proclaiming the good news of the King- 
dom, and healing every disease and every infirmity among the 
people. His fame spread out into all Syria, and they brought 
to him all who were sick with various diseases and those HufFer- 
ing from acute pain, demoniacs, lunatics, and paralytics, and 
he healed them. Great crowds followed him from Galth*o 
and Decapolis and Jerusalem and Judm and from beyond the 
Jordan. 



SEEING the crowds, he went up on the mountain, and when he 
had seated himself his disciples came to him. He oiwned his 
mouth and taught them, saying; 

"Blessed are the poor in spirit! For theirs i** the kingdom of 
heaven. 

"Blessed are they that mourn! For they will be com- 
forted. 

"Blessed are the gentle! For they will inherit the land. 

"Blessed are those who hunger and thirst for righteousness! 
For they will have abundance* 

"Blessed are the compassionate! For they wit! receive com* 
passion. 

"Blessed are the pure in heart! For they will K* God. 

"Blessed are the peacemakers! For they will bo caitod aomi 
of God. 

"Blessed are those who have been persecuted for righteous- 
ness! For theirs is the kingdom of heaven, 

"Blessed are you when men revile you and persecute you 
and say every evil thing against you fabcly for my auke! 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 7 

Rejoice and be exceedingly glad, for your reward is great in 
heaven. For so they persecuted the prophets who were before 
you. 

" You are the salt of the earth. But if the salt becomes flat, 
with what can it be salted? It is good for nothing but to be 
thrown out and trodden under foot by men. You are the light 
of the world. A city cannot be hidden if set on a hill. People 
do not light a lamp and put it under a peck-measure, but on 
the stand, and it gives light for all in the house. So let your 
light shine before men that they may see your good works and 
give glory to your Father in heaven. 

" Do not think that I have come to do away with the Law or 
the Prophets. I have not come to do away with them, but to 
fill them full. I tell you truly, until heaven and earth pass away 
not the smallest letter or part of a letter will pass away from 
the Law, until all is done. Whoever breaks one of these com- 
mandments, the least of them, and teaches men to do so, will 
be called least in the kingdom of heaven, and whoever does 
them and teaches them, he will be called great in the kingdom 
of heaven. For I say to you that, unless your righteousness 
far exceeds that of the scribes and Pharisees, you will not 
enter into the kingdom of heaven. 

"You have heard that it was said to the men of old, "Thou 
shalt not commit murder. Whoever commits murder shall 
answer for it to the court/ But I say to you that every one who 
is angry with his brother shall answer for it to the court; and 
whoever says to his brother, 'Raca' [empty-head], shall 
answer for it to the council; and whoever says, 'You fool' 
shall answer for it in the Gohenna 1 of fire. So then if you are 
bringing your gift to lay on the altar, and there you remember 
that your brother has something against you, leave your gift 
there before the altar and go, first be reconciled to your brother, 
and then come and offer your gift. Get on good terms with 
your adversary quickly while you are on the road with him, 
for fear tliat he may deliver you to the judge and the judge 
may deliver you to the officer and you may be cast into 

* Otihftnna wtut the* dump nutgfcta of Jerusalem where refuse was thrown and 
Th* mow* in bore uaod figuratively. 



8 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 

prison. Truly I tell you you will not come out until you pay 
the last penny." 

"You have heard that it was said, 'Thou shall not commit 
adultery.' But I say to you that every one who looks at a 
woman with lustful thoughts has already committed adultery 
with her in his heart. If your right eye is a snare to you, 
pluck it out and cast it from you; for it is better for you that 
one of your members should be lost and not your whole body 
be cast into Gehenna. And if your right hand is a snare to you, 
cut it off and cast it from you. It is better for you that one of 
your members should be lost and not your whole body go into 
Gehenna. 

"It was said, 'Whoever divorces his wife must give hrr a 
certificate of divorce/ But I say to you that every one who 
divorces his wife, unless for the cause of uncha*tity. make* hor 
commit adultery, and whoever marries a divorced woman 
commits adultery. 

"Again, you have heard that it wan said to the men of old, 
*Thou shalt not swear falsely, but shalt jwrform to th* Lord 
thine oaths/ But I tell you not to swear at all; wither by 
heaven, because it is God's throne j nor hy the earth, IX*O;*UH 
it is his footstool; nor by Jerusalem, because it w ilm city of 
the Great King; nor must you swear by your head, for you 
cannot make one hair white or black* But let your ye bo yi* 
and your no be no. Whatever is more than these i* from t*% 4 il, 
"You have heard that it was said, * An eye for an eye nnd a 
tooth for a tooth/ But I tell you not to wont a wh'kml wan, 
but if any one strikes you on the right chwk, turn to him ftlw 
the other; and if any ono is determined tonuoyou for your tunii*, 
let him have your cloak too; and Jf any oiw ramumirif h^n* ymt 
for a mile, go with him two. To him who !x'#s KJVU; from him 
who witthetf to borrow of you, do not turn nway. 

" You have heard that it w.'u* mid, 'Thou ulmlt love thy neigh- 
bor and hato thine enemy/ But I ay to you, Love* y our wrotui*** 
and pray for those who persecute you, that you rimy tic* mm* 
of your Father in heaven; for he inakcw hi* Rim to riw upon 
the bad and the good, and Hmuta ruin uj>on thi* junt am! th' 
unjust. For if you love those who love you, what reward Jmve 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 9 

you? Do not also the tax collectors do the same thing? And 
if you salute your brothers only, what superiority have you? 
H)o not the Gentiles do the same? You must be perfect as your 
heavenly Father is perfect. 

VI 

"BE careful not to do your religious actions before men in 
order to be seen by them. Otherwise you have no reward from 
your Father in heaven. When you give gifts of mercy, do 
not sound a trumpet before you as the hypocrites do in the 
synagogues and in the streets, in order that they may be 
honored by men. I assure you they get their payment in full. 
But you, when you are giving a gift of mercy, must not let 
your left hand know what your right hand is doing, so that your 
gift may be in secret, and your Father, who sees in secret, will 
repay you. 

"When you pray, you must not be like the hypocrites, for 
they love to stand and pray in the synagogues and on the street 
corners so as to be seen by men. I assure you they get their 
payment in full. But you, when you pray, go into your inner 
room and shut your door and pray to your Father who is in 
secret, and your Father, who sees in secret, will reward 
you, 

"When praying do not keep repeating, as the Gentiles do, 
for they think that they will be heard because of their multi- 
tude of words. Do not be like them, for your Father knows 
what you have need of before you ask him. Pray in this way: 

'Our Father in heaven, 
Thy name be kept holy; 
Thy kingdom come; 
Thy will prevail; 
As in heaven, so on earth. 

Our bread for the coming day 

Give us to-day; 
And forgive us our failures 

As we forgive those who fail towaxd us; 



10 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 

And bring us not into trial, 
But save us from evil/ 1 

For if you forgive men their wrongdoings, your heavenly 
Father will also forgive you; but if you do not forgive men, 
neither will your Father forgive you your wrongdoings. 

"When you fast, do not wear gloomy faces as hypocrites 
do. For they disfigure their faces so as to be seen by men to b<* 
fasting. I assure you they get their payment in full. But you, 
when fasting, anoint your head and wash your face, so &$ not 
to appear to men to be fasting, but to your Father who is in 
secret, and your Father, who sees in secret, will reward you. 

"Do not lay up for yourselves treasures on the earth, where 
moth and rust corrode and where thieves break in and tftosvL 
But lay up for yourselves treasures in heaven, where neither 
moth nor rust corrodes and where thieves do not break in nor 
steal. For where your treasure is there will your heart lx* also, 

"The lamp of the body is the eye. If your eye i* clear 
your whole body will be lighted up, but if your eye is bad your 
whole body will be darkened. If the light that i in you it 
darkness, how great the darkness is! No one can trve two 
masters. For either he will hate one and love* the other or he 
will hold to one and despise the other* You cannot a>rve God 
and Mammon.* 

"Therefore I tell you, do not bo anxious alx>ui your ph.wicul 
life what you am to eat or what you are to drink; nor alxwt 
your body what you arc to woar, IB not the life more than 
the food and the body more than the clothing? Ix*>k at thtt 
birds of tho air. They do not sow nor reap nor gather inta 
barns, but your heavenly Father feeds them. Am you not of 
more value than they? But who of you by being anxiou* ran 
add to IUH height one foot? * And why are you unxiou* about 

i Tho beautiful doxology, 

41 For thino i the kingdom 
And the power 
And tlit* ftinry 
Through tho age*. 



is not found in the old&at Greek oapfea, 
frThati^Kichos. 
* The Crook word hero tmnalatftd "foot" tuaoas about iht**a iachwu 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 11 

clothing? Consider the lilies of the field, how they grow. They 
neither toil nor spin. But I tell you that not even Solomon in 
all his splendor was arrayed like one of these. If God so clothes 
the herbage of the field, to-day growing and to-morrow thrown 
into the oven, will he not much more clothe you, O you of so 
little faith? So do not be anxious, saying, What are we to eat? 
or, What are we to drink? or, What are we to wear? For all 
these things the pagans seek after. For your heavenly Father 
knows that you need all these things. But you must seek first 
his kingdom and his righteousness, and all these things will 
be supplied to you. Do not be anxious about to-morrow, for 
to-morrow will take care of itself. Enough for the day is its 
own trouble. 

vn 

"Do not judge, so that you may not be judged. For with what- 
ever judgment you judge you will be judged, and with what- 
ever measure you measure you will be measured. Why do you 
look at the speck that is in your brother's eye, while you do 
not perceive the beam in your own eye? Or how will you say 
to your brother, 'Let me get out the speck from your eye/ 
when there is a beam in your own eye? You hypocrite, first get 
the beam out of your own eye, and then you will see clearly 
to get the speck out of your brother's eye. 

"Do not give what is holy to the dogs, nor cast your pearls 
before swine, for they may trample them under their feet and 
turn and tear you. 

" Ask and it will be given to you ; seek and you will find ; knock 
and the door will be opened, For every one who asks obtains, 
and he who seeks finds, and to him who knocks the door is 
opened. Is there any man of you who if his son asks him for 
bread will give him a stone? Or if he asks for a fish will give 
him a serpent? If you, though evil, know how to give good gifts 
to your children, how much more will your heavenly Father 
give good things to those who ask him. 

" All things that you wish men to do for you, do yourselves 
for them; for this is the Law and tho Prophets. 

"Enter through the narrow gate. For wide and spacious is 



12 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 

the road that leads away to ruin, and many there arc who go 
through it; but narrow is the gale and contracted is the road 
that leads into life, and few there are who find it. 

"Beware of false prophets, such as come to you in the clothing 
of sheep, but inwardly are ravenous wolves. From their fruits 
you will know them. Are grapes gathered from thonw or fi&s 
from thistles? Just so every good tree yields fine fruit, but a 
worthless tree yields bad fruit. It is not possible for a good 
tree to yield bad fruit nor for a worthless tree to yield fine 
fruit. Every tree that does not yield fine fruit is cut down ami 
thrown into the fire. So then, from their fruits you will know 
them. 

"Not every one who says to me, 'Master, Master/ will 
enter into the kingdom of heaven, but he who does the will of 
my Father who is in heaven. Many will say to me on that day, 
'Master, Master, did we not prophesy in your name, and in 
your name cast out demons, and in your name do many 
miracles?* And then I will tell them plainly, f l never knew 
you. Depart from me, you who work lawkwancA*.' 

"Every one, therefore, who bean* thw words of miztft nnrl 
does them will be like a wise man who built his hou*w upon 
the rock; and the rain descended and the river** iwe and the 
winds blew, and they beat upon that hou#e; but it foil not, 
for it had been founded on the rock. And ovory ono who hrars 
these words of mine and docs not do them will be like a foolish 
man who built his house upon the sand. And t he rain i Jo#cf?niled 
and the rivers rose and the winda blew, and they struck upon 
that house and it fell, and great waa the ruin of it/* 

When Jesus ended these words, the crowcta were a^toni^hed 
at his teaching. For ho taught them like one who hut! authority, 
and not as their scribes taught, 

VIII 

WHBN Jesus had come down from the mountain, grrat crowds 
followed him. And a leper camo up and bowed Iwfnre htm, 
and said, "Sir, if you have tho will* you have power to make me 
clean/' Jesus stretched out his hand and touchw! htm and 
said, "I have the will, be cleansed/' Instantly hi* lepruay waa 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 13 

cleansed away. Jesus said to him, "Be sure and do not say 
a word to any one, but go and show yourself to the priest and 
offer the gift which Moses prescribed as evidence for them." 

When Jesus had entered Capernaum there came to him a 
Centurion 1 who implored his help. "Sir/' he said, "my servant 
lies in my house a paralytic, in great distress." Jesus said to 
him, "I will come and heal him." The Centurion answered, 
" Sir, I am not worthy to have you come under my roof; but just 
speak the word and my servant will be cured. For I am a man, 
under authority, with soldiers under me, and I say to this 
one, 'Go,' and he goes, and to another, ' Come/ and he comes, 
and to my slave, 'Do this/ and he does it." When Jesus heard 
this, he was astonished and said, "Truly I tell you, I have not 
found so great faith on the part of any one in Israel. I tell you 
many will come from the east and from the west and vill 
recline 2 at table with Abraham and Isaac and Jacob in the 
kingdom of heaven. But the sons of the kingdom will be cast 
but into the darkness outside. There will be wailing and gnash- 
ing of teeth." Then Jesus said to the Centurion, "Go. As you 
have believed, so be it to you." His servant was healed that 
very hour. 

When Jesus entered the house of Peter, he saw his wife's 
mother lying sick with fever. He touched her hand and the 
fever left her. Then she arose and waited upon him. 

When evening came, they brought to him many demoniacs 
and he cast out the spirits by a word, and all their sick he 
healed. This was in order to fulfill what was spoken through 
Isaiah the prophet, "He took our weaknesses and bore away 
our diseases-" 

When Jesus saw a crowd around him, he gave directions to 
go over to the other side of the lake. Then a certain scribe 
came to him and said, "Teacher, I will follow you wherever 
you go." Jesus said to him, "The foxes have holes and the birds 
of the air have coverts, but the Son of Man has not where to 
lay his head." Another of his disciples said to him, "Sir, let me 

* Commander of ono hundred men in the Roman army. 

* In Palestine in thoao days people in taking moals always reclined on 
oouohoa around the table. 



14 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 

first go and bury my father." But Jesus said to him, "Follow 
me, and let the dead bury their own dead." 

Then he got into the boat and his disciples followed him. Soon 
a great storm broke on the lake so that the boat was hidden 
under the waves; but he was sleeping. His disciples cume to 
him and woke him and said, "Master, save us. We LITG going 
down." But he said, "Why are you frightened, you men of 
little faith?" Then he rose and rebuked the winds ami the 
lake, and there was a great calm. The men were astonished 
and said, "What sort of a person is this, whom even the winds 
and the lake obey? " 

When he arrived at the other side, the country of the 
Gadarenes, there met him two demoniacs coming out of the 
tombs. They were very fierce, so that no one W4i# able to ptw 
along that road. Suddenly they shouted, "Son of God, what 
have you to do with us? Have you come here to torment as 
before the time?" There was far off from them a herd of 
many swine feeding. The demons begged him, "If you b*t tw 
out, send us into the herd of swine." Ho said to thmn, "Go/* 
So they went out and entered into the swine. Tb uddwly 
the whole herd rushed down the steep bank into the lake and 
died in the waves, 

The herdsmen fled and went away to the town and told 
everything, including what had happened to tiu* tit'ninniitiM. 
Then at once all the town came out to men** Jesu^, am) when 
they saw him they begged him to depart from thtfir neighbor- 
hood* 



So Jesus got into the boat and crossed over and emu* to hfo own 
city. They brought to him a paralytic lyin^ on a ln*d. Wh**n 
Jesus saw their faith ho Baid to tho paralytic, "Haw 
boy, your sins are forgiven," At once aomo of tin* 
to themselves, "This man in apeaking profane word**/' 
knew their thoughts and aaid, "Why arcs you thinking *>vil 
thoughts in your hearts? For which it* easier to way, * Your #M* 
are forgiven,' or to say, 'Rise and walk*? But that ycm may 
know that the Son of Man has authority on earth to forgivu 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 15 

sins " then he said to the paralytic, "Rise, take up your bed 
and go to your house." Thereupon he rose and went away to 
his house. The crowds that saw it were astonished and gave 
glory to God, who had given such power to men. 

As Jesus was passing along from there, he saw a man named 
Matthew sitting at the tax office. Jesus said to him, "Follow 
me," and he arose and followed him. It happened that, while 
he was reclining at table in the house, many tax collectors and 
sinners came in and reclined at the table with Jesus and his 
disciples. When the Pharisees saw it, they said to hrs disciples, 
"Why does your teacher eat with tax collectors and sinners?" 
Jesus heard it and said, " The strong have no need of a physician, 
but the sick have. Go and learn what this means: 'I wish for 
kindness, and not for sacrifice/ I have not come to call righteous 
people, but sinners," 

Then the disciples of John came to Jesus and said, "Why 
are we and the Pharisees fasting while your disciples are not 
fasting?" He said, "Can the bridal party fast while the bride- 
groom is with them? But days will come when the bride- 
groom will be taken from them, and then they will fast. No one 
puts a patch of unshrunk cloth on an old cloak, for the filling 
pulls away from the cloak and the result is a worse tear. Nor 
do they pour new wine into old wine-skins, for if they do the 
skins burst. So the wine is spilled and the skins are ruined. 
But they put new wine into fresh wine-skins and both are 
preserved." 

While Jesus was talking to them, a synagogue Director came 
and bowed down before him and said, "My daughter has just 
died; but come and lay your hand upon her and she will live*" 
Jesus rose and followed him, and so did his disciples. Suddenly 
a, woman who had been suffering for twelve years from hemor- 
rhage came up behind him and touched the tassel of his cloak. 
For she said to herself, "If I touch only his cloak, I shall be 
healed*" But Jesus turned and, seeing her, said, "Courage, 
daughter, your faith has healed you." The woman was cured 
from that hour, 

Jesus entered the house of the Director and saw the flute- 
players and the crowd that was noisily lamenting, and he said, 



16 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 

"Leave the room, for the girl Is not dead; she is sleeping." 
They laughed at him. But after the crowd had been turned 
out, he went in and took hold of her hand and the girl rose up. 
The report of this spread through all that country. 

As Jesus was going along from there, two blind men followed 
him, calling out, "Have pity on us, Son of David." After he 
had entered the house, these blind men came to him. Jesus 
said to them, "Do you believe that I can do this?" They &iid t 
"Yes, Sir." Then he touched their eyes and said, " According 
to your faith be it to you." And their eyes were opened. Josus 
sternly commanded them, "Be sure and let no one know of 
this." But they went out and spread his fame through all that 
country. 

As they were going out, a dumb man who was also a de- 
moniac was brought to him. After the demon had been cast 
out, the dumb man spoke. The crowd wondered ami said, 
"Never was anything like this seen in Israel" But the Phari- 
sees said, "Through the Chief of the demons he cast* out the 
demons." 

Jesus made a circuit through all the cities and village**, trac*h~ 
ing in their synagogues, proclaiming the good news of the king- 
dom., and healing every disease and every infirmity. Seeing 
the crowds, he was touched with compassion for them, for they 
were torn and flung down like sheep that have no shepherd* 
Then he said to his disciples, "The harvest is great, but the 
laborers are few. Pray to the Master of the harvest to rash 
out laborers into his harvest*" 

X 

THEN, calling to him his twelve drariples, ho gave them aw* 
thority over impure spirite to cast them out, ami power to euro 
every disease and oveiy infirmity. The IUUIICH of the twt&lvn 
apostles arc these: Simon who is called Peter, ami Andrew hi* 
brother, James tho son of Zebcdoe and John hfa brother, Philip 
and Bartholomew, Thomas and Matthew tho tax collector, 
James tho son of Alphaws and Thaddaeua, Simon the &*nlot> 
and Judas Iscariot, the one who betrayed him. These twelve 
Jesus sent out and directed them: 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 17 

" Do not go into anyway of the Gentiles. Do not enter into 
any city of the Samaritans. But go rather to the lost sheep of 
the house of Israel. As you go proclaim, The kingdom of heaven 
is at hand. Heal sick men, raise dead men, cleanse lepers, cast 
out demons. You received without paying, give without being 
paid. Provide no gold nor silver nor copper in your belts, no bag 
for the road, nor two tunics nor shoes nor stick, for the work- 
man has a right to his food. Whatever city or village you go 
into, inquire who in it is worthy and stay with him until you 
leave the place. When you enter the house, salute it. If the 
house is worthy, lot your peace come upon it; but if it is not 
worthy, let your peace return to you. If any one does not 
receive you or hear your words, as you go out of that house or 
that city shake off the dust of your feet. I tell you truly it will 
be more tolerable for the land of Sodom and Gomorrah in the 
day of judgment than for that city. See, I am sending you 
out as sheep in the midst of wolves. Be as wise as serpents 
and as pure as doves. Be on your guard against men. For they 
will deliver you up to councils, and in their synagogues they 
will scourge you, and you will be brought before governors 
and kings for my sake, for a witness to them and to the Gen- 
tiles. But when they deliver you up, do not worry how or what 
you are to speak. For it will be given to you in that hour what 
you are to say. For it is not you who speak, but the Spirit 
of your Father that speaks within you* Brother will betray 
brother to death, and father will betray child, and children 
will rise up against parents and put them to death- And you 
will bo hated by all for my name's sake. He who endures to 
the end, that one will be saved. 

" When they persecute you in one city, flee to another. I tell 
you truly, you will not have gone through the cities of Israel 
before the Son of Man comes. The scholar is not above his 
teacher, nor the servant above his master. It is sufficient for 
the scholar to fare like his teacher and for the servant to faro like 
his master. If they have called the master of the house Beelze- 
bul, how much more the members of Ms household. Do not be 
afraid of them; for there is nothing hidden which will not be 
revealed, nor secret which will not be known. What I say to 



18 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 

you in darkness speak in the light, and what is whispered into 
your ear proclaim on the housetops. Do not fear before those 
who kill the body but cannot kiU the soul. Rather fear him 
who can destroy both soul and body in Gehenna. Are not two 
sparrows sold for a penny? Yet one of them will not fall on the 
ground without your Father. But even the hairs of your hea<l 
are all numbered. So do not fear. You are worth more than 
many sparrows. Every one who shall confess me before men 
I too will confess before my Father in heaven* Every one who 
shall disown me before men I too will disown before iny Father 
in heaven. 

"Do not think that I came to send peace on the earth. I 
came not to send peace, but a sword. For I came to net a man 
against his father and a daughter against her mother and a 
daughter-in-law against her mother-in-law. A man'** enemies 
will be the members of his own household. lie who lovea 
father or mother more than me is not worthy of me. He who 
loves son or daughter more than me is not worthy of me* Who- 
ever does not take his cross and follow after me is not worthy of 
me. He who finds his life will lose it, and he who loses hi* life 
for my sake will find it. He who receives you receives me, and 
he who receives me receives him that sent me. He who re- 
ceives a prophet because he is a prophet will get a prophet's 
reward, and he who receives a righteous man because he i# a 
righteous man will get a righteous man's reward. Whoever 
gives merely a cup of cold water to one of thcae little one* to 
drink because he is a disciple, I tell you truly he will not lotto 
his reward.' 7 



Jesus had finished instructing his twelve dfeeipta*, ho 
went away from that place to teach and preach in tin? 
towns. 

John had heard in prison of the doings of the Christ, aiul he 
sent by some of his disciples to ask, " Aru you * the Coming < )ne* 
or are we to expect some other?" Jesus answered thorn, "(So 
and tell John what you hear and see* Blind men recover eight, 
laine men walk, lepers are cleansed, deaf men hear, dead met* 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 19 

are raised, and poor men have the good news proclaimed to 
them. Blessed is he who does not mistake regarding me!" 

As these men went away, Jesus began to speak to the crowds 
about John: "What did you go out into the wilderness to see? 
A reed shaken by the wind? But what did you go out to see? 
A man dressed in soft clothes? Those who wear soft clothes 
are in kings' palaces. But why did you go out? To see a 
prophet? Yes, I tell you, and more than a prophet. This is the 
one of whom it was written, 'Behold, I send my messenger 
before thy face, who will prepare thy way before thee.' I tell 
you truly there has not arisen among those born of women a 
greater than John the Baptist. But any inferior in the kingdom 
of heaven is greater than he. From the days of John the Baptist 
until now the kingdom of heaven has been suffering violence 
and violent men have been seizing it. For all the prophets 
and the Law prophesied until John. If you are willing to believe 
it, he is Elijah who was to come. Whoever has ears, let him hear. 

"To what shall I compare this generation? It is like children 
sitting in the market-places who call to the others, 'We played 
the flute to you and you did not dance; we mourned and you 
did not beat your breasts/ For John came neither eating nor 
drinking* and they say, *He has a demon.' The Son of Man 
came eating and drinking, and they say, ' See a glutton and a 
wine-drinker; a friend of tax collectors and sinners.' Yet 
wisdom is proved to bo in the right by her works." 

Then he began to reproach the cities in which most of his 
miracles had boon done, because they had not repented: "Alas 
for you, Chorazin! Alas for you, Bethsaida ! For if in Tyre and 
Sidon the miracles had been done which were done in you, 
they would long ago have repented in sackcloth and ashes. 
But I tell you, it will be more tolerable for Tyre and Sidon in 
the day of judgment than for you. And you, Capernaum! 
No, you will not be exalted to heaven. You will be abased to 
Hades* Because if those miracles which were done in you had 
been done in Sodom, it would have remained until this day. But 
I tell you it will be more tolerable for the land of Sodom in the 
day of judgment than for you." 

At that time Jesus said, "I thank thee, Father, Lord of 



20 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 

heaven and earth, that thou hast hidden these tiling from tho 
wise and prudent and hast revealed them to babes. Yt^, Fat IKT, 
I thank thee that such was thy good pleasure. 

"All things have been delivered to me by my Father, and no 
one knows the Son but the Father, nor does any one know ih> 
Father but the Son and he to whom the Son may chooso to 
reveal him. 

"Come to me, all you who labor and are heavy ladra, ami I 
will give you rest. Take my yoke upon you and learn from 
me, for I am gentle and lowly in heart and you will find rest for 
your souls. For my yoke is easy and my burden is light." 

XII 

AT that time Jesus went on the Sabbath through tho grain- 
fields. His disciples were hungry and began to pluck ho:uls of 
grain to eat. When the Pharisees saw it they Haiti, "Sins your 
disciples are doing what is not allowable on thtt SafoK'ith," 
He said to them, "Have you not read what David did, whon 
he and his men were hungry? how he entered tho houso of ( 5otl 
and ate the consecrated bread which it was not allowable <*itlur 
for him to eat or for his men, but only for tho pnVsts? ( )r have 
you not read in the Law that on the Sabbath the priext** in th<* 
Temple break the Sabbath and yet are guiltless? I tell yon 
that something greater than the Temple is here. If you hrul 
understood this, 'I desire kindness and not sicrifi<* i s* you would 
not have condemned the guiltless. For tho Son of -Man it* lord 
of tho Sabbath," 

Passing over from there, he came into their **ynngogue. A 
man was there with a withered hand. They ut4t<*d jf wis, M I* it 
allowable to heal on tho Sabbath? " so that they might havo 
something to accuse him of. He said to thorn, " What inan 
is there of you who, if ho lias one sheep, am! it folk Into a pit 
on the Sabbath, will not lay hold on it and lift it out ? I Jut how 
much more is a man worth than a sheep! So it i* allowable* to 
do good on tho Sabbath/* Then ho said to tho man, % *8titt?h 
out your hand/' Ho stretched it out and it wa rwbm'cl tw 
sound as the othor. Tho Pharisees went out and plotted 
him how they could destroy him. 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 21 

But Jesus was aware of it and went away from that place. 
Many followed him and he healed them all; but he gave strict 
orders to them not to make him known. It was in fulfillment 
of these words of Isaiah the prophet, "Behold my servant whom 
I have chosen, the Beloved in whom my soul delights. I will 
put my spirit upon him and he will proclaim justice to the 
Gentiles. He will not strive nor cry, nor will any one hear his 
voice in the streets. A bruised reed he will not break, and a low- 
burning wick he will not quench, until he has carried justice to 
victory. In his name will Gentiles hope." 

Then there was brought to Jesus a demoniac, blind and 
dumb. He healed him so that he spoke and saw. All the 
crowds were astonished and said, "Is not this man the Son of 
David?" The Pharisees when they heard it said, "This man 
casts out demons only through Beelzebul the Chief of the 
demons." But he knew their thoughts and said to them, 
"Every kingdom divided against itself becomes a desolation, 
and no city or house divided against itself will stand. If Satan 
casts out Satan, he is divided against himself. How then will 
his kingdom stand? If I by Beelzebul am casting out demons, 
by whom do your sons cast them out? Therefore they shall b& 
your judges. But if I am casting out demons by the Spirit of 
God, then the kingdom of God is right upon you. How can 
any one enter the house of a strong man and seize his goods 
unless he first binds the strong man? Then he can plunder his 
house. 

"He who is not with me is against me, and he who does not 
gather with mo scatters. Therefore I say to you, every sin 
and profane word will be forgiven to men, but any profane 
word against the Spirit will not be forgiven. Whoever says a 
word against the Son of Man will be forgiven, but whoever 
speaks against the Holy Spirit will not be forgiven either in 
this world or in the world to come. Either make the tree good 
and its fruit good or make the tree bad and its fruit bad. For 
from the fruit the troo is known. Brood of vipers, how can you 
who arc evil speak good things? For from the overflow of the 
heart the mouth speaks. The good man out of his good treasury 
pours out good things, and the bad man out of his bad treasury 



22 . THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 

pours out bad things. I tell you, for every idle word that men 
speak they will give full account in the day of judgment, for 
from your words you will be justified and from your words you 
will be condemned." 

Then some of the scribes and Pharisees said to him, "Teacher, 
we wish to see a sign from you." He answered them, "A 
wicked and adulterous generation seeks for a sign. Bufc no 
sign will be given to it except the sign of the prophet Jonah. 
For as Jonah was in the belly of the whale three days and three 
nights, so will the Son of Man be in the heart of the earth throe 
days and three nights. The men of Nineveh will stand up at 
the judgment with this generation and will condemn it, for 
they repented at the preaching of Jonah, and more than Jonah 
is here* The Queen of the South will rise up at the judgment 
with this generation and will condemn it, for she came from tho 
ends of the earth to hear the wisdom of Solomon, and more than 
Solomon is here. 

"When the impure spirit has gone out of a man, he panmi 
through waterless places seeking rest and finds none. Then he 
says, 'I will return into my house that I left/ And ho comrs 
and finds it vacant, swept and in order. Then ho goes and takwt 
with him seven other spirits worse than himself* am! t!uy rntrr 
and live there. So the last state of that man become worw 
than the first. Just so will it be with this wickwi ^twraUon/* 

While Jesus was still speaking to the crowds, hfc mother nml 
his brothers were standing outside, trying to speak to him. 
Some one told him, but he replied, "Who is my mother and 
who are my brothers?" Then, stretching out htn hand oxvr 
his disciples, he said, "See my mother and my brother*! For 
whoever docs the will of xay Father in heaven it* m>* brother anil 
sister and mother/' 

XIH 

ON that day Jesus went out of the houae and flat brotde th^ 
lake. Great crowds gathered to him so that he got into a boat 
and sat in it, while all the crowd stood on the shore. He Hpota 
at length to them in illustrations. "A sower/* ho mud, "went 
out to sow. And as ho was sowing some seeds fell at tbe road- 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 23 

side and the birds came and ate them up. Others fell on 
rocky places where they had not much soil, and at once they 
sprang up because they had no depth of soil. But when the sun 
rose they were scorched, and because they had no roots they 
withered. Others fell among thorns and the thorns grew up 
and choked them. Others fell on good ground and made a 
yield, some of a hundred fold, some of sixty fold, some of 
thirty fold. He who has ears, let him hear." 

Then his disciples came to him and said, "Why do you talk 
to them in figures of speech?" He answered, "Because to 
you it is granted to know the mysteries of the kingdom of 
heaven, but to those people it is not granted. For whoever has, 
to him will be given and he will have abundance. But whoever 
has not, from him will be taken even what he has. For this rea- 
son I speak to them in figures, because, though they see, they do 
not see, and though they hear, they do not hear nor understand, 
and to them is fulfilled the prophecy of Isaiah: c You will plainly 
hear, but you will not understand, and you will clearly look, but 
you will not see. For the heart of these people has grown fat, 
and with their ears they are dull of hearing and their eyes they 
have closed; so that they may not see with their eyes and hear 
with their ears and understand with their heart and repent 
and I should heal them/ But blessed are your eyes, for they 
see, and your ears, for they hear. I tell you truly many proph- 
ets and righteous men desired to see the things you see, but 
they did not see them, and to hear the things you hear, but 
they did not hear them. So listen to the story of the sower: 
When any one hears the message of the kingdom and does not 
understand it, the Evil One comes and snatches away what 
was sown in his heart. This is the man who receives seed by 
the roadside* He who received seed on stony ground is he who 
hears the word and receives it at once with joy, yet has no 
root in himself, but is inconstant, and when trouble or persecu- 
tion arises on account of the message he stumbles and falls, 
He who received seed among thorns is he who hears the mes- 
sage, but the care of the world and the deceitfulness of wealth 
choke the message and it becomes fruitless. He who received 
seed in good ground is he who hears the message and under* 



24 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 

stands it and makes a yield of a hundred, or sixty, or thirty 
fold." 

Another illustration he put before them. He said, "The 
kingdom of heaven is like a man who sowed good seed in his 
field. But while people were sleeping his enemy came and 
sowed weeds through the wheat, and went away. When the 
blades shot up and formed grain, the weeds also appeared. 
Then the servants of the owner came and said to him, 'Sir, did 
you not sow good seed in your field? Where do the weeds come 
from?' He replied, 'An enemy did this/ The servants said to 
him, 'Do you want us to go and gather them up?' He said, 
'No, for in gathering up the weeds you might pull up the wheat 
along with them. Let both grow together until the harvest. 
At the time of harvest I will say to the harvesters. Gather up 
first the weeds and tie them into bundles for burning, but 
bring the wheat into my granary/ " 

Another illustration he put before them. He said, "The 
kingdom of heaven is like a mustard seed which a man took 
and sowed in his field. It is the least of all the seeds, but when 
it grows up it is greater than the garden herbs and becomes a 
tree, so that the birds of the air come and live in Jts branches." 
Another illustration he spoke to them, "The kingdom of 
heaven is like yeast which a woman took and hid in three 
measures of flour until it was all leavened." 

All of these things Jesus spoke to them in illustrations, and 
without an illustration he spoke nothing to thorn, to fulfill the 
words of the prophet when he said, "I will open my mouth in 
illustrations, I will utter things hidden since the foundation of 
the world/' 

Then leaving the crowds he came into the house, ami his 
disciples came to him and said, "Explain to us the illustration 
of the weeds of the field/ 7 He replied, " He who aowa the good 
seeds is the Son of Man. The field is the world. The good funnta 
are the sons of the kingdom. The weeds are the sons of the 
Evil One* The enemy that sowed them is the Devil* The 
harvest is the end of the world. The reapers are angels, A& tho 
weeds are gathered up and burned with fire, so shall it be at tho 
end of the world. The Son of Man will send hia aagek ami 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 25 

they will gather up from his kingdom all stumbling-blocks and 
those who practice lawlessness, and will cast them into the 
furnace of fire. There will be wailing and gnashing of teeth. 
Then will the righteous shine out like the sun in the kingdom 
of their Father. He who has ears, let him hear. 

"The kingdom of heaven is like treasure hidden in a field, 
which a man finds and hides again, and for joy goes and sells 
all that he has and buys that field. 

"Again the kingdom of heaven is like a merchant in search of 
fine pearls. Having found one very precious pearl he went away 
and sold everything that he had and bought it. 

"Again the kingdom of heaven is like a net cast into the lake 
that gathered up every sort. But when it was filled they drew 
it to the beach and sat down and gathered the good into pails, 
but threw the worthless away. So will it be at the end of the 
world. The angels will come forth and will separate the wicked 
from among the righteous and will cast them into the furnace 
of fire. There will be wailing and gnashing of teeth. Have you 
understood all these things?" They said, "Yes." He said to 
them, "Therefore every scribe educated in the kingdom of 
heaven is like a man who is a householder who brings out from 
Ms storehouse new things and old things." 

When Jesus had finished these illustrations, he went away 
from that place. Then ho came to his native place and taught 
them in their synagogue so that they were astonished and said, 
"Where did this man get this wisdom and these miracles? 
Is not this tho carpenter's son? Is not his mother named Mary 
and his brothers James and Joseph and Simon and Judas? 
And his sisters are they not all here with us? Where then 
did he get all this? " So they fell into mistake about him. But 
Jesus tsaid to them, "A prophet is not without honor except in 
his native place and in his own house." Because of their un- 
belief he worked there but few miracles* 

XIV 

AT that time Herod the Prince heard the reports about Jesus 
and said to his servants, "This is John the Baptist. He has 
risen from the dead and so miraculous powers are working in 



26 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 

him." For Herod had arrested John and had bound him, and 
put him in prison on account of Herodias, his brother Philip's 
wife. For John had said to him, "It is not lawful for you to 
have her." Although he wished to kill him, he was afraid of the 
people because they held him for a prophet. But when Herod's 
birthday came, the daughter of Herodias danced in the midst 
and pleased Herod, so that he promised with an oath that he 
would give her whatever she asked. She, prompted by her 
mother, said, "Give me here on a platter the head of John the 
Baptist." The king was grieved, but on account of his oaths 
and his guests he ordered it to be given her, and ho sent and 
had John beheaded in the prison. The head was brought in 
on a platter and was given to the girl and she lx>re it to her 
mother. The disciples of John came and took the body and 
buried it, and then they came and told Jesus. 

Upon hearing of it, Jesus went away in a boat privafoly to 
an uninhabited place. But the people heard of it ami followed 
him by land from the towns. As he got out of the boat , hi* saw 
a great crowd and he had compassion on them ami healed Him 
sick. When evening had come on, his disciples came to him and 
said, "This is an uninhabited place and the time b already late; 
send away the crowd so that they may go into the villages and 
buy themselves food." But Jesus said to them, "They do not 
need to go away. Give them food yourselves." They *said to 
him, "We have here nothing but five loaves and two fu4ic&" 
He said, "Bring them to me." Then he commands! tho 
crowd to recline on the grass, and he took f ho fiw Inavt^ ami 
the two fishes and looked up to heaven ami asked a bluing. 
Then ho broke up the loaves and gave them to bin diM*iplfw, 
and the disciples distributed to the crowd. All ate ami had 
abundance, and they took up twelve bzisketn full of the broken 
pieces that remained over. Those who ate were about fivo 
thousand men, besides women and children. 

Then he made his disciples get into the tx>at and go on 
across while ho was dismiwrnng the crowd. After ciifmiwing 
the crowd, he went up on the mountain by himwlf to pray; 
When evening came, ho was there alone. The Imat wa- already 
far out from land, beaten by the waved, for the wiud w&* ag0uu$t 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 27 

them. In the fourth watch of the night, he came to them walk- 
ing on the water. When the disciples saw him walking on the 
water, they were terrified, saying that it was a ghost, and they 
cried out with fear. But at once Jesus spoke to them and 
said, "Courage. It is I. Do not be afraid." Peter answered, 
"Sir, if it is you, bid me to come to you on the water." Jesus 
said, "Come." Then Peter got out of the boat and walked on 
the water and came to Jesus. But seeing the wind he became 
frightened, and, beginning to sink, he cried out, "Sir, save 
me!" At once Jesus stretched out his hand and grasped him 
and said, "0 man of little faith, why did you doubt?" After 
they got into the boat, the wind stopped. Then the men in the 
boat bowed down to him and said, "Truly you are the Son of 
God." 

Having crossed, they came to land at Gennesaret. When the 
men of that place recognized him, they sent into all that 
neighborhood and brought to him all the sick and begged him 
that they might touch merely the tassel of his cloak, and all 
who touched were cured. 

XV 

THEN scribes and Pharisees came to Jesus from Jerusalem and 
said, "Why do your disciples violate the tradition of our fore- 
fathers? For they do not wash their hands when they eat 
food." He answered them, "And why do you violate the 
command of God for the sake of your tradition? For God said, 
'Honor thy father and thy mother/ and, 'If any one speaks 
evil of father or mother, let him surely die.' But you say, ' Who- 
ever says to his father or to his mother, Whatever benefit you 
get from me is now dedicated to God, he shall not honor his 
father or his mother.' So you have nullified the command of 
God for the sake of your tradition. You hypocrites, well did 
Isaiah prophesy of you when he said, 'This people honor me 
with their lips, but their heart is far from me. In vain they wor- 
ship me while they teach as precepts the commands of men. ? " 
Calling the crowd to him he said to them, "Hear and under- 
stand. Not what enters the mouth defiles a man, but what 
comes out of the mouth that defiles a man." 



28 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 

Then his disciples came to him and said, " Do you know that 
the Pharisees were shocked when they heard what you said?" 
He replied, "Every plant which my heavenly Father did not 
plant will be uprooted. Beware of them. They are blind 
guides of the blind. If the blind leads the blind, both will fall 
into the ditch." Peter said, "Explain to us your figure." Jesus 
answered, "Are even you without insight? Do you not know 
that everything that goes into the mouth passes into the 
stomach and is cast out into the sewer? But the things that 
come out of the mouth proceed from the heart, and they 
defile the man. For from the heart proceed wicked thoughts, 
murders, adulteries, unchastities, thefts, perjuries, profane 
words. These are the things that defile a man. But to eat with 
unwashed hands does not defile a man." 

Leaving that place, Jesus retired into the region of Tyre and 
Sidon. Here a Canaanite woman of those parts came out and 
cried, "Sir, have pity on me, Son of David, My daughter is 
terribly tormented by a demon." But he did not answer hc*r a 
word. Then his disciples came and begged him, raying, "Pcmd 
her away; she keeps calling out behind us." He replied, " I was 
not sent except to the lost sheep of the house of Israel" But 
she came and bowed before him and said, "Help me, Sir*'* 
He answered, "It is not right to take the children's bread and 
throw it to the dogs." But she said, "Yes* Sir; for even the 
dogs eat of the crumbs that fall from their master?** table." 
Then Jesus said to her, "0 woman, great is your faith. Be it 
to you as you will." And her daughter was cured from that 
hour. 

On leaving there, Jesus came along by the lake of Galilee 
and went up on the mountain and sat down there. Them a 
great crowd came to him having with them lame men, maimed 
men, blind men, mutes, and many others, and they laid them 
at his feet and lie healed them. The crowd was astonished 
when they saw mutes talking, maimed men Bound, lame men 
walking about, and blind men seeing, and they gave glory to 
the God of Israel 

Jesus called his disciples to him and said, "I have compa* 
sion for the crowd, for they have now beoB with me three day* 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 29 

and they have nothing to eat. I do not want to send them 
away fasting; they might faint on the road." The disciples 
said to him, "Where can we get enough bread in this unin- 
habited place to feed such a crowd? " Jesus said, "How many 
loaves have you? " They said, " Seven, and a few small fishes." 
Then he told the crowd to recline on the ground, and he took 
the seven loaves and the fishes and gave thanks and broke 
them and gave to his disciples, and the disciples distributed to 
the crowd. All ate and were satisfied, and they picked up seven 
baskets full of fragments that were left over. There were four 
thousand men that ate, besides women and children. Then 
after dismissing the crowd he got into a boat and came into 
the region of Magadan. 

XVI 

THE Pharisees and Sadducees came to Jesus, and, in order to 
put him to a test, asked him to show them a sign from heaven. 
But he answered, "A wicked and adulterous generation is 
eager for a sign, but no sign will be given to it except the sign 
of Jonah"; and ho left them and went away. 

When the disciples got to the other side of the lake, they 
had forgotten to take bread, and Jesus said to them, "Be on 
your guard against the yeast of the Pharisees and the Sad- 
ducees." They were discussing this among themselves, saying, 
"It is because we have brought no bread," But Jesus, when 
he knew it, said, "Why are you discussing among yourselves, 
O men of little faith, because you have no bread? Do you not 
yet know? Do you not remember the five loaves of the five 
thousand and how many basketfuls you picked up? Or the 
seven loaves of the four thousand and how many basketfuls 
you picked up? How is it that you do not perceive that I was 
not speaking to you about bread? But beware of the yeast of 
the Pharisees and Sadducees." Then they understood that he 
had told them to beware not of the yeast of bread, but of 
the teaching of the Pharisees and Sadducees. 

After coming into the neighborhood of Csesarea Philippi, 
Jesus asked his disciples, "Who do people say that the Son of 
Man is? " They said, "Some say John the Baptist; others say 



30 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 

Elijah; others Jeremiah or some one of the prophets." He 
said to them, "But you, who do you say that I am?" Simon 
Peter said, "You are the Christ, the Son of the living God." 
Jesus replied, "Blessed are you, Simon Bar- Jonah, for flesh 
and blood have not revealed it to you, but my Father in heaven. 
And I tell you that you are Peter [which means Rock], and 
upon this rock I will build my church and the gates of 
Hades will not prevail against it. I will give you the keys 
of the kingdom of heaven, and whatever you bind on earth 
will be bound in heaven, and whatever you loose on earth will 
be loosed in heaven." Then he strictly charged his disciples 
not to tell any one that he was the Christ. 

From that time Jesus began to make plain to his disciples 
that he had to go away to Jerusalem, and suffer greatly from 
the elders and high priests and scribes, and be killed and on the 
third day be raised. Peter took him and began to reprove him, 
saying, "Please God, Sir; this shall not happen to you." But he, 
turning, said to Peter, "Get behind me, Satan; you are a snare 
to me, for you are not thinking God's thoughts, but men's." 
Then Jesus said to his disciples, "If any one chooses to como 
after me, let him disown self and take up his cross and follow 
me. For whoever chooses to save his life will lose it , and who- 
ever loses his life for my sake will find it. For what profit will 
a man have if he gains the whole world and forfeits his soul? 
or what can a man give to buy back his HOU!? For the Son of 
Man will soon coine in the glory of his Father with his ungcLs, 
and then he will repay each in full according to hia action*. 
I tell you truly there are some of those who are standing here 
who will not taste of death before they see the Soa of Man com- 
ing in liiti kingdom." 

xvn 

Six days later, Jesus took with him Peter and Jame$ and John 
his brother, and led them up on a high mountain alone* 
There he was transfigured before them. His face #tmnc Iikt> the 
sun and his clothes became white as the light, TIw*n ap|x?arwi 
to them Moses and Elijah talking with him. I*etr #ail to 
Jesus, "Sir, it is fine for us to be here* If you like, i will 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 31 

three tents, one for you and one for Moses and one for Elijah." 
While he was speaking, a bright cloud suddenly overspread 
them and a voice issued from the cloud, "This is my Son, the 
Beloved, in whom I delight. Hear him." The disciples on 
hearing this fell on their faces in great terror. But Jesus came 
and touched them and said, "Rise and do not be afraid." 
When they raised their eyes, they saw no one but Jesus him- 
self alone. 

As they were descending the mountain, Jesus charged them, 
"Tell the vision to no one until the Son of Man has risen from 
the dead." The disciples asked him, "Why do the scribes say 
that Elijah must come first?" He answered, "Elijah does come 
and restore all things. But I tell you Elijah has already come 
and they did not recognize him, but did to him whatever they 
chose. Just so the Son of Man is about to suffer at their hands." 
Then the disciples understood that he was speaking to them of 
John the Baptist. 

When they reached the crowd, a man came to Jesus and 
knelt to him and said, "Sir, have pity on my son, for he is a 
lunatic and is in a very bad way. For often he falls into the 
fire and often into the water. I brought him to your disciples 
and they could not cure him." Jesus answered, "O unbelieving 
and perverse generation, how long must I be with you? How 
long must I bear you? Bring him here." Then Jesus rebuked 
the demon, and he came out of him and the boy was well from 
that hour. 

Then the disciples came to Jesus aside and said, "Why were 
we unable to cast it out? " He said to them, "Because of your 
lack of faith- I tell you truly, if you have faith like a mustard 
seed you will say to this mountain, 'Remove from here to 
there," and it will remove, and nothing will be impossible for 
you." 

While they were assembling in Galilee, Jesus said to them, 
"The Son of Man will soon be betrayed into the hands of men, 
and they will kill him and on the third day he will be raised "; 
and they were deeply distressed. 

After they came to Capernaum, the men who were collecting 
the Temple tax came to Peter and said, "Does not your 



32 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 

teacher pay the Temple tax?" x He said, "Yes." But when 
he went into the house Jesus spoke first to him and said, " How 
do you think, Simon? From whom do the kings of the earth 
collect taxes or tribute, from their own sons or from those who 
are not?" Upon his saying, "From those who are not," Jesus 
said to him, "So then the sons are free. But in order that we 
may not mislead them, go to the lake and throw in a hook and 
take the first fish that comes up. When you open his mouth 
you will find a coin. Take that and give it to them for me and 
yourself /'- 

XVIII 

AT that time the disciples came to Jesus saying, "Who then is 
greatest in the kingdom of heaven?" He called to him a little 
child and stood him in the midst of them and said, "I tell you 
truly, unless you turn and become like the little children, you 
will not enter the kingdom of heaven. He who humbles himself 
like this little child, he is the greatest in the kingdom of heaven. 
Whoever receives one such little child for my name receives 
me; and whoever causes one of these little ones that believe 
in mo to stumble, it were better for him to have a great mill- 
stone 2 hung around his neck and be cast into the depths of 
the lake. Alas for the world because of the occasions of stum- 
bling! It must be that such occasions come, but ala for the 
man through whom any one is tripped up! If your hand or 
your foot is a snare to you, cut it off and cast it from you* Ifc 
is better for you to enter into life maimed or lame than with 
two hands or two feet to bo cast into the fire eternal. If your 
eye is a snare to you, pluck it out and cast it from you. It is 
better for you to enter into life one-eyed than with two eyes to 
be cast into the Gehenna of fire. See to it that you do not loofc 
down on one of these little ones* For 1 tell you, in heaven 
their angels continually behold the face of my Father in heaven. 
How does it seem to you? If a man has a hundred sheep and 
one of them strays away, will he not leave the ninety-nine on 

1 Tho Groek word hero translated "Temple tax" id the name of a coin worth 
about ono third of a dollar* 

8 Tho Crook moans "millstone of <m a*," Two kind* of millstonca wore in 
ueo, small ones turned by iiaud and large ouca tun&d by tuawa. 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 33 

the mountains and go and search for the straying one? And 
if he finds it, I tell you he rejoices more over it than over the 
ninety-nine that have not strayed. Just so it is not the will of 
your Father in heaven that one of these little ones should perish. 

"If your brother sins against you, go and show him his 
fault between yourself and him alone. If he listens to you, you 
have won over your brother. If he does not listen to you, take 
along with you one or two more, that at the mouth of two 
witnesses, or three, every word may be confirmed. If he refuses 
to hear them, tell it to the church. If he refuses to hear the 
church, let him be to you as a Gentile or a tax collector. I tell 
you truly, whatever you bind on earth will be bound in heaven, 
and whatever you loose on earth will be loosed in heaven. 

"Again I teU you that, if two of you agree on earth regard- 
ing any matter, whatever they pray for will come to them from 
my Father in heaven. For where two or three are gathered in 
my name, there am I in the midst of them." 

Then Peter came to him and said, "How often, Sir, if my 
brother sins against me, shall I forgive him? Up to seven 
times?" Jesus said to him, "I do not say up to seven times, but 
up to seventy times seven. 

"Therefore the kingdom of heaven is like a man who was a 
king, who determined to settle accounts with his servants. 
When he had begun the accounting there was brought to him 
one who owed him ten thousand talents. 1 Since he could not 
pay, his master ordered him to be sold, as well as his wife and 
his children and whatever he had, and payment to be made. 
But the servant fell down and did homage and said, 'Have 
patience with me and I will pay you in full/ Then the mas- 
ter, pitying the servant, released him and cancelled his debt. 
But that servant, on going out, found one of his fellow serv- 
ants who owed him a hundred shillings, 2 and he seized him 
and choked him, saying, *Pay in full what you owe/ His fel- 
low servant fell down and begged, saying, 'Have patience 

1 The talent was a sum of money varying in value in different times aixd 
places. Probably the talent here referred to was worth about $237, but money 
had larger purchasing power then. 

* The Greek word here translated "shilling" names a coin worth about 
16 2/3 cents. 



34 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 

with me and I will pay you in full.' But he would not, but 
went and threw him into prison until he should pay off the 
debt. When his fellow servants saw what had happened, they 
were deeply grieved and went and informed their master about 
everything. The master summoned him and said to him, 
' You wicked servant, all that debt of yours I cancelled when 
you begged me. Ought you not to have had pity on your fellow 
servant as I had pity on you?' Then his master was angry and 
delivered him to the torturers until he should pay off all that 
was owing to him. Just so will my Father in heaven do to 3 r ou 
if you do not forgive each one his brother from your hearts. " 

XIX 

WHEN Jesus had finished these words, he left Galilee and came 
within that part of Judsea beyond the Jordan. Great crowds 
followed him and he healed them there. 

Then some Pharisees came to him to test him. They said, 
"Is it allowable for a man to divorce his wife for any and 
every cause?" He replied, "Have you not read that the 
Creator in the beginning 'made them male and female,' and 
said, 'For this cause shall a man leave his father ami his mother 
and shall cleave to his wife and the two shall become one flesh *? 
So they are no longer two, but one flesh. What, therefore, Goci 
has yoked together let not man put asunder/' They said to 
him, "Why, then, did Moses command to give a writing of 
dismissal and divorce her?" He said to them, "Moses, because 
of your hard-heartedness, permitted you to divorce your wivoa, 
but at the beginning it was not so. And I tell you, whoever 
divorces his wife, except for unchastity, and marries another, 
commits adultery/' His disciples said to him T "If thin is the 
case of a man with his wife, it is bettor not to marry/' He $&it\ 
to them, "Not all can receive this word; but only thontf to 
whom it is granted. For there arc eunuchs BO lx>rn from their 
mother's womb, and there are eunuchs BO made l>y men, and 
there are eunuchs who have made themselvw eunuchn for the 
sake of the kingdom of heaven. Let him who i# able to rcctrive 
it receive it/' 

Then some little children were brought to him to have him 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 35 

lay his hands on them and pray. His disciples rebuked those 
who brought them. But Jesus said, "Let the little children 
come to me, and do not hinder them; for of such is the kingdom 
of heaven. " After laying his hands on them, he went away. 

A man came to him and said, "Teacher, what good thing 
shall I do to have life eternal? " He said to him, "Why do you 
ask me about the good? One only is the Good. But if you 
wish to enter into life, keep the commandments." He said 
to him, "Which?" Jesus said to him, "Thou shalt not commit 
murder, Thou shalt not commit adultery, Thou shalt not 
steal, Thou shalt not bear false witness, Honor thy father and 
thy mother, and Thou shalt love thy neighbor as thyself." 
The young man said to him, "All these I have kept. What do I 
lack still?" Jesus said to him, "If you wish to be perfect, go 
sell your property and give to the poor, and you will have treas- 
ure in heaven; and then come, follow me. " When the young 
man heard that saying, he went away grieved. For he pos- 
sessed great wealth. 

Jesus said to his disciples, "I tell you truly, a rich man will 
with difficulty enter the kingdom of heaven. Again I tell you, 
it is easier for a camel to enter the eye of a needle than for a 
rich man to enter the kingdom of heaven. " When the disciples 
heard this, they were amazed and said, "Who then can be 
saved?" Jesus looked at them and said, "With men this is 
impossible, but with God all things are possible. " 

Then Peter said, "Why, we have left everything and have 
followed you. What then shall wo receive?" Jesus said to 
him, "I tell you truly, you who have followed me, in the re- 
birth, when the Son of Man sits on his glorious throne, you also 
will sit on twelve thrones judging the twelve tribes of Israel. 
And whoever has left houses or brothers or sisters or father 
or mother or children or lands for my name's sake will receive 
manifold more and will inherit life eternal. But many now first 
will be last and many now last will be first. 

XX 

"THE kingdom of heaven is like a man who was a householder, 
who went out in the early morning to hire laborers for his 



36 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 

vineyard. After agreeing with the laborers for a shilling l a day, 
he sent them into his vineyard. He went out about nine o'clock 
and saw others standing in the market-place idle and said to 
them, 'You too go into my vineyard, and whatever is right I 
will give you. ' So they went. Again he went out about noon 
and about three o'clock and did the same. About five o'clock 
he went out and found others standing and said to them, 
'Why have you been standing the whole day idle?' They said, 
'Because no one has hired us.' He said to them, 'You go too 
into my vineyard. 7 When evening came, the owner of the 
vineyard said to his manager, 'Call the laborers and pay their 
hire, beginning with the last and going on to the first/ When 
those who were hired about five o'clock came, they received a 
shilling apiece, and when those who were hired first caino, thoy 
thought that they would get more. But they too received a 
shilling apiece. When they received it, thoy grumbled at the 
householder and said, i These last worked one hour and you have 
made them equal to us who bore the burden of the day and the 
heat.' But he answered one of them, 'Friend, I am not wrong- 
ing you. Did you not agree with me for a shilling? Take what 
belongs to you and go. I choose to give to this last man the 
same as to you. Have I not the right to do what I will with my 
own? Is your eye evil because I am good?' So the laat will l>e 
first and the first last." 

As Jesus was about to go up to Jerusalem, he took the twelve 
aside on the road and said to them, "We arn going up to 
Jerusalem, and the Son of Man will be betrayed to the high 
priests and the scribes, and they will condemn hint to death 
and will deliver him to the Gentiles to mock and to scourge 
and to crucify, and on the third day he will be rained*" 

Then came to him the mother of the sons of Zclttctet*, with 
her sons, bowing down to him and making a reqiu^t of him. 
He said to her, "What do you wish?" She said to him, "Give 
the command for these two sons of mine to nit one on your 
right and one on your left in your kingdom/ 1 Jesus auwwrt* i, 
"You do not know what you arc asking. Can you drink thtf 
cup that I am about to drink?" They said to him, " Wcs can.** 

* At that time in P&lofitine this WAS considered * faijr day 1 * wage. 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 37 

He said to them, "My cup you will drink, but seats on my 
right and on my left are not mine to give. They will be 
given to those for whom they have been prepared by my 
Father." 

When the ten heard of this, they were indignant at the two 
brothers. But Jesus called them to him and said, "You know 
that the rulers of the Gentiles lord it over them and their great 
ones wield power over them. It is not so among you. But who- 
ever wants to become great among you will be your servant, 
and whoever wants to be first among you will be your slave; 
just as the Son of Man came not to be served, but to serve, and 
to give his life a ransom for many." 

As they were leaving Jericho, a great crowd followed him. 
Two blind men were sitting at the side of the road, and when 
they heard that Jesus was passing, they cried out, "Sir, have 
pity on us, Son of David!" The crowd rebuked them and told 
them to be silent. But all the more they cried, "Sir, have pity 
on us, Son of David ! " Jesus stopped and called them and said, 
" What do you want me to do for you?" They said, "We want 
our eyes opened. " Jesus had compassion on them and touched 
their eyes, and at once they regained sight and followed him, 

XXI 

WHEN they drew near to Jerusalem and came to Bethphage 
and the Mount of Olives, Jesus sent two disciples, telling them, 
"Go into the village opposite and at once you will find an ass 
tied and a colt with her. Loose her and lead her to me. If any 
one says anything to you, you will say, 'The Master has need 
of them/ and at onco ho will send them." This happened in 
order that what was spoken through the prophet might be 
fulfilled, "Say to the daughter of Zion, Behold thy king comes 
to thee, gentle and riding on an ass and on a colt, the foal of 
a beast of draught/* The disciples went and did as Jesus had 
bidden them, and brought the ass and the colt, and spread on 
them their cloaks and seated him on them. A very large crowd 
spread their cloaks in the road, and others cut off branches from 
the trees and spread them in the road* The crowds that walked 
before and those that followed shouted, "God save the Son of 



38 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 

David! Blessed is he who comes in the name of the Lord! God 
in highest heaven save him!" 

When he entered Jerusalem all the city was shaken, and 
people said, "Who is this?" The crowds said, "This is the 
prophet Jesus from Nazareth in Galilee." 

Jesus went into the Temple courts and drove out all those 
who were selling and buying there. He overturned the tables 
of the money-changers and the seats of those who were selling 
doves, and he said, "It is written, 'My house shall be called a 
house of prayer/ but you are making it a den of robbers." 

Then blind men and lame men came to him in the Temple 
courts and he healed them. When the high priests and the 
scribes saw the wonders that he did and the children shouting, 
"God save the Son of David!' they were angiy and said to 
him, "Do you hear what these are saying?" Je^us said, " Yes. 
Have you never read, 'Out of the mouths of babes and suck- 
lings thou hast perfected praise ' ?" Then he left them and went 
out of the city to Bethany and spent the night there. 

Early in the morning as he was returning to the city, he 
was hungry, and seeing a solitary fig tree at the roadside he 
went to it, but found on it nothing but leaves only. He said 
to it, "Let there no more be fruit from you forever." The fig 
tree immediately withered up. Upon seeing this, the disciple* 
were astonished and said, "How suddenly the fig tree withered 
up!" Jesus said to them, "I tell you truly, if you have faith 
and do not doubt, you will not only do what has hwn done to 
the fig tree, but if you say to this mountain, 'Be taken up 
and thrown into the sea/ that will hapjx*n, and whatever you 
ask in prayer, believing, you will obtain." 

Whon he had gone into the Temple* courts, the high priests 
and the ciders of the people came to him a ho was touching ami 
said, "By what authority arc you doing this, and who avc you 
this authority?" Jesus replied to them, "I too xvill ask you one 
question. If you answer me, them I also will fall yon by what 
authority I am doing thin. The baptism of John - where did 
it come from? From heaven or from men?" They debated 
among themselves, "If we say, 'From heaven/ he will ay to 
us, 'Why then did you not believe him?' and if we sa>% * From 



. THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 39 

men/ we are afraid of the people, for they all hold John for a 
prophet. " So they answered Jesus, "We do not know. " He in 
turn said to them, "Neither will I tell you by what authority 
I am doing this. What do you think? A man had two sons. 
He went to the first and said, 'Son, go to-day and work in the 
vineyard/ He answered, 'I will, Sir/ but he did not go. The 
father went to the second son and said the same. He answered, 
'I will not/ but afterwards he changed his mind and went. 
Which of the two did the will of his father?" They said, "The 
last." Jesus said to them, "I tell you truly the tax collectors 
and the bad women are going before you into the kingdom of 
God. For John came to you in the path of righteousness 
and you did not believe him. But the tax collectors and the 
bad women believed him. And you when you saw it did not 
change your minds afterwards and believe him. 

"Listen to another illustration: There was a man, a house-r 
holder, who planted a vineyard and put a fence around it and 
dug a wine-vat in it and built a watch-tower, and let it out to 
grape-growers and went abroad. When the time of fruit drew 
near, he sent his servants to the grape-growers to get his fruit. 
But the grape-growers seized the servants, and one they beat, 
one they killed, one they pelted with stones. Again he sent 
other servants, more numerous than the first, but they treated 
them just the same. At last he sent to them his son, saying, 
'They will respect my son. ' But when the grape-growers saw 
the son, they said among themselves, 'This is the heir. Come, 
let us kill him, and wo shall have his inheritance.' So they 
seized him and threw him out of the vineyard and killed him. 
When, therefore, the owner of the vineyard comes, what will 
he do to those grape-growers?" They said to him, "He will 
put those miserable men to a miserable death, and will let out 
the vineyard to other grape-growers who will render him the 
fruits in their seasons*" Jesus said to them, "Did you never 
read in the Scriptures, 'The stone which the builders rejected, 
that one has become the corner stone. This stone came from 
the Lord and is wonderful in our eyes'? Therefore I tell you 
the kingdom of God will be taken away from you and will be 
given to a nation that produces the fruits. Whoever falls on 



40 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 

this stone will be shattered, and if it falls on any one, it will 
crush him to powder, " 

The high priests and the Pharisees listening to his illustra- 
tions knew that he was speaking about them. They were eager 
to seize him, but were afraid of the people, for the people held 
Him for a prophet* 

XXII 

AGAIN Jesus addressed them in figures. He said, " The kingdom 
of heaven is like a man, a king, who made a wedding feast for 
his son. He sent his servants to call those who had been invited 
to the wedding, but they would not come. Again he sent other 
servants, telling them, 'Say to those who have been invited, I 
have prepared my dinner; my oxen and fat things have been 
killed and everything is ready. Come to the wedding.' But 
they paid no attention, and went off one to his field and another 
to his trading. The rest seized his servants, treated them 
roughly, and killed them. Then the king grew angry and sent 
his armies and destroyed .those murderers and burned up their 
city. Then he said to his servants, 'The wedding banquet is 
ready, but those who were invited were not worthy. Go out on 
the crossroads, and every one you find invite to the wedding.* 
So those servants went out into the streets and gathered nil 
they found, both bad and good, and the wedding-hall was 
filled with guests. When the king came in to look over the 
guests, he saw there a man who was not dropped in a wedding 
robe, and he said to him, 'Friend, how did you come in here 
without a wedding robe?' But he was speechless. The king 
said to the attendants, 'Bind him feet and hands and throw 
him out into the darkness outside. 7 There will be wailing 
and gnashing of tooth. For many arc invited, but few arc 
chosen." 

Then the Pharisees went and held a consultation how they 
could entrap him in talk- They sent to him their dicJp!e with 
the Herodians and they said, "Teacher, we know that you are 
truthful and toach the way of God in truth, and that you am 
afraid of no one, for you do not regard the norm! standing of 
men. Tell us therefore what you think. Is it right to pay taxes 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 41 

to Caesar or not?" But Jesus knew their wickedness and said, 
"Why are you trying to test me, you hypocrites? Show me a 
piece of tax money." They brought him a shilling. He asked 
them, "Whose head is this, and whose inscription?" They 
said, "Caesar's." He said to them, "Then pay to Caesar what 
is Caesar's, and pay to God what is God's." When they heard 
this, they wondered and left him and went away. 

On that day some Sadducees came to him asserting that 
there is no resurrection, and they asked him, "Teacher, Moses 
said, 'If any man dies childless, his brother shall marry his 
widow and raise up offspring for his brother. ' Now there were 
with us seven brothers. The first married and died childless 
and left his wife to his brother. So did the second and the 
third down to the seventh. The woman died last of all. In the 
resurrection, then, which of the seven will have the wife? For 
they all had her." Jesus replied to them, "You are all astray 
because you do not understand either the Scriptures or the 
power of God. For in the resurrection they neither marry nor 
are married, but are like the angels in heaven. But in refer- 
ence to the resurrection of the dead, have you not read what 
was said to you by God when he said, ' I am the God of Abra- 
ham and the God of Isaac and the God of Jacob' ? He is not 
the God of dead men, but of living men. " The crowd on hear- 
ing this were amazed at his teaching. 

The Pharisees, hearing that he had silenced the Sadducees, 
gathered, and one of them, a lawyer, in order to test him, asked, 
"Teacher, which commandment in the law is greatest?" 
Jesus said to him, "'Thou shalt love the Lord thy God with 
all thy heart and with all thy soul and with all thy mind. 7 
This is the greatest and first commandment- The second is like 
it, *Thou shalt love thy neighbor as thyself/ On these two 
commandments hang all the Law and the Prophets." 

While the Pharisees were assembled, Jesus asked them a 
question, "What do you think in regard to the Christ? Whose 
son is he?" They said, "David's." He said, "How then does 
David by inspiration call him 'Lord/ saying, 'The Lord said 
to my Lord, Sit at my right hand until I put your enemies un- 
der your feet' ? If David calls him ' Lord, ' how is he his son?" 



42 , THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 

No one was able to answer him a word, and no one from that 
day dared ask him any more questions. 

XXIII 

THEN Jesus addressed the crowd and his disciples. He said, 
"The scribes and Pharisees have seated themselves on Moses' 
seat. So whatever they tell you, do and observe, but do not 
do as they do. For they say and do not. They tie up heavy 
burdens and lay them on men's shoulders, but they them- 
selves will not move them with one of their fingers. All their 
works they do to be seen by men. They make their phylacteries 
broad and make their tassels large. They love the best couches 
at dinners and the front seats in the synagogues and saluta- 
tions in the markets and to be called by men Rabbi. But do 
not you be called Rabbi. For one is your Teacher and all of you 
are brothers. And do not call any one on earth Father, for one 
is your Father in heaven. Neither be called guides, for your 
Guide is one alone the Christ. The greatest of you will l>e 
your servant. Whoever exalts himself will be humbled, and 
whoever humbles himself will be exalted. 

"But alas for you, scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites! for 
you shut the kingdom of heaven before men. You yourselves 
do not enter nor do you permit those who are entering to go 
in. Alas for you, scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites! for you 
compos sea and land to make one proselyte, and when he is 
won you make him twice as much a son of Gehenna as your- 
selves. Alas for you, blind guides! You say, 'Whoever swears 
by the Temple, it is nothing; but whoever swears by the gold 
of the Temple i bound/ Fools and blind, which is greater, the 
gold or the Temple that makes the gold holy? You say, 
* Whoever swears by the altar, it is nothing; but whoever swears 
by the gift that is on the altar ia bound/ You blind, which i* 
greater, the gift or the altar that makes the gift holy? He, then, 
who swears by the altar swears by it und everything on it, 
and he who swears by the Temple swears by it and by him 
who dwells in it, and he who swears by heaven swears by the 
throne of God and by him who sits upon it. 

"Alas for you, scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites! for you pay 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 43 

tithes of mint, dill, and carraway and have disregarded the 
weightier matters of the law justice and kindness and good 
faith. These you should have practiced, without neglecting those 
other things. Blind guides, who strain out a gnat and drink down 
a camel! Alas for you, scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites! for you 
cleanse the outside of the cup and the dish, but inside they are 
full through greed and self-indulgence. Blind Pharisees, cleanse 
first the inside of your cup so that the outside of it may become 
clean also. Alas for you, scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites! for 
you are like whitewashed tombs which outside appear beautiful, 
but inside are full of dead men's bones and every kind of un- 
cleanness. So you, too, outwardly appear to men to be right- 
eous, but inwardly you are full of hypocrisy and lawlessness. 

"Alas for you, scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites! for you 
build the tombs of the prophets and decorate the monuments 
of the righteous arid say, 'If we had been in the days of our 
fathers, we would not have been partakers with them in the 
blood of the prophets/ So you witness against yourselves that 
you are sons of those who murdered the prophets. Fill up, then, 
the measure of your fathers' guilt. Serpents, brood of vipers, 
how can you escape being sentenced to Gehenna? Therefore 
I am sending to you prophets and wise men and scribes. Some 
of them you will kill and crucify, and some you will scourge in 
your synagogues and will persecute from city to city, so that 
all the righteous blood shed on earth, from the blood of right- 
eous Abel to the blood of Zachariah the son of Barachiah, whom 
you murdered between the Temple and the altar, may come 
on you. I tell you truly all this will come on this generation. 
Jerusalem, Jerusalem, you who kill the prophets and stone those 
who are sent to you, how often would I fain have gathered 
your children as a bird gathers her nestlings under her "wings, 
and you would not. See, your house is left to you desolate, for 
I tell you, you will not see me from now on until you say, 
'Blessed is he who comes in the name of the Lord!'"- 

XXIV 

JBSXJS left the Temple courts and was going away when his 
disciples came to point out to Mm the Temple buildings. He 



44 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 

answered them, " Do you not see all these things? I tell you 
truly there will not be left here one stone upon another which 
will not be thrown down." 

While he was sitting on the Mount of Olives, the disciples 
came to him privately and said, "Tell us when these things will 
be, and what will be the sign of your coming and of the end of 
the world?" Jesus answered them, "Make sure that no one 
misleads you. For many will come in my name and will say, 
'I am the Christ,' and they will lead many astray. You will 
soon hear of wars and rumors of wars. Take care and do not 
be alarmed, for such things must be; but the end is not yet. 
For nation will rise against nation and kingdom against 
kingdom, and there will be famines and earthquakes here and 
there. All of these things are the beginnings of birth-pangs. 
Then they will deliver you up to persecution and will kill 
you, and you will be hated by all the Gentiles on account of 
my name. Then many will stumble and fall and will betray 
one another and will hate one another. Many false prophets 
will arise and will lead many astray, and because of the wide 
spread of lawlessness the love of most will grow cold. But he 
who endures to the end, he will be saved. And this good news of 
the kingdom will be proclaimed in all the inhabited work! fur 
a testimony to all the Gentiles. And then will come the end. 

"So when you see the abomination of desolation, spoken of 
by Daniel the prophet, standing in the holy place [Let the 
reader understand], then those who are in Judaea are to flee to 
the mountains; he who is on the house is not to go down to 
take the things out of his house, and he who in in the field is not 
to turn back and take his cloak. Alas, for the women with 
child and the nursing mothers in those days! Pray that your 
flight may not be in the winter nor on the Sabbath. For there 
will be then great suffering, such as has not Ixwn from the 
beginning of the world until now, nor ever shall be again. 

" Unless those day had been fthortened none would be #a\'ed j 
but for the sake of the chosen tho,se days will be shortened. 
Then if any one says to you, 'See, here is the Christ/ or 'here,' 
do not believe him. For false Christs and falae prophets will 
arise and will give great signs and wonders so as to mislead, if 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 45 

possible, even the chosen. See, I have told you beforehand. 
So, if they say to you, 'He is in the wilderness,' do not go out 
there. If they say, 'in the inner rooms,' do not believe it. For 
as the lightning comes out of the east and shines across to the 
west, so will the coming of the Son of Man be. Wherever the 
carcass is, there will the vultures flock together. 

" Immediately after the distress of those days the sun will be 
darkened and the moon will not give her light, and the stars 
will fall from heaven and the powers of heaven will be shaken. 
And then will appear the sign of the Son of Man in heaven. 
Then will all the tribes of the earth beat their breasts for grief, 
and they will see the Son of Man as he comes on the clouds of 
heaven with power and great glory. And he will send his 
angels with a loud trumpet-blast, and they will gather his 
chosen from the four winds, from one end of heaven to the 
other. 

"From the fig tree take an illustration. When now its 
branch becomes soft and puts out leaves, you know that sum- 
mer is near. Just so when you see all these things, know that he 
is near at the door. Truly I tell you, this generation will not 
pass away before all these things happen. Heaven and earth 
will pass away, but my words will not pass away. But of that 
day and hour no one knows, not even the angels of heaven, not 
even the Son, but the Father alone. For, as the days of Noah 
were, so will the coming of the Son of Man be. As in the days 
before the flood they were eating and drinking, marrying and 
giving in marriage, until the day that Noah went into the ark, 
and they knew nothing until the flood came and swept them 
all away, so will the coming of the Son of Man be. Then there 
will bo two men in the field. One will be taken with him and 
one will bo left. There will be two women grinding at the mill. 
One will bo taken with him and one will be left. Watch, there- 
fore, for you do not know what day your Master is coming* 
But this you do know, that if the householder had known in 
which watch the thief was coming he would have watched and 
would not have lot his house be broken into. Therefore be you 
also ready, for in an hour that you do not think the Son of Man 
?$ coming. Who, thon, is the faithful and wise servant whom 



46 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 

the master has placed over his household to give them food in 
due season? Blessed is that servant whom his master, when he 
comes, will find so doing. I tell you truly that he will place 
him over all that he owns. But if that wicked servant says in 
his heart, 'My master is delaying,' and begins to strike his 
fellow servants and to eat and drink with the drunken, the 
master of that servant will come on a day when he is not ex- 
pecting and at an hour when he is unaware, and will cut him 
asunder and assign his part with the hypocrites. There will 
be wailing and gnashing of teeth. , 

XXV 

"THEN the kingdom of heaven will be like ten maidens who 
took their lamps and went out to meet the bridegroom. Five 
of them were foolish and five were wise; for the foolish ones 
took their lamps, but took with them no oil; while the wise 
took oil in their flasks with their lamps. As the bridegroom was 
late in coming, all grew drowsy and slept. At midnight a cry 
was raised, 'Here is the bridegroom. Come out to meet him! 7 
Then all those maidens arose and trimmed their lamps. But 
the foolish said to the wise, 'Give us some of your oil, for our 
lamps are going out.' But the wise answered, 'There may not 
be enough for us and you. Go rather to the dealers and buy 
for yourselves/ While they were going to buy, the bridegroom 
came, and those who were ready went in with him to the wed* 
ding, and the door was shut. Afterwards came the rest of 
the maidens, saying, 'Master, Master, open for us.* But he 
answered, 'I tell you truly I do not know you.' Watch, there- 
fore, for you do not know the day nor the hour. 

"It is just as when a man going abroad called his servants 
and committed to them his property. To one he gave five tal- 
ents, to another two, and to another one, to each according to 
his particular ability* Then he went abroad. At once he who 
received the five talents went and traded with them and gained 
five more. In the same way he who received the two gained 
two more. But he who received the one talent went away and 
dug in the ground and hid his master's money. After a long time 
the master of those servants came and had an accounting with 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW ' ' 47 

them. The man who had received the five talents came and 
brought five talents more, saying, 'Master, you committed to 
me five talents; see, I have gained five talents more.' His 
master said to him, 'Well done, good and faithful servant. 
You have been faithful over a few things, I will place you over 
many things. Enter into the joy of your master.' The man 
who had received the two talents came and said, 'Master, 
you committed to me two talents; see, I have gained two 
talents more.' His master said to him, 'Well done,. good and 
faithful servant, you have been faithful over a few tilings, I will 
place you over many things. Enter into the joy of your mas- 
ter.' Then the man who had received the one talent came 
and said, 'Master, I knew that you were a hard man, reaping 
where you did not sow and gathering where you did not thresh, 
and I was afraid, and went away and hid your talent in the 
ground. There, you have your own.' His master replied, 
' You wicked and idle servant. Did you know that I reap where 
I did not sow and gather where I did not thresh? Then you 
ought to have turned over my money to the bankers, and 
at my coming I should have received my own with interest. 
Take from him the talent and give it to him who has the ten tal- 
ents. For to every one who has will be given, and he will have 
abundance; but from him who has not, even what he has will 
be taken. And the worthless servant throw out into the 
darkness outside. There will be wailing and gnashing of teeth-' 
" When the Son of Man comes in his glory, and all the angels 
with him, then he will sit on his glorious throne and all the 
nations will be assembled before him. And he will divide them 
one from another as a shepherd divides the sheep from the 
goats. He will place the sheep on his right hand and the goats 
on his left. Then will the King say to those on his right hand, 
',Come, you who have been blessed by my Father, inherit the 
kingdom prepared for you from the foundation of the world! 
For I was hungry and you gave me food; I was thirsty and you 
gave me drink; I was a stranger and you took me in; naked 
and you clothed me. I was sick and you cared for me. I was in 
prison afad you came to me.' Then will the righteous answer, 
'Lord, when did we see you hungry and feed you, or thirsty 



48 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 

and give you drink? When did we see you a stranger and take 
you in, or naked and clothe you? When did we see you sick or 
in prison and come to you?' The King will answer, 'I tell you 
truly, inasmuch as you did it to one of these my brothers 
even the least you did it to me.' Then he will say to those 
on his left hand, 'Depart from me, you cursed, into the fire 
eternal prepared for the Devil and his angels. For I was 
hungry and you gave me no food; I was thirsty and you gave 
me no drink; I was a stranger and you did not take me in; 
naked and you did not clothe me; sick and in prison and you 
did not care for me.' Then they too will answer, 'Lord, when 
did we see you hungry or thirsty or a stranger or naked or sick 
or in prison and did not serve you?' He will answer them, 'I 
tell you truly inasmuch as you did not do it to one of these 
least, you did not do it to me.' These will go away into punish- 
ment eternal, but the righteous into life eternal." 

XXVI 

WHEN Jesus had finished all these discourses, he said to his 
disciples, "You know that after two days comes the Passover, 
and the Son of Man is to be betrayed to be crucified." 

Then the high priests and the elders of the people assembled 
at the house of the High Priest, who was called Caiaphas, and 
they plotted to seize Jesus by some trick and kill him. But 
they said, "Not on the feast day, so that there may not be a 
riot among the people." 

When Jesus had come to Bethany and was in the house of 
Simon the leper, a woman came up to him, bringing an alar 
baster jar of costly ointment, and poured it on his head white 
he was reclining at table. On seeing this, the disciples were in- 
dignant and said, "Why this waste? This could have been sold 
for a large sum and given to the poor." But Jesus observed 
it and said, " Why axe you troubling the woman? She has done 
a beautiful thing to me. You have the poor with you always, 
but me you will not have always. For in pouring this ointment 
on my body she prepared me for burial. I tell you truly wher- 
ever this good news shall be proclaimed in the whole world, 
what she has done will be spoken of too in memory of her*" 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 49 

Then one of the twelve, who was called Judas Iscariot, went 
bo the high priests and asked, "What will you give me if I 
betray him to you? " They paid him thirty pieces of silver. 1 
And from that moment he kept seeking a favorable time to 
betray him. 

On the first day of unleavened bread, the disciples came to 
Jesus and said, "Where do you wish us to prepare for you to 
eat the Passover? " He answered, " Go into the city to a certain 
man and say to him, 'The Teacher says, My time is near. 
I will keep the Passover with my disciples at your house.' " 
The disciples did as Jesus had instructed them and prepared 
the Passover. 

When evening had come, he was reclining at table with the 
twelve disciples. While they were eating, he said, "I tell you 
truly one of you will betray me." Greatly grieved, they began 
to ask him, each in turn, "It is not I, Master? " He answered, 
" He who dipped his hand with me in the dish is the one who 
will betray me. The Son of Man is going as it has been written 
of him, but alas for that man by whom the Son of Man is 
betrayed! For that man it would be good not to have been 
born/' Then Judas the traitor asked, "It is not I, Rabbi?" 
Jesus replied, "It is you." 

While they were eating, Jesus took a loaf and blessed it and 
broke it and gave it to his disciples, saying, " Take this and eat 
it. This is my body." Then he took a cup, and after giving 
thanks gave it to them, saying, "Drink from it, all of you; for 
this is my blood of the covenant, which is shed for many for 
the forgiveness of sins. I tell you I will not drink again of this 
fruit of the vine until that day when I shall drink it with you, 
new, in the kingdom of my Father." 

After singing a hymn, they went out to the Mount of Olives. 
Then Jesus said to them, "All of you will stumble and fail me 
to-night; for it is written, 'I will smite the shepherd, and the 
sheep of the flock will be scattered.' But after I am raised, I 
will precede you to Galilee." Peter answered him, "Though all 
stumble and fail you, I never will stumble and fail." Jesus said 
to him, "I tell you truly that to-night, before the cock crows, 
1 A " piece of silver" was worth about 33 cents. 



50 . THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 

you will disown me three times." Peter said to him, "Even if 
I have to die with you, I will not disown you." And so said all 
of the disciples. 

Jesus came with them to a place called Gethsemane, and 
said to the disciples, "Sit here while I go and pray yonder." He 
took with him Peter and the two sons of Zebedee, and began 
fco be grieved and distressed. He said to them, "My soul is 
exceedingly sad, even to death. Stay here and watch with 
me." Then he went a little farther and fell on his face and 
prayed, "My Father, if it is possible, let this cup pass from 
me. Yet not as I will, but as thou wilt." Then he came to the 
disciples and found them sleeping, and said to Peter, "So you 
could not watch one hour with me! Watch and pray so as not 
to enter into temptation. Your spirit is eager, but your flesh is 
weak." Again a second time he went away and praj'ed, "My 
Father, if this cannot pass unless I drink it, thy will be done." 
He came again and found them sleeping, for their eyes were 
heavy. So he left them and went away again and prayed a 
third time, saying again the same words. Then he came to the 
disciples and said to them, "You are sleeping on and resting! 
Now has come the hour when the Son of Man is to bo betrayed 
into the hands of sinners. Up, let us be going. Here comes my 
betrayer." 

While he was still speaking, Judas, one of the twelve, came 
and with him a great crowd with swords and clubs, sent by the 
high priests and ciders of the people. The traitor had given 
them a sign, saying, "The one I kiss is he. Arrest him-" Im- 
mediately he came up to Jesus and said, "Good evening, 
Rabbi," and kissed him affectionately. Jesus said to him* 
"Friend, do what you are hore for." Then they came and laid 
their hands on Jesus and arrested him. Suddenly one of tho**e 
with Jesus stretched out his hand and drew his word, and 
struck a servant of the High Priest, cutting off his ear, Jesus 
said to him, "Put your sword back into its place, for all who 
take tho sword will perish by the sword- Do you think that 
I cannot call on my Father and have him send to me now 
more than twelve legions of angels? But how then would tho 
Scriptures be fulfilled that so it must be?" Jesus said to the 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 51 

crowd, "Have you come out to seize me as if against a robber, 
with swords and clubs? Every day I sat in the Temple teaching 
and you did not arrest me. But all this has happened that the 
writings of the prophets might be fulfilled." Then all the dis- 
ciples left him and fled. 

The men who had arrested Jesus led him away to Caiaphas 
the High Priest, at whose house the scribes and elders had 
assembled. Peter followed him at a distance as far ELS the court 
of the High Priest, and went in and sat among the attendants 
to see the end. The high priests and the whole council sought 
for false testimony against Jesus, so that they might put him 
to death. But they did not find any, although many false wit- 
nesses came. Finally, two came forward and said, "This man 
said, 'I can pull down the Temple of God and in three days 
build it up again.' " The High Priest rose and said to him, 
"Have you no answer? What is it that these are testifying to 
against you?" But Jesus kept silence. The High Priest said 
to him, "I adjure you by the living God to tell us whether you 
are the Christ, the Son of God." Jesus said to him, "I am he. 
But I tell you, hereafter you will see the Son of Man sitting on 
the right hand of power and coming on the clouds of heaven." 
Then the High Priest rent his garments, saying, "Impious 
words! Why do we any longer need witnesses? See, you have 
now heard his impious words. What do you think?" They 
answered, "He deserves death." Then they spit in his face 
and struck him with their fists. Some slapped him, saying, 
"Act the prophet for us, you Christ! Who was it that struck 
you?" 

Peter was sitting outside in the court. A maid came up to 
him and said, "You too were with Jesus the Galilsean." But he 
denied it before all, saying, "I do not know what you mean." 
When he had gone out into the gateway, another maid saw him 
and said to thoso who were there, "This man was with Jesus 
the Nazarene." Then again he denied with an oath, "I do not 
know the man." After a little those who were standing there 
came up and said to Peter, "Truly you are one of them, for 
your accent proves it." Then he began to curse and swear, 
"I do not know the man." Immediately the cock crew, and 



52 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 

Peter remembered what Jesus had said, "Before the cock 
crows you will disown me three times," and he went out and 
wept bitterly. 

XXVII 

WHEN morning came all the high priests and the elders of the 
people consulted together against Jesus to put him to death. 
After binding him, they led him away and handed him over to 
Pilate the Governor. Then Judas, who had betrayed him, 
when he saw that Jesus had been condemned, was sony and 
returned the thirty pieces of silver to the high priests and 
elders, saying, "I sinned in betraying innocent blood !" 
But they said, "What is that to us? You must see to that." 
Then throwing the silver into the Temple he left and went 
and hung himself. 

The high priests took the money and said, "It is not proper 
to put it in with the consecrated gifts, since it is the price of 
blood." So after consultation they bought with it the potter's 
field for the burial of strangers. For this reason that field is 
called tho " Field of Blood " to this day. Then was fulfilled what 
was said through Jeremiah the prophet, "And they took the 
thirty pieces of silver, the price of him who was priced, whom 
they priced from the sons of Israel, and gave them for the 
potter's field, as the Lord commanded me/' 

Jesus stood before the Governor. The Governor asked him. 
"Are you the King of the Jews? " Jesus said, "I am." While 
ho was being accused by the high priests and olden*, he an- 
swered nothing. Then Pilate said to him, "Do you not hear 
how many things they are testifying against you? " But J<^UH 
did not answer oven one word, so that the Governor was much 
astonished. 

At every feast the Governor wan accuatomcd to rchiasc for 
the people one prioner, whomever they chose. There wtw* at 
that time a notorious prisoner named Barabbas* So, when they 
had gathered, Pilate Baid to them, "Whom do you want me 
to release for you, Barabbaa or Jesus who ia called Christ?" 
For he knew that out of jealousy they had handed him over. 
While ho was sitting on the judge's feat, hia wife sent to him a 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 53 

message, " Do not have anything to do with that righteous man. 
For I have suffered much to-day in a dream because of him." 

The high priests and the elders persuaded the crowd to ask 
for Barabbas and destroy Jesus. The Governor said to them, 
"Which of the two do you want me to release for you?" 
They said, "Barabbas." Pilate said to them, "What, then, 
shall I do with Jesus who is called Christ? " They all said, 
"Have him crucified." He said, "Why, what wrong has he 
done?" But they kept shouting furiously, "Have him cru- 
cified!" When Pilate saw that he was doing no good, but 
rather that an uproar was arising, he took some water and 
washed his hands before the crowd and said, "I am innocent 
of this blood. You will have to see to it." All the people 
answered, "His blood be on us and on our children!" Then 
he released Barabbas for them, but scourged Jesus and handed 
him over to be crucified. 

Then the soldiers of the Governor took Jesus with them into 
the castle and gathered about Mm all the battalion. They 
stripped him and put on him a crimson cloak, twisted together 
a crown of thorns and put it on his head, put a reed into his 
right hand, and, going down on their knees before him, made 
sport of him, shouting, "Hail, King of the Jews!" They spit 
on him, and took the reed and struck him on the head. After 
they had finished making sport of him, they took off from him 
the crimson cloak and put his own clothes on him, and led him 
away to crucifixion. As they were going out, they chanced upon 
a man from Gyrene by the name of Simon. This man they 
impressed to carry the cross of Jesus. 

On coming to a place called Golgotha (that is, Skull Place), 
they gave him wine mixed with gall to drink. He tasted it and 
would not drink it. When they had crucified him, they divided 
his clothes by casting lots. Then thoy sat and kept watch over 
him there. Above his head they put up the charge against 
him in writing: 

THIS IS JESUS THE KING OF THE JEWS 

At the same time there were crucified along with him two 
robbers, one on his right and one on his left. The people who 



54: THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 

went by insulted him, shaking their heads and saying, "You 
who can pull down the Temple and in three days build it up, 
save yourself! If you are the Son of God, come down from 
the cross! " In the same way the high priests, making sport of 
him 3 along with the scribes and elders, kept saying, "He saved 
others ; he cannot save himself- He is the King of Israel ; let him 
come down now from the cross and we will believe in him. He 
trusted in God, let him deliver him now if he wants him, for 
he said, *I am the Son of God.' " In the same way even the 
robbers who were crucified with him insulted him. 

From noon darkness came over all the land until three 
o'clock. About three o'clock Jesus cried out with a loud voice, 
"Eli, Eli, lama sabachthani? " (that is, "My God, my God, 
why hast thou forsaken me? ") Some of those who were stand- 
ing there said, when they heard it, "This man is calling for 
Elijah," Immediately one of them took a sponge and filled it 
with sour wine and put it on a reed and gave him a drink. The 
rest said, "Let him alone, lot us see whether Elijah comes to 
save him." But Jesus, after calling out again with a loud voice, 
gave up his spirit. 

Suddenly the curtain of the Temple was rent in two from 
top to bottom. The earth quaked. The rocks were split, and 
the tombs were opened and many bodies of the sleeping saints 
arose, and, coming out of the tombs after his resurrection, they 
entered into the holy city and appeared to many. The Centu- 
rion and his men who were guarding Jesus, when they saw the 
earthquake and the things that happened, were greatly terri- 
fied and said, "Truly this man was a son of God! " 

Looking on from a distance, were many women who had 
followed Jesus from Galilee, waiting upon him. Among thorn 
were Mary Magdalene, and Mary the mother of James and 
Joses, and the mother of the sons of Zebedee* 

In the late afternoon there caxne a rich man of Arimathata, 
named Joseph, who also himself was a disciple of Jesu. This 
man went to Pilate and asked for the body of Jesus, and Pi- 
late ordered it to be given to him. Joseph took the body and 
wrapped it in a clean linen sheet and laid it in his own new 
tomb, which he had hewn in the rock* Then he roiled a great 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 55 

stone up to the door of the tomb and went away. Mary Mag- 
dalene remained there and the other Mary, sitting opposite 
the tomb. 

On the next day, that is, the day after the Preparation, the 
high priests and the Pharisees gathered about Pilate and said, 
"Sir, we remember that that deceiver said while he was alive, 
'After three days I shall be raised up/ So give orders to have 
the tomb guarded until the third day. Otherwise his disciples 
may come and steal him away and tell the people, 'He has 
been raised from the dead/ and the last error will be worse 
than the first." Pilate said to them, "You may have a guard. 
Go make it as secure as you know how." They went and made 
the tomb secure by sealing the stone as well as setting a watch. 

XXVIII 

LATE on the Sabbath, as the first day of the week was drawing 
near, Mary Magdalene and the other Mary came to look at 
the tomb. And suddenly there was a great earthquake. For an 
angel of the Lord descended from heaven and came to the stone 
and rolled it away and sat upon it. His appearance was like 
lightning and his raiment white as snow. For fear of him the 
guards trembled violently and became like dead men. The 
angel said to the women, "Do not you be afraid. For I know 
that you are looking for Jesus who was crucified. He is not 
here. He has been raised, as he told you. Come see the place 
where he lay. Go quickly and tell bis disciples that he has been 
raised from the dead. He will precede you to Galilee. There 
you will see him. See, I have told you." They left the tomb 
quickly with fear and great joy and ran to tell his disciples. 
Suddenly Jesus met them and said, "Hail!" They came up 
and clasped his feet and bowed down before him. Then Jesus 
said to them, "Do not be afraid. Go and take the message 
to my disciples to go away to Galilee and there they will see 
me." 

While they were going, some of the guard came into the city 
and brought word to the high priests of all that had happened. 
After assembling with the elders and holding a consultation, 
they gave a good deal of money to the soldiers and said, "Say, 



56 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MATTHEW 

'His disciples came in the night and stole him away while we 
were asleep/ and if this comes to the ears of the Governor we 
will persuade him and free you from trouble." The soldiers 
took the money and did as they were instructed. And this 
report has been spread among the Jews to this day. 

The eleven disciples went to Galilee, to the mountain where 
Jesus had appointed to meet them, and they saw him and 
bowed down before him; but some doubted, Jesus came io 
them and talked with them. Ho said, "To me has been given 
all authority in heaven and on earth. Go, therefore, and make 
disciples of all the nations, baptizing them in the name of the 
Father and of the Son and of the Holy Spirit, teaching them 
to keep all the commands that I have given you. And, Ix^hold, 
I am with you all the days to the end of the world/* 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 



THE Beginning of the Good News of Jesus Christ. 

It is written in Isaiah the prophet, "Behold, I am sending 
my messenger before your face, who will prepare your way. 
The voice of one crying in the wilderness, 'Make ready the 
way of the Lord; make his paths straight'"; just so John the 
Baptist appeared in the wilderness, preaching the baptism of 
a change of heart for forgiveness of sins. All the land of Judsea 
and all the people of Jerusalem went out to him and were 
baptized by him in the Jordan river, confessing their sins. 

John's clothes were of camel's hair and he had a leather belt 
around his waist, and he ate locusts and wild honey. He pro- 
claimed, "One is coming after me who is more powerful than 
I, the strap of whose sandals I am not worthy to stoop and 
loose. I have baptized you with water, but he will baptize you 
with the Holy Spirit." 

In those days Jesus came from Nazareth in Galilee, and was 
baptized by John in the Jordan. Immediately as he was com- 
ing up from the water he saw the heavens opened and the 
Spirit as a dove descending upon him. And there was a voice 
from the heavens, "Thou art my Son, my Beloved; in thee I 
am well pleased." 

Immediately the spirit impelled him to go out into the wild 
lands. And he was in the wild lands forty days, tempted by 
Satan. There he was among the wild beasts, but angels waited 
upon him. 

After John had been betrayed, Jesus came into Galilee, 
proclaiming the good news of God and saying, "The time has 
been completed and the kingdom of God is at hand. Repent 
and believe the good news." 

As he passed along by the lake of Galilee, he saw Simon and 
his brother Andrew, casting a net into the lake, for they were 
fishermen. Jesus said to them, "Follow me and I will make 



58 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 

you fishers of men." They immediately left their nets and 
followed him. Going on a little farther, he saw James the son 
of Zebedee and his brother John in their boat, mending their 
nets. Immediately he called them. They loft their father 
Zebedee in the boat with the hired men and followed him 
away. 

They came into Capernaum. Immediately on the Sabbath 
he went into the synagogue and taught. The people were 
astonished at his teaching, for he taught them as if he had 
authority, and not as the scribes. 

There was in their synagogue a man under the power of an 
impure spirit, and he immediately cried out, "What have you 
to do with us, Nazarene Jesus? Have you come to destroy us? 
I know who you are the Holy one of God. " But Jesus re- 
proved him and said, "Bo still, and come out of him." Then 
the impure spirit convulsed him, and screamed loudly and came 
out. They were all amazed so that they discussed together, 
"What is this? A now powerful teaching! Ho commands oven 
the impure spirits and they obey him!" So reports atxnit him 
immediately spread everywhere through the whole region of 
Galilee. 

As soon as they had come out of the synagogue, they entered 
the house of Simon and Andrew, with James and John. The 
mother-in-law of Simon was lying sick with fever. Immediately 
they told him about her. He came to her, and took her hy 
the hand and lifted her up. The fever left her and she waited 
on them. 

When evening came and the sun had set, they brought to 
him all the sick and those who were afflicted with demorw; and 
the whole city was gathered before the door. He healed many 
who were sick with various diseases, and cast out many demons, 
not allowing the demons to talk, because they knew him- 

Early in the morning, while it was still night, he rose and 
went out, and went away into a solitary place and then* 
prayed. Simon and his companions searched for him, and when 
they found him they said to him, "All arc looking for you/ 
But he said to them, "Let us go somewhere elo among tho 
neighboring villages, so that I may preach there too; for it was 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 59 

for this purpose that I came away. " And he went through all 
Galilee, preaching in their synagogues and casting out demons. 
There came to him a leper, begging him and kneeling to him 
and saying, "If you will, you can cleanse me/' He had com- 
passion on him, and stretched out his hand and touched him, 
and said, "I do will it; be cleansed." Immediately the leprosy 
left him and he became clean. Then Jesus sent him away after 
strictly charging him, "Be sure, do not say anything to any- 
body, but go and show yourself to the priest and offer for your 
cleansing what Moses prescribed for evidence." But the man 
went away and began to proclaim freely and to spread the 
report, so that Jesus was no longer able to enter openly into 
any city, but stayed out in the wild country, and people came 
to him from every direction. 

II 

HE came again into Capernaum, and after some days it was 
heard that he was in the house. Many came together, so that 
there was no longer room even near the door, and he preached 
to them. Then some people came bringing to him a paralytic, 
borne by four. Not being able to bring him near, owing to the 
crowd, they opened the roof where he was, and when they had 
broken through it, they let down the pallet on which the par- 
alytic was lying. When Jesus saw their faith, he said to the 
paralytic, "Son, your sins are forgiven." There were some of 
the scribes sitting there and debating in their minds, "Why 
does this man talk so? He speaks profane words. Who except 
God can forgive sins?" Immediately Jesus, perceiving that 
they were inwardly reasoning in this way, said to them, "Why 
do you reason so in your minds? Which is easier, to say to the 
paralytic, 'Your sins are forgiven,' or to say, 'Rise, take up 
your pallet and walk' ? But that you may know that the Son 
of Man has power on earth to forgive sins, " turning to the 
paralytic he said, "I tell you, Rise, take up your pallet and go 
to your house." Immediately the man rose and took up his 
pallet and went out before all, so that they were astounded and 
gave praise to God, saying, "We have never seen anything like 
this!" 



60 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 

Jesus went out again beside the lake, and all the crowd came 
to him and he taught them. As he was passing along, he saw 
Levi, the son of Alphaeus, sitting at the tax office and said to 
him, "Follow me." He arose and followed. 

Jesus was reclining at table in Levi's house, and many tax 
collectors and sinners also reclined at table along with Jesus 
and his disciples, for there were many who followed him. 
When the scribes and the Pharisees saw that he was eating 
with sinners and tax collectors, they said to his disciples, 
"Can it be that he eats with tax collectors and sinners?" 
When Jesus heard it, he said to them, "The strong have no 
need of a physician, but the sick have. I did not come to call 
righteous men, but sinners. " 

The disciples of John as well as the Pharisees were fasting. 
They came and said to Jesus, "Why is it that the disciples of 
John and the disciples of the Pharisees are fasting, but your 
disciples are not fasting?" Jesus replied, "Can guests at a 
wedding fast while the bridegroom is with them? As long as 
they have the bridegroom with them, they cannot fast. But 
days will come when the bridegroom will be taken away from 
them, and then they will fast, in those days. No one sew a 
patch of unshrunk cloth on an old coat. For the patch will 
break away, the new from the old, and a worse tear will be 
made. No one pours new wine into old wineskins. For the 
wine will burst the skins, and both wine anil skins will be 
lost." 

It happened on a Sabbath day that he was parang through 
the grainfiolds, and his disciples lx*gan, as they walked, to 
pluck the heads of grain. The Pharisees ud to him, "See 
what they are doing on the Sabbath something that fa not 
allowable." He said to them, "Have you never read what 
David did when he had need and was hungry, he and hin com- 
panions? how he went into the house of God, when Abiathar 
was High Priegt, and ate the consecrated loaves, which it JH not 
lawful for any but the priests to eat, and gave them alao to his 
companions?" He said to them, "The Sabbath was mado for 
man and not man for the Sabbath; so the Son of Man is Lord 
even of the Sabbath. 71 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 61 

HI 

HE went another time into the synagogue and there was pres- 
ent a man with a withered hand. They watched him to see 
whether he would heal him on the Sabbath, so that they 
might have something to say against him. He said to the man 
with the withered hand, "Stand up in the center." Then he 
said to them, "Is it allowable to do good on the Sabbath or to 
do harm, to save a life or to kill? " But they kept silent. He 
looked round on them with anger, grieved at the hardness of 
their hearts, and said to the man, "Stretch out your hand." 
He stretched the hand out and it was completely restored. 
The Pharisees went out immediately and joined with the He- 
rodians in a plot to put him out of the way. 

Then Jesus withdrew with his disciples to the lake and a 
great number from Galilee followed him. Also from Judsea 
and from Jerusalem and from Idumsea and from beyond the 
Jordan and from the neighborhood of Tyre and Sidon, a great 
number, hearing of all that he was doing, came to him. 

Jesus spoke to his disciples to have a little boat ready for 
his use on account of the throng, to prevent them from press- 
ing upon him. For he healed many, so that all that had 
diseases crowded around him to touch him. The impure spirits, 
also, when they saw him, fell down before him and shouted, 
"You are the Son of God." But he ordered them repeatedly 
and sternly not to make him known. 

Jesus went up on the mountain and invited whom he chose, 
and they came to him. He appointed twelve who should be 
with him and whom he could send out to preach and to have 
authority to cast out demons. He appointed these twelve: 
Simon, to whom he gave the name Peter (Rock), James the son 
of Zebedee and John his brother, to whom he gave the name 
Boanerges, which means Sons of Thunder, Andrew, Philip, 
Bartholomew, Matthew, Thomas, James the son of Alphseus, 
Thaddseus, Simon the Zealot, and Judas Iscariot, who be- 
trayed him. 

Jesus came into a house and the crowd gathered again so 
that they were not able even to eat bread. When his family 



62 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 

heard of it, they went out to take him by force, for they said, 
"He is out of his mind/' The scribes who had come down from 
Jerusalem were saying, "He has Beelzebul in him, and by 
the Chief of the demons he casts out demons." Jesus called 
them to him and said to them in figures: "How can Satan cast 
out Satan? If a kingdom is divided against itself, that kingdom 
cannot stand. And if a house divides against itself, that house 
will not be able to stand. So if Satan has risen up against him- 
self and is divided, he cannot stand, but has an end. No one 
can enter the house of a strong man and plunder his goods 
unless he first binds the strong man, and then he can plunder 
his house. Truly I tell you all sins will be forgiven to the sons 
of men and all their profane words, whatever they may say, 
but whoever speaks profane words against the Hoi}- Spirit has 
no forgiveness forever, but is guilty of an eternal sin. n This he 
said because they said, "He has an impure spirit. " 

Then came his mother and his brothers, and standing out- 
Bide sent and called him out. A crowd was sitting around him 
when some one said to him, "Your mother and your brothers 
and sisters are outside and want you." But he answered, 
"Who is my mother and who are my brothers?" Looking 
round at those sitting in the circle about him he said, " Here are 
my mother and my brothers. Whoever does the will of God la 
my brother and sister and mother," 

IV 

AGAIN Jesus began to teach beside the lake, and a very great 
crowd gathered around him, so that he got into a boat on the 
lake and sat down, and all the crowd was on the shore near the 
lake. 

He taught them many things by figures of speech. He said 
to them in his teaching, "Listen; a sower went out to sow, and 
it happened^ as he was sowing, that some seed fell beside the 
road and the birds came and ate it. Other seed fell on stony 
places where it had not much earth, and it sprang up at once 
because it had no depth of soil, but when the sun came up it 
was scorched and because it had no root it withered away. 
Other seed fell among thorns and the thorns grew up and 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 63 

choked it and it yielded no grain. Other seed fell into good 
ground and grew tall and strong and yielded thirty, sixty, or 
a hundred fold." He said to them, "Let him who has ears to 
hear with hear. " When he was alone, his close friends and the 
twelve asked him about the illustrations. He replied, "To 
you the mystery of the kingdom of God has been confided. 
But to outsiders all things come in figures of speech so that 
they may look straight and yet not see, and hear plainly, yet 
not understand, and thus they will never repent and be for- 
given." 

He said to them, "Do you not understand this illustration? 
How, then, will you understand all the illustrations? The 
sower sows the word. These are those in whom the message is 
sown by the roadside such as hear, but immediately Satan 
comes and takes away the message that was sown in their 
minds. These are they likewise who received seed on stony 
places such as hear and immediately and gladly receive the 
word, but, since they have no root, but are fickle, whenever 
trouble or persecution arises on account of the word, im- 
mediately they fail. Others are those who receive seed among 
thorns such as hear the word, but the cares of this world 
and the deceitf ulness of riches and the passions for other things 
come in and choke the word, and it turns out barren. These 
are those who received seed in good ground such as hear 
the message and receive it and yield thirty, sixty, or a hundred 
fold." 

He said to them, "A light is not brought in to be put under 
a peck-measure or under a bed, is it? Is it not brought to be 
placed on the stand? For there is nothing hidden except to be 
manifested; nor was anything made secret except to come to 
light. If any one has ears to hear with, let him hear. " 

He said again to them, "Be careful what you hear. With 
the measure that you measure with, it will be measured to you, 
and more will be given you. For to him who has will be given, 
and from him who has not, even what he has will be taken." 
He said again, "The kingdom of God is like this: A man casts 
seed on the ground and goes on sleeping by night and rising by 
day, and the seed sprouts and grows up, he knows not how* 



64 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 

The ground of itself yields fruit: first the stalk, then the ear, 
then comes the full grain in the ear. When the grain is ripe 
immediately he puts in the sickle because the harvest has 
come. " 

Again he said, "With what shall we compare the kingdom of 
God? or by what figure can we illustrate it? It is like a mustard 
seed, which, when it is sown in the ground, although it is the 
least of all the seeds that are in the ground, yet grows up and 
becomes larger than all the garden herbs, and puts out great 
branches so that the birds of the air can find shelter under its 
shadow." 

With many such illustrations he went on talking to them as 
they were able to listen; but except in figures of speech he did 
not talk to them. Privately to his own disciples he explained 
all things. 

On that day when evening came he said to them, "Let us 
cross over to the other side. " So they left the crowd and took 
him along just as he was, in the boat. There were also other 
boats with them. Then a heavy squall of wind came up and 
the waves beat into the boat so that it was filling. But ho was 
in the stern asleep on the cushion. They aroused him and said 
to him, "Teacher, do you not care that we arc sinking? " 
When he awoke, he rebuked the wind and said to the sea, 
"Hush, be still. " The wind ceased and there was a groat calm* 
Then he asked them, "Why are you so timid? How is it you 
have no faith?" But they were intensely awestruck and said 
to one another, "Who, then, is this, that even the wind and 
the lake obey him?" 

v 

THEY came to the other side of the lake, to the land of the 
Gerasenes. When he got out of the boat, immediately there 
came out of the tombs to meet him a man undor the power of an 
impure spirit. This man made his dwelling in the tombs, and 
nobody could bind him even with a chain, because he had 
often been bound with fetters and chains, and the chains; had 
been torn apart and the fetters broken in pieces by him t and no 
one was strong enough to tame him. All night and oil day long 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 65 

he was in the tombs and in the mountains, shrieking and cut- 
ting himself with stones. 

When he saw Jesus a long way off, he ran and knelt to him 
and shouted with a loud voice, "What have I and you to do 
with each other, Jesus, Son of God most high? I adjure you 
by God, not to torment me.". For Jesus had said to him, 
"Come out from the man, you impure spirit." Jesus asked 
him, "What is your name?" He replied, "Legion is my name, 
for we are many. " Then he begged Jesus earnestly not to send 
them out of the country. There was on the mountain-side a 
great herd of swine feeding, and the demons begged him, 
" Send us to the swine and let us go into them. " He consented. 
The impure spirits came out of the man and entered into the 
swine. Then the herd, numbering about two thousand, rushed 
down the steep bank into the lake and were drowned in the lake. 

At this, those who were feeding them fled and told it in the 
city and in the fields, and people came to see what had hap- 
pened. When they came to Jesus, they saw the demoniac, the 
man who had had the legion, sitting there clothed and in his 
right mind. They were struck with awe. Those who had seen 
it told them about what had happened to the demoniac and 
about the swine. Then they began to beg him to go away from 
their neighborhood. 

As Jesus was entering the boat, the man who had been de- 
moniac begged him to let him stay with him. He, however, 
did not consent, but said, "Go to your own house and to your 
family, and tell them what great things the Lord has done for 
you and how he had mercy on you." So he went away and 
began to make known in Decapolis what great things Jesus had 
done for him; and all were astonished. 

When Jesus had recrossed in the boat to the other side of the 
lake, a great crowd gathered around him as he stood on the 
shore. Then came one of the directors of the synagogue, by 
the name of Jairus, and as soon as he saw Jesus he fell at 
his feet and pleaded with him earnestly, saying, "My little 
daughter is near to death. I beg you to come and lay your 
hands on her so that she may be saved and live." Jesus went 
away with him and a great crowd followed and pressed upon 



66 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 

him. There was a woman who had for twelve years had a 
hemorrhage and had suffered much under the treatment of 
many physicians, and had spent all that she had, though with- 
out becoming better, but rather worse; this woman had heard 
about Jesus, and she came in the crowd behind him and 
touched his cloak, for she said, "If I can touch even his 
clothes, I shall be healed." Immediately the hemorrhage 
ceased and she knew in her body that she was healed of her 
affliction. Jesus was at once conscious that power had gone 
from him, and turned in the crowd and said, "Who touched 
my clothes? " His disciples replied, "You see the people 
crowding you, and do you ask, 'Who touched me?'" But 
he looked around to see who had done it. Then the woman, 
afraid and trembling, knowing what had happened to her, 
came and fell before him and told him all the truth. He said to 
her, "Daughter, your faith has healed you. Go in peace and 
be well of your trouble." 

While he was still speaking, people came from the house of 
the synagogue Director and told him, "Your daughter is dead; 
why annoy the teacher any longer?" But Jesus, overhearing 
what they were saying, said to the Director, "Never fear; only 
believe. " He did not permit any one to accompany him except 
Peter and James and John, the brother of James. When they 
approached the Director's house, they saw a noisy crowd weep* 
ing loudly and wailing. He entered and said, "Why arc you 
making so much noise and weeping so? The child is not dead, 
but is sleeping. " But they laughed at him. Then he put them 
all out and took the child's father and mother and his own 
companions and went in where the child was. Taking hold of 
the child's hand he said to her, "TaJitha fcoura," which means, 
"Little girl, rise up." Immediately the little girl rose up and 
walked around. She was twelve years old. They were utterly 
amazed. But he strictly ordered that 110 one should know it, 
and told them to give her something to eat 

VI 

LEAVING there, he came to his own native place accompanied 
by his disciples. When the Sabbath caiae, he began teaching 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 67 

in the synagogue. Many who heard were astonished and said, 
"Where did he get this, and what is this wisdom with which 
he is gifted? How are such deeds of power done by his hands? 
Is not this the carpenter, the son of Mary and brother of 
James and Joseph and Judas and Simon? And are not his 
sisters here with us?" So they fell into mistake regarding him. 
But Jesus said to them, "A prophet is not without honor 
except in his own native place and among his own kindred and 
in his own home." There he was unable to do any work of 
power, except that he laid his hands on a few sick people and 
healed them. Their lack of faith astonished him. 

He made a circuit through the villages, teaching. Then he 
called together the twelve and began to send them out two by 
two, and gave them authority over impure spirits, and in- 
structed them not to take anything for their journey but just 
a stick; no bread, no bag, no coppers in their belts, to be shod 
with sandals, and not to have two tunics. He said to them, 
"Wherever you enter a house, stay there until you leave the 
place. Wherever the people will not receive you or listen to 
you, when you leave shake off the dust that is under your feet 
as a testimony against them. " 

They went out and proclaimed that men should repent, and 
they cast out many demons and anointed with oil many sick 
people and healed them. 

The name of Jesus was so much talked about that King 
Herod heard of it. Some were saying, "John the Baptizer has 
risen from the dead, and therefore these mighty works are 
done by him." Others said, "It is Elijah," and others said, 
"It is a prophet like one of the old prophets." But Herod, 
when ho heard about him, said, "John, the man whom I 
beheaded, has risen again. " Herod himself had sent and ar- 
rested John and bound him in prison for the sake of Herodias, 
his brother Philip's wife, whom he had married. For John had 
said to Herod, "It is not right for you to have your brother's 
wife." Herodias hated him and wished to kill him, but was 
unable to do so, because Herod reverenced John, knowing 
that he was a righteous and holy man, and he protected him. 
When Herod heard John, he was much perplexed, and yet he 



68 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 

was glad to listen to him. But an opportunity came for 
Herodias when Herod, on his birthday, gave a feast to his high 
officials and military officers and the leading men of Galilee. 
Then the daughter of Herodias came in and danced and 
pleased Herod and his guests. The King said to the girl, 
"Ask me for whatever you will and I will give it to you." He 
swore, "Whatever you ask I will give you, up to the half of my 
kingdom/' The girl went out and said to her mother, "What 
shall I ask?" She replied, "The head of John the Baptizer." 
The girl immediately hurried in and said to the King, "I 
choose to have you give me right now the head of John the 
Baptizer on a platter. " This made the King very sorry, but on 
account of his oaths and his guests he was unwilling to refuse 
her. So he immediately sent one of the guardsmen with orders 
to bring John's head. The soldier went and beheaded him in 
the prison and brought the head on a platter and gave it to the 
girl, and she gave it to her mother. When John's disciples 
heard about it, they came and took the body and laid it in a 
tomb. 

The apostles gathered back to Jesus and reported to him all 
that they had done and all that they had taught. He said to 
them, "Come away alone into some solitary place and rest a 
little." For there were many people coming and going, and 
they had no time even to eat. So they put off in a boat for an 
uninhabited, solitary place. But many saw them going and 
recognized them, and ran together by land from all the towns 
and got thorc before them. When Jesus landed, he saw a great 
crowd, and he was filled with compassion for them because 
they were like sheep without a shepherd, and he bcgaa and 
taught them many things. 

By this time it was late in the day, and his disciples came to 
him and said, "This is an uninhabited place and the hour is 
already late. Send them away so that they can go to the farms 
and villages around and buy themselves something to eat." 
But Jesus answered, "Give them something to eat your- 
selves." They said, "Shall we go and buy two hundred shil- 
lings' worth of bread and feed them?" He asked, " How many 
loaves have you? Go and see." When they had ascertained 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 69 

they said, " Five, and there are two fishes. " Then he told them 
to have all the people recline in groups on the green grass. 
They lay down in rows by hundreds and by fifties. Then he 
took the five loaves and the two fishes, and looked up to heaven 
and blessed them, and broke them and gave them to the 
disciples to distribute to the people. The two fishes he also 
divided among all. All ate and had abundance, and they 
picked up twelve basketfuls of the broken pieces of the bread, 
besides portions of the fishes. There were five thousand men 
who ate of the loaves. 

Jesus immediately had his disciples get into the boat and 
cross before him to Bethsaida while he was dismissing the 
crowd. After taking leave of them, he went away up the 
mountain to pray. When evening had fallen, the boat was half 
across the lake and he was alone on the land. He saw them 
distressed in rowing, for the wind was against them. About 
the fourth watch of the night, he came to them walking on the 
lake and he seemed to be going past them. But when they saw 
him walking on the lake, they thought that it was a ghost and 
cried out. For they all saw him and were frightened. But he 
immediately spoke to them and said, "Courage! It is I. Do 
not be afraid. " Then he got into the boat with them and the 
wind dropped. They were in boundless amazement; for they 
had not grasped the miracle of the loaves because their minds 
were dull. 

When they had crossed to the land they came to Gennesaret 
and dropped anchor. As soon as they got out of the boat, the 
people recognized Jesus and hurried over all that region and 
brought in the sick on pallets wherever they heard that he was. 
Whenever he went into villages or towns or among the farms 
they would lay the sick in the streets and beg him to let them 
touch at least the tassel of his cloak. And all who touched 
were healed. 

VII 

ONCE the Pharisees gathered about him with some of the 
scribes who had come from Jerusalem, and they saw that some 
of his disciples were eating bread with " common," that is, ua- 



70 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 

washed, hands. For the Pharisees and all the Jews never eat 
without first washing their hands up to the wrist, holding faith- 
fully to the tradition of their forefathers, and when they return 
from market they do not eat until they have washed. There 
are also many other traditions which they have been taught to 
hold tenaciously, such as washing cups and pitchers and copper 
vessels. The Pharisees and scribes asked him, "Why do not 
your disciples live according to the tradition of our fore- 
fathers? Why do they eat their bread with common hands?" 
He replied, "Well did Isaiah prophesy about you hypocrites 
when he wrote: 'This people honor me with their lips, but 
their heart is far from me; in vain they worship me, while they 
teach what are merely commandments of men. ' Neglecting the 
commands of God, you hold firmly to the traditions of men. " 
He said further to them, "How thoroughly you set aside the 
command of God so that you may keep your tradition! For 
Moses said, 'Honor thy father and thy mother/ and, 'He who 
speaks evil of father or mother must surely die. ' But you say, 
'If a man says to his father or his mother, Whatever benefit 
you enjoy from me is now Korban, that is, a gift to God, ' you 
no longer let him do anything for his father or his mother, thus 
nullifying the word of God by your tradition which you have 
handed down; and many similar things you do." Then, calling 
the crowd to him again, he said to them, " Hear me, all of you, 
and understand. There is nothing from outside a man that can 
go into him and defile him, but the things that come out of 
the man are the things that defile the man." 

After he had gone into the house, his disciples asked about 
his figurative language. He said, "Are you too so lacking in 
insight? Do you not know that everything from outside that 
goes into a man is unable to defile him, for it does not go into 
his heart, but into his stomach and passes out into the sewer?" 
Thus he pronounced all foods clean, "Exit," he said, "what 
comes out of a man is what defiles him; for from within, out 
of the hearts of men, come evil thoughts, unehastities, thefts, 
murders, adulteries, lusts, wickednesses, deceit, sensuality, 
an evil eye, slander, arrogance, recklessness all these bad 
things come out from within, and they defile the man. " 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 71 

Leaving that place, Jesus went into the borders of Tyre. He 
entered a house and did not wish any one to know it, but he 
could not escape notice. At once a woman whose daughter 
was afflicted by an impure spirit heard about him, and she came 
and fell at his feet. The woman was a Greek, a Syrophceni- 
cian by race. She begged him to cast the demon out of her 
daughter. But he said, "Let the children be well fed first. 
For it is not right to take the children's bread and throw it to 
the dogs." She answered, "Yes, Sir, even the dogs under the 
table eat from the children's crumbs." Then he said to her, 
"For this answer, go. The demon has gone out of your daugh- 
ter. " She returned to her house and found the child lying on the 
bed and the demon gone. 

Again leaving the region of Tyre, he came through Sidon to 
the lake of Galilee into the midst of the region of Decapolis. 
They brought to him a deaf man who stammered, and begged 
him to lay his hand on him. He took him aside from the 
crowd, put his fingers into his ears, and touched his tongue 
with spit. Then looking up to heaven, he sighed and said, 
"Ephphatha" (that is, Be opened), and his ears were opened, 
and immediately his tongue was freed and he talked plainly. 
Jesus gave them strict orders not to teH any one. But the 
more he forbade them the more widely they spread it, for they 
were astonished beyond all bounds and said, "He has done 
everything well. He makes the deaf hear and the dumb 
speak." 

VIII 

IN those days, when there was again a large crowd and they 
had nothing to eat, Jesus called together his disciples and said 
to them, "I have compassion on the crowd because they have 
already spent three days with me and they have nothing to 
eat. If I send them home hungry, they will faint on the road. 
Some of them are from a long way off. " His disciples answered, 
"Where will any one be able to get bread to supply these 
people here in the uninhabited country?" He asked them, 
"How many loaves have you?" They said, "Seven." He 
told the people to recline on the ground. Then he took the 



72 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 

seven loaves and, after giving thanks, broke them and gave 
them to his disciples to distribute, and they distributed to the 
people. They had also a few small fishes. These he blessed and 
told the disciples to distribute them. All ate and were satis- 
fied, and they picked up of the fragments that were left over 
seven basketfuls. There were about four thousand men. Then 
he dismissed them. At once he got into a boat with the disci- 
ples and went to the region of Dalmanutha. 

The Pharisees came out and began to argue with him, asking 
him for a sign from heaven, in order to test him. He sighed 
deeply and said, "Why does this generation ask for a sign? 
In truth 1 tell you no sign will be given to this generation." 
Then he left them and got into the boat again and went away 
across the lake. 

They had forgotten to take bread, and except one loaf they 
had none with them in the boat* Jesus warned them, " Beware, 
be on your guard against the yeast of the Pharisees and the 
yeast of Herod. " They began to talk among themselves about 
their lack of bread. He perceived it, and said to them, "Why 
are you talking about your lack of bread? Do you not yet 
know or understand? Have you dull minds? You have eyes; 
can you not see? You have ears; can you not hear? Do you 
not remember when I broke the five loaves for the five thous- 
and, how many basketfuls of fragments you picked up?" 
They said, "Twelve." "And when 1 broke the seven loaves 
for the four thousand how many basketfuls of fragments you 
picked up?" They said, "Seven*" He said, "Do you not 
understand even yet?" 

They came to Bethsaida. There some people brought to him 
a blind man and begged him to touch him* Taking hold of the 
blind man's hand, he led him out of the village. Then, after 
spitting in his eyes and laying his hands on him, he iwked h?m, 
"Do you see anything?" He looked up and said, "I see the 
people; I see them like trees, walking around." Again Jesus 
put his hand on his eyes, and he looked and was restored and 
saw everything clearly. Then Jesus sent him away home, say- 
ing, "Do not go into the village." 

Jesus went away with his disciples to the villages round 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 73 

Csesarea Philippi. On the road he asked them, "Who do the 
people say that I am?" They replied, "Some say John the 
Baptist; others say Elijah; others say one of the prophets/' 
He asked them, "But you, who do you say that I am?" 
Peter answered, "You are the Christ. " He gave them strict 
orders not to tell any one about him. 

Then he began and taught them that it was necessary for the 
Son of Man to suffer many things, and to be rejected by the 
elders and the high priests and the scribes, and to be put to 
death, and after three days to rise again. He spoke about this 
frankly. But Peter took him and began to reprove him. He 
turned and looked at his disciples and reproved Peter with the 
words, "Get behind me, Satan. You are not thinking God's 
thoughts, but men's thoughts." Then he called the crowd 
along with his disciples and said to them, " If any one wishes to 
come after me, let him disown himself and take up his cross 
and follow me. Whoever wishes to save his life will lose it; but 
whoever loses his life for my sake and the sake of the good 
news will save it. What does it profit a man to gain the whole 
world and lose his soul? For what could a man give to buy 
back his soul? Whoever is ashamed of me and of my words in 
this adulterous and sinful generation, of him the Son of Man 
will be ashamed when he comes in the glory of his Father with 
his holy angels. " 

IX 

HE said further to them, "I tell you truly that there are some 
of those who are standing here, who will not taste of death 
until they see- the kingdom of God already here in power." 

Six days later, Jesus took Peter and James and John and 
led them tip a high mountain. They were all alone. There in 
their presence he became transfigured. His clothes became 
dazdingly white, with a whiteness that no bleacher on earth 
can impart. Then Moses and Elijah appeared to them and 
conversed with Jesus. Peter said to Jesus, "Rabbi, it is fine 
for us to be here. Let us make three tents, one for you, one for 
Moses, and one for Elijah/' For he did not know what to 
eay, they were so frightened. Then a cloud overshadowed 



74 ' THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 

them and there came a voice out of the cloud, "This is my 
beloved son, hear him." Then suddenly as they looked 
around they no longer saw any one, but Jesus only, with 
themselves* 

When they were descending the mountain, he told them not 
to tell any one what they had seen until the Son of Man had 
risen from the dead. This command they kept, but debated 
among themselves what the rising from the dead was. They 
asked him, "Why do the scribes say that Elijah must come 
first? " He said, " Elijah does come first and reforms everything. 
How is it written also of the Son of Man that he suffers many 
things and is treated with contempt? I tell you Elijah has 
already come, and they have done to him what they chose, 
just as it was written of him. " 

When they came to his disciples, they saw a great crowd 
around them and scribes debating with them. At once the 
whole crowd saw him and were amazed, and they ran to him 
and welcomed him. He asked them, "What are you debat- 
ing?" One of the crowd answered, "Teacher, I have brought 
my son to you. He has a dumb spirit, and whenever it attacks 
him it convulses him and he foams at the mouth and grinds his 
teeth. He is wasting away. I asked your disciples to cast it 
out, but they had not the power." Jesus answered, "0 faith- 
less generation! how long must I be with you? How long must 
I bear with you? Bring him to me. " They brought him to him. 
As soon as the spirit saw Jesus, he convulsed the boy so that he 
fell on the ground and rolled about, foaming at the mouth* 
Jesus asked the father, "How long is it since this came on 
him?" He said, "From early childhood. Often it has thrown 
him into the fire or into the water to destroy him. But if you 
can do anything, have pity on us and help us. " Jesus said, " * If 
you can'! All things are possible for one who believes." At 
once the father of the child cried out, "I believe; help my un- 
belief." Jesus saw that the crowd was rapidly increasing, so 
he rebuked the impure spirit with the words, " Deaf and dumb 
spirit, I command you to come out and never to enter him 
again." He screamed and convulsed the boy and came out. 
The boy looked like- a corpse, so that most of them said, "He 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 75 

is dead. " But Jesus took him by the hand and raised him and 
he stood up. 

After he had gone into the house, his disciples asked him 
privately, "Why were we not able to cast it out?" He said, 
"This kind cannot come out by any means except by prayer/' 

After leaving there, they were passing through Galilee, and 
he did not wish any one to know it. For he was teaching his 
disciples and telling them that the Son of Man would be be- 
trayed into the hands of men and that they would kill him, and 
that three days after being killed he would rise. But they did 
not understand what he said and were afraid to question him. 

They came to Capernaum. After entering the house, Jesus 
asked them, "What were you discussing on the road?" They 
were silent, for on the road they had disputed among them- 
selves which was the greatest. Taking a seat he called the 
twelve, and said, "If any one wishes to be first, he must be the 
last of all and the servant of all. " Then he took a little child 
and placed him in the midst of them, and, putting his arms 
around him, said, "Whoever receives one of such little children 
in my name receives me; and whoever receives me receives not 
me, but him who sent me. " 

John said to him, "Teacher, we saw a man casting out 
demons in your name a man who does not follow us and 
we told him not to do it, because he does not follow us. " Jesus 
said, "Do not tell him not to do it. For no one who does a 
miracle in my name can quickly speak evil of me. For whoever 
is not against us is for us. For whoever gives you a cup of 
water to drink because you belong to Christ, I tell you truly 
that he will not miss his reward. And whoever causes the fall 
of one of these little ones that believe, it would be better for 
him if, with a great millstone hung around his neck, he had 
been cast into the lake. If your hand is a snare to you, cut it 
off . It is better for you to enter into life maimed than with two 
hands to go away into Gehenna, into the unquenchable fire. 
If your foot is a snare to you, cut it off. It is better for you to 
enter into life lame than with two feet to be cast into Gehenna. 
If your eye is a snare to you, tear it out. It is better to enter 
into the kingdom of God one-eyed than with two eyes to be 



76 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 

cast into Gehenna, where their worm does not die and the fire 
is not quenched. For every one will be salted with fire. Salt is 
good, but if the salt loses its saltness, with what can you flavor 
it? Have salt in yourselves and be at peace with one another." 

X 

STARTING from there, he came into the land of Judaea and 
beyond the Jordan. Again the people crowded to him, and 
again as usual he was teaching them. Some Pharisees came up 
and asked him, "Is it right for a man to divorce his wife?" 
They meant to catch him. He answered, "What did Moses 
command you?" They said, "Moses permitted a husband to 
give a certificate of divorce and send his wife away. " Jesus 
said to them, "Because of your hard-heartedness he wrote this 
law for you. But from the beginning of the creation, 'male and 
female made he them.' 'Therefore shall a man leave his fa- 
ther and his mother and the two shall become one flesh.' So 
they are no longer two, but one flesh. What therefore God has 
joined together, let not man put asunder." When they were in 
the house, his disciples asked him again about this. He said to 
them, "Whoever divorces his wife and marries another com- 
mits adultery against her. And if a wife divorces her husband 
and marries another she commits adultery." 

They were bringing little children to him to have him touch 
them, but his disciples rebuked them. When Jesus saw it, he 
was much displeased, and said, "Let the little children come to 
me and do not hinder them; for of such is the kingdom of God. 
I tell you truly whoever does not receive the kingdom of God 
as a little child will not enter it. " Then he took them into his 
arms and blessed them, putting his hands on them* 

While he was going out into the road, a man came running 
and knelt before him and asked, "Good teacher, what shall I 
do to inherit life eternal?" Jesus said to him, "Why do you 
call me good? No one is good except God alone. You know 
the commandments : ' Do not murder, Do not commit adultery, 
Do not steal, Do not bear false witness, Do not defraud, 
Honor thy father and thy mother. 7 " He answered, "Teacher, 
all these I have kept from my boyhood, " Jesus looking at him 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 77 

loved him and said to him, "One thing you lack. Go sell all 
that you have and give to the poor and you will have treasure 
in heaven. Then come follow me. " But his face darkened at 
that reply, and he went away grieved, for he had great posses- 
sions. Then Jesus, looking around on his disciples, said, "With 
what difficulty will those who have wealth enter the kingdom 
of God!" The disciples were astonished at his words. Jesus 
spoke again and said, "Children, how difficult it is to enter the 
kingdom of God! It is easier for a camel to go through the eye 
of a needle than for a rich man to enter the kingdom of God." 
They were amazed beyond measure and said to one another, 
"Then who can be saved?" Jesus looked at them and said, 
"With men it is impossible, but not with God; for all things 
are possible with God." Peter began, "Well, we have left 
everything and have followed you." Jesus said, "I tell you 
truly there is no one who has left house or brothers or sisters or 
mother or father or children or lands for my sake and for the 
sake of the good news, who will not receive a hundred fold 
more now in this time, houses and brothers and sisters and 
mothers and children and lands, with persecutions, and in the 
world to come life eternal. But many who are first will be last 
and the last first." 

They were on the road going up to Jerusalem and Jesus was 
walking in advance. Astonishment fell on them, and those 
who were following were fearful. Then again he took aside the 
twelve and began and told them what was going to happen to 
him. He said, "See, we are going up to Jerusalem, and the Son 
of Man will be delivered to the high priests and the scribes, 
and they will condemn him to death and will hand him over to 
the Gentiles, and they will make sport of him and spit on him 
and scourge him and kill him. But after three days he will rise. " 

James and John the sons of Zebedee came to him and said, 
" Teacher, we want you to do for us whatever we ask you. " He 
said, "What do you want me to do for you?" They said, 
"Grant that one of us may sit on your right hand and the 
other on your left hand in your glory." Jesus said to them, 
"You do not know what you are asking. Can you drink the 
cup that I drink or be baptized with the baptism that I am 



78 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 

baptized with?" They said to him, "We can." Jesus said, 
"The cup that I drink you will drink, and you will be baptized 
with the baptism that I am baptized with; but to sit on my 
right or my left is not mine to give, but it will be for those for 
whom it has been prepared." 

When the ten heard about this, they became indignant at 
James and John. Jesus called them to him and said, "You 
know that those who are thought to rule the Gentiles lord it 
over them, and their great ones exercise authority over them. 
It is not so among you. But whoever wishes to become great 
among you shall be your servant, and whoever of you wishes to 
be first shall be the slave of all. For even the Son of Man did 
not come to be served, but to serve and to give his life a ransom 
for many." 

They came to Jericho. As Jesus was leaving Jericho with 
his disciples and a large crowd, Bartimaeus (the son of Timseus), 
a blind beggar, was sitting by the roadside. When he heard 
that it was Jesus the Nazarene, he began to cry out and say, 
"Son of David, Jesus, pity me!" Jesus stopped and said, 
"Call him." They called the blind man, saying, "Courage; 
rise up; he is calling you." He, throwing aside his cloak, 
sprang up and came to Jesus. Jesus said to him, " What do you 
want me to do for you?" The blind man said, "Rabboni, I 
want to regain my sight." Jesus said, "Go. Your faith has 
healed you. " At once he could see and followed Jesus along the 
road. 

XI 

WHEN they were approaching Jerusalem, near Bethphage and 
Bethany, on the Mount of Olives, Jesus sent two of his disciples 
and told them, "Go into the village across there, and immedi- 
ately, as you enter, you will find a colt tied, upon which no 
man has ever yet sat. Untie him and bring him- If anybody 
asks, 'Why are you doing this?' say, 'The Master has need of 
him, ' and at once he will send him. " They went and found the 
colt tied near the door outside in the street, and they untied 
him. Some of those who were standing there said to them, 
" What are you doing, untying the colt? " They gave the reply 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 79 

that Jesus had told them to give, and the men let them take it. 
They brought the colt to Jesus and threw upon it their cloaks 
and he mounted it. Then many spread their cloaks in the road 
and others spread leafy branches which they had cut from the 
fields. Some went in front and some followed, shouting, "God 
save him! Blessed is he who comes in the name of the Lord! 
Blessed is the coming kingdom of our father David! God in 
highest heaven save him!" He entered Jerusalem and came 
into the Temple courts. After inspecting everything, be- 
cause it was already late he went out to Bethany with the 
twelve. 

On the next morning, after they had left Bethany, he was 
hungry, and seeing a fig tree at a distance in full leaf he went 
to it on the chance of finding something on it. But when ho 
came to it, he found nothing but leaves, for it was not the. 
season for figs. Then he said to it, "Nevermore may any one 
eat fruit from you!" And his disciples heard him. 

They came to Jerusalem, and he went into the Temple 
courts and began to cast out those who were buying and selling 
there. He overturned the tables of the money-changers and 
the seats of the dove-sellers, and would not allow any one to 
carry anything through the Temple courts, for he taught and 
said to them, "Is it not written, 'My house shall be called a 
house of prayer for all the nations'? But you have made it a 
den of robbers. " When the high priests and the scribes heard 
of this they tried to contrive to put him out of the way, for 
they were afraid of him because the people were deeply im- 
pressed by his teaching. When evening came, Jesus and his 
disciples used to go out of the city. 

As they were passing by early in the morning they saw the 
fig tree withered from the roots. Peter, calling to mind, said 
to him, "Rabbi, see, the fig tree that you cursed has withered 
up. " Jesus answered, " Have faith in God. I tell you truly who- 
ever says to this mountain, 'Be taken up and be cast into the 
sea/ and does not doubt in his mind, but believes that what 
he says will be, will have it. For this reason I say to you, all 
things whatever that you pray and ask for, believe that you 
have obtained them and you will have them. And when you 



80 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 

stand praying, forgive if you have anything against any one, 
so that your Father in heaven may forgive you your failings. 7 * 
They came again to Jerusalem, and as he was walking about 
in the Temple courts, the high priests and the scribes came to 
him and said, "By what authority do you do these things? 
Or who gave you authority to do them?" Jesus replied, "I 
will ask you one question; answer me and I will tell you by 
what authority I am doing these things. The baptism of John 
was it from heaven or of men? Answer me. " But they dis- 
cussed among themselves, "If we say 'From heaven,' he will 
say, 'Then why did you not believe him?' But if we say, 
'From men,' " they feared the people, for all regarded John 
as really a prophet. So they answered Jesus, "We do not 
know, " And he replied, "Neither will I tell you by what power 
I am doing these things." 

XII 

THEN lie began to speak to them in figures: "There was a man 
who planted a vineyard and put a fence around it and dug 
for a wine-vat, and built a tower and let it out to grape- 
growers, and then went abroad. At the proper season he sent 
a servant to the grape-growers to receive from them some of 
the fruits of the vineyard. But they took him and beat him and 
sent him away empty-handed. Again he sent another servant to 
them, and him they beat over the head and insulted* He sent 
another, and him they killed. He sent many others, some of 
whom were beaten and some killed. He had still one, a be- 
loved son. He sent him last to them, saying, 'They will re- 
spect my son. ' But those grape-growers said to one another, 
'This is the heir. Come, let us kill him and the inheritance 
will be ours.' Then they took him and killed him and threw 
him out of the vineyard. What will the owner of the vineyard 
do? He will come and destroy the grape-growers and will 
give the vineyard to others. Have you never read this Scrip- 
ture, 'The stone which the builders despised has become 
the chief stone of the corner; this corner stone came from the 
Lord and is wonderful in our eyes'? " They kept tiying to 
seize him, but were afraid of the crowd. For they knew that 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 81 

he had meant the illustration for them. So they left him and 
went away. 

Then they sent to him some of the Pharisees and of the 
Herodians to entrap him in his talk. When they came, they 
said to him, "Teacher, we know that you are true and are not 
afraid of any one; for you do not look at the social standing of 
men, but you teach the way of God in truth. Is it right to pay 
tribute to Caesar or not? Shall we pay or shall we not pay?" 
But he, knowing their hypocrisy, said to them, "Why are you 
testing me? Bring me a coin 1 and let me see it." They 
brought one. Then he said, 'Whose head is this and whose 
inscription?" They said to him, "Caesar's." Jesus said to 
them, "Pay what is Caesar's to Caesar, and what is God's to 
God." They were astonished at him. 

Then there came to him some Sadducees, who say that there 
is no resurrection. They asked him, "Teacher, Moses wrote 
a law for us that if any man's brother dies and leaves a wife, 
but no child, the brother shall take the wife and raise up off- 
spring for his brother. Now there were seven brothers. The 
first took a wife and died leaving no child, then the second 
took her and died leaving no child, then the third likewise. 
None of the seven left any child. Last of all the woman died 
also. In the resurrection when they rise again whose wife will 
she be? For the seven had her as wife. " Jesus said to them, 
" Do you not err for the reason that you do not know either the 
Scriptures or the power of God? For when they rise from the 
dead, they neither marry nor are given in marriage, but are like 
the angels in heaven. And concerning the dead, that they rise, 
have you not read in the book of Moses in the passage about 
the Bush, how God said to him, 'I am the God of Abraham 
and the God of Isaac and the God of Jacob'? He is not a God 
of dead men, but of living men. You are much mistaken." 

Then came one of the scribes, and, after listening to their 
discussion and knowing that he had answered them well, 
asked, "Which is the first commandment of all?" Jesus an- 
swered, "The first is, 'Hear, O Israel, the Lord our God is one 
Lord, and thou shalt love the Lord thy God with all thy heart 
1 The coin named is the denarius, worth about 16} cents. 



82 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 

and with all thy soul and with all thy mind and with all thy 
strength.' This is the second, 'Thou shalt love thy neighbor 
as thyself/ There is no other commandment greater than 
these." The scribe said to him, "Right, teacher; you have 
said truly that he is one and there is no other beside him, and 
to love him with all the heart and with all the understanding 
and with all the strength and to love one's neighbor as one's 
self is more than all the whole burnt offerings and sacrifices. " 
Jesus, seeing that he had answered with intelligence, said to 
him, "You are not far from the kingdom of God. " After that 
no one dared question him further. 

Then Jesus asked, while teaching in the Temple courts, 
"How do the scribes say that the Christ is the son of David? 
David himself, guided by the Holy Spirit, said, 'The Lord said 
to my Lord, sit at my right hand till I put your enemies under 
your feet.' David himself called him 'Lord*; how is he then 
his son?" 

A great crowd listened to him with delight. In his teaching 
he said, "Beware of the scribes, who like to walk about in long 
robes and to have greetings in the market-places and front 
seats in the synagogues and the best couches at banquets* 
They eat up widows' houses and hypocritically make long 
prayers. These men will receive a severer condemnation.'* 

Having seated himself across from the contribution box, he 
was watching how the crowd dropped money into the box. 
Many rich people were dropping in large gifts. There caxne a 
poor widow and dropped in two mites, in value one penny. 
Then Jesus called his disciples to him and said to them, "I tell 
you truly, this widow, poor as she is, has dropped in more than 
all the others who are dropping money into the contribution 
box. For they all contributed out of their superfluity, but she 
out of her poverty dropped in all that she had the whole of 
what she had to live on/' 

XIII 

As he was going out of the Temple courts, one of his disciples 
said to him, "Teacher, see what great stones and what great 
buildings!" Jesus said to him, "Do you see these great build- 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 83 

ings? There will not be left one stone upon another which 
will not be thrown down." 

Then, when he was sitting on the Mount of Olives across 
from the Temple buildings, Peter and James and John and 
Andrew asked him privately, "Tell us when these things will 
be, and what will be the sign when all these things are about 
to come to pass?" Jesus began and said to them: "See to it 
that no one misleads you. Many will come in my name, say- 
ing, 'I am he,' and they will deceive many. And when you 
hear of wars and rumors of wars, do not be alarmed. These 
things must come, but the end is not yet. For nation will 
rise against nation and kingdom against kingdom. There will 
be earthquakes in various places and there will be famines. 
These things are the beginning of birth-pangs. But you, be 
on your guard. They will hand you over to councils and you 
will be beaten in synagogues and you will have to stand before 
governors and kings for my sake for a testimony to them. 
The good news must first be preached to all the nations. When 
they are taking you along to deliver you up, feel no anxiety what 
you are to say, but say whatever is given to you in that hour. 
For it will not be you who speak, but the Holy Spirit. Brother 
will betray brother to death and father will betray child, and 
children will rise up against parents and put them to death. 
You will be hated by all men for my name, but he who endures 
to the end, he will be saved. 

"When you see the abomination of desolation standing 
where it ought not [Let the reader consider], then let those in 
Judaea flee to the mountains, and let him who is on top of the 
house not descend and enter to take anything from his house, 
and let him who is in the field not turn back to get his cloak. 
Alas for the women with child and the nursing mothers in 
those days! Pray that it may not be in the winter. For those 
will be days of misery such as has not been since the beginning 
of God's creation until now, and never will be again. Unless the 
Lord had shortened those days, no human being would be 
saved. But for the sake of those whom he has chosen he 
has shortened the days. Then if any one says to you, 'See 
here is the Christ!' or, 'See there/ believe him not. False 



84 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 

Christs and false prophets will do signs and wonders to mislead 
if possible the chosen. But you, be on your guard. I have fore- 
told you all things. 

"But in those days, after that misery, the sun will be dark- 
ened and the moon will not give her light and the stars will 
be falling from heaven and the powers that are in the heavens 
will be shaken. Then they will see the Son of Man coming in 
clouds with great power and glory. Then he will send out his 
angels and will gather together his chosen from the four winds, 
from the farthest bound of earth to the farthest bound of 
heaven. 

"From the fig tree learn a comparison. When once her 
branch becomes tender and puts out leaves, you know that 
summer is near. So, when you see these things happening, 
know that he is nigh, yes, at the door. I tell you truly that 
this generation will not pass away until all these things come 
to pass. Heaven and earth will pass away, but my words will 
not pass away. 

"But of that day or that hour no one knows, not even the 
angels in heaven, not even the Son, but the Father only. 

"Be watchful, be wakeful, for you do not know when the 
time is. It is just as when a man going abroad leaves his house 
and gives to his servants authority and to each his work and 
commands the porter to watch. Watch, therefore, for you do 
not know when the Master of the house will come, whether 
at evening or at midnight or at cock-crowing or in the morn- 
ing. Otherwise coming suddenly he may find you sleeping. 
What I say to you, I say to all, Watch. " 

XIV 

THE Passover and the Feast of Unleavened Bread were to come 
after two days. The high priests and the scribes were con- 
triving how they might seise him by some stratagem and kill 
him. For they said, "Not at the feast; there might be a popu- 
lar outbreak. " 

During his stay in Bethany in the house of Simon the leper, 
while he was reclining at table there came a woman with an 
alabaster jar of pure nard perfume, very costly. She broke 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 85 

the jar and poured the perfume on his head. Some were indig- 
nant among themselves and said, "For what purpose was this 
waste of the perfume? This perfume could have been sold for 
more than three hundred shillings and the money given to the 
poor. " So they were indignant at her. But Jesus said, " Let her 
alone. Why are you annoying her? She has done a beautiful 
thing to me. The poor you have always with you, and when- 
ever you will you can do them good, but me you have not al- 
ways. She has done what she could. She has anticipated the 
anointing of my body for burial. I tell you truly wherever the 
good news shall be proclaimed over the whole world, what she 
has done will be told in memory of her." 

Then Judas Iscariot, who was one of the twelve, went away 
to the high priests to betray him to them. They were glad to 
hear it and promised to give him money. He meanwhile was 
contriving how he could betray him at some favorable time. 

On the first day of unleavened bread when they sacrificed 
the Passover lamb his disciples said to him, "Where do you 
wish us to go and prepare for you to eat the Passover?" So he 
sent two of his disciples, telling them, "Go into the city and a 
man will meet you carrying a pitcher of water; follow him, 
and wherever he goes in, say to the householder, 'The Teacher 
says, Where is the guest room for me where I can eat the Pass- 
over with my disciples?' And he will show you a large upper 
room, furnished and ready. There prepare for us." The 
disciples went and entered the city and found everything as he 
had told them, and they prepared the Passover. In the eve- 
ning Jesus came with the twelve. As they were reclining and 
eating, he said, " I tell you truly one of you will betray me, one 
who is now eating with me. " They began to be sad and to say 
one to another, "It cannot be I?" He said, "It is one of the 
twelve, one who is dipping with me into the dish. The Son 
of Man is going just as it has been written concerning him, 
but alas for that man through whom the Son of Man is be- 
trayed! Well were it for that man if he had not been born!" 

While they were eating, he took a loaf and blessed it and 
broke it and gave to them, saying, " Take it; this is my body." 
Then he took a cup, and after giving thanks he gave it to them, 



86 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 

and they all drank from it. He said to them, " This is my blood 
of the covenant which is shed for many. I tell you truly I 
will no more drink of the fruit of the vine until that day when 
I shall drink it new in the kingdom of God." 

After singing a hymn they went out to the Mount of Olives. 
Jesus said to them, "You will all fail, because it has been 
written, 'I will smite the shepherd and the sheep will be 
scattered abroad. 3 But after I am raised up I will precede you 
into Galilee." Peter said to him, "Though all should fail, yet 
1 will not. " Jesus said to him, " I tell you truly that to-day, this 
very night, before the cock crows, you will three times disown 
me." But he kept saying more earnestly, "Though I have to 
die with you, I will not disown you." Just so they all said. 

They came to a place called Gethsemane, and he said to his 
disciples, "Sit here while I pray." He took Peter and James 
and John with him and began to be in terror and distress. He 
said to them, "My soul is in anguish, to the point of death. 
Stay here and watch." Then he went forward a little and fell 
on the ground, and prayed that if it were possible the hour 
might pass from him. He said, "Abba, Father, all things are 
possible to thee. Take away this cup from me. Yet not what 
I will, but what thou wilt." Then he came and found them 
sleeping, and said to Peter, "Simon, are you asleep? Could 
you not watch one hour? Watch and pray that you may not 
fall into temptation. The spirit is eager, but the fiesh is weak. " 
Then he went away again and prayed, saying the same words. 
Again he returned and found them sleeping, for their eyes were 
heavy. They did not know what to answer him. He came back 
the third time and said to them, "Are you sleeping on? Are 
you resting? That is enough. The hour has come. Now the 
Son of Man is betrayed into the hands of the sinners. Rise, 
let us be going. See, my betrayer is at hand." 

Immediately, even while he was speaking, Judas, one of the 
twelve, was there and with him a crowd with swords and 
clubs. They had been sent by the high priests and the scribes 
and the elders. The traitor had givea them a sign, "The man 
I kiss, that is he. Seize him and take him safely away/* So 
when he came, he immediately advanced to Jesus and said, 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 87 

" Rabbi," and kissed him affectionately. They laid their hands 
on him and held him. But one of those who stood near drew his 
sword and struck a servant of the High Priest, cutting off 
his ear. Jesus said to them, "Have you come out to arrest me 
with swords and clubs as you would a robber? Every day I was 
with you in the Temple courts teaching and you did not lay 
hands on me. But this is so that the Scriptures may be ful- 
filled." Then all his friends left him and fled. There was a 
young man following him who had thrown a linen cloth 
around his naked body. They seized him, but he left the linen 
cloth and fled naked. 

They led Jesus away to the High Priest, and all the high 
priests and elders and scribes assembled. Peter followed him 
at a distance and came inside the court of the High Priest and 
sat with the attendants, and warmed himself in the light of 
the fire. 

The high priests and all the council tried to get testimony 
against Jesus in order to put him to death, but they could not 
find any. Many bore false witness against him, but their tes- 
timony did not agree. Then some rose and testified falsely 
against him, "We heard him say, 'I will destroy this Temple 
made by hands and in three days I will build another not 
made by hands.'" But their testimony did not agree even 
regarding this. Then the High Priest rose and came forward 
into the midst and questioned Jesus, "Have you no answer? 
What about this evidence against you?" But he was silent 
and did not answer a word. Again the High Priest questioned 
him, "Are you the Christ, the Son of the Blessed?" Jesus 
said, "I am, and you will see the Son of Man sitting on the 
right hand of power and coining with the clouds of heaven." 
Then the High Priest rent his garments and said, "Why do we 
any longer have need of witnesses? You have heard his impious 
words. How does it appear to you?" They all condemned him 
as deserving of death. Then some began to spit on him and to 
blindfold him and to strike him with their fists and say, 
"Prophesy," and the attendants slapped him as they took 
him in charge. 

While Peter was below in the courtyard, one of the maids of 



88 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 

the High Priest came, and when she saw Peter wanning him- 
self she looked at him and said, " You too were with the Naza- 
rene, this Jesus." But he denied it and said, "I do not know 
nor understand what you are saying." Then he went out into 
the outer courtyard. There the maid saw him and began again 
to say to those who stood around, "This man is one of them/' 
But he again denied. Again after a little the men who were 
standing by said to Peter, "Truly you are one of them, for you 
are a Galilsean." But he began to curse and swear, "I do not 
know this man you are speaking of." Immediately, for the 
second time, the cock crew and Peter remembered what Jesus 
had said to him, "Before the cock crows twice you will dis- 
own me three times/' and when he thought of it he wept 
aloud. 

XV 

PROMPTLY at dawn the high priests, after holding a consulta^ 
tion with the elders and the scribes and the whole council, 
bound Jesus and led him away and delivered him over to Pilate. 
Pilate asked him, "Are you the King of the Jews?" He an- 
swered him, "I am." The high priests went on making many 
charges against him. Pilate again asked him, "Have you no 
answer? See how many charges they are making against you." 
But Jesus no longer answered anything, so that Pilate won- 
dered. 

It was customary that at every feast he should release some 
one prisoner at their request. There was a man called Barab- 
bas in chains among those insurrectionaries who in the insur- 
rection had committed murder. The crowd advanced and 
began asking him to do as he was accustomed to do for them. 
Pilate answered them, "Do you want me to release for you the 
King of the Jews?" For he knew that it was on account of 
envy that the high priests had handed him over. But the high 
priests incited the crowd to have him rather sot free Barabbas 
for them. Pilate again asked, "What, then, shall I do with 
him whom you call the King of the Jews?" They again 
shouted, " Crucify him!" But Pilate said to them, " What has 
he done that was wrong?" But they shouted violently, "Cru- 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MAUK 8ft 

cify him!" Then Pilate, wishing to satisfy the crowd, set free 
Barabbas for them and after scourging Jesus handed him over 
to be crucified. The soldiers led him away inside the court- 
yard of the castle and called together the whole battalion. 
Then they dressed him in purple and put on hirr> a crown of 
thorns which they had twisted together, and they began to 
salute him, "Hail, King of the Jews!" They kept striking him 
on the head with a reed and spitting on him, and bending their 
knees they did homage to him. After making sport of him, they 
took off the purple and put his own clothes on him. Then 
they led him out to crucify him. They impressed a man who 
was passing by, Simon, a Cyrenian, who was coming in from 
the country (the father of Alexander and Rufus), to carry his 
cross. So they brought him to the place Golgotha, which 
means Skull Place. They gave him wine flavored with myrrh, 
but he did not take it. Then they crucified him. They divided 
his clothes, casting lots what part each should take. It was 
nine in the morning when they crucified him. The statement 
of his crime was written up over him: 

THE KJNG OF THE JEWS 

With him were crucified also two robbers, one on his right 
and one on his left. The people who passed by scoffed at him, 
shaking their heads and saying, "Ha, you who can pull down 
the Temple and build it up in three days, save yourself by com- 
ing down from the cross." In the same way the high priests, 
jesting with one another, and the scribes said, " He saved others ; 
himself he cannot save. Let the Christ, the King of Israel, come 
down now from the cross so that we may see and believe." 
Even the men who were crucified along with him reviled him. 
At noon darkness fell on all the land and continued until 
three o'clock. At three Jesus cried with a loud voice, "Eloi, 
Hoi, lama sabachthani? " which means, " My God, my God, 
why hast thou forsaken me?" Some of the bystanders, when 
they heard this, said, "See, he is calling Elijah." One ran 
and filled a sponge with sour wine and put it on a reed and 
gave him a drink, saying, "Let him be. Let us see whether 
Elijah comes to take him down." But Jesus uttered a loud 



90 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 

cry and ceased to breathe. Then the curtain in the Temple 
was torn in two from top to bottom. 

When the Centurion who was standing facing him saw that 
he expired in this way, he exclaimed, "Truly this man was a 
son of God!" 

There were also some women looking on from a distance. 
Among them were Mary Magdalene and Mary the mother of 
James the Little and Joses, and Salome, who when he was in 
Galilee used to follow him and wait on him, and there were 
many others who had come up with him to Jerusalem. 

It was now late in the afternoon and, since it was Prepara- 
tion Day, that is the day before the Sabbath, Joseph of Arima- 
thsea, a councilor of high standing, who himself was looking 
for the kingdom of God, took courage to go in to Pilate and 
ask for the body of Jesus. Pilate wondered whether he was 
already dead, but he called in the Centurion and asked him 
whether Jesus had been long dead. Upon learning this from 
the Centurion, he granted the body to Joseph. Joseph bought 
a linen sheet and took him down and swathed him in it and 
laid him in a tomb which had been hewn out in the rock. He 
then rolled a stone against the door of the tomb. Mary Magda- 
lene and Mary the mother of Joses were looking on to see where 
Jesus was laid. 

XVI 

WHEN the Sabbath had passed, Mary Magdalene, and Mary 
the mother of James, and Salome bought perfumes to go and 
anoint him. Very early in the morning of the first day of the 
week they came to the tomb. The sun had risen. They were 
saying to one another, "Who will roll away the stone from the 
door of the tomb for us?" But when they looked they saw that 
the stone had been rolled away. It was very large. Entering the 
tomb, they saw a young man sitting on the right side dressed in 
a white robe, and they were frightened. But he said to them, 
"Do not be frightened. You are looking for Jesus the Naza- 
rene who was crucified. He has risen. He is not here. This 
is the place where they laid him. But go tell his disciples and 
Peter, He has gone before you into Galilee* There you will 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY MARK 91 

see him, as he told you." The women came out and fled from 
the tomb, for trembling and amazement seized them. They 
told nothing to any one, they were so frightened. 

(In our oldest copies of the Greek New Testament the Book of Mark ends 
here. In some later copies Appendix A or Appendix B is added.) 

APPENDIX A 

After Jesus rose early on the morning of the first day of the 
week, he appeared first to Mary Magdalene, from whom he had 
cast out seven demons. She went and told those who had been 
with him as they were grieving and lamenting. But they, when 
they heard that he was alive and had been seen by her, did not 
believe her. 

After this he appeared in another form to two of them as 
they were walking into the country. They went and told the 
rest. But neither did they believe these men. 

Later he appeared to the eleven as they were reclining at 
table, and reproached them for their lack of faith and dullness 
of mind because they had not believed those who had seen 
him since his resurrection. He said to them, "Go into all the 
world and proclaim the good news to aU the creation. He who 
believes and is baptized will be saved, but he who does not 
believe will be condemned. These signs will follow those who 
believe: in my name they will cast out demons; they will 
speak strange languages; they will take up serpents; and if they 
drink anything deadly it will not harm them. They will lay 
hands on sick people and the sick will be well." 

Then the Lord Jesus, after talking with them, was taken up 
into heaven and sat down on the right hand of God. They went 
forth and preached everywhere, the Lord working with them 
and confirming their message by the signs which accom- 
panied it. 

APPENDIX B 

But they related briefly to Peter and his companions all that 
they had been commanded. After this, Jesus himself sent out 
through them from the east to the west the holy and imperish- 
able proclamation of eternal salvation. 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 

i 

INASMUCH as many have taken in hand to draw up a narrative 
of those facts which are firmly believed among us, just as those 
who from the beginning were eye-witnesses and who became 
bearers of the message handed them down to us; it has seemed 
good to me also since I have followed everything from the 
beginning accurately to write a consecutive account for you, 
most excellent Theophilus, so that you may know the exact 
truth in regard to the matters which you have been taught by 
word of mouth. 

There was in the days of Herod, King of Judaea, a certain 
priest by the name of Zacharias, of the course of Abijah. His 
wife was of the daughters of Aaron, and her name was Eliza-* 
beth. They were both righteous before God, walking in all 
the commandments and regulations of the Lord blameless. 
But they had no child, for Elizabeth was barren, and they were 
both advanced in years. 

It happened that as Zacharias was performing his priestly 
duties before God in the order of his course, according to the 
custom of the priesthood, it fell to him to enter the Temple 
of the Lord and offer the incense. All the congregation of 
people was in prayer outside, at the hour of incense* There 
appeared to him an angel of the Lord, standing at the right 
side of the altar of incense. Zacharias, on seeing him, was 
alarmed and fear fell upon him. But the angel said to him, 
"Do not fear, Zacharias, for your prayer has been heard; 
and your wife Elizabeth will bear a son, and you will call his 
name John. You will have joy and gladness and many will 
rejoice at his birth. For he will be great before the Lord, 
He will not drink wine or strong drink. He will foe full of the 
Holy Spirit even from his birth, and many of the sons of Israel 
will he turn to the Lord their God* He will go before him ia 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 93 

the spirit and power of Elijah, to turn the hearts of fathers to 
their children and the disobedient to the wisdom of the right- 
eous, to make ready for the Lord a people prepared for him." 
Zacharias said to the angel, "By what proof shall I know this? 
For I am an old man, and my wife is advanced in years." 
The angel answered, "I am Gabriel, who stands before the face 
of God, and I have been sent to speak to you and to give you 
this good news. And now you will be silent and unable to 
speak until the day that this comes to pass, because you have 
not believed my words, which will be fulfilled in their time." 

The people were waiting for Zacharias and wondering at his 
staying so long in the Temple. But when he came out, he 
could not speak to them, and they perceived that he had seen 
a vision in the Temple. He kept making signs to them and 
remained dumb. When the days of his priestly service were 
finished, he went away to his home. 

After these days Elizabeth his wife conceived and hid 
herself five months, saying, "So has the Lord done for me in 
the days in which he has looked upon me to take away my 
reproach among men." 

In the sixth month the angel Gabriel was sent from God to 
a city of Galilee named Nazareth, to a virgin betrothed to a 
man named Joseph, a descendant of David. The name of the 
virgin was Mary. The angel entered and said to her, "Hail, 
favored one, the Lord is with you!" But she was alarmed 
at his words, and wondered what such a greeting could mean. 
The angel said to her, " Do not fear, Mary; for you have found 
favor with God. You will conceive in your womb and will bear 
a son, and you must call his name Jesus. He will be great and 
will be called the Son of the Highest, and the Lord God will 
give him the throne of his father David. He will be king 
over the house of Jacob through the ages, and of his kingdom 
there will be no end." But Mary said to the angel, "How can 
this be, since I am not united to a man?" The angel replied, 
"The Holy Spirit will come upon you and the power of the 
Highest will overshadow you. For that reason the child that 
is begotten will be called holy, Son of God. And, indeed, 
Elizabeth your relative, even she, has conceived a son, in her 



94 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 

old age, and this is the sixth month with her who was called 
barren. For no word that comes from God will fail." Mary 
said, " Here I am, the Lord's handmaid. Let it be to me accord- 
ing to your word." Then the angel left her. 

In those days Mary arose and went with haste into the hill- 
country to a city of Judah, and entered the house of Zacharias 
and greeted Elizabeth. When Elizabeth heard Mary's greeting, 
the babe leapt in her womb, and Elizabeth was filled with the 
Holy Spirit and spoke out with a loud voice and said, "Blessed 
are you among women and blessed is the fruit of your womb ! 
But why do I have the honor of having the mother of my 
Lord come to me? For, indeed, when the sound of your greet- 
ing fell upon my ears, the babe leapt for joy in my womb. 
Blessed is she who believed, for there will be a complete ful- 
fillment of the things spoken to her from the Lord!" Then 
Mary said: 

"My soul magnifies the Lord, 
And my spirit rejoices in God my Savior; 
Because he has looked upon the low estate of his handmaid. 
Indeed, from this time all generations will call me blessed. 
Because the Mighty One has done great things for me, 
Holy is his name. 
His kindness is from generation to generation upon those who 

fear him. 

He shows strength with his arm; 
He scatters the proud in the thoughts of their hearts. 
He casts down princes from their thrones and raises up the 

lowly. 
The hungry he fills with good things and the affluent he sends 

away empty, 

He brings help to Israel his servant, mindful of kindness, 
just as he promised our fathers, Abraham and his de- 
scendants, forever." 

Mary remained with her about three months and then re- 
turned to her home. 

When Elizabeth's due time came, she gave birth to a son. 
Her neighbors and relatives heard that the Lord had shown 
great kindness to her, and they rejoiced with her* On the 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 95 

eighth day they came to circumcise the child, and they called 
him by the name of his father Zacharias. But his mother 
said, "No, but he shall be called John." They said to her, 
"There is no one of your family who is called by that name." 
Then they made signs to his father to know what he wanted 
him called. He asked for a tablet and wrote, "His name 
is John." They all wondered. At once Zacharias's mouth was 
opened and his tongue loosed and he spoke, praising God. 
Awe fell on all their neighbors, and in the whole hill-country 
of Judaea all these matters were talked about. All who heard 
them laid them up in their minds, saying, " What then will this 
child be?" For the hand of the Lord was with him. 

Zacharias, his father, was filled with the Holy Spirit and said 
prophetically: 

"Blessed be the Lord, the God of Israel! 
For he has looked upon his people, and made deliverance for 

them. 
He has raised up a horn of salvation for us in the house of 

David his servant, 

As he spoke through the mouth of his holy prophets of old, 
Salvation from our enemies and from the hands of all those 

that hate us, 
Dealing kindly with our forefathers, mindful of his holy 

covenant, 

The oath which he swore to Abraham our father, 
To grant that we, saved from the hands of our enemies, may 

serve him 
Without fear in holiness and righteousness before him all our 

days. 

And you, child, will be called a prophet of the Most High. 
You will go before the face of the Lord to prepare his ways, 
To give the knowledge of salvation to his people by the for- 
giveness of their sins, 

Through the tender compassion of our God, 
With which the sunrise from on high will shine upon us; 
To give light to those who sit in darkness and the shadow of 

death, 
To guide our feet into the path of peace. " 



96 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 

The chUd grew and became strong in spirit, and he lived in 
the wilds until the day of his appearance before Israel. 

II 

IN those days a decree went out from Csesar Augustus for the 
registration of the whole world. This first registration took 
place while Cyrenius was Governor of Syria. Everybody 
went to be registered each to his own city. Joseph went up 
from Galilee, from the city of Nazareth, to Judaea, to the city 
of David, which is called Bethlehem, because he was of the 
house and lineage of David, to be registered with Mary who 
was betrothed to him, and was with child. While they were 
there, her time came and she gave birth to her son, her first- 
born, and she wrapped him up and laid him in a manger, be- 
cause there was no room for them in the inn. 

There were shepherds in the same country staying in the 
fields and keeping watch over their flocks by night. Suddenly 
an angel of the Lord stood by them, and the glory of the 
Lord shone around them. They were much afraid, but the 
angel said to them, "Have no fear! Indeed, I am bringing 
you good news of a great joy which is to be for all the people; 
for there was born for you to-day in the city of David a 
Savior, who is Christ and Lord. This will be a sign for you: 
you will find the babe wrapped up and lying in a manger." 
And suddenly there was with the angel a multitude from the 
army of heaven, praising God, and saying, "Glory in highest 
heaven to God, and peace on earth among men in whom he 
delights." When the angels went away into heaven, the 
shepherds spoke to one another: " Let us go to Bethlehem and 
see this that has happened, which the Lord has made known to 
us. " So they came with haste and found Maiy and Joseph, and 
the babe lying in the manger. When they saw it, they told 
what had been spoken to them about this child. All who 
heard it wondered at what was said to them by the shepherds, 
Mary kept all these things, pondering them in her heart. 
Then the shepherds went back glorifying and praising God 
for all that they had heard and seen, just as It had been told 
them. 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 97 

When eight days had passed and the time to circumcise Him 
had come, his name was called Jesus the name given by the 
angel before he was conceived in the womb. 

When the days of their purification were completed, accord- 
ing to the law of Moses, they brought him up to Jerusalem 
to present him to the Lord, as it is written in the Law of the 
Lord, " Every firstborn male shall be called holy to the Lord/' 
and to give an offering according to what is said in the law of 
the Lord, "a pair of doves or two young pigeons." 

There was in Jerusalem a man named Simeon, and this man 
was upright and God-fearing, looking forward to the consola- 
tion of Israel, and the Holy Spirit was upon him. It had been 
revealed to him by the Holy Spirit that he was not to see 
death before he saw the Lord's Christ. Led by the Spirit he 
came into the Temple courts, and when the parents brought 
in the child Jesus in order to do for him according to the cus- 
tom of the law, he took him into his arms and blessed God, 
and said, 

"Now, O Lord, thou art letting thy servant depart in peace, 
according to thy word. For mine eyes have seen thy salva- 
tion, which thou hast prepared before the face of all the 
peoples, a light for revelation to Gentiles and a glory to thy 
people Israel. " 

His father and his mother wondered at the things that were 
spoken about him. Simeon blessed them, and said to Mary his 
mother, "This child is destined for the fall and rise of many in . 
Israel and for a sign much spoken against (yes a sword will 
pierce your own soul) in order that the thoughts of many hearts 
may be revealed." 

And there was Anna, a prophetess, a daughter of Phanuel, 
of the tribe of Asher. She was far advanced in years, having 
lived with her husband seven years from her maidenhood and 
having been a widow for now eighty-four years. She never left 
the Temple courts, but worshiped by fastings and prayers, 
night and day. She too came up at that time and praised God 
and spoke about him to all who were looking forward to the 
redemption of Jerusalem. 

When they had completed all things according to the law of 



98 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 

the Lord, they returned to Galilee to their own city Nazareth. 
The child grew and became strong and was filled with wisdom, 
and the grace of God was upon him. 

His parents used to go up every year to Jerusalem for the 
feast of Passover. When he had reached the age of twelve 
years, and they had gone up according to the custom of the 
feast and had completed the days and were returning, the boy 
Jesus stayed behind in Jerusalem. But his parents did not 
know it. Thinking that he was in the company, they went a 
day's journey. But when they looked for him among their 
relatives and acquaintances and did not find him, they returned 
to Jerusalem searching for him. On the third day they found 
"him in the Temple courts, sitting in the midst of the teachers, 
listening to them and asking them questions. All who heard him 
were astonished at his understanding and his answers. When his 
parents saw him, they were amazed, and his mother said to 
him, "Child, why have you treated us so? See, your father 
and 1 have been searching for you in great distress." He said 
to them, " Why were you searching for me? Did you not know 
that I must be at my Father's?" They did not understand the 
words that he spoke. Then he went down with them, and came 
to Nazareth and was obedient to them. His mother kept all 
these sayings in her heart. And Jesus grew in wisdom and in 
height and in favor with God and with men. 

HI 

IN the fifteenth year of the reign of Tiberius Caesar, when 
Pontius Pilate was Governor of Judsea and Herod Prince of 
Galilee, and Philip his brother Prince of Ituraea and Trachoni- 
tis, and Lysanias Prince of Abilene, during the high-priesthood 
of Annas and Caiaphas, the word of God came to John the 
son of Zacharias in the wild lands. Then he came into all the 
neighborhood of the Jordan proclaiming baptism for a change 
of heart in order to forgiveness of sins, as it is written in the 
book of the words of Isaiah the prophet, "The voice of one 
shouting in the wilderness, 'Prepare the way of the Lord, make 
his paths straight!' Every ravine shall be filled and every 
mountain and hill shall be graded down, and the crooked places 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 99 

shall become straight and the rough roads shall become smooth, 
and all men shall see the salvation of God." 

He said to the crowds that went out to be baptized by him, 
"Brood of vipers, who warned you to flee from the coming 
wrath? Produce then fruits suitable for a change of heart, 
and do not begin to say to yourselves, 'We have Abraham for 
our father. ' For I tell you, God is able out of these stones to 
raise up children for Abraham. Already the axe is lying at the 
root of the trees. Every tree that does not yield good fruit is to 
to be cut down and thrown into the fire. " The crowds asked 
him, "What then shall we do?" He answered, "Let him who 
has two tunics give to him who has none, and let him who has 
food do likewise." Some tax collectors came to be baptized 
and said to him, "Teacher, what shall we do?" He said to 
them, " Do nothing beyond what you are authorized. " Soldiers 
asked him, "And what shall we do?" He said to them, "Do 
violence to no man; bring no false accusations; be content with 
your rations." 

As the people were in expectation and all were debating in 
their minds about John, whether he was the Christ, John said 
to them all, "I am baptizing you with water, but there is com- 
ing the One mightier than I, the straps of whose sandals I am 
not worthy to unfasten. He will baptize you with the Holy 
Spirit and with fire. He has his fan in his hand to cleanse his 
threshing floor and gather the wheat into his granary. But the 
chaff he will burn up with fire unquenchable." 

With many different exhortations John proclaimed the good 
news to the people. But Herod, the prince, because John re- 
proved him regarding Herodias, his brother's wife, and re- 
garding all the wicked things which Herod had done, added 
also this wickedness to all the rest he shut xtp John in 
prison. 

When all the people were being baptized, and when Jesus had 
been baptized and was praying, heaven was opened, and the 
Holy Spirit in bodily form like a dove descended upon him, and 
a voice came from heaven, "Thou art my Son, the Beloved. 
In thee I delight." 

Jesus, when he began, was about thirty years old, being the 



100 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 

son (as was thought) of Joseph, the son of Heli, the son of 
Matthat, the son of Levi, the son of Melchi, the son of Jannai, 
the son of Joseph, the son of Mattathias, the son of Amos, the 
son of Nahum, the son of Esli, the son of Naggai, the son of 
Maath, the son of Mattathias, the son of Semein, the son of 
Josech, the son of Joda, the son of Joanan, the son of Rhesa, 
the son of Zerubbabel, the son of Shealtiel, the son of Neri, the 
son of Melchi, the son of Addi, the son of Cosam, the son of 
Elmadam, the son of Er, the son of Jesus, the son of Eliezer, 
the son of Jorim, the son of Matthat, the son of Levi, the son 
of Symeon, the son of Judas, the son of Joseph, the son of 
Jonam, the son of Eliakim, the son of Melea, the son of Menna, 
the son of Mattatha, the son of Nathan, the son of David, the 
son of Jesse, the son of Obed, the son of Boaz, the son of Salmon, 
the son of Nahshon, the son of Amminadab, the son of Arni, 
the son of Hezron, the son of Perez, the son of Judah, the son 
of Jacob, the son of Isaac, the son of Abraham, the son of 
Terah, the son of Nahor, the son of Serug, the son of Reu, the 
son of Peleg, the son of Eber, the son of Shelah, the son of 
Cainan, the son of Arphaxad, the son of Shem, the son of Noah, 
the son of Lamech, the son of Methuselah, the son of Enoch, 
the son of Jared, the son of Mahalaleel, the son of Cainan, the 
son of Enos, the son of Seth, the son of Adam, the son of God, 

rv 

JESUS, full of the Holy Spirit, turned back from the Jordan and 
was led about in the Spirit in the wilderness forty days while 
being tempted by the Devil. During those days he ate nothing, 
and when they were ended he was hungry- The Devil said to 
him, "If you are God's Son, tell this stone to become a loaf of 
bread." Jesus answered him, "It is written, 'Man shall not 
live on bread alone. ' " The Devil led him up and showed him 
all the kingdoms of the world in a moment of time, and said to 
him, " To you I will give all this power and glory, for it has been 
handed over to me and I give it to whomever I will If you do 
homage before me, all shall be yours," Jesua answered him, 
"It is written, 'Thou shalt do homage to the Lord thy God 
and him alone shalt thou worship/" The Devil took him to 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 101 

Jerusalem and placed him on the roof of the Temple, and said 
to him, "If you are God's Son, throw yourself down, for it is 
written, 'He will command his angels to guard you/ and, 'On 
their hands they will bear you up, so that you shall not strike 
your foot against a stone. ' " Jesus answered him, "It has been 
said, ' Thou shalt not try the Lord thy God. ' " After exhausting 
every kind of temptation, the Devil went away from him till 
a better opportunity. 

Jesus returned in the power of the Spirit to Galilee, and re- 
ports about him went out through all the region. He taught in 
their synagogues and was praised by all. He came to Nazareth 
where he had been brought up, and, according to his custom, 
went into the synagogue on the Sabbath day, and stood up to 
read. The book of the prophet Isaiah was handed to him. He 
opened the book and found the place where it is written, "The 
Spirit of the Lord is upon me, because he has anointed me to 
bring good news to the poor. He has sent me to proclaim release 
to captives and sight to the blind, to set at liberty the crushed, 
to proclaim the favored year of the Lord. " Then he rolled up 
the book and handed it over to the attendant and sat down. 
The eyes of all in the synagogue were fixed upon him. He be- 
gan and said to them, "To-day this Scripture is fulfilled in 
your ears. " All bore witness to htm, and wondered at the gra- 
cious words that came from his mouth, and said, "Is not he a 
son of Joseph? " He said to them, " Of course, you will quote to 
me the saying, * Physician, heal yourself. ' ' Whatever we have 
heard of as done in Capernaum, do here in your native place. ' " 
He continued: "I tell you truly no prophet is acceptable in his 
native place. In truth I tell you, many widows were in Israel 
in the days of Elijah the prophet, when heaven was shut up 
three years and six months so that a great famine came on all 
the land, yet to no widow was Elijah sent except to one in 
Zarephath, in Sidonia. And many lepers were in Israel in the 
time of Elisha the prophet, and no leper was cleansed except 
Naaman the Syrian." 

Upon hearing these words, all in the synagogue were filled 
with rage, and they rose up and expelled him from the city, 
and led him to the brow of the hill on which their city was 



102 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 

built, intending to throw him down. But he passed through 
the midst of them and went away. 

He went down to Capernaum, a city of Galilee. There he 
was teaching them on the Sabbath, and they were amazed at 
his teaching, because he spoke with authority. In the syna- 
gogue there was a man with the spirit of an impure demon, and 
he shouted with a loud voice, "Ha, what have you to do with 
us, Nazarene Jesus? Have you come to destroy us? I know 
who you are The Holy One of God." Jesus rebuked him, 
saying, "Be silent, and come out of him." The demon flung 
him prostrate in the midst, but came out of him without in- 
juring him at all. Astonishment fell upon all, and they talked 
to one another, saying, "What is this word? With authority 
and power he commands the impure spirits and they come 
out!" Reports about him spread into every part of that 
region. 

Jesus arose and left the synagogue and entered the house of 
Simon. Simon's wife's mother was suffering from a severe fever, 
and they asked him to help her. He came and stood over her 
and rebuked the fever and it left her. At once she rose up and 
waited upon them. 

As the sun was setting, all who had people sick with \ T arious 
diseases brought them to him, and he put his hands on each of 
them and healed them. Demons came out of many, shouting, 
"You are the Son of God!" But he rebuked them and did 
not permit them to speak, for they knew that he was the 
Christ. 

When morning came, he went out and departed to a solitary 
place. The crowds were looking for him and came to where he 
was and tried to hinder his going away from them. But he 
said to them, "I must tell the good news about the kingdom of 
God in the other cities also, because for this I havo been sent." 
So he continued teaching in the synagogues of Galilee. 

V 

IT happened that, as the crowd was pressing upon him and 
listening to the word of God, he was standing on the shore of 
Lake Gennesaret, and ho saw two boats by the shore. The 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 103 

fishermen had gone away from them and were washing their 
nets. He got into one of the boats, which belonged to Simon, 
and asked him to push off a little from the land. Then, sitting 
down, he taught the people from the boat. When he ceased 
speaking, he said to Simon, "Push out into deep water and let 
down your nets for a catch." Simon answered, "Master, we 
have worked all night and caught nothing. But at your word I 
will let down the nets." When they had done this, they en- 
closed a great mass of fishes and their nets began to break. 
They beckoned to their partners in the other boat to come and 
take hold with them. They came, and both the boats were 
filled so that they began to sink. When Simon Peter saw 
this, he fell down on his knees before Jesus and said, " Leave my 
boat and me, Sir, for I am a sinful man." For amazement 
seized him and all those who were with him at the catch of 
fishes they had taken. It was just the same with James and 
John, the sons of Zebedee, who were partners with Simon. 
But Jesus said to Simon, "Never fear; from now on you will be 
catching men." Then they brought their boats to land and 
left all and followed him. 

It happened that, when he was in one of the cities, there was 
a man present full of leprosy. When he saw Jesus, he fell on 
his face and begged him, "Sir, if you will, you can cleanse me." 
Jesus stretched out his hand and touched him, and said, "I will 
it; be cleansed." Immediately the leprosy left him. Jesus 
commanded him to tell no one. ''But go," he said, "and show 
yourself to the priest and make an offering for your cleansing 
as Moses commanded, for evidence to them." But all the more 
the reports about him spread, and great crowds came together 
to hear and to be healed of their infirmities. But he stayed out 
in the wild country and prayed. 

It happened on one of those days that he was teaching, 
and there were Pharisees and teachers of the law sitting who 
had come from every village of Galilee and Judaea and from 
Jerusalem. The power of the Lord was with him to heal. 
Then came some men bearing on a bed a man who was para- 
lytic, and they tried to bring him in and lay him before Jesus. 
When they could not contrive to bring him in on account of the 



104 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 

crowd, they went up on the roof and let him down through the 
tiles with his pallet into the midst in front of Jesus. He saw 
their faith and said, "Man, your sins are forgiven you." The 
scribes and Pharisees began to argue, saying, "Who is this 
man who speaks profane words? Who can forgive sins but 
God alone?" But Jesus perceived their arguing and asked 
them, "What are you arguing in your hearts? Which is easier, 
to say, 'Your sins are forgiven/ or to say, 'Rise and walk'? 
But that you may know that the Son of Man has power on the 
earth to forgive sins " he said to the paralytic "I tell you, 
Rise and take up your pallet and go to your house." Immedi- 
ately he stood up before them and took up what he had been 
lying on and went away to his house, glorifying God. Amaze- 
ment seized them all and they gave glory to God, yet they were 
also filled with awe, and said, "We have seen astonishing 
things to-day!" 

After this he went out and saw a tax collector by the name 
of Levi sitting at the tax office, and he said to him, "Follow 
me," Leaving everything, he arose and followed him. Levi 
held a great reception for him at his house, and there was a 
large crowd of tax collectors and others reclining at table with 
them. The Pharisees and their scribes grumbled to his dis- 
ciples, and said, "Why do you eat and drink with tax collectors 
and sinners? " Jesus answered them, "The well have no need 
of a physician, but those who are sick have. I have not corne to 
call righteous men, but sinners to a change of heart." 

They said to him, "The disciples of John faust often and offer 
prayers, and so do those of the Pharisees, but your followers cat 
and drink." Jesus said to them, "Can you make the wedding 
guests fast while the bridegroom is with them? But days will 
come when the bridegroom will be taken from them, and then 
they will fast in those days." He gave them also some illustn^ 
tions. "No one tears a piece from a new cloak and sew it on 
an old cloak. If he did, ho would make a tear in hi* new cloak, 
and even in the old cloak the patch taken from the new would 
not match. And no one puts new wino into old wine-skats. If 
he did, the new wine would burst the skins and it would be 
spilled, and the skins would be ruined. But new wine must be 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 105 

put into new wine-skins. And no one after drinking old wine 
wishes to drink new, for he says, ' The old is fine.' " 

VI 

IT happened that he was passing one Sabbath through some 
grainfields, and his disciples were plucking and eating the heads 
of grain, rubbing them in their hands. But some of the Phari- 
sees said, "Why are you doing what is unlawful on the Sab- 
bath?" Jesus answered them, "Have you never read what 
David did when he was hungry, he and the men with him 
how he went into the house of God and took the consecrated 
loaves and ate them and gave them to his men, loaves that it 
is unlawful for any but the priests alone to eat?" He said 
further to them, "The Son of Man is Lord of the Sabbath." 

It happened on another Sabbath that he went into the syna- 
gogue and was teaching. There was a man there whose right 
hand was withered. The scribes and Pharisees watched to 
see whether he would heal him on the Sabbath, wishing to 
find something to accuse him of. But he knew their thoughts 
and said to the man with the withered hand, "Rise, and stand 
in the center." He rose and stood. Jesus said to them, "I ask 
you, is it lawful on the Sabbath to do good or to do evil, to 
save life or to destroy it?" He looked around at all of them, 
then said to the man, " Stretch out your hand. " He did so and 
his hand was restored. But they were filled with blind fury, 
and discussed with one another what they could do to Jesus. 

It happened during those days that he went out to the moun- 
tain and prayed and was all night in prayer to God. When day 
came, he called to him his disciples and chose from them 
twelve, whom also he named "Apostles": Simon, whom he 
named Peter (Rock), and Andrew his brother, and James and 
John, and Philip and Bartholomew, and Matthew and Thomas, 
and James the son of Alphaeus, and Simon called the Zealot, 
and Judas the son of James, and Judas Iscariot, who became 
a traitor. He went down with them and stood on a level spot 
where were gathered a great crowd of his disciples and a great 
multitude of people from all Judsea and Jerusalem and the sea- 
coast of Tyre and Sidon, who had come to hear him and to be 



106 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 

cured of their diseases. Those who were troubled by impure 
spirits were healed. The whole crowd tried to touch him, be- 
cause power went out from him and healed all. He raised his 
eyes to his disciples and said: 

"Blessed are you poor! For yours is the kingdom of God. 
"Blessed are you who are hungry now! For you will be 
abundantly fed. 

"Blessed are you who are weeping now! For you will laugh. 
"Blessed are you when men hate you and when they shut 
you out and reproach you and cast out your name as evil 
because of the Son of Man! Rejoice on that day and leap for 
joy. For, indeed, your reward will be great in heaven. Just so 
their fathers treated the prophets. 

"But alas for you rich men! For you have now your com- 
fort in full. 

"Alas for you who are filled now! For you will hunger. 
"Alas for you who are laughing now! For you will mourn 
and wail. 

"Alas for you, when all men speak well of you! Just so their 
fathers treated the false prophets. But I tell you, my hearers, 
love your enemies; act nobly to those who hate you; bless those 
who curse you; pray for those who insult you. To him who 
strikes you on one cheek, offer also the other. To him who 
takes your cloak, do not refuse your tunic. To every one who 
asks, give, and from him who takes your things, do not ask 
them back. Do to men just as you wish them to do to you* 
If you love those who love you, what grace have you? For 
sinners also love those who love them* If you do good to those 
who do good to you, what grace have you? Sinners also do 
the same. If you lend to those from whom you hope to receive, 
what grace have you? Sinners also lend to sinners in order to 
get back as much. But love your enemies and do good and lend 
without hope of return, and your reward will be great and you 
will be sons of the Most High, For he is generous to the un- 
grateful and wicked. Become compassionate as your Father is 
compassionate. Do not judge and you will not be judged. Do 
not condemn and you will not be condemned. Forgive and you 
will be forgiven. Give and it will be given to you* Good 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 107 

measure, pressed in, shaken down, and running over they will 
pour into your lap. For with the measure that you measure 
with will the return to you be measured/' 

He gave them an illustration: "The blind cannot lead the 
blind, can he? Will not both fall into the ditch? A scholar is 
not superior to his teacher. Every scholar when finished will 
be like his teacher. Why do you look at the speck in your 
brother's eye while you do not perceive the beam in your own 
eye? How can you say to your brother, 'Brother, let me get 
out the speck that is in your eye/ while you yourself never 
notice the beam in your own eye? Hypocrite, take out first the 
beam from your own eye, and then you will see clearly to get 
out the speck in your brother's eye. 

"There is no good tree that yields worthless fruit, nor is 
there a worthless tree that yields fine fruit. Every tree will 
be known by its own fruit. They do not gather figs from 
thorns, nor from a bramble-bush do they harvest grapes. A 
good man from the good treasury of his heart brings forth what 
is good, and the evil man from his evil treasury brings forth 
what is evil. Out of the overflow of the heart the mouth 
speaks. 

" Why do you call me : e Master, Master/ and yet not do what 
I say? Every one who comes to me and hears my words and 
does them, I will show you whom he is like. He is like a man 
building a house, who dug and went deep and laid a foundation 
on the rock. When a flood came, the river dashed against that 
house, and could not shake it, because it had been well built. 
But he who hears and does not do is like a man building a house 
on the earth without foundation, against which the river dashed, 
and at once it fell, and the wreck of that house was great." 

VII 

WHEN he had finished all his discourses in the hearing of the 
people, he went into Capernaum. The servant of a certain 
Centurion was sick and about to die. He was highly valued by 
his master, who hearing about Jesus sent to him some elders 
of the Jews, asking him to come and save his servant. When 
they came to Jesus they begged him earnestly, saying, "He 



108 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 

deserves to have this done, for he loves our nation and he built 
us our synagogue." Jesus went with them. When he was 
not far from the house, the Centurion sent friends to say to 
him, " Do not trouble yourself, Sir, for I am not fit to have you 
come under my roof. On that account I did not think myself 
worthy to come to you. But say the word and have my 
servant cured. For I am a man under authority with 
soldiera under me, and I say to this one, 'Go/ and he goes, 
and to that one, 'Come, 7 and he comes, and to my slave, 'Do 
this,' and he does it." When Jesus heard this, he wondered, 
and, turning to the crowd that was following him, he said, "I 
tell you, in Israel I have not found such faith. " Those who 
had been sent returned to the house and found the servant well. 
It happened soon afterwards that he went to a city called 
Nam, and his disciples and a great crowd were going along with 
him. As he approached the gate of the city, they were carrying 
out a dead man, the only son of his mother, and she was a 
widow. A great crowd from the city was with her. When the 
Master saw her, he had compassion on her and said to her, 
"Do not weep/ 7 and he went up and touched the bier. The 
bearers stopped. He said, ''Young man, I say, arise!" The 
dead man sat up and began to speak, and he gave him to his 
mother. All were awe-struck, and they gave praise to God, 
saying, "A great prophet has arisen among us and God has 
visited his people." The reports about him spread through 
all Judsea and all the region of the Jordan- 
John's disciples told him about all these things. So he called 
to him two of his disciples and sent them to the Master to ask, 
"Are you 'the Coming One' or are we to expect some other 
person?" When they came to him, the men said, " John the 
Baptist sent us to you to ask, Are you * the Coming One* or are 
we to expect some other person?" At that very time he was 
curing many of diseases and pains and wicked spirits, and to 
many blind people he was giving sight- He answered them, 
"Go and relate to John what you have seen and heard. Blind 
men see, lame men walk, lepers are cleansed, deaf men hear, 
dead men are raised, poor men hear good news. Blessed is he 
who does not stumble through misunderstanding me I" 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 109 

After John's messengers had left, Jesus began to speak to 
the crowds about John: "What did you go out into the wild 
country to look at? A reed shaken by the wind? But what did 
you go out to see? A man dressed in soft clothes? Indeed, the 
people in splendid clothing and living in luxury are in kings' 
palaces. But what did you go out to see? A prophet? Yes, 
I tell you, and more than a prophet. For this is he about whom 
it was written, * Behold, I send my messenger before your face, 
who will make ready your way before you. ' I tell you there is 
not among those born of women a greater than John. But an 
inferior in the kingdom of God is greater than he." (All the 
people, even the tax collectors when they heard him, had 
confessed that God was .right by being baptized with the bap- 
tism of John. But the Pharisees and the lawyers had thwarted 
the purpose of God in reference to themselves by not being 
baptized by him.) "To what then shall I compare the men of 
this generation? What are they like? They are like children sit- 
ting in the market-place and calling to one another, ' We played 
the flute for you but you did not dance. We mourned but you 
did not wail!' For John the Baptist has come, not eating 
bread nor drinking wine, and you say, 'He has a demon.' 
The Son of Man has come eating and drinking, and you say, 
'See there a man who is a glutton and wine-drinker, a friend of 
tax collectors and sinners!' Yet Wisdom is shown to be in the 
right by all her children." 

One of the Pharisees kept asking him to dine with him. En- 
tering the house of this Pharisee, he reclined at the table. Now 
there was a certain woman in the city, a sinner, and when she 
learned that he was at table in the Pharisee's house, she brought 
an alabaster jar of ointment and took her place behind, beside 
his feet, weeping. Her tears began to rain down on his feet, 
and with the hair of her head she wiped them off, and she pas- 
sionately kissed his feet and anointed them with the ointment. 
When the Pharisee who had invited him saw this, he said 
within himself, "This man, if he were a prophet, would have 
known who and what this woman who is touching him is, for 
she is a sinner." Jesus, answering his thought, said to him, 
w Simon, I have something to say to you." "Teacher," he 



110 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 

said, "say it." "A certain money-lender had two debtors; one 
owed him five hundred shillings; the other fifty. Because they 
had nothing to pay with, he graciously forgave both. Which of 
them will love him most? " Simon answered, " I suppose the one 
to whom he forgave most/ 3 He said to him, "You have an- 
swered correctly." Then, turning to the woman, he said to 
Simon, "Do you see this woman? I entered your house; you 
gave me no water for my feet. But she has rained tears upon 
my feet and has wiped them with her hair. You gave me no 
kiss, but she, since I came in, has not ceased passionately kiss- 
ing my feet. My head with oil you did not anoint, but she has 
anointed my feet with ointment. For this reason I tell you her 
sins, many as they are, have been forgiven, for she loved much* 
For he to whom little is forgiven loves little." He said to her, 
"Your sins have been forgiven/* The other guests began to say 
to themselves, "Who is this that even forgives sins?" He said 
to the woman, "Your faith has saved you. Go in peace/' 

VIII 

SHORTLY afterwards he was making his way through cities and 
villages preaching and telling the good news of the kingdom of 
God. The twelve were with him, and certain women who had 
been relieved of evil spirits and infirmities Mary, who was 
called Magdalene, out of whom seven demons had gone, and 
Joanna, the wife of Chuzas, Herod's manager, and Susanna, 
and many others. These women provided for Jesus and his 
apostles out of their means. When a great multitude was com- 
ing together and some from every city were crowding upon 
him, he spoke to them with an illustration: "A sower went out 
to sow his seed. As he sowed, some seed fell along the roadside 
and was trodden on, and the birds of heaven ate it up. Other 
peed fell on the rock, and when it sprang up it withered away 
because it had no moisture. Other seed foil among thorns, and 
the thorns grew up with it and choked it. Other seed fell into 
the good ground, and grow up and yielded a harvest a hundred 
fold." When he said this, he called out, "Let him who has ears 
to hear, hear." 
His disciples kept asking him what the illustration meant. 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 111 

He said: "To you it is granted to know the mysteries of the 
kingdom of God. But to the rest the message comes in figures 
of speech, so that although they see they may not see, and 
although they hear they may not understand. This is the 
illustration: The seed is the message of God. Those by the 
roadside are those who hear, and then the Devil comes and 
takes away the message from their hearts so that they may 
not believe and be saved. Those on the rock are those who, 
though they receive the message with joy, yet have no root, who 
for a while believe, but in the time of trial desert. That which 
fell among thorns means those who hear, and as they go on are 
choked by the cares and riches and pleasures of life and bring 
nothing to completion. That in the good ground means those 
who with a noble and good heart hear the message and hold it 
fast and bear fruit in patience. 

"No one lights a lamp and hides it with a bowl or puts it 
under a bed. No, he puts it on a stand so that all who come 
in may see the light. For there is nothing hidden which will 
not become manifest, nor secret which will not be known and 
come to light. Be careful, then, how you hear; for whoever 
has, to hrm will be given, and whoever has not, even what he 
seems to have will be taken away from hrm. " 

His mother and his brothers came where he was, but could 
not get to him on account of the crowd. It was told him, 
"Your mother and your brothers are standing outside wishing 
to see you." He answered, "My mother and my brothers are 
these who are hearing the word of God and doing it." 

It happened one day that he got into a boat, and his disciples 
went with him. He said to them, " Let us cross over to the other 
side of the lake." They put out. While they were sailing he 
fell asleep. A gale of wind came down on the lake and the boat 
was filling and in peril. Coming to him, they awoke him, 
saying, "Master, Master, we are going down!" He awoke and 
rebuked the wind and the waves. They grew quiet and there 
was a calm. He said to the disciples, "Where is your faith?" 
They were awed and amazed, and said to one another, " Who 
then is this man who commands the winds and the water and 
they obey him?" 



112 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 

They sailed to the land of the Gerasenes, which is across from 
Galilee. When he got out on to the land, there met him a 
certain man from that city who had demons. For a long time 
he had not worn clothes and had not lived in a house, but in 
the tombs. When he saw Jesus, he screamed and fell down 
before him, and in a loud voice said, " What have I to do with 
you, Jesus, Son of God Most High? I pray you, do not tor- 
ment me." For he had commanded the impure spirit to come 
out of the man. Many times it had seized him, and, though ho 
was bound with chains and fetters and kept under guard, yet 
bursting his chains he would be driven by the demon off into 
the wilds. Jesus asked him, "What is your name?" He said, 
" Legion, " for many demons had entered into him. They begged 
him not to bid them go away into the abyss. There was near 
by a herd of many swine feeding on the mountain. The demons 
begged him to pennit them to go into the swine. He gave them 
leave. The demons left the man and entered the swine, and 
the herd rushed down the steep bank into the lake and were 
drowned. 

The herdsmen, seeing what had happened, fled and told it in 
the city and on the farms. The people came out to see what had 
happened. WTien they came to Jesus, they found the man from, 
whom the demons had gone out sitting at the feet of Jesus, 
clothed and in his right mind, and they were struck with awe. 
Those who had seen it told them how the demoniac had been 
cured. Whereupon all the crowd from the region of the Ger- 
asenes asked him to go away from them, for tliey were seised 
with great fear. So he got into a boat and returned. The man 
from whom the demons had gone out begged him to let him be 
with him. But he sent him away, saying, "Return to your 
home and tell how much God has done for you." He went 
through the whole city proclaiming how much Jesus had done 
for him,. 

As Jesus came back, a crowd welcomed him, for all were 
expecting him. There came a man by the name of Jalrus he 
was a synagogue director. Falling at the feet of Jesus, he 
begged him to come to his house because he had an only 
daughter, about twelve years old, and she was dying. As he 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 113 

was going the crowds pressed around him. A woman who had 
had a hemorrhage for twelve years, and could not be cured by 
any one, came up behind him and touched the tassel of his 
cloak. At once her hemorrhage ceased. Jesus said, "Who is it 
that touched me?" All denied, and Peter said, "Master, the 
crowd is pressing upon you on every side." Jesus said, "Some 
one touched me, for I know that power has gone forth from 
me. " The woman, seeing that she had not escaped notice, came 
trembling and fell before him, and told before all the people 
why she had touched him and how she was instantly cured. 
He said to her, "Daughter, your faith has healed you. Go in 
peace." 

While he was still speaking some one came from the Direc- 
tor's house, saying, "Your daughter is dead. Do not trouble 
the teacher any longer." Jesus heard it and said to him, 
"Never fear. Only believe and she will be saved. " When he 
came to the house, he did not permit any one to enter with him 
except Peter and John and James and the father of the child 
and her mother. All were weeping and wailing for her. He 
said, "Do not weep. She is not dead, but asleep." They 
laughed at him, knowing that she was dead. But he took hold 
of her hand and said to her, "Little girl, rise up." Her spirit 
returned and at once she stood up. He told them to give her 
something to eat. Her parents were amazed, but he told them 
not to tell any one of what had happened. 

IX 

JBSTTS called together the twelve and gave them power and 
authority over all demons and to cure diseases. Then he sent 
them out to proclaim the kingdom of God and to heal. He 
said to them, "Take nothing for your journey, no stick, no 
bag, no bread, no money, nor have so much as two tunics. 
Whatever house you enter, stay there and leave from there. 
Whoever do not receive you as you go out from that city, 
shake off the dust from your feet as a testimony against them. " 

Going forth, they began telling the good news from village to 
village and performing cures everywhere. 

Herod the Prince heard of all that was going on, and he was 



116 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 

from them so that they did not take it in, and they were afraid 
to ask him about it. 

A dispute started among them as to which of them was great- 
est. Jesus knew the question that was in their minds, and he 
took a little child and stood him beside himself. Then he said 
to them, " Whoever welcomes this child in my name welcomes 
me. And whoever welcomes me welcomes him who sent me. 
For he who is least among you all, he is great. " John answered, 
"Master, we saw one casting out demons in your name and 
we tried to stop him because he is not following along with us. " 
But Jesus said to him, "Do not stop him, for he who is not 
against you is for you." 

As the days before his being taken up to heaven were pass- 
ing, he set his face to go to Jerusalem and sent on messengers 
in advance. In journeying they came to a village of Samari- 
tans to make arrangements for him. The Samaritans did not 
receive him because his face was toward Jerusalem. On seeing 
this, his disciples James and John said, "Sir, do you want us 
to bid fire to come down from heaven and consume them?" 
But he turned and rebuked them. So they journeyed to 
another village. 

As they were traveling on the road, a man said to him, "I 
will follow you wherever you go." Jesus said to him, "The 
foxes have holes and the birds of the air have coverts, but the 
Son of Man has not where to lay his head." He said to another, 
"Follow me." But he said, "Let me first go and bury my 
father." Jesus said to him, "Let the dead bury their own dead, 
but you go and announce far and wide the kingdom of God." 
Another said, " I will follow you, Sir, but first let me say good- 
bye to those at my home." Jesus said to him, "No one who 
has put his hand to the plow and is looking backward is fit for 
the kingdom of God." 

X 

AFTEB this, the Master appointed seventy others and sent 
them out two and two before him into every city and place 
where he was soon to come. He said to them, "The harvest is 
great, but the laborers are few. Pray, therefore, to the Owner 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 117 

of the harvest to huny out laborers into his harvest. Go; I am 
sending you out like sheep in the midst of wolves. Carry no 
purse, no bag, no shoes, and salute no one by the way. What- 
ever house you enter, first say, 'Peace be to this house/ And 
if a son of peace is there, your peace will rest upon it; but if not, 
it will return upon you. In the same house remain, eating and 
drinking what they have, for the laborer is worthy of his wages. 
Do not change about from house to house. Whatever city you 
enter, if they welcome you, eat what is set before you. Heal 
those in it that are sick and tell them, 'The kingdom of God is 
near you.' Whatever city you enter and they do not welcome 
you, go out into the streets of it and say, * Even the dust of your 
city that clings to our feet we wipe off for you; but know this, 
that the kingdom of God is near/ I tell you, it will be more 
tolerable for Sodom in that day than for that city. Alas for 
you, Chorazin! Alas for you, Bethsaida! For if the miracles 
that have been done in you had been done in Tyre and Sidon, 
they would long ago have repented, sitting in sackcloth and 
ashes. But it will be more tolerable for Tyre and Sidon in the 
judgment than for you. And you, Capernaum, will you be 
exalted to heaven? You will be abased to Hades! 

"He who hears you hears me, and he who rejects you rejects 
me. He who rejects me rejects him who sent me." 

The seventy returned with joy saying, "Master, even the 
demons are subject to us in your name." He said to them, 
"I was looking when Satan fell like lightning from heaven. 
See, I have given you authority to tread on serpents and 
scorpions and over all the power of the enemy, and nothing will 
hurt you. However, in this rejoice not, that the spirits are 
subject to you, but rejoice that your names are written in 
heaven." 

At that hour in exultant joy through the Holy Sprit he said, 
" I thank thee, Father, Lord of heaven and earth, that thou 
hast hidden these things from the wise and intelligent and hast 
revealed them to babes. Yea, Father, 1 thank thee that such 
became thy good pleasure. 

"All things have been committed to me by my Father, and 
no one knows who the Son is but the Father, or who the Father 



118 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 

is but the Son, and he to whom the Son may will to reveal 
him." Turning to his disciples, he said privately, "Blessed are 
your eyes that see what you see! I tell you, many prophets 
and kings wished to see the things that you see and did not 
see them, and to hear the things that you hear and did not 
hear them." 

Then a certain lawyer stood up to test him, and said, 
"Teacher, what must I do to inherit life eternal?" He said to 
him, "What is written in the Law? How do you read it?" He 
answered, "'Thou shalt love the Lord thy God with all thy 
heart and with all thy soul and with all thy strength and with 
all thy mind, and thy neighbor as thyself.' " Jesus said to him, 
"You have answered correctly; do this and you will live." 
But he, wishing to justify himself, said to Jesus, "And who is 
my neighbor? " Jesus rejoined, " A certain man was going down 
from Jerusalem to Jericho and fell among robbers, who stripped 
him and beat him and went away leaving him half dead. By 
chance a certain priest was going down that road. When he 
saw him, he went by on the other side. In the same way a 
Levite came to the place and saw him, and passed by on the 
other side. But a certain Samaritan as he traveled came near 
him, and saw him and pitied him, and went to him and bandaged 
his wounds, pouring on them oil and wine. Then placing him on 
his own beast he took him to the inn and cared for him. The 
next morning he took out two shillings and gave them to the inn- 
keeper and said, ' Care for him, and what evermore you spend, 1 
will pay in full when I come back.' Which of these three seems 
to you to have become neighbor to the man who fell among 
the robbers?" He said, "He who did kindness to him.'* 
Jesus said to him, "Go and act in the same way yourself," 

As they journeyed, he entered a certain village. There a 
woman named Martha welcomed him to her house. She had a 
sister called Mary who seated herself at the feet of the Master 
and was listening to his words. But Martha was busy and 
worried over a great deal of service. Coming to hjm she said, 
"Master, do you not care that my sister has left me to do the 
work alone? Tell her to take hold with me." But the Master 
answered her, "Martha, Martha, you are anxious and worried 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 119 

about many things, but there is need only of a few, or one. Mary 
has chosen the good part and it shall not be taken from her." 

XI 

ONCE he was in a certain place praying. When he ceased, one 
of his disciples said to him, "Master, teach us to pray, as 
John taught his disciples." He said to them, "When you pray 
say: 

Father, thy name be kept holy; 

Thy kingdom come; 

Our bread for the coming day 

Give us day by day; 

And forgive us our sins; 

For we ourselves forgive every one who fails toward us. 

And bring us not into trial." 

He said to them, "Suppose one of you has a friend and goes 
to him at midnight and says to him, 'Friend, lend me three 
loaves, for a friend of mine has come to my house after a jour- 
ney and I have nothing to set before him*; and he from within 
answers, 'Do not trouble me; the door is locked, and my chil- 
dren and I are in bed; I cannot get up and give you anything/ 
1 tell you, even if he will not rise and give them to him because 
he is his friend, yet because of his persistence he will rise and 
give hfm all that he needs. So I tell you, ask and it will be given 
to you ; seek and you will find; knock and the door will be opened 
to you. For every one who asks obtains, and he who seeks 
finds, and to him who knocks the door will be opened. What 
father is there among you who if his son asks for bread will 
give him a stone? Or if he asks for a fish, will he give him a 
serpent instead? Or if he asks for an egg, will he give him a 
scorpion? If then you, evil though you are, know how to give 
good gifts to your children, how much more will your Heavenly 
Father give a holy spirit to those who ask him." 

He was casting out a demon and it was dumb. After the 
demon had gone out, the dumb man spoke and the crowds 
wondered* But some of them said, "By Beelzebul, the chief of 
the demons, he casts out the demons." Others, by way of test, 



120 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 

demanded of him a sign from heaven. But he, knowing their 
reasonings, said to them, "Every kingdom divided against 
itself comes to desolation, and a house divided against itself 
falls. If Satan is divided against himself, how will his kingdom 
stand? You say that 1 am casting out demons by Beelzebul; 
but if I am casting out demons by Beelzebul, by whom do 
your sons cast them out? Therefore let them be your judges. 
But if I am casting out demons by the finger of God, then the 
kingdom of God has already reached you. 

"When a strong man fully armed guards his castle, his 
possessions are in peace. But when a stronger than he comes 
upon him and conquers him, he takes all the armor in which he 
trusted and divides the spoils. He who is not with me is 
against me, and he who does not gather with me is scattering. 

"When the impure spirit comes out from a man, he goes 
through waterless places, seeking rest. Not finding it, he says, 
'I will return to my house from which I came out/ When he 
comes, he finds it empty, swept, and put in order. Then he 
goes and takes along seven spirits worse than himself, and they 
enter and settle down there, and the last state of that man be- 
comes worse than the first." 

While he was saying this a woman in the crowd raised her 
voice and said, "Blessed was the womb that carried you and the 
breasts that you sucked!" He said, "Blessed are they who 
hear the word of God and keep it!" 

As the crowds were thronging about him, he began and said, 
"This generation is an evil generation. It seeks for a sign, but 
no sign will be given to it except the sign of Jonah. For just as 
Jonah became a sign to the Ninevites so the Son of Man will 
be to this generation. The queen of the South will rise in the 
judgment with the men of this generation and will condemn 
them. For she came from the ends of the earth to hear the 
wisdom of Solomon, and more than a Solomon is here. The 
men of Nineveh will stand up in the judgment with this genera- 
tion and will condemn it. For they repented at the proclama- 
tion of Jonah, and indeed more than a Jonah is here. 

"No one lights a lamp and places it in a cellar or under the 
peck-measure, but on the stand, so that those who come in may 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 121 

see the light. The lamp of the body is the eye. When your eye 
is clear the whole body is lighted. But when it is bad, your 
body is dark. Make sure that the light that is in you is not 
darkness. If your body is all lighted up, not having any part 
dark, it will be all lighted as when the lamp lights you by its 
brilliance/' 

During his talk a Pharisee kept asking him to dine with him. 
He went in and reclined at table. The Pharisee, seeing this, 
wondered that he had not first washed before dinner. The 
Master said to him, "Now you Pharisees cleanse the outside of 
the cup and the platter, but the inside of you is full of rapacity 
and wickedness. You foolish men, did not he who made the 
outside make the inside too? But give the things inside as gifts 
of mercy and at once all will be clean for you. But alas for you, 
Pharisees! Because you tithe mint, and rue, and every herb, 
and pass by justice and the love of God. These things you 
ought to have practiced, without omitting the others. Alas 
for you, Pharisees! for you love the first seats in the synagogues 
and greetings in the market-places. Alas for you! for you are 
like unmarked graves. The men who walk over them do not 
know it." One of the lawyers answered him, "Teacher, in say- 
ing this you treat us roughly too." He said, "Alas for you 
lawyers also! for you burden men with burdens hard to bear, 
and you yourselves do not touch the burdens with one of your 
fingers. Alas for you! for you build the tombs of the prophets, 
but your fathers killed them. So you are witnesses and consent 
to the deeds of your fathers, for they killed them and you 
build their tombs. Therefore also the Wisdom of God said, 
'I will send to them prophets and apostles, and some of them 
they will kill and some they will persecute/ So the blood of all 
the prophets which has been shed from the foundation of the 
world will be required of this generation from the blood of 
Abel to the blood of Zachariah who perished between the altar 
and the House. Yes, I tell you, it will be required of this 
generation. Alas for you lawyers! because you have taken 
away the key of knowledge. You yourselves have not entered 
and you have prevented those who were entering." After he 
went away from there, the scribes and the Pharisees began to 



122 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 

press upon him angrily and cross-question him on many points, 
laying traps to catch something from his mouth. 

XII 

MEANWHILE, as the myriads of the crowd were thronging 
together so that they trod down one another, he began and 
said to his disciples first, "Beware of the yeast of the Pharisees, 
that is, their hypocrisy. For nothing is covered up which will 
not be revealed, nor secret which will not be known. Whatever 
you have said in darkness will, on the contrary, be heard in the 
light, and what you have spoken into the ear in inner rooms will 
be proclaimed on the housetops. I tell you, my friends, never 
fear those who kill the body and after that have nothing more 
that they can do. But I will show you whom you should fear. 
Fear him who, after he has killed, has power to cast into Ge- 
henna. Yes, I say, fear him. Aie not five sparrows sold for 
two pennies? Yet not one of them is forgotten before God. 
But even the hairs of your head are all numbered. Never fear; 
you are worth more than many sparrows. But I tell you 
every one who confesses me before men, him will the Son of 
Man confess before the angels of God. And he who disowns 
me before men will be disowned before the angels of God. 
Every one who speaks a word against the Son of Man, it will 
be forgiven him; but he who says profane words against the 
Holy Spirit will not be forgiven. When they bring you in 
before synagogues and magistrates and authorities, do not be 
anxious about how to defend yourselves or what to say. For 
the Holy Spirit will teach you in that hour what you must say." 
One out of the crowd said to him, "Teacher, bid my brother 
to divide the inheritance with me." But he said, "Man, who 
appointed me judge or divider over you? " He said to them, 
"See to it and be on your guard against every form of covet- 
ousness, for not even when one has a superabundance is his 
life from the things he owns." He gave them an illustration, 
saying, " The ground of a certain rich man yielded abundantly. 
He debated within himself, saying, 'What shall I do? for I 
have no place to store my crops/ Then he said, * I will do this: 
I will pull down my barns and will build larger ones, and there 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 123 

I will store all my wheat and my goods; and I will say to my 
soul, Soul, you have many goods laid up for many years, take 
your ease, eat, drink, be merry ! ' But God said to him, ' Foolish 
man, this night your soul will be required of you; and the 
things that you have prepared whose will they be?' So 
is he who lays up treasure for himself and is not rich toward 
God." 

He said to his disciples, "Therefore I tell you, never worry 
about your life, what you are to eat, nor about your body, 
what you are to put on. For the life is more than the food and 
the body is more than the clothing. Consider the ravens, for 
they neither sow nor reap; they have neither granary nor 
barn; yet God feeds them. How much more you are worth than 
the birds! Which of you can by worrying add a foot to his 
height? If you cannot do the least, why do you worry about 
the rest? Consider the lilies, how they neither spin nor weave* 
Yet I tell you even Solomon in all his splendor was not arrayed 
like one of these. But if God so clothes the herbage which 
to-day is in the field and to-morrow is thrown into the oven, 
how much more will he clothe you, O men of little faith! Do 
not seek after something to eat and something to drink, and 
do not be agitated by cares. For these things all the nations of 
the world are seeking after. But strive for his kingdom and 
these things will be provided for you. Never fear, little flock! 
For it is your Father's good pleasure to give you the kingdom* 
Sell what you have and give gifts of mercy. Make for yourselves 
purses that never grow old, an unfailing treasure in heaven 
where no thief approaches nor moth consumes; for where your 
treasure is there your heart will be. Let your loins be girded 
and your lamps burning ; and be like men expecting their Master 
when he returns from the wedding, so that when he comes and 
knocks they may open to him immediately. Blessed are those 
servants whom the Master, when he comes, will find watching! 
Truly I tell you he will gird himself and make them recline at 
the table and will come and wait on them. If he comes in the 
second watch or in the third watch and finds them so, blessed 
are they! But know this, if the householder had known in what 
hour the thief was coming, he would not have let his house be 



124 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 

broken into. And you be ready, for in an hour that you do not 
think the Son of Man is coming." 

Peter said, "Master, do you intend this illustration for us or 
for all? " The Master said, " Who then is the faithful, the wise, 
manager whom the master will appoint over his establishment 
to give out rations at the proper time? Blessed is that serv- 
ant whom his master, when he comes, will find so doing! I 
tell you truly he will appoint him over all his possessions. But 
if that servant says in his heart, 'My master will be long in 
coming/ and begins to strike the men servants and the maids 
and to eat and drink and get drunk, the master of that servant 
will come on a day when he is not expecting and at an hour 
that he does not know, and will cut him in two and appoint his 
portion with the unfaithful. That servant who knew his 
master's will and is not ready, and has not done according to 
his will, will be beaten with many lashes. But he who did not 
know and yet has done things worthy of lashes will be beaten 
with few. From every one to whom much was given, much will 
be required, and from him to whom they have committed much, 
men will ask the more. 

"I came to cast fire on the earth, and what will I, if it is 
already kindled? I have a baptism to be baptized with, and 
how am I distressed until it is accomplished! Do you think 
that I came to give peace on the earth? No, I tell you, but 
dissension. There will be from now on five in one house split 
into parties, three against two and two against three, father 
against son, and son against father, mother against daughter, 
and daughter against her mother, mother-in-law against her 
daughter-in-law, and daughter-in-law against her mother-in- 
law." 

He said also to the crowds, "When you see a cloud rising in 
the west, at once you say, 'A shower is coming/ and so it hap- 
pens. And when you see the south wind blowing, you say, 
'There will be burning heat/ and so it happens. Hypocrites, 
you know how to interpret the face of the earth and the sky, 
why do you not interpret this crisis? Why do you not of your- 
selves judge correctly? As you are going with your opponent to 
the magistrate, take pains on the road to get free from him, so 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 125 

that he may not drag you before the judge and the judge de- 
liver you to the officer and the officer cast you into prison. I 
tell you you will not come out until you pay in f ull to the last 
penny." 

xm 

AT that time some were present telling him about the Galilseans 
whose blood Pilate had mingled with their sacrifices. He 
answered them, "Do you think that these Galilseans were sin- 
ners above all the Galilseans because they suffered this? No, I 
tell you, but unless you have a change of heart, you will all 
perish in the same way. Or those eighteen upon whom the 
tower in Siloam fell and killed them, do you think that they 
were deserving of punishment beyond all the people that 
dwell at Jerusalem? No, I tell you, but unless you have a change 
of heart, you will all perish just the same." He gave this il- 
lustration: "A man had a fig tree planted in his vineyard and 
came looking for fruit on it and found none. He said to the 
gardener, 'See, three years I have been coming, looking for 
fruit on this fig tree, and I do not find any. Cut it down. Why 
should we waste land for it?' But he answered him, 'Leave it 
this year too, Sir, until I dig around it and throw on manure. 
Then, if it yields fruit in the future, all right. But if not, then 
you shall cut it down.' " 

He was teaching in one of the synagogues on the Sabbath. 
And a woman was there who had had a spirit of weakness 
eighteen years, and was bent together and could not stand up 
straight. When Jesus saw her he called to her and said, 
"Woman, you have been freed from your weakness," and he 
laid his hands on her. Immediately she was straightened and 
gave glory to God. But the synagogue Director, angry because 
Jesus was healing on the Sabbath, said to the crowd, "There 
are six days in which work should be done. On those days come 
and be healed, but not on the Sabbath day." The Master 
answered him, " Hypocrite, does not each of you on the Sabbath 
loose his ox or his ass from the manger and lead him away and 
water him? And ought not this woman, a daughter of Abra- 
ham, whom Satan had bound for eighteen years, to have been 



126 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 

freed from this bond on the Sabbath day?" As he said this, all 
his opposers were ashamed, and all the crowd rejoiced at all 
the glorious things that he did. 

He said, "To what is the kingdom of God like? To what 
shall I compare it? It is like a mustard seed which a man took 
and cast into his garden. It grew and became a tree and the 
birds of heaven lodged in its branches/' Again he said, "To 
what shall I compare the kingdom of God? It is like yeast 
which a woman took and hid in three pecks of flour until the 
whole was leavened." 

He was journeying through the cities and villages teaching 
and making his way toward Jerusalem. A man said to him., 
" Master, are there few that are saved?" He said to them, 
"Try hard to enter through the narrow door; for many, I tell 
you, will try to enter and will not be able. After the house- 
holder has arisen and has shut the door, then you will begin to 
stand outside and knock at the door, and say, 'Master, open 
to us.' And he will answer you, 'I do not know you or where 
you come from/ Then you will begin and say, * We have eaten 
and drunk before you and you have taught in our streets/ 
And he will say to you, e I do not know where you come from. 
Go away from me, all you workers of wickedness/ There will 
be wailing and gnashing of teeth, when you see Abraham and 
Isaac and Jacob and all the prophets in the kingdom of God 
and yourselves thrust outside. People will come from the east 
and the west and from the north and the south and recline at 
the table in the kingdom of God. Indeed, there are last who 
will be first and there are first who will be last." 

At that time there came to him some Pharisees, saying, 
"Go out and leave this place, for] Herod purposes to kill 
you." He said to them, " Go tell that fox, * See, I am casting out 
demons and performing cures to-day and to-morrow, and on 
the third day I will finish/ But I must journey to-day and 
to-morrow and the next day, for it cannot be that a prophet 
should perish outside of Jerusalem. Jerusalem, Jerusalem, you 
who kill the prophets and stone those who are sent to you, how 
often would I have gathered your children as a bird gathers her 
brood under her wings, and you would not have it! See, your 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 127 

house is left to you! I tell you, you will not see me until the 
day when you say, 'Blessed is he who comes in the name of the 
Lord!'" 

XIV 

ONCE, when he went into the house of one of the leaders of the 
Pharisees on the Sabbath to eat bread, they were watching him 
closely. And there before him was a man who had dropsy. 
Jesus said to the lawyers and Pharisees, "Is it allowable to heal 
on the Sabbath or is it not?" They kept quiet. Then taking 
hold of Him, he cured hvm and dismissed him* He said to them, 
"If the son or the ox of any one of you falls into a well on the 
Sabbath day, will he not at once draw him out?" They could 
not say anything in answer to this* 

Observing how the guests were choosing the best couches, 
he gave them an illustration: "When you are invited by any 
one to a wedding, do not recline on the best couch, for some 
one more honored than you may have been invited, and when 
he who invited you and him comes he may say to you, 'Give 
place to this man/ and then you will with shame begin and 
take the humblest place. But when you are invited, go and 
recline in the humblest place, so that when he who has invited 
you comes he may say, 'Friend, come up higher.' Then you 
will have honor before all your fellow guests. For every one who 
exalts himself will be humbled and he who humbles himself 
will be exalted." 

He said, too, to the man who had invited him, "When you 
make a breakfast or a dinner, do not call your friends or your 
brothers or your relatives, or your rich neighbors, for they 
may invite you in return and you may be repaid. But when 
you hold a reception, invite poor men, maimed men, lame men, 
blind men. And you will be blessed, because they cannot repay 
you, and you will be repaid at the resurrection of the just." 

On hearing this, one of his fellow guests said to him, "Blessed 
will he be who eats bread in the kingdom of God!" Jesus said 
to him, " A certain man made a great dinner and invited many, 
and sent his servant at the hour of the dinner to tell the guests, 
' Come, for things are now ready. 1 But they all began with one 



128 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 

mind to make excuse. The first said to him, ' I have bought a 
field and must go and see it. I beg of you to have me excused/ 
Another said, 'I have bought five yoke of oxen and I am going 
to try them. I beg of you, have me excused/ Another said, 'I 
have married a wife and on that account I cannot come/ The 
servant came back and told his master these things. Then the 
householder, becoming angry, said to his servant, 'Go out 
quickly into the streets and lanes of the city and lead in here 
the poor and maimed and blind and lame/ The servant said, 
'Master, what you ordered has been done and still there is 
room/ The master said to the servant, 'Go out into the roads 
and hedges and make them come in, so that my house may be 
filled. I tell you not one of those men that were invited shall 
taste of my dinner/ " 

, Great crowds were traveling along with him, and he turned 
and said to them, "If any one comes to me and does not hate 
his father and his mother and his wife and his children and his 
brothers and his sisters, yes, and his own life also, he cannot be 
a disciple of mine. Whoever does not take up his own cross and 
come after me cannot be a disciple of mine. For which of you 
wishing to build a tower does not first sit down and compute 
the cost, whether he has enough to complete it, for fear that, 
after he has laid the foundation and cannot finish it, all the 
onlookers may begin to ridicule him, saying, 'This man began 
to build and could not finish/ Or what king going to meet 
another king in war does not first sit down and deliberate 
whether he is able with ten thousand to meet him who is com- 
ing against him with twenty thousand. If not, while the other 
is still far off he sends an embassy and asks for conditions of 
peace. Just so no one of you who does not renounce all that he 
has can be a disciple of mine. Salt is good, but if the salt 
becomes tasteless, with what shall it be seasoned? It is fit 
neither for the land nor for the manure heap. They throw it 
away. Let him who has ears to hear, hear/ 7 

XV 

ALL the tax collectors and sinners were drawing near to him 
in order to hear him. The Pharisees and the scribes grumbled 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 129 

to one another, "This man welcomes sinners and eats with 
them." He gave them this illustration: "What man of you, if 
he has a hundred sheep and has lost one of them, does not leave 
the ninety-nine in the wilderness and go after the lost one until 
he has found it? And when he has found it he lays it on his 
shoulders with joy, and when he comes home he calls together 
his friends and neighbors and says, 'Rejoice with me, for I have 
found my sheep that was lost!' I tell you there will be more 
joy in heaven over one sinner whose heart is changed than over 
ninety-nine righteous men who have no need to change. 

"Or what woman who has ten shillings, if she loses one 
shilling, does not light a lamp and sweep the house and look for 
it carefully until she finds it? And when she finds it, she calls 
together her friends and neighbors and says, 'Rejoice with me, 
for I have found the shilling that I lost.' So I tell you there 
springs joy in the presence of the angels of God over one sin- 
ner whose heart is changed." 

He said further, "A certain man had two sons. And the 
younger of them said to his father, 'Father, give me the portion 
of the property that is coming to me.' So he divided his wealth 
between them. Not many days later, the younger son got 
everything together and went away to a far country and there 
squandered his property in a dissolute life. When he had spent 
everything, there came a terrible famine in that land and he 
began to be in want. So he went and attached himself to one 
of the citizens of that country who sent him into his fields to 
feed swine. And he would fain have filled his stomach with the 
pods the swine were eating, but no one gave him anything. 
Then, coming to himself, he said, ' How many hired men of my 
father have bread more than enough, and here I am perishing 
with famine. I will arise and go to my father and will say to 
him, Father, I have sinned against heaven and before you. I 
am no longer worthy to be called your son. Make me as one 
of your hired men. And he arose and came to his father. 
But while he was still far off, his father saw him and pitied him, 
and ran and fell on his neck and kissed him tenderly. The son 
said to him, 'Father, I have sinned against heaven and before 
you. I am no longer worthy to be called your son ' But the 



130 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 

father said to his servants, 'Bring out quickly the best robe and 
put it on him, and put a ring on his hand, and shoes on his 
feet; and bring the fattened calf and kill it, and let us eat and 
make merry. For this, my son, was dead and has come to life; 
he was lost and has been found/ And they began to be merry. 
Now his older son was in the field, and when on returning he 
drew near the house he heard music and dancing. Calling 
to him one of the servants, he inquired what this was. The 
servant said to him, * Your brother has come and your father 
has killed the fattened calf because he has received him back 
in health.' But he grew angry, and would not go in. Then his 
father came out and begged him. But he answered his father, 
'See, all these years I have been serving you, and I never 
broke a command of yours, yet you have never given me a kid 
to make merry with my friends. But when this son of yours, 
who has wasted your property with bad women, came, you 
have killed for him the fattened calf/ But the father said to 
him, 'Child, you are always with me and all that I have is 
yours. We could not but make merry and rejoice, for your 
brother here was dead and has come to life; he was lost and is 
found/" 

XVT 

HE said to his disciples, " A certain rich man had a manager who 
was accused to him of wasting his property. Calling him to 
him, he said, 'What is this that I hear about you? Give an 
account of your management; for you cannot longer be mana- 
ger/ The manager said to himself, 'What shall 1 do? for my 
master is going to take the management away from me, I 
have not strength to dig; I am ashamed to beg. I know what I 
will do, so that when I am dismissed from the management 
they may welcome me into their houses/ So, calling to him all 
of the debtors of his master, he said to the first, 'How much do 
you owe to my master? * He replied, * A hundred measures of oil/ 
He said, 'Take your account and sit down quickly and write 
fifty/ Then to another he said, 'And you, how much do you 
owe? 7 He replied, 'A hundred measures of wheat/ He said to 
him, 'Take your account and write eighty/ The master 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 131 

praised the wicked manager because he had done prudently. 
For the sons of this world are with reference to their own 
generation wiser than the sons of light. I tell you, make for 
yourselves friends with the Mammon of unrighteousness, so 
that when it fails they may welcome you into the eternal 
tents. He who is faithful in the least is faithful also in much, 
and he who is dishonest in the least is also dishonest in much. 
If, then, you have not been faithful in the dishonest Mammon, 
who will entrust to you the true? And if you were not faithful 
in what was another's, who will give you what is your own? 
No house servant can serve two masters. For either he will 
hate one and love the other or he will hold to one and despise 
the other. You cannot serve God and Mammon." 

The Pharisees, who were lovers of money, were listening to 
all this and they were sneering at him. He said to them, "You 
are those who justify yourselves before men, but God knows 
your hearts. For what is highly esteemed among men is an 
abomination before God. 

"The Law and the Prophets were until John. From that 
time the good news of the kingdom of God is proclaimed and 
every one is forcing his way into it. 

" It is easier for heaven and earth to pass away than for one 
stroke of a letter of the Law to fail. 

"Every one who divorces his wife and marries another com- 
mits adultery, and he who marries a divorced woman commits 
adultery. 

"A certain man was rich and was clothed in purple and 
fine linen and lived merrily every day in splendor. And a 
certain poor man by the name of Lazarus had been laid at his 
gate, full of sores and longing to be fed from what fell from the 
rich man's table. Even the dogs came and licked his sores. 
It happened that the poor man died and was carried by the 
angels to Abraham's bosom. The rich man also died and was 
buried. And in Hades he lifted up his eyes, being in torments, 
and saw Abraham far off and Lazarus in his bosom. He called 
and said, 'Father Abraham, have compassion on me and send 
Lazarus to dip the tip of his finger in water and cool my 
tongue | for I am in anguish in this flame.' But Abraham said, 



132 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 

'ChUd, remember that you had your good things i n f u u j n r 
lifetime, and Lazarus likewise had his evil things. N ow he ^ bere 
receiving comfort and you are in anguish. Moreover, between 
us and you a great chasm has been fixed, so that those who 
wish to cross from here to you cannot, nor can any cross from 
there to us/ But he said, ' I beg you, then, Father, to send him 
to my father's house, for I have five brothers, j n order to 
testify to them, so that they may not come also to this place of 
torment.' Abraham said, 'They have Moses and the prophets 
Let them listen to them.' But he said, 'No, father Abraham* 
but if one goes to them from the dead, they will have a change 
of heart/ Abraham replied, ' If they do not listen to Moses and 
the prophets, neither will they be persuaded, though one rises 
from the dead.'" 

XV11 

HE said to his disciples, "It cannot be but that occasions of 
stumbling will arise, but alas for him through whom they com 
It would be better for him if, with a millstone hung around h" * 
neck, he had been flung into the sea than to cause one of these 
little ones to stumble. 

"Be on your guard. If your brother sins against you re- 
prove him, and if he changes his mind, forgive him. Ev' "f 
seven times in the day he sins against you and seven tim * 
turns to you, saying, 'I repent,' forgive him." 

The apostles said to the Master, "Increase our faith" 
The Master said, "If you had faith like a mustard see 1 * 
would say to this mulberry tree, 'Be uprooted and planted^ 
the sea/ and it would obey you. 

"Who is there of you, having a servant plowing or keeninz 
sheep, that will say to him when he comes in f rom ^ Jr j, g 
'Come quickly and recline at table*? On the contrary w"H h ' 
not say to him, ' Make ready something for my dinner and *rird 
yourself and wait on me while I eat and drink, and after th t 
you may eat and drink yourself'? Does he thank the se * 
because he did what he was told? Just so you, \vhen yo h* 
done all that has been commanded you, say, '^ a ^ ^^ 
servants; we have done merely what we ought to have do 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 133 

It happened that on his journey toward Jerusalem he was 
going through Samaria and Galilee. As he was approaching 
a certain village, ten leprous men met him. They stood at 
a distance, and, raising their voices, called, "Jesus, Master, 
have compassion on us." When Jesus saw them, he said, 
"Go and show yourselves to the priests." While they were 
going, they became clean. One of them, seeing that he had 
been cured, turned back with aloud shout giving glory to God, 
and he fell on his face at the feet of Jesus, thanking him. He 
was a Samaritan. Jesus said, "Were not ten cleansed? But 
the nine where are they? Was there none found returning 
to give glory to God except this foreigner? " He said to him, 
"Rise and go. Your faith has healed you." 

On being asked by the Pharisees when the kingdom of God 
was coming, Jesus answered them, "The kingdom of God will 
not come in a way that can be observed, nor will they say, 
'Here it is!' or, 'There it is! ; For indeed the kingdom of God 
is among you." He said to the disciples, "There will come days 
when you will wish to see one of the days of the Son of Man 
and you will not see it. They will say to you, 'See here!' or, 
'See there!' but do not start off or go in pursuit. For as the 
lightning when it flashes shines from one part of the heavens to 
the other, so will the Son of Man be in his day. But first he 
must suffer many things, and be rejected by this generation. 
As it happened in the days of Noah, so will it be in the days of 
the Son of Man. They were eating and drinking, marrying 
and being given in marriage, until the day that Noah went into 
the ark and the flood came and destroyed them all. Just so it 
was in the days of Lot; they were eating and drinking, buying 
and selling, planting and building. But on the day that Lot 
went out of Sodom it rained fire and brimstone from heaven 
and destroyed them all. So will the Son of Man be on the day 
that he is revealed. On that day, if a man is on the housetop 
and his things in the house, he must not come down to get 
them, and for the same reason if he is in the field he must not 
turn back. Remember Lot's wife. Whoever seeks to save 
his life will lose it, and whoever loses it will save it. I tell 
you that night there will be two men in one bed; one will be 



134 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 

taken with him and the other will be left. There will be two 
women grinding at the same mill, one will be taken with him 
and the other will be left." They said to him, "Where, 
Master?" He said to them, " Where the carcass is, there will 
the vultures come flocking together." 

xvra 

HE gave them an illustration that they ought always to pray 
and not to lose courage. He said, "There was in a certain 
city a judge who did not fear God or regard man. And there 
was a widow in that city who kept coming to him and saying, 
'Give me justice against my adversary/ For a time he would 
not. Later he said to himself, 'Even though I do not fear God 
nor regard man, yet because this widow is annoying me I will 
do her justice so that she may not keep coming and mauling 
me forever.' " The Master said, "Hear what the wicked judge 
says; and will not God do justice for his elect, who are calling 
to him day and night, even though he is long-suffering with 
their adversaries? I tell you, he will do justice for them 
speedily. But when the Son of Man comes, will he find faith 
on the earth?" 

He gave also this illustration to some who trusted in them- 
selves as being righteous and despised others: "Two men went 
up to the Temple courts to pray. One was a Pharisee and the 
other was a tax collector. The Pharisee stood and prayed thus 
with himself, 'God, I thank thee that I am not like the rest of 
men, extortioners, cheats, adulterers, or even like this tax 
collector* I fast twice a week. I give tithes of all I get/ But 
the tax collector stood far off and would not even lift his eyes 
to heaven, but beat his breast, saying, ' God be merciful to me, 
the sinner!' I tell you this man went down to his house justi- 
fied rather than the other. For every one who exalts him- 
self will be humbled, and he who humbles himself will be 
exalted." 

They were bringing to him babes for him to touch. The 
disciples on seeing this rebuked them. But Jesus called the 
children to him, saying, "Let the little children come to me, 
and do not hinder them; for of suck is the kingdom of God 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 135 

Truly, I tell you, whoever does not receive the kingdom of 
God as a little child will not enter it." 

One of the rulers asked him, "Good Teacher, what shall I 
do to inherit life eternal?" Jesus said to him, "Why do you 
call me good? No one is good except one God. You know 
the commandments: Thou shalt not cnnrmn.it adultery, Thou 
shalt not commit murder, Thou shalt not steal, Thou shalt not 
bear false witness, Honor thy father and thy mother." He 
said, " All these I have kept from my boyhood up." On hearing 
that, Jesus said to him, "You lack still one thing. Sell all that 
you have and distribute to the poor and you will have treasure 
in heaven, and then come and follow me." But he, on hearing 
this, became deeply sorrowful, for he was very rich. Jesus 
looked at him and said, "With how much difficulty do those 
who have riches enter the kingdom of God! It is easier for 
a camel to go through the eye of a needle than for a rich man to 
enter the kingdom of God!" Those who heard it said, "Then 
who can be saved?" He said, "The things that are impossible 
with men are possible with God." Peter said, "See, we have 
left our property and have followed you." He said to them, 
"I tell you truly there is no one who has left house or wife or 
brothers or parents or children for the sake of the kingdom of 
God who will not receive many times more in this world, and 
in the world to come life eternal." 

Taking the twelve aside, he said to them, "We are going up 
to Jerusalem, and all the things written through the prophets 
will be fully done to the Son of Man. For he will be handed 
over to the Gentiles and he will be made sport of and insulted 
and spit upon, and they will scourge him and kill him, and on 
the third day he will rise," But they understood none of these 
things, and what he said was hidden from them. They did not 
grasp the meaning of his words. 

As he approached Jericho, a blind man was sitting by the 
roadside begging. Hearing a crowd passing, he inquired what 
this was. They told him, " Jesus, the Nazarene, is passing by." 
Then he shouted, "Jesus, son of David, have pity on me!" 
Those who were in front rebuked him and told him to be still* 
But he kept crying out much louder, "Son of David, have pity 



136 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 

on me!" Jesus stopped and ordered the man to be led to him. 
When he had come up, Jesus asked him, "What do you want 
me to do for you?" He said, "Sir, I want my sight." Jesus 
said to him, "See. Your faith has healed you." Immediately 
he received sight and followed him, giving glory to God. All 
the people upon seeing this gave praise to God. 

XIX 

HE entered and was passing through Jericho. In the city there 
was a man called Zacchseus, who was chief of the tax collectors 
and was rich. He was trying to see Jesus what he was like; 
but he could not on account of the crowd, for he was short in 
stature. So running ahead he climbed up into a mulberry tree 
to see him, for he was going to pass that way. When Jesus 
came to the place, he looked up and said to him, "Zacchseus, 
make haste and come down; to-day I must stay at your house." 
He hurriedly descended and welcomed hum joyfully. All who 
saw it grumbled, saying that Jesus was going in to stay with 
a sinner. Zacchseus stood and said to the Master, "See, the 
half of my property, Sir, I give to the poor, and if I have un- 
justly taken anything from any one, I will give him back four- 
fold," Jesus said to him, "To-day salvation has come to this 
house, since he also is a son of Abraham. For the Son of Man 
came to seek and to save the lost." 

While they were listening to this, he added an illustration, 
because he was near to Jerusalem and they were thinking that 
the kingdom of heaven was going to appear immediately. He 
said, "A certain nobleman went into a far country to get for 
himself a kingdom and return. Calling his ten servants, ho 
gave them each an equal sum of money * and said to them, 
'Do business until I come/ But his citizens hated him and 
sent an embassy after him to say, * We do not want this man to 
be king over us. 7 When he returned, having secured the royal 
power, he ordered those servants to whom ho had given the 
silver to be called to him that he might know what each had 
gained in trading. The first came saying, 'Sir, your money has 

1 The unit of money mentioned hero,, in Greek a mna, was worth about 
twenty dollars. 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 137 

gained tenfold/ He said, 'Well done, good servant, because 
you were faithful in the least you shall be ruler over ten cities.' 
Then came the second, saying, 'Your money, Sir, has made 
fivefold.' He said to this one, 'And you shall be over five 
cities/ Another one came, saying, 'Sir, here is your silver, 
which I kept laid away in a napkin. For I feared you, because 
you are an austere man; you take up what you did not lay down 
and you reap where you did not sow/ He said to him, 'Out of 
your own mouth I will judge you, you wicked servant. Did you 
know that I was an austere man, taking up what I did not lay 
down and reaping where I did not sow? Then why did you not 
put my silverinto the bank, so that when I came I could have 
exacted it with interest?' Then to those who stood by he said, 
'Take from him, the silver and give it to him who has tenfold/ 
They said to him, 'Sir, he has tenfold/ 'I tell you/ he said, 
'that to every one who has, shall be given, and from him who 
has not, even what he has shall be taken. But those enemies of 
mine, who did not want me to be king over them, bring here 
and slaughter them before me/ " 

When he had said these things, he journeyed onward, going 
up toward Jerusalem. When they approached Bethphage and 
Bethany at the mount called 'the Olive Orchard, he sent two 
of his disciples, telling them, "Go into the village across there, 
and as you enter it you will find a colt tied upon which no 
man has ever sat. Loose it and lead it here. If any one asks 
you, 'Why are you loosing it?' say, 'The Master has need of 
it/" Those who were sent went and found everything just as 
he had said to them. While they were loosing the colt, its 
owners said to them, "Why are you loosing the colt?" They 
said, "The Master has need of it." They led it to Jesus and 
threw their cloaks on the colt and mounted Jesus on it. As he 
advanced, some spread their cloaks in the road, and as he 
approached the descent of the Mount of Olives all the multi- 
tude of the disciples began to rejoice and praise God in a loud 
voice for all the miracles they had seen, saying: "Blessed be he 
who comes as king, in the name of the Lord! Peace in heaven 
and glory in the heights above!" Some of the Pharisees from 
the crowd said to him, "Teacher, rebuke your disciples." But 



138 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 

he said, "I tell you if these become silent, the stones will cry 
out." 

As he drew near and looked at the city, he wept over it, say- 
ing, "If this day you also knew the things that make for peace! 
But now they are hidden from your eyes! For days will come 
when your enemies will throw up a palisade against you and 
encircle you and hem you in on every side and level you to the 
ground, and your children within you, and they will not leave 
one stone upon another in you, because you did not know the 
time when you were visited." Entering into the Temple courts 
he began and drove out the dealers, saying to them, "It is 
written, 'My house shall be a house of prayer/ but you have 
made it a den of robbers." 

He was teaching every day in the Temple courts. But the 
high priests and the scribes were bent on destroying him, and 
so were the first citizens. But they could find no way to do it; 
for all the people hung upon him listening. 

XX 

ON one of those days, as he was teaching the people in the 
Temple courts and proclaiming the good news, the high priests 
and the scribes came up with the elders and said to him, "Tell 
us by what authority you are doing these things or who it is 
that gave you this authority." He answered them, "I too will 
ask you a question and you must tell me: the baptism of John, 
was it from heaven or from men?" They conferred among 
themselves, saying, "If we say, 'From heaven/ he will say, 
'Why then did you not believe him?' and if we say, 'From 
men/ all the people will stone us; for they are persuaded that 
John was a prophet." So they answered that they did not 
know where it came from. Jesus said to them, "Neither will I 
tell you by what authority I am doing these things." 

He began and gave the people this illustration; "A man 
planted a vineyard and let it out to grape-growers and went 
abroad for a long time. At the proper season he sent to the 
grape-growers a servant for them to give him a part of the 
fruit of the vineyard. But the grape-growers beat him, and 
sent him away empty-handed. He afterwards sent another 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 139 

servant. That one, too, they beat and insulted and sent away 
empty-handed. Then he sent a third. But this one, too, they 
wounded and threw out. The owner of the vineyard said, 'I 
will send my son, my beloved. Perhaps they will reverence 
him.' But when the grape-growers saw him, they conferred 
with one another and said, ' This is the heir. Let us kill him so 
that the inheritance may be ours.' So they threw him outside 
of the vineyard and killed him. What now will the owner of 
the vineyard do? He will come and destroy those grape- 
growers and will give the vineyard to others." When they 
heard this, they exclaimed, " May it never be ! " He turned his 
eyes upon them and said, "What does this Scripture mean, 
'The stone which the builders rejected that one has become 
the corner stone'? Every one who falls upon that stone will be 
shattered, but whomever it falls on it will crush to pieces." 

The scribes and the high priests were eager to lay hands on 
him at that very time, for they knew that he had aimed the 
illustration at them; but they were afraid of the people. So 
watching insidiously for an opportunity they sent spies, who 
pretended to be honest men, to seize upon anything he might 
say, so as to hand him over to the authorities and to the power 
of the Governor. They asked him, " Teacher, we know that 
you speak and teach correctly and that you do not regard 
personal influences, but you teach the way of God according to 
truth. Is it right for us to give tribute to Caesar or not?" He 
saw through their cunning and said to them, "Show me a coin. 
Whose head and inscription does it have on it?" They said, 
"Caesar's." He said to them, "Then pay to Caesar what be- 
longs to Caesar and pay to God what belongs to God." They 
could not seize upon his words before the people, and in 
astonishment at his answer they were silent. 

There came to him some of the Sadducees, who deny that 
there is any resurrection, and asked him, "Teacher, Moses 
wrote for us, 'If any one's married brother dies childless, that 
man must marry his brother's widow and raise up offspring for 
his brother. 7 Well, there were seven brothers. The first took 
a wife and died childless. The second and the third and the 
rest of the seven took her and died leaving no children* Finally 



140 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 

the woman also died. Now this woman whose wife will she 
be at the resurrection? For she was wife to the seven." Jesus 
said to them, "The children of this world many and are mar- 
ried, but those who are judged worthy to reach that world and 
the resurrection of the dead neither marry nor are married, 
neither can they die, for they are like angels and are children of 
God, since they are children of the resurrection. But that the 
dead rise Moses has made known in the passage regarding the 
Bush where he calls the Lord 'the God of Abraham and the 
God of Isaac and the God of Jacob/ He is not a God of dead 
men, but of living men. For all are alive to him. 77 Some of the 
scribes answered him, "Teacher, you have spoken well*" And 
they no longer dared to ask him anything. 

He said to them, "How do they say that the Christ is the 
son of David? David himself says in the book of Psalms, 'The 
Lord said to my Lord, Sit at my right until I make your 
enemies your footstool. 7 So David calls him 'Lord 7 ; how is he 
then his son? 77 

While all the people were listening, he said to the disciples, 
"Beware of the scribes, who like to walk in long robes and love 
salutations in the market-places and front seats in the syna- 
gogues and the best couches at dinners, who devour widows' 
houses and in pretense make long prayers. These will receive 
unusual condemnation. 77 

XXI 

LOOKING up, he saw those who were dropping their gifts into 
the contribution box, the rich people. But ho saw a poor 
widow dropping in two mites, and he said, "Truly I tell you 
this widow, poor as she is, has dropped in more than all. For 
they all out of their abundance contributed to the gifts, but 
she out of her lack put in all that she had to live on," 

As some were speaking about the Temple buildings, how 
they were decorated with beautiful stones and votive gifts, he 
said, "As to these things that you are looking at, there will 
come days in which there will not be left one stone upon an- 
other which will not be thrown down/ 7 They asked him, 
"Teacher, when will these things be? And what will be the 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 141 

sign when they are about to happen?" He said, "Be on your 
guard against being misled. For many will come in my name, 
saying, 'I am he,' and, 'The time is at hand/ Do not follow 
them. And when you hear of wars and disorders, do not be 
terrified. For these things must take place first, but the end 
will not come immediately." Then he said to them, "Nation 
will rise against nation and kingdom against kingdom, and 
there will be great earthquakes in various places, and pesti- 
lences and famines and terrors and great portents from heaven. 
Before all these things they will lay their hands on you and 
persecute you, handing you over to the synagogues and into 
prisons, dragging you before kings and governors because of 
my name. It will turn out your opportunity for testimony. 
Settle it, then, in your hearts not to prepare beforehand to 
defend yourselves. For I will give you a mouth and wisdom 
which all your opponents will be unable to resist or reply to. 
You will be betrayed by parents and brothers and relatives and 
friends, and some of you will be put to death and you will be 
hated by all on account of my name. Yet not a hair of your 
head will perish. By your endurance you will win your lives. 

"But when you see Jerusalem encircled by camps, then 
know that her desolation is near. Then those who are in Judaea 
are to flee to the mountains, and those in the midst of it are to 
depart, and those in the country places must not come into the 
city; for these are days of vengeance, that all the prophecies may 
be fulfilled, Alas for the women with child and the nursing 
mothers in those days! For there will be great distress on 
earth and wrath upon this people, and they will fall by the 
edge of the sword and will be taken as captives into all the 
nations. And Jerusalem will be trodden down by the Gentiles 
until the times of the Gentiles have gone by. 

"There will be portents in the sun and in the moon and in 
the stars, and on earth distress of nations in perplexity at the 
roar of the sea and its surges, men fainting from fear and fore- 
boding of what is coming upon mankind. For the powers of 
the heavens will be shaken. And then they will see the Son of 
Man coming on a cloud with power and great glory. When 
these things are beginning to happen, look up and lift up your 



142 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 

heads, for your liberation is drawing near." He gave them an 
illustration: " See the fig tree, and all the trees. When they put 
out leaves, you see for yourselves that summer is near. So, 
too, when you see these things happening, know that the king- 
dom of God is near. Truly, I tell you, this generation will not 
pass away before all takes place. Heaven and earth will pass 
away, but my words will not pass away. Take care that your 
hearts are not dull through overeating and drinking and the 
cares of life, so that that day may come on you unexpectedly 
like a trap. For it will come on all who dwell on the face of all 
the earth. Be watchful at every season in prayer that you may 
be able to escape all these things that will happen, and to stand 
before the Son of Man." 

During the days he continued to teach in the Temple courts, 
but every night he went out and stayed on the mount called 
Olive Orchard. All the people came early every morning to 
him in the Temple courts to listen to him* 

xxn 

THE Feast of Unleavened Bread, which is called the Passover, 
was approaching. The high priests and the scribes were intent 
upon finding some way to destroy Jesus; for they were afraid 
of the people. But Satan entered into Judas, called Iscariot, 
who was of the number of the twelve, and he went away and 
talked over with the high priests and officers how he could 
betray him. They were delighted and agreed to give him 
money. He promised, and was on the lookout for an opportu- 
nity to betray him to them when the crowd was not with him* 
The day of unleavened bread came, when the Passover lamb 
must be sacrificed, and Jesus sent Peter and John, telling thorn, 
"Go and make ready the Passover for us so that we may eat 
it." They said to him, " Where do you wish us to make ready? " 
He said, "As you are entering the city a man will meet you 
carrying a pitcher of water. Follow him, into the house that 
he enters and say to the master of the house, *The Teacher 
says to you, Where is the dining room where I am to eat the 
Passover with my disciples?' And he will show you an upper 
room, large and furnished. There make ready." They went 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 143 

away and found everything just as he had said, and they pre- 
pared the Passover. When the hour came, he reclined at table 
and the apostles with him. He said to them, "I have strongly 
desired to eat this Passover with you before I suffer. For, I 
tell you, I shall not eat it again until it is fulfilled in the king- 
dom of God." He took a cup and gave thanks and said, 
"Take this and share it among yourselves. For, I say to you, 
I shall not again drink of the fruit of the vine until the king- 
dom of God comes." Then he took a loaf and gave thanks 
and broke it and gave it to them, saying, "This is my body 
which is given for you. Do this in memory of me." He took 
the cup in the same manner after supper, saying, "This cup is 
the new covenant in my blood, which is shed for you. But, see, 
the hand of the traitor is with me on the table! The Son of 
Man is going, as it is appointed, but alas for that man by whom 
he is betrayed!" They began to question among themselves 
which of them it could be who was going to do this. There was 
also a dispute among them as to which of them should be 
regarded as superior. He said to them, "The kings of the 
Gentiles lord it over them, and those of them who exercise 
authority are called benefactors. But you are not to be so. The 
greatest among you is to be like the youngest and the leader 
like him who serves. For which is superior, he who reclines at 
table or he who serves? Is not he who reclines? But I am in 
the midst of you as the one who serves. You are those who 
have stood by me in my trials and I will assign to you, as my 
Father has assigned to me, a kingdom, that you may eat and 
drink at my table in my kingdom. You shall sit on thrones 
judging the twelve tribes of Israel. Simon, Simon, Satan has 
begged to be allowed to sift all of you like wheat. But I have 
prayed for thee that thy faith may not fail. And when you 
come back to yourself, strengthen your brothers," Peter said 
to him, "Master, I am ready to go with you to prison and to 
death." Jesus said, "I tell you, Peter, the cock will not crow 
to-day before you three times deny that you know me." 

He said to them, "When I sent you out without purse or 
bag or shoes, did you lack for anything?" They said, "We 
lacked for nothing." He said to them, "But now whoever has 



144 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 

a purse must take it, and so with a bag, and he who has no 
sword must sell his cloak and buy one. For I tell you that the 
prophecy must be fulfilled in me the prophecy, ' He was 
numbered among the lawless/ For what concerns me is coming 
to an end." They said, "Master, here are two swords." He 
said to them, "That is enough." 

He went out and made his way, according to his custom, to 
the Mount of Olives, and the disciples followed him. When he 
came to the place, he said to them, "Pray not to enter into 
temptation." He parted from them about a stone's throw 
and kneeled down and prayed, "Father, if thou wilt, take 
away this cup from me. Yet not my will, but thine, be done." 
An angel from heaven appeared to him strengthening him. 
Being in agony, he prayed more earnestly, and his sweat be- 
came like great drops of blood falling upon the ground. Then 
he rose from prayer and came to the disciples and found them 
sleeping from sorrow. He said to them, "Why are you sleep- 
ing? Rise and pray that you may not enter into temptation." 

While he was still speaking there came a crowd, and he 
who was called Judas, one of the twelve, was leading them. 
He came up to Jesus to kiss him. Jesus said to him, "Judas, is 
it with a kiss that you betray the Son of Man?" Those about 
Jesus, seeing what was going to happen, said, "Master, shall 
we strike with the sword?" One of them did strike the High 
Priest's servant and cut off his right ear. But Jesus said, "Let 
me at least do this," and he touched his ear and healed it. 
Jesus said to the high priests and officers of the Temple and 
elders who had come out against him, "You come out with 
swords and clubs, just as if after a robber, Irx the daytime 
while I was with you in the Temple courts you did not stretch 
out your hands to take me. But this is your hour and the power 
of darkness." 

After arresting him they led him away and brought him into 
the house of the High Priest, Peter followed at a distance. 
They lighted a fire in the center of the court and seated them- 
selves around it, and Peter seated himself in the midst of them. 
A maid saw him sitting near the light, and, looking hard at 
him, said, "This man was with Mm too." But he denied, 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 145 

saying, "Woman, I do not know him." After a short space 
another a man saw him., and said, "You too are one of 
them." But Peter said, "Man, I am not." About an hour 
later, another man asserted positively, "Truly this man was 
with him too, for he is a Galikean." But Peter said, "Man, I 
do not know what you are talking about." Immediately 
while he was speaking the cock crew, and the Master turned 
and looked at Peter, and Peter remembered the word of the 
Master, how he had said to him, "Before the cock crows to-day 
you will disown me three times." And he went out and wept 
bitterly. 

The men who had arrested Jesus made sport of him, beating 
him, and, after blindfolding him, they asked him, "Prophesy 
who it is that struck you." Many other insulting words they 
said to him. 

When daylight came, the eldership of the people assembled, 
both high priests and scribes, and they led him to their council, 
saying, "If you are the Christ, tell us." He said to them, "If I 
tell you, you will not believe. If I question you, you will not 
answer. But from this time the Son of Man will be seated at 
the powerful right hand of God." They all said, "You then are 
the Son of God?" He said to them, "I am what you say." 
They said, "Why do we need anymore testimony? For we 
ourselves have heard it from his own mouth." 

XXIII 

THEN the whole assemblage arose and led him to Pilate. They 
began accusing him, saying, "We have found this man cor- 
rupting our nation and opposing the payment of tribute to 
Caesar and saying that he himself is Christ a king." Pilate 
asked him, "Are you the king of the Jews?" Jesus answered 
him, "I am." Pilate said to the high priests and the crowd, 
"I find nothing criminal in this man." But they were violent 
in saying, "He stirs up the people, teaching through the whole 
of Judaea. Starting in Galilee, he is now here." Pilate, on 
hearing of Galilee, asked if the man was a Galilaean, and when 
he learned that he was of Herod's jurisdiction he sent him to 
Herod, who was himself also in Jerusalem during those days. 



- 146 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 

Herod on seeing Jesus was much pleased because for a long 
time he had been anxious to see him on account of hearing 
about him, and he was hoping to see some miracle done by 
him. He questioned Mm with many words; but Jesus gave 
him no answer. The high priests and the scribes stood and 
vehemently accused him. Herod along with his soldiers treated 
him with contempt and after making sport of him and putting 
a gorgeous robe on him, sent him back to Pilate. So Herod and 
Pilate became friends with each other that day. Previously 
they had been at enmity. 

Pilate called together the high priests and the rulers and the 
people and said to them, "You have brought before me this 
man as one who misguides the people, and yet I, in examining 
him before you, have found in this man not one criminal thing 
of all that you charge against him. No more has Herod; for 
he has sent him back to us. See, nothing deserving of death 
has been done by him. So I will scourge him and release him." 
But the whole crowd cried out together, "Put him out of the 
way and free Barabbas for us!" (Barabbas, -on account of a 
riot that had occurred in the city and for murder, had been 
thrown into prison.) Again Pilate spoke to them, wishing to 
release Jesus. But they shouted, "Crucify him/crucify him!" 
For the third time he said to them, " What wrong has he done? 
I have found nothing criminal in him. I will therefore scourge 
him and let him go." But they insisted with loud voices asking 
to have him crucified, and their voices prevailed. So Pilate 
gave sentence that what they asked should be done. He freed 
the man who for riot and murder had been thrown into prison 
the man they asked for; but Jesus he handed ovor to their 
will. 

As they led him away, they took hold of Simon, a Cyrenian 
coming from the country, and laid on him the cross to bear 
behind Jesus. There followed him a great crowd of people and 
of women who were beating their breasts and bewailing him. 
Jesus turned and said to them, "Daughters of Jerusalem, do 
not weep for me; but weep for yourselves and for your children. 
For days are coming in which they will say, 'Blessed are the 
barren and the wombs that never bore and the breasts that 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 147 

never nursed a babe!' Then they will begin and say to the 
mountains, 'Fall on us! 7 and to, the hills, 'Hide us!' For if 
they do these things in the green tree, what will happen in the 
dry?" 

There were also two others, criminals, led with him to be 
put to death. 

When they came to the place called Skull, there they cruci- 
fied him and the criminals, one on his right and one on his left. 
Jesus said, "Father, forgive them; for they know not what 
they do." They divided his clothes by casting lots. The 
people stood looking on. The rulers scoffed at him, saying, 
"He saved others; let him save himself, if he is the Christ of 
God, the Chosen." The soldiers made sport of him, coming up 
and offering him sour wine and saying, "If you are the King of 
the Jews, save yourself!" There was a writing over him, 

THIS IS THE KING OF THE JEWS 

One of the criminals who were crucified insulted him, "Are 
you not the Christ? Save yourself and us." But the other 
rebuked him and said, "Have you no fear of God, since you 
are under the same sentence? And we are here justly, for we 
are receiving our due for our deeds. But this man has done 
nothing wrong." Then he said, "Jesus, remember me when 
you come into your kingdom." Jesus said to him, "I tell you 
truly to-day you will be with me in Paradise." 

It was now about noon, and darkness came over all the land 
until three, the sun being eclipsed. And the curtain in the 
Temple was torn in the middle. Then Jesus said in a loud 
voice, "Father, into thy hands I commit my spirit." After 
saying this, he breathed his last. When the Centurion saw 
what had happened, he gave glory to God, saying, "Certainly 
this was an upright man!" And all the crowds that had stood 
by looking on the scene, after seeing what happened, turned 
away beating their breasts. All his acquaintances and the 
women who had followed him from Galilee were standing at a 
distance looking on. 

There was a man named Joseph, a member of the Council, a 
good and upright man who had not participated in their 



148 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 

plan and action. He was of Arimathcea, a city of tho Judseans, 
and was looking for the kingdom of God. This man went to 
Pilate and asked for the body of Jesus. He took it down and 
wrapped it in fine linen and laid him in a tomb cut in the rock 
where no one was yet lying. It was the day of Preparation and 
the Sabbath was about to begin. The women who had come 
with Jesus from Galilee followed along and saw the tomb and 
how his body was laid, and they went back and prepared 
perfumes and ointments. On the Sabbath they abstained 
from work according to the commandment. 

xxrv 

BUT on the first day of the week at early dawn they came to 
the tomb, bringing the perfumes which they had prepared. 
They found the stone rolled away from the tomb, and on 
entering they did not find the body of the Lord Jesus. While 
they were at a loss about this, suddenly two men in glittering 
robes stood beside them. They wore frightened and bowed 
their faces to the ground, but the men said to them, " Why are 
you looking for the living among the dead? He is not here, but 
has risen. Remember how ho told you while ho was still in 
Galilee that the Son of Man must be betrayed into tho hands of 
sinful men and be crucified and rise on the third day/ 7 Then 
they remembered his words and turned back from the tomb 
and told all this to the eleven and all the rest. It was Mary 
Magdalene and Joanna and Mary tho mother of James. The 
other women with them also told these things to the apostles. 
But these reports seemed in their eyes like idle talk. They did 
not believe the women. But Peter rose and ran to tho tomb 
and stooping down ho saw nothing but the linen cloth**, and ho 
went away to his place wondering at what had happened. 

On that day two of them worn going to a village named 
Emmaus, seven miles distant from Jerusalem, and they were 
talking to each other about all these occurrences. It happened 
as they talked and discussed that Jesus himself drew near and 
walked along with them. But their eyes wero restrained from 
recognizing him. Ho said to them, "What are these matters 
that you are debating with each othe* as you walk?" They 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 149 

stood still with sad faces. One of them, named Cleopas, said 
to him, " Are you a stranger living alone in Jerusalem and do 
you not know the things that have happened there in recent 
days?" He said to them, "What things?" They said to him, 
"The things about Jesus the Nazarene, who was a prophet 
powerful in deed and word before God and all the people 
how our high priests and leading men handed him over to be 
condemned to death and crucified him. But we were hoping 
that he was the one who was to redeem Israel. But now, how- 
ever, the third day is passing since these things took place. 
Yet some women from our company amazed us. They went at 
dawn to the tomb and did not find his body, but came back 
saying that they had seen a vision of angels who said that he 
was alive. Some of our company went out to the tomb and 
found things as the women had said, but they did not see him." 
Jesus said to them, "O.men lacking insight and slow in heart 
to believe all that the prophets spoke ! Did not the Christ have 
to suffer these things and enter into his glory?" Then, begin- 
ning with Moses and all the prophets, he interpreted to them 
in all the Scriptures the things about himself. They drew near 
to the village where they were going and he acted as if he were 
going on. But they urged him, saying, "Stay with us, for it is 
toward evening and the sun is already low." So he went in to 
stay with them. As he reclined at table with them, he took the 
bread and blessed it and broke it and gave it to them. And 
their eyes were opened and they recognized him; but he van- 
ished from their sight. They said to each other, " Were not our 
hearts burning within us when he was talking to us on the 
road and was explaining the Scriptures to us?" 

Then, rising that very hour, they returned to Jerusalem and 
found the eleven and their associates assembled and saying, 
" Really the Lord has risen and he has appeared to Simon." 
They then narrated what had happened on the road and how 
they knew him by his breaking the bread. 

While they were talking of these things, Jesus himself stood 
in the midst of them and said to them, "Peace be with you!" 
They were terrified and much alarmed, and thought that they 
were seeing a spirit. But he said to them, "Why are you 



148 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 

plan and action. He was of Arimathsea, a city of the Judseans, 
and was looking for the kingdom of God. This man went to 
Pilate and asked for the body of Jesus. He took it down and 
wrapped it in fine linen and laid him in a tomb cut in the rock 
where no one was yet lying. It was the day of Preparation and 
the Sabbath was about to begin. The women who had come 
with Jesus from Galilee followed along and saw the tomb and 
how his body was laid, and they went back and prepared 
perfumes and ointments. On the Sabbath they abstained 
from work according to the commandment. 

xxrv 

BTJT on the first day of the week at early dawn they came to 
the tomb, bringing the perfumes which they had prepared. 
They found the stone rolled away from the tomb 7 and on 
entering they did not find the body of the Lord Jesus. While 
they were at a loss about this, suddenly two men in glittering 
robes stood beside them. They were frightened and bowed 
their faces to the ground, but the men said to them, " Why are 
you looking for the living among the dead? He is not here, but 
has risen. Remember how he told you while he was still in 
Galilee that the Son of Man must be betrayed into the hands of 
sinful men and be crucified and rise on the third day." Then 
they remembered his words and turned back from the tomb 
and told all this to the eleven and all the rest. It was Mary 
Magdalene and Joanna and Mary the mother of James. The 
other women with them also told these things to the apostles. 
But these reports seemed in their eyes like idle talk. They did 
not believe the women. But Peter rose and ran to the tomb 
and stooping down he saw nothing but the linen cloths, and he 
went away to his place wondering at what had happened. 

On that day two of them were going to a village named 
Emraaus, seven miles distant from Jerusalem, and they were 
talking to each other about all these occurrences. It happened 
as they talked and discussed that Jesus himself drew near and 
walked along with them. But their eyes were restrained from 
recognizing him. He said to them, "What are these matters 
that you are debating with each othetf as you walk?" They 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 149 

stood still with sad faces. One of them, named Cleopas, said 
to him, "Are you a stranger living alone in Jerusalem and do 
you not know the things that have happened there in recent 
days?" He said to them, "What things?" They said to him, 
"The things about Jesus the Nazarene, who was a prophet 
powerful in deed and word before God and all the people 
how our high priests and leading men handed him over to^be 
condemned to death and crucified him. But we were hoping 
that he was the one who was to redeem Israel. But now, how- 
ever, the third day is passing since these things took place. 
Yet some women from our company amazed us. They went at 
dawn to the tomb and did not find his body, but came back 
saying that they had seen a vision of angels who said that he 
was alive. Some of our company went out to the tomb and 
found things as the women had said, but they did not see him." 
Jesus said to them, "O.men lacking insight and slow in heart 
to believe all that the prophets spoke ! Did not the Christ have 
to suffer these things and enter into his glory?" Then, begin- 
ning with Moses and all the prophets, he interpreted to them 
in all the Scriptures the things about himself. They drew near 
to the village where they were going and he acted as if he were 
going on. But they urged him, saying, "Stay with us, for it is 
toward evening and the sun is already low." So he went in to 
stay with them. As he reclined at table with them, he took the 
bread and blessed it and broke it and gave it to them. And 
their eyes were opened and they recognized him; but he van- 
ished from their sight. They said to each other, " Were not our 
hearts burning within us when he was talking to us on the 
road and was explaining the Scriptures to us?" 

Then, rising that very hour, they returned to Jerusalem and 
found the eleven and their associates assembled and saying, 
" Really the Lord has risen and he has appeared to Simon." 
They then narrated what had happened on the road and how 
they knew him by his breaking the bread. 

While they were talking of these things, Jesus himself stood 
in the midst of them and said to them, "Peace be with you!" 
They were terrified and much alarmed, and thought that they 
were seeing a spirit. But he said to them, "Why are you 



150 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY LUKE 

troubled? And why do doubts arise in your hearts? See my 
hands and my feet that it is I myself. Feel me and see, for a 
spirit does not have flesh and bones as you see me having." 
Saying this, he showed them his hands and his feet. While 
they still were doubting for joy and wondering, he said to 
them, "Have you anything here to eat?" They gave him a 
piece of broiled fish, and he took it and ate before them. He 
said to them, "This is what I said to you while I was still 
with you, that all the things written in the Law of Moses and 
in the Prophets and Psalms about me must be fulfilled." 
Then he opened their minds to understand the Scriptures, and 
he said to them, "Thus it is written that the Christ is to suffer 
and rise from the dead on the third day, and in his name 
change of heart for forgiveness of sins is to be proclaimed to all 
the nations, beginning at Jerusalem. You are witnesses of 
these things. And, see, I am sending upon you the promise of 
my Father. But you are to stay in the city until you are 
clothed with power from on high." 

He led them out as far as Bethany and lifted up his hands 
and blessed them. While he was blessing them he parted from 
them and was carried up into heaven. They bowed down be- 
fore him and returned to Jerusalem with great joy, and were 
constantly in the Temple courts blessing God. 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 



IN the beginning was the Word, and the Word was with God, 
and the Word was God. He was in the beginning with God. 
All things came into being through him, and apart from him 
not one thing came into being that has come into being. In 
him was Life, and the Life was the Light of men. And the 
Light shone in the darkness, but the darkness did not under- 
stand it. i 

There came a man, sent from God. His name was John. He 
came for testimony, to testify about the Light, that all might 
believe through him. He was not the Light, but he came to 
testify about the Light. The true Light, which enlightens 
every man, was coming into the world. He was in the world, 
and the world had come into being through him, yet the world 
did not know him. He came to his own things, but his own 
men did not receive him. All who received him to them he 
gave power to become children of God, to those who believe 
in his name, who were born not of blood nor of the will of 
flesh nor of the will of man, but of God. 

The Word became flesh and tented among us, and we looked 
upon his glory, glory as of an only son from a father, full of 
grace and truth. 

John bore witness to him and cried, "This was he of whom 
I said, < He who comes after me has become before me, for he 
was before me. 7 " For of his fullness we all have received, and 
grace for grace. For the law was given through Moses; grace 
and truth came through Jesus Christ. No one has ever seen 
God; God the only Son, who is in the bosom of the Father, he 
has interpreted him. 

This is the testimony of John when the Jews of Jerusalem 
sent to him priests and Levites to ask him, "Who are you?" 
He confessed and did not deny, but confessed, "I am not the 
Christ." They asked him, "What then? Are you Elijah?" He 



152 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 

said, "I am not." "Are you the prophet?' 7 He answered, 
"No." They said then, "Who are you? Let us have an an- 
swer to give to those who sent us. What do you say about 
yourself?" He said, "I am 'the voice of one crying in the wil- 
derness, Make straight the way of the Lord/ as Isaiah the 
prophet said." The men had been sent from the Pharisees. 
They asked him, "Why then do you baptize, if you are not 
the Christ nor Elijah nor the prophet?" John answered them, 
"I baptize with water. In the midst of you stands one whom 
you do not know the One who is coming after me for 
whom I am not worthy to loosen the strap of his sandal." 
This happened in Bethany beyond the Jordan, where John 
was baptizing. 

The next day John saw Jesus coming toward him, and said, 
"Behold, the Lamb of God, who takes away the sin of the 
world! This is he of whom I said, ' After me comes a man who 
has become before me, for he was before me/ I did not know 
him, but I knew that he was to be shown to Israel. For that 
reason I came baptizing with water." John bore witness, "I 
saw the Spirit descending like a dove from heaven and it 
remained on him. I did not know him, but he who sent me to 
baptize with water he said to me, 'He on whom you see 
the Spirit descending and remaining, that is he who baptizes 
with the Holy Spirit.' And I saw it and have borne witness 
that this is the Son of God." 

Again on the next day John was standing with two of his 
disciples, and, looking at Jesus as he walked, he said, "Behold, 
the Lamb of God!" The two disciples heard him say this and 
they followed Jesus. Jesus turned and looked at them as they 
followed, and said to them, "What do you wish?" They said 
to him, "Rabbi (which means, when translated, Teacher), 
where are you staying?" He said to them, "Come and see." 
So they came and saw where he was staying, and stayed 
with him that day. It was then about four in the afternoon. 

Andrew, the brother of Simon Peter, was one of the two that 
heard about Jesus from John and followed him. He found 
first his own brother Simon and said to him, " We have found 
the Messiah (which means, when translated, the Christ) I" He 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 153 

led him to Jesus. Looking at him, Jesus said, "You are Simon, 
the son of John. You shall be called Cephas" (which is in 
Greek, Peter, that is, Rock). 

On the next day Jesus decided to go away to Galilee, and he 
found Philip and said to him, "Follow me." Philip was of 
Bethsaida, the city of Andrew and Peter. Philip found Na- 
thanael and said to him, "We have found hi of whom Moses 
wrote in the Law and of whom the prophets wrote Jesus 
the son of Joseph, from Nazareth." Nathanael said to him, 
"From Nazareth can there be anything good?" Philip said to 
him, "Come and see." Jesus saw Nathanael coming to him, and 
said, "See, here is a true Israelite in whom there is no deceit." 
Nathanael said to him, "How do you know me?" Jesus an- 
swered him, "Before Philip called you, when you were under 
the fig tree, I saw you." Nathanael answered him, "Rabbi, you 
are the Son of God; you are the King of Israel!" Jesus an- 
swered him, "Because I said to you, 'I saw you underneath 
the fig tree/ do you believe? You will see greater things than 
this." He added, "Truly, truly, I tell you you will see heaven 
opened and the angels of God ascending and descending upon 
the Son of Man." 

H 

ON the third day a wedding took place in Cana of Galilee, and 
the mother of Jesus was there. Jesus also was invited, with his 
disciples, to the wedding. When the wine ran short, Jesus' 
mother said to him, "They have no wine." Jesus said to her, 
"What have you to do with my work, woman? My hour has 
not yet come." His mother said to the servants, "Whatever he 
tells you, do it." There were standing there six stone water 
jars in accordance with the Jewish custom of purification, 
holding about twenty or thirty gallons apiece. Jesus said to 
them, "Fill the jars with water." They filled them to the 
brim. Then he said to them, "Dip out now and carry it to the 
Master of the feast." They carried it, and when the Master 
of the feast tasted the water that had become wine, not know- 
ing where it came from though the servants who had dipped 
out the water knew he called to the bridegroom and said to 



154 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 

him, "Every man sets on first the fine wine, and when they 
have drunk freely he sets on the poorer. You have kept the 
fine wine till now." This beginning of signs Jesus did in Cana 
in Galilee and displayed his glory, and his disciples believed in 
him. 

After this Jesus went down to Capernaum, he and his 
mother and his brothers and his disciples, and there they 
stayed a few days. 

The Passover of the Jews was near, and Jesus went up to 
Jerusalem. Finding in the Temple courts the sellers of cattle 
and sheep and doves and the money-changers sitting there, 
he made a whip of cords and drove them all from the 
jourts all the sheep and the cattle, and he poured out 
the small coins of the money-changers and overturned their 
tables. He said to those who were selling doves, "Take these 
things out. Do not make my Father's house a house of trade." 
His disciples remembered that it was written, "Zeal for thy 
house will devour me." The Jews said to him, "What sign do 
you show us, since you act in this way?" Jesus answered 
them, "Demolish this Temple and in three days I will raise it 
again." The Jews said, "It took forty-six years to build this 
Temple, and will you raise it in three days?" But he was 
speaking of the temple of his body. So when he arose from 
the dead his disciples remembered that he had said this, 
and they believed the Scripture and the word that Jesus had 
spoken. 

When he was in Jerusalem at the Feast of the Passover, 
many believed in his name, seeing his signs that he did, but 
Jesus did not trust himself to them because he knew all men 
and had no need for any one to inform hi. about man, for he 
knew what was in man. 

Ill 

THBEE was a man of the Pharisees, Nicodemus by name, a 
ruler of the Jews. This man came to Jesus one night and said 
to him, "Rabbi, we know that you have come from God as a 
teacher; for no one can do these signs that you are doing unless 
God is with him." Jesus answered, "Truly, truly, I tell you, 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 155 

unless a man is born from above he cannot see the kingdom of 
God." Nicodemus said to him, "How can a man be born 
when he is old? Can he enter into his mother's womb a second 
time and be born?" Jesus answered, "Truly, truly, I tell you, 
unless a man is born of water and the Spirit he cannot enter 
into the kingdom of God. What is born of the flesh^is flesh, and 
what is born of the Spirit is spirit. Do not wonder that I said, 
' You must be born from above/ The wind blows where it will, 
and you hear the sound of it, but you do not know whence it 
comes or whither it goes. So is every one who is born of the 
Spirit." Nicodemus answered him, "How can these things 
be?" Jesus answered him, "You are the teacher of Israel, and 
do you not know these things? Truly, truly, I tell you, we are 
speaking of what we know, and we are witnessing to what we 
have seen, and you do not accept our testimony. If 1 have told 
you earthly things and you do not believe, how will you believe 
if I tell you heavenly things? No one has ascended into heaven 
but he who descended from heaven the Son of Man. As 
Moses lifted up the serpent in the desert, so must the Son of 
Man be lifted up, that every one who believes in him may have 
life eternal." 

For God so loved the world that he gave his only Sor 
that every one who believes in hi may not perish, but have 
life eternal. For God did not send his Son into the world to 
judge the world, but that the world might be saved through 
him. He who believes in Mm is not condemned. He who does 
not believe has been already condemned, because he has not 
believed in the name of the only Son of God. This is the con- 
demnation, that Light has come into the world and men have 
loved darkness rather than Light, because their deeds were 
wicked. Every one who is doing base things hates the Light 
and does not come to the Light, that his deeds may not be 
reproved. But he who is doing the truth comes to the Light, 
that it may be plainly shown that his deeds have been done in 
union with God. 

After this Jesus and his disciples came into the land of 
Judaea and there he spent some time with them and baptized. 
John also was baptizing in JLnon near Salim, because there 



156 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 

was abundant water there. People were constantly coming and 
being baptized. For John had not yet been thrown into prison. 
There arose a dispute between the disciples of John and a Jew 
about purification. They came to John and said to him, 
"Rabbi, the man who was with you across the Jordan to 
whom you bore testimony see, he is baptizing and all are ' 
coming to him." John answered, "A man can assume nothing 
unless it has been given him from heaven. You yourselves are 
witnesses that I said, 'I am not the Christ, but I have been 
sent before Mm.* He who has the bride is the bridegroom. 
But the friend of the bridegroom, who stands and hears him, 
rejoices greatly at the bridegroom's voice. So this joy of mine 
is complete. He must increase, but I must decrease." 

He who comes from above is above all. He who is of the 
earth is of the earth and he speaks of the earth. He who comes 
from heaven is above all. What he has seen and heard, that he 
testifies to, yet no one accepts his testimony. He who accepts 
his testimony has set his seal that God is true. He whom God 
has sent speaks the word of God, for he does not give him the 
Spirit by measure. The Father loves the Son and has placed 
all things in his hand. He who believes in the Son has life 
eternal. He who disbelieves in the Son will not see life, but 
the wrath of God abides upon him. 

IV 

WHEN the Master knew that the Pharisees had heard that he 
was making and baptizing more disciples than John though 
Jesus himself was not baptizing, but his disciples he left 
Judaea and went back again to Galilee. He had to pass through 
Samaria. He came to a city of Samaria called Syehar, near 
the piece of land that Jacob gave to his son Joseph. Jacob's 
well was there. Jesus, weary from his journey, sat just as he 
was on the well. It was about noon. There came a woman of 
Samaria to draw water. Jesus said to her, "Give me a drink." 
For his disciples had gone away into the city to buy food. The 
Samaritan woman said to him, " How do you, a Jew, ask a drink 
from me, a Samaritan woman?" For Jews do not associate 
with Samaritans. Jesus answered her, " If you knew the gift of 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 157 

God and who it is that is saying to you, 'Give me a drink/ you 
would have asked him and he would have given you living 
water." She said to him, "Sir, you have nothing to draw with 
and the well is deep. Where do you get the living water from? 
Are you greater than our father Jacob, who gave us the well 
and drank of it, himself and his sons and his flocks? " Jesus 
answered her, "Every one who drinks of this water will thirst 
again. But whoever drinks of the water that I will give him will 
never thirst, but the water that I will give him will become in 
him a well of water, flowing out into life eternal." The woman 
said to him, "Give me this water, so that I may not thirst nor 
come all the way here to draw." He said to her, "Go call your 
husband and come back here." The woman answered, "I have 
no husband." Jesus said to her, "You say rightly that you 
have no husband. Five husbands you have had, and now the 
man you have is not your husband. You have told the truth 
about that." The woman said to him, "Sir, I perceive that 
you are a prophet. Our fathers worshiped on this mountain, 
but you say that in Jerusalem is the proper place to worship." 
Jesus said to her, "Believe me, woman, the hour is coming 
when neither on this mountain nor in Jerusalem will you 
worship the Father. You worship what you do not know; we 
worship what we know, for salvation is from the Jews. But the 
hour is coming yes, is now here when the true worshipers 
will worship the Father in spirit and in truth. For the Father 
seeks for such worshipers. God is spirit, and those who worship 
him must worship in spirit and in truth." The woman said to 
him, "I know that Messiah is coming, who is called Christ. 
When he comes he will tell us all things." Jesus said to her, 
"I am he, I who am talking to you." 

Upon this came his disciples, and they wondered that he 
was talking with a woman. But no one said, "What do you 
want?" or, "Why are you talking with her?" The woman left 
her pitcher and went away into the city and said to the peo- 
ple, "Come, see a man who has told me all that I ever did. Is 
not this the Christ?" They came out of the city and were on 
the way to him. In the meantime his disciples begged him,, 
" Rabbi, eat something." He said to them, " I have food to eat 



158 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 

that you do not know of/' The disciples said to one another, 
"Can it be that any one has brought him something to eat?" 
Jesus said to them, "My food is to do the will of him who 
sent me, and to complete his work. Do you not say that 
there are still four months and then comes harvest? Why, lift 
up your eyes, I tell you, and look on the fields, for they are 
white for harvest! Already the reaper is gaining wages and is 
gathering a harvest for life eternal, that the sower and the 
reaper may rejoice together. Here the saying is true, that 
'One is sower and another is reaper/ I have sent you to reap 
what you have not labored for. Others have labored and you 
have entered into their labor." 

From that city many of the Samaritans believed in him on 
account of the woman's testimony, "He told me all that I ever 
did." When the Samaritans came out to him, they begged 
him to stay with them, and he stayed there two days. Many 
more believed on account of his own words, and they said to 
the woman, "We no longer believe because of what you said, 
for we ourselves have heard him and we know that this is truly 
the Savior of the World." 

After the two days he went from there into Galilee. For 
Jesus himself testified that a prophet has no honor in his native 
place. So when he came into Galilee, the Galilseans welcomed 
him because they had seen what he did in Jerusalem at the 
feast. For they, too, had gone to the feast. 

He came again to Cana in Galilee where he had made the 
water wine. A certain royal officer was there whose son was 
sick in Capernaum. This man heard that Jesus had come 
from Judsea to Galilee, and he came to him, and begged Mm to 
come down and heal his son, for he was at the point of death. 
Jesus said to him, "Unless you see signs and wonders you will 
not believe." The officer said to him, "Sir, come down before 
my child dies." Jesus said to him, "Go. Your son is living." 
The man believed the word that Jesus spoke to him, and went. 
Even while he was going down, his servants met him with the 
word that his son was living. He inquired of them the hour 
when he was better. They said to him, "Yesterday at one 
o'clock the fever left him." So the father knew that it was at 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 159 

that hour at which Jesus had said to him, "Your son is living," 
and he believed, himself and his whole household. This is 
the second time that Jesus did a sign just after coming from 
Judaea to Galilee, 



AFTER this there was a feast of the Jews and Jesus went up to 
Jerusalem. There is in Jerusalem near the Sheep Gate a pool 
which is called in Hebrew Bethesda. 1 Around it are five colon- 
nades. In these lay a multitude of invalids blind, lame, 
withered. There was a man there who had had an infirmity 
thirty-eight years. Jesus saw this man lying there and per- 
ceiving that he had been there a long time, he said to him, 
"Do you want to get well?" The sick man answered him, "I 
have no man to put me into the pool when the water is trou- 
bled. While I am coming, some other man gets down before 
me." Jesus said to him., " Rise, take up your pallet and walk." 
At once the man became well and took up his pallet and began 
walking. That day was the Sabbath. The Jews said to the man 
who had been cured, " It is the Sabbath, and it is not proper for 
you to carry your pallet." But he answered them, "He who 
made me well he told me, 'Take up your pallet and walk/ " 
They asked him, "Who is the man that told you, 'Take it up 
and walk 7 ?" The cured man did not know who it was. For 
Jesus had taken himself away, a crowd being in that place. 
Afterwards Jesus found him in the Temple court and said to 
him, "See, you have become well. Sin no more, for some- 
thing worse might happen to you." The man went away and 
told the Jews that Jesus was the man who had made him well. 
On this account the Jews persecuted Jesus because he did such 
things on the Sabbath. He answered them, "My Father has 
been working until now, and I am working." On this account 
the Jews sought the more to kill him, because he not only kept 
breaking the Sabbath, but even spoke of God as his own 
Father, making himself equal with God* 

1 The name means House of Mercy and the popular belief was that at 
times an angel came down and troubled the water, and that whoever then 
first stepped in was cured. 



160 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 

Jesus said to them, "Truly, truly, I tell you, the Son can do 
nothing of himself; he does only what he sees the Father doing; 
whatever things he does, those the Son does likewise. For the 
Father loves the Son and shows him what he is doing, and 
he will show him greater works than these that you may 
wonder. For as the Father raises the dead and gives them life, 
so also the Son gives life to whom he will. Neither does the 
Father judge any one, but he has committed all judgment to 
the Son, that all may honor the Son just as they honor the 
Father. He who does not honor the Son does not honor the 
Father who sent him. Truly, truly, I tell you, he who hears 
my word and believes hfm who sent me has life eternal and 
does not come into condemnation, but has passed over from 
death into life. Truly, truly, I tell you that the hour is coming, 
and is now here, when the dead will hear the voice of the Son of 
God, and those who hear will live. For as the Father has life in 
himself, so also he has granted to the Son to have life in him- 
self. He has given him authority to do judgment, because he is 
Son of Man. Do not wonder at this, because the hour is com- 
ing in which all who are in the tombs will hear his voice and 
will come forth those who have done good to a resurrection 
of life and those who have done evil to a resurrection of con- 
demnation. 

" I cannot of myself do anything. As I hear I judge and 
my judgment is just, because I do not seek my own will, but 
the will of him who sent me. If I testify regarding myself* 
my testimony is not true. There is another who testifies 
regarding me and I know that the testimony that he bears 
regarding me is true. You sent to John and he testified to the 
truth, still I do not obtain my testimony from a man, but I say 
this that you may be saved. He was the burning and shining 
light and you were willing to rejoice for an hour in his light. 
But I have testimony greater than John's. For the works 
which the Father has granted to me to accomplish the very 
works that I do witness for me that the Father has sent me. 
The Father who sent me he has witnessed regarding me. 
You have neither heard his voice nor seen his form, and you 
have not his word abiding in you; because you do not believe 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 161 

him whom he has sent. You search the Scriptures because you 
think that you have in them life eternal, and it is they that 
testify of me, and yet you will not come to me to have life. I 
do not accept honor from men, but I know that you have not 
the love of God within you. I have come in the name of my 
Father and you do not accept me. If another comes in his own 
name, you will accept him. How can you believe, you who 
accept honor from one another and do not seek honor from 
the only God? Do not think that I will accuse you to the 
Father. You have an accuser, Moses in whom you trust. 
If you believed Moses, you would believe me, for he wrote 
about me. But if you do not believe his writings, how will you 
believe my words?" 

VI 

AFTER this Jesus went away beyond the Lake of Galilee (the 
Lake of Tiberias). A great crowd was following him because 
they saw the signs that he was doing upon those who had in- 
firmities. Jesus had gone up on the mountain and there he was 
sitting with his disciples. It was near the time for the Passover, 
the feast of the Jews. He lifted up his eyes and saw that a 
great crowd was coming to him, and he said to Philip, "Where 
shall we buy bread for these to eat? " This he said to test him, 
for he himself knew what he was going to do. Philip answered 
him, "Two hundred shillings' worth of bread would not be 
enough for them each to have a little piece." One of his dis- 
ciples, Andrew, Simon Peter's brother, said to him, "There is 
a boy here who has five barley loaves and two fishes. But 
what are these for so many?" Jesus said, "Make the people 
recline on the ground." There was much grass in the place. 
So the men, about five thousand in number, reclined on the 
ground. Jesus took the loaves and gave thanks and divided 
them to those who were reclining, and in the same way the 
fishes, as much as they wanted. When they were satisfied, he 
said to his disciples, "Gather up the broken pieces that have 
been left over, so 'that nothing may be wasted." They gathered 
them and filled twelve baskets with the fragments of the five 
barley loaves, which were left over by those who had eaten. 



162 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 

Then the people, seeing the sign that he had done, said, "This 
is truly the prophet who was to come into the world!" Jesus, 
perceiving that they were about to come and take him by force 
to make him king, withdrew again up the mountain by himself 
alone. 

When evening came, his disciples went down to the lake 
and got into a boat and started across toward Capernaum. 
It had already grown dark, and Jesus had not yet come to 
them. The lake was getting rough, as a strong wind was blow- 
ing. When they had rowed three or four miles, they saw Jesus 
walking on the lake and getting near the boat, and they were 
frightened. But he said to them, "It is I; never fear." Then 
they were willing to take him into the boat, and at once the 
boat came to the land they were making for. 

On the next day the crowd that was standing on the other 

side of the lake saw that there had been no boat there but the 

one, and that Jesus had not got into the boat with his disciples, 

but that his disciples had gone away by themselves (yet boats 

did come from Tiberias near to the place where they had eaten 

bread after the Master had given thanks) when the crowd 

saw that Jesus was not there nor his disciples either, they got 

into those boats and came to Capernaum looking for Jesus, 

When they found him across the lake, they said to him, " Rabbi v 

when did you get here?" Jesus answered them, "Truly, truly, 

I tell you, you are looking for me not because you saw signs, 

but because you ate of the loaves and had your fill. Do not 

work for the food that perishes, but for the food that endures 

to life eternal, which the Son of Man will give you. For him 

God the Father has sealed." They said to him, "What are we 

to do to work the works of God?" Jesus answered them, 

" This is the work of God, to believe in him whom he has sent/ 7 

They said to him, "What sign are you doing for us to see and 

believe in you? What are you working? Our fathers ate the 

manna i$ the desert as it is written, 'He gave them bread from 

heaven to eat.'" Jesus said to them, "Truly, truly, I tell you 

Moses did not give you the bread from heaven, but my 

Father is giving you the true bread from heaven. For the 

bread of God is he who came down from heaven and gives his 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 163 

life for the world." They said to him, "Sir, always give us this 
bread." Jesus said to them, "I am the bread of life. He who 
comes to me will never hunger, and he who believes in me will 
never thirst. But, I tell you, you have seen me and do not 
believe. All that the Father gives me will come to me, and him 
who comes to me I will not cast away; for I came down from 
heaven not to do my will, but the will of him who sent me; 
and this is the will of him who sent me, that of the whole that 
he has given me I should lose nothing, but should raise all up 
on the last day. For this is the will of my Father, that every 
one who looks upon the Son and believes in him shall have 
life eternal, and I will raise him up on the last day." 

The Jews were muttering to each other about him because 
he said, "I am the bread that came down from heaven," and 
they were saying, "Is not this Jesus, the son of Joseph, whose 
Father and mother we know? How does he say now, ' I have 
come down from heaven 7 ?" Jesus answered them, "Do not be 
muttering with one another. No one can come to me unless the 
Father who sent me draws him. And I will raise him up on the 
last day. It is written in the prophets, ' They will all be taught 
by God/ Every one who has heard from the Father and has 
learned comes to me. Not that any one has seen the Father but 
he who is from God he has seen the Father. Truly, truly, I 
tell you, he who believes has life eternal. I am the bread of life. 
Your fathers ate the manna in the desert and they died. This 
is the bread that comes down from heaven so that any one may 
eat of it and not die. I am the living bread that comes down 
from heaven. If any one eats of this bread, he will live forever. 
And the bread that I will give is my flesh: I will give it for the 
life of the world." 

The Jews disputed angrily with one another, saying, "How 
can this man give us his flesh to eat?" Jesus said to them, 
"Truly, truly, I tell you, unless you eat the flesh of the Son of 
Man and drink his blood you have no life in you. He who 
eats my flesh and drinks my blood has life eternal, and I will 
raise him up on the last day. For my flesh is true food and my 
blood is true drink. He who eats my flesh and drinks my blood 
abides in me and I abide in him. As the living Father sent me 



164 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 

and I am living because of the Father, so he who eats me 
he will live because of me. This is the bread that came down 
from heaven, not such as your fathers ate and died. He who 
eats this bread will live forever." These things he said while 
teaching in a synagogue in Capernaum. 

Many of his disciples, after hearing him, said, "This is a 
hard doctrine. Who can listen to it?" Jesus, knowing in his 
own mind that his disciples were muttering about this, said to 
them, "Does this make you stumble? What if you behold the 
Son of Man ascending where he was before? The spirit is what 
gives life; the flesh is of no account. The words that I have 
spoken to you are spirit and are life. But there are some of 
you who do not believe." For Jesus knew from the beginning 
who they were that did not believe, and who it was that would 
betray him. He said, " For this reason I have told you that no 
one can come to me unless it has been granted to him from 
the Father." 

After that many of the disciples drew back from him and no 
longer went about with him. Jesus said to the twelve, "Will 
you also go away?" Simon Peter answered him, "Sir, to 
whom shall we go? You have the words of life eternal, and 
we are persuaded and know that you are the Holy One of 
God." Jesus answered them, "Did I not choose you twelve? 
Yet one of you is a devil!" He was speaking of Judas, the son 
of Simon Iscariot. For he was going to betray him, though 
he was one of the twelve. 

VII 

AFTER this Jesus went about in Galilee; for he would not 
go about in Judaea because the Jews were trying to kill him. 
The Jewish Feast of Tabernacles was near. His brothers said 
to him, "Leave this region and go into Judaea so that your dis- 
ciples may see the works that you are doing. For no one does 
anything in secret while desiring to be known publicly. If you 
are doing these things, show yourself to the world." For 
neither did his brothers believe in him. Jesus said to them, 
"My time has not yet come. Any time suits you. The world 
cannot hate you, but it hates me, because I testify about it 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 163 

that its ways are wicked. Go on up to the feast yourselves; I 
am not going up yet to this feast, for my time has not fully 
come." After saying this to them he stayed in Galilee. 

After his brothers had gone up to the feast, Jesus himself 
went up, not openly, but somewhat privately. The Jews 
were looking for him at the feast and were saying, "Where is 
that man?" A low murmur of debate about him ran through 
the crowds. Some were saying, "He is good." Others were 
saying, "No, he misleads the crowd." Nobody, however, was 
talking openly about him for fear of the Jews. 

About the middle of the feast Jesus went up into the Temple 
courts and began teaching. The Jews were astonished and 
said, "How does this man know books when he has never 
been educated? " Jesus answered them, " If any one wills to do 
his will, he will know about the teaching, whether it is from 
God or I am speaking out of my own mind. One who speaks 
out of his own mind is seeking his own glory. He who seeks the 
glory of him who sent him he is true, and wickedness is not 
in him. Did not Moses give you the Law? Yet no one of you 
keeps the Law. Why are you trying to kill me?" The crowd 
answered, "You have a demon. Who is trying to kill you?" 
Jesus answered them, " I did one good work and you all wonder 
about it. Moses gave you circumcision not that it is from 
Moses, but from our fathers and on the Sabbath you cir- 
cumcise a person. If a person receives circumcision on the 
Sabbath, so that the Law of Moses may not be broken, are 
you bitter against me because I have made a man well on 
the Sabbath? Do not judge by appearances, but judge fair 
judgment." 

. Some of the Jerusalem people were saying, "Is not this the 
man they are trying to kill? See, he is talking freely and they 
say nothing to him. It cannot be that the rulers know for 
truth that this is the Christ? But we know where this man 
comes from. The Christ, when he comes no one will know 
where he comes from." Jesus, while teaching in the Temple 
courts, cried out loudly, "You know me and you know where 
I come from. I have not come of myself, but he is true who 
sent me. You do not know him, but I know him, for I 



166 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 

am from him and he sent me." They tried to arrest him, 
but no one laid a hand on him, for his hour had not yet 
come. 

From the crowd many believed in him and said, "The 
Christ, when he comes, will not do more signs than this man 
does, will he?" The Pharisees heard the murmur of debate 
about him in the crowd, and the high priests and the Pharisees 
sent officers to arrest him. Jesus said, "A little while longer 
I am with you and then I am going to him who sent me. You 
will look for me and will not find me, and where I am you can- 
not come." The Jews said to one another, "Where is this man 
going that we shall not find him? Will he go to the Jews who 
are scattered among the Greeks and teach the Greeks? What 
does this assertion mean, 'You will look for me and will not 
find me, and where I am you cannot come'?" 

On the last day, the great day, of the feast Jesus stood and 
cried out, "If any man thirsts, let him come to me and drink. 
He who believes in me, as the Scripture has said, rivers of 
living water will flow from within him." This he said referring 
to the Spirit which those who had believed in him were soon to 
receive. For as yet there was no Spirit, because Jesus had not 
yet been glorified- Some from the crowd, on hearing these 
words, said, "This man is truly the prophet." Others said, 
"This is the Christ." Others said, "The Christ is not coming 
out of Galilee, is he? Does not the Scripture say that the 
Christ comes of the descendants of David, and from Beth- 
lehem, the village where David was?" A division arose in the 
crowd over him. Some of them wanted to arrest him, but no 
one laid hands on him. 

The officers came to the high priests and Pharisees, and 
they said to them, " Why did you not bring him? " The officers 
answered, "Never any man spoke as this man speaks." The 
Pharisees answered them, "Have you also been deluded? Can 
it be that any one of the rulers or Pharisees has believed in 
him? But this crowd who do not know the Law are cursed." 
Nicodemus said to them he who came to Jesus before 
being himself one of them, "Does our Law condemn any man 
without first hearing from him and learning what he is doing?" 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 167 

They answered him, "Can it be that you too are from Gali- 
lee? Examine and see that from Galilee no prophet arises." 

[ l They went each to his home, but Jesus went to the Mount 
of Olives. 

vin 

EAELY in the morning he came again to the Temple courts and 
all the people came to him and he sat down and taught them. 
The scribes and the Pharisees led in a woman taken in adultery 
and making her stand in the midst, they said to him, " Teacher, 
this woman was taken in the very act of adultery. In the Law 
Moses commanded to stone such. What do you say?" This 
they said, testing him, to have something to accuse him of. But 
Jesus stooped over and wrote with his finger on the ground. 
As they kept on questioning him, he lifted himself up and said 
to them, " Let the sinless one among you be the first to throw a 
stone at her/' and again he stooped over and went on writing 
on the ground. After hearing that, they passed out one by one, 
beginning with the older men, and he was left alone and the 
woman there in the center. Jesus raised himself up and said to 
her, "Woman, where are they? Has no one sentenced you?" 
She said, "No one, Sir." Jesus said, "Neither do I sentence 
you. Go. From now on sin no more."] 

Again Jesus spoke to them, saying, "I am the light of the 
world. He who follows me will not walk in darkness, but will 
have the light of life." The Pharisees said to him, "You are 
bearing witness to yourself; your witness is not true." Jesus 
answered them, "Even if I witness to myself, my witness is 
true, for I know where I came from and where I am going. 
You do not know where I came from or where I 'am going. 
You judge according to the flesh, I judge no one. Even if I 

1 The bracketed passage is lacking in most of the ancient manuscripts. 
Plainly it does not belong in this place or indeed anywhere in John. Perhaps 
some one had it on a loose leaf between the pages of his copy of John and 
then some copyist found it here and copied -it in. In spite of our ignorance 
as to its origin, few will find it possible to doubt the truth of this priceless 
fragment. 



168 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 

judge, my judgment is true, for I am not alone, but when I 
judge he who sent me is with me. In your law it is written that 
the evidence of two persons is true. I am giving witness to 
myself and the Father who sent me witnesses to me." They 
said to him, "Where is your Father?" Jesus answered, "You 
know neither me nor my Father. If you knew me, you would 
know my Father also." These words he spoke in the Treasury, 
while teaching in the Temple courts, and no one arrested HJTY> 
because his hour had not yet come. 

He said again to them, " I am going away and you will search 
for me and will die in your sin. Where I am going you cannot 
come." The Jews said, "Will he kill himself, and so says, 
'Where I am going you cannot come'?" He said to them, 
"You are from below; I am from above. You are of this world; 
I am not of this world. Therefore I said to you that you will 
die in your sins. Unless you believe that I am he, you will die 
in your sins." They said to him, " Who are you? " Jesus said to 
them, "Exactly what I have been telling you. I have many 
things to say about you and to judge. But he who sent me is 
true, and what I have heard from him I speak in the world." 
They did not perceive that he was speaking to them of the 
Father. Jesus said, " When you have lifted up the Son of Man, 
then you will know that I am he, and that of myself I do noth- 
ing, but as the Father taught me, so I speak. He who sent me 
is with me. He has not left me alone, because I always do what 
is pleasing to him." 

While he was speaking these things, many believed in him. 
Jesus said to the Jews that had believed him, "If you continue 
in my word, you are truly my disciples, and you will know the 
truth and the truth will make you free." They answered him, 
"We arc descendants of Abraham and have never been in 
slavery to any man. How do you say, 'You will become 
free'?'' Jesus answered them, "Truly, truly, I tell you, every- 
one who practices sin is the slave of sin. The slave does not 
stay in the house forever; the Son stays forever. So if the Son 
frees you, you will be really free. I know that you are de- 
scendants of Abraham; but you are trying to kill me, because 
my word has no place within you. I am speaking what I have 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 169 

seen with my Father and you are doing what you have heard 
with your father." They answered him, "Abraham is oui 
father." He said to them, "If you were children of Abraham 
you would do the works of Abraham. But now you are trying 
to kill me, a man who has spoken to you the truth which I 
have heard from God. Abraham did not do this. You do the 
works of your father." They said to him, "We were not born 
of unchastity. We have one father God." Jesus said to 
them, " If God were your father you would love me; for I came 
forth from God and am now here. For I have not come of my- 
self, but he sent me. Why do you not understand what I am 
saying? It is because you cannot bear to listen to my message. 
You are of your father the Devil, and the lusts of your father 
it is your will to practice. He was a murderer from the begin- 
ning, and did not stand in the truth; for truth is not in him. 
When he speaks falsehood, he speaks out of his own; for he is 
a liar and the father of it. But me because I tell you the 
truth me you do not believe. Who of you convinces me of 
sin? If I speak truth, why do you not believe me? He who is 
of God listens to God's words. For this reason you do not 
listen because you are not of God." The Jews answered 
him, "Do we not say correctly that you are a Samaritan and 
have a demon?" Jesus answered, "I have not a demon, but 
I honor my Father and you dishonor me. I am not seeking my 
own glory. There is one who seeks it and judges. Truly, truly, 
I tell you, if any one keeps my word he will not look on death." 
The Jews said to him, "Now we know that you have a demon. 
Abraham died and the prophets died, and you say, c lf any one 
keeps my word he will never taste of death/ Are you greatei 
than our father Abraham? And yet he died and the prophets 
died. Whom do you make yourself out to be?" Jesus an- 
swered, "If I glorify myself, my glory is nothing. It is my 
Father who glorifies me, of whom you say that he is your God. 
Yet you do not know him, but I know him, and if I should say 
that I did not know him I should be a liar like you. But I 
know Mm and I keep his word. Abraham your father rejoiced 
that he was to see my day, and he saw it and was glad-" The 
Jews said to him, "You are not yet fifty years old, and have 



170 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 

you seen Abraham?" Jesus said to them, "Truly, truly, I tell 
you, before Abraham came into being I am." They took up 
stones to throw at him; but Jesus concealed himself and left 
the Temple courts. 

IX 

As he was passing by, Jesus saw a man who had been blind 
from birth. His disciples asked him, " Rabbi, who sinned, this 
man or his parents, that he was born blind?" Jesus answered, 
" Neither this man sinned nor his parents; but it was in order 
that the works of God might be manifested in him. We must 
work the works of him who sent me while it is day. Night is 
coming when no one can work. While I am in the world I am 
the light of the world." After saying this, he spit on the ground 
and made clay with the spittle and put the clay on the man's 
eyes and said to him, "Go, wash in the pool of Siloam (which 
means Sent)." He went away and washed and came back 
seeing. His neighbors and those accustomed to see him before, 
when he was begging, said, "Is not this the man that sat and 
begged? " Some said, " This is he." Others said, " No, but he is 
like him." He said, "I am the man." They said to him, " How 
then were your eyes opened?" He replied, "The man called 
Jesus made clay and spread it on my eyes and said to me, ' Go 
to Siloam and wash.' I went and washed and received my 
sight." They said to him, "Where is that man?" He said, "I 
do not know." 

They brought "him to the Pharisees the man once blind. 
It was on the Sabbath day that Jesus made the clay and opened 
his eyes. The Pharisees in their turn asked him how he re- 
ceived his sight. He said to them, "He put clay on my eyes 
and I washed and I saw." Some of the Pharisees said, "This 
man is not from God because he does not keep the Sabbath." 
Others said, "How can a man, if he is a sinner, do such signs?" 
So there was a division among them. They said again to the 
blind man, "What do you say about him, now that he has 
opened your eyes?" He said, "He is a prophet." The Jews 
did not believe the story that he was blind and recovered 
his sight, until they had called the parents of the man 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 171 

who had recovered his sight and had asked them, "Is this 
your son, who you say was born blind? Then how can he see 
now?" His parents answered, "We know that this is our son, 
and that he was born blind. But how he sees now we do not 
know, or who opened his eyes we do not know. Ask him; he is 
of age; he shall speak for himself." His parents said this be- 
cause they were afraid of the Jews. For the Jews had already 
agreed that if any one confessed Jesus as the Christ, he should 
be cast out of the synagogue. For this reason his parents said, 
"He is of age, ask him." They called a second time the man 
who had been blind, and said to him, "Give glory to God. We 
know that this man is a sinner." The man answered, " Whether 
he is a sinner I do not know. One thing I know, I was blind 
and now I see." They said to him, "What did he do to you? 
How did he open your eyes?" He answered them, "I have 
told you already and you did not listen, why do you want to 
hear it again? Do you want to become his disciples?" They 
flouted him and said, "You are that man's disciple; we are 
Moses' disciples. We know that God spoke to Moses, but this 
man we do not know where he comes from." The man 
answered them, " There is something wonderful in this. You 
do not know where he comes from, yet he has opened my 
eyes! We know that God does not listen to a sinner, but if 
any one is God-fearing and does his will, God hears him. 
Since the world began it has not been heard that any one 
opened the eyes of a man born blind. If this man were not 
from God, he could not do anything." They answered him, 
"You were born in sin wholly; and are you teaching us?" 
and they cast him out. 

Jesus heard that they had cast him out, and found him and 
said, "Do you believe in the Son of Man?" The man an- 
swered, "Who is he, Sir? Tell me, so that I may believe in 
him." Jesus said to him, "You have seen him, and it is he who 
is talking with you." He said, "I believe, Sir," and bowed 
down before him. Jesus said, "For judgment I came into this 
world, that those who do not see may see, and that those who 
see may become blind." Those of the Pharisees who were with 
him heard this and said to him, "Are we blind also?" Jesus 



172 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 

said to them, "If you were blind, you would have no sin. But 
now that you say, 'We see/ your sin remains with you/' 



"TRULY, truly, I tell you, he who does not enter through the 
gate into the sheepfold, but climbs over somewhere else, that 
man is a thief and a robber. But he who enters through the 
gate is the shepherd of the sheep. The gate-keeper opens to 
him and the sheep listen to his voice, and he calls his own 
sheep by name and leads them out. When he has brought out 
all his own sheep, he goes before them and the sheep follow 
him, for they know his voice. They will not follow a stranger, 
but will run away from him, for they do not know the voices 
of strangers." This illustration Jesus gave to them, but they 
did not understand what he was saying to them. 

Again Jesus spoke: "Truly, truly, I tell you, I am the gate 
of the sheep. All that ever came before me were thieves and 
robbers. But the sheep did not listen to them. I am the gate: 
if any one enters through me he will be saved, and will go in 
and go out and find pasture. The thief comes only to steal and 
kill and destroy. I have come that they may have life and 
have it abundantly. I am the good shepherd. The good 
shepherd lays down his life for the sheep. The hireling, who is 
not the shepherd, whose own the sheep are not, looks on as 
the wolf comes and leaves the sheep and runs away and the 
wolf seizes them and scatters them because he is a hireling 
and does not care for the sheep. I am the good shepherd, and 
I know mine and mine know me, just as the Father knows me 
and I know the Father, and I lay down my life for the sheep. 
But I have other sheep which are not of this fold; I must 
bring them also, and they will listen to my voice, and there will 
be one flock, one shepherd. For this the Father loves me, 
because I lay down my life to take it again. No one takes it 
from me, but I lay it down of myself. I have power to lay it 
down and have power to take it again. This command I 
received from my Father." 

There was again a division among the Jews, on account of 
these words. Many of them said, "He has a demon and is 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 173 

insane. Why do you listen to him?" Others said, "These 
words are not those of a demoniac. Can a demon open the 
eyes of the blind?" 

Then came the Feast of Renovation in Jerusalem. It was 
winter. Jesus was walking in the Temple courts, in Solomon's 
Oolonnade. The Jews came in a circle around him and said to 
him, " How long are you going to keep us in suspense? If you 
are the Christ, tell us frankly." Jesus answered them, "I have 
told you and you do not believe. The works that I do in my 
Father's name these witness for me. But you do not believe 
because you are not of my sheep. My sheep listen to my voice 
and I know them and they follow me, and I give to them life 
eternal, and they will never perish, and no one will snatch 
them out of my hand. My Father who gave them to me is 
greater than all, and no one can snatch them out of my 
Father's hand. I and my Father are one." Again the Jews 
took up stones to stone him. Jesus answered them, "Many 
good works I have shown you from my Father. For which of 
these works are you stoning me?" The Jews answered him, 
"For a good work we are not stoning you, but for profane 
words, because you, a man, are making yourself God." Jesus 
answered them, " Is it not written in your Law, 'I said you are 
Gods'? If he called those to whom the word of God came 
Gods and the authority of Scripture cannot be denied 
do you say to him whom the Father made holy and sent into 
the world, 'You speak profane words,' because I said, 'I am 
the Son of God'? If I do not do the works of my Father, do 
not believe me. But if I do, even though you do not believe 
me, believe the works; that you may perceive and know that 
the Father is in me and that I am in the Father." 

Again they tried to seize him, but he escaped from their 
hands and went away again beyond the Jordan to the place 
where John was at first when he was baptizing, and he stayed 
there. Many came to him and they said, "John did no sign; 
but all that John said about this man was true." Many 
believed in him there. 



174 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 

XI 

THERE was a certain man sick Lazarus of Bethany, of the 
village of Mary and Martha her sister. It was that Mary 
who anointed the Master with perfume and wiped his feet with 
her hair whose brother Lazarus was sick. So the sisters sent to 
Jesus, saying, "Master, he whom you love is sick." When 
Jesus heard it he said, "This sickness is not to end in death, but 
is for the glory of God, that the Son of God may be glorified by 
it." Jesus loved Martha and her sister and Lazarus. So when 
he heard that he was sick, he stayed where he was two days. 
Then, after that, he said to the disciples, "Let us go to Judaea 
again." The disciples said to him, "Rabbi, just now the Jews 
were trying to stone you, and are you going there again?" 
Jesus answered, "Are there not twelve hours in the day? If 
any one walks in the day, he does not stumble because he sees 
the light of this world. But if any one walks in the night, he 
stumbles because the light is not in him." He said this, and 
then he said to them, "Lazarus our friend has fallen asleep, 
but I am going there to wake him." The disciples said to him, 
"Master, if he has fallen asleep, he will recover." But Jesus 
had spoken of his death. They thought that he was speaking of 
the repose of sleep. Then Jesus said to them frankly, " Lazarus 
has died, and I am glad on your account that I was not there 
so that you may believe. But let us go to him." Thomas, 
who is called Didymus (the Twin), said to his fellow disciples, 
"Let us go too to die with him." 

When Jesus came he found that Lazarus had been already four 
days in the tomb. Bethany was near Jerusalem, about two 
miles away, and many of the Jews had come to Martha and 
Mary to comfort them regarding their brother. When Martha 
heard that Jesus was coining, she went out to meet him- Mary 
was sitting in the house. Martha said to Jesus, "Master, if , 
you had been here my brother would not have died. And now 
I know that whatever you ask God for, God will give you." 
Jesus said to her, "Your brother will rise again." Martha said 
to him, " I know that he will rise at the resurrection on the last 
day." Jesus said to her, "I am the Resurrection and the Life. 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 175 

He who believes in me even though he dies will live, and no 
one who lives and believes in me will ever die. Do you believe 
this?" She said to him, "Yes, Master. I believe that you are 
the Christ, the Son of God, who was to come into the world." 
Having said this, she went away and called Mary her sister, 
saying to her privately, "The Teacher is here and is asking for 
you." She, when she heard it, rose quickly and went to meet 
him. Jesus had not yet come into the village, but was still in 
the place where Martha had met him. The Jews who were with 
Mary in the house trying to comfort her, seeing her rise quickly 
and go out, followed thinking that she was going to the tomb 
to wail there. 

When Mary came where Jesus was and saw him, she fell at 
his feet, saying, "Master, if you had been here my brother 
would not have died." When Jesus saw her weeping, and the 
Jews who had come with her weeping, he was indignant in 
spirit and disturbed, and said, "Where have you laid him?" 
They said to him, "Master, come and see." Jesus wept. The 
Jews said, "See, how he loved him!" Some of them said, 
"Could not this man, who opened the eyes of the blind, have 
prevented this man from dying?" Jesus, again indignant, 
came to the tomb. It was a cave, and a stone was lying on the 
entrance. Jesus said, "Take away the stone." Martha, the 
sister of the dead man, said to him, "Master, he is already 
offensive, for he has been dead four days." Jesus said to her, 
"Did I not tell you that if you believed you would see the 
glory of God?" So they took away the stone. Jesus lifted up 
his eyes and said, "Father, I thank thee for hearing me. I 
know that thou always nearest me; but for the sake of the 
crowd that stand around I say it, that they may believe that 
thou didst send me." After saying this he called in a loud 
voice j "Lazarus, come forth." Forth came the dead man, 
swathed feet and hands in grave-clothes and his face bound 
up in a handkerchief. Jesus said, "Loose him and let him go." 

Many of the Jews who had come to Mary and had seen what 
Jesus did believed in him. But some of them went away to 
the Pharisees and told them what Jesus had done. So the high 
priests and the Pharisees assembled the Council and said, 



176 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 

"What are we doing? for this man is doing many signs. If 
we let him alone in this way, all will believe in him and the 
Romans will come and destroy our place and nation." One of 
them, Caiaphas, who was High Priest that year, said to them, 
"You do not know anything nor do you reason that it is bet- 
ter for you that one man should die for the people and so the 
whole nation escape destruction." He did not say this of him- 
self, but being High Priest that year he prophesied that Jesus 
was about to die for the nation, and not for the nation only, 
'but to gather into one the children of God now scattered far 
and wide. From that day they plotted to kill him. 

So Jesus no more walked about openly among the Jews, but 
went away from there into the country near the wild lands, 
to a city called Ephraim, and there he stayed with his dis- 
ciples. 

The Passover of the Jews was near and many went up to 
Jerusalem from the country before the Passover to purify 
themselves. They were looking for Jesus and were saying to 
one another, as they stood in the Temple, courts, "What do 
you think? That he will not come to the feast?" The high 
priests and the Pharisees had given orders that, if any one 
knew where he was, he should report it so that they might 
arrest him. 

XII 

Six days before the Passover, Jesus came to Bethany, where 
Lazarus was whom he had raised from the dead. There they 
made a dinner for him. Martha waited on them, and Lazarus 
was one of those who reclined at table with him* Mary took a 
pound of pure nard perfume, very costly, and anointed the feet 
of Jesus and wiped his feet with her hair. The house was filled 
with the fragrance of the perfume. Judas Iscariot, one of his 
disciples, the one who was going to betray him, said, "Why 
was not this perfume sold for three hundred shillings and the 
money given to the poor?" He said this, not that he cared for 
the poor, but because he was a thief and having the purse used 
to pilfer what was put into it. Jesus said, "Let her alone. It 
was hers to keep for the day of my preparation for the tomb. 



THE.GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 177 

The poor you always have with you, but me you have not 
always." 

A great crowd of the Jews learned that he was there, and 
they came, not on account of Jesus alone, but also to see 
Lazarus whom he had raised from the dead. The high priests 
planned to kill Lazarus too, because many of the Jews on 
account of him went and believed in Jesus. 

On the next day the great crowd which had come to the 
feast, hearing that Jesus was coming to Jerusalem, took 
branches of palm trees and went out to meet him, shouting, 
"God save him! Blessed is he who comes in the name of the 
Lord the King of Israel!" Jesus, finding a young ass, sat on 
it, as it is written, "Fear not, daughter of Zion! Behold, your 
King comes, sitting on the foal of an ass!" These things his 
disciples did not understand at first, but when Jesus had been 
glorified, then they remembered that these things had been 
written of him and had been done to him. The people that 
were with him when he called Lazarus from the tomb and 
raised him from the dead were bearing witness to it. For this 
reason the crowd went to meet him, because they had heard 
that he had done this sign. The Pharisees said among them- 
selves, " You see that you are gaining nothing. Look, the world 
has gone off after him." 

There were some Greeks among those who had come up to 
worship at the feast. These came to Philip of Bethsaida in 
Galilee, and asked him, "Sir, we wish to see Jesus." Philip 
came and told Andrew. Andrew came with Philip and they 
told Jesus. Jesus answered them, "The hour has come for the 
Son of Man to be glorified. Truly, truly, I tell you, unless a 
grain of wheat falls into the ground and dies,dt remains alone. 
But if it dies it bears much fruit. He who loves his life destroys 
it, and he who hates his life in this world will keep it for life 
eternal. If any one is serving me, let him follow me and where 
I am there my servant shall be. If any one is serving me, him 
my Father will honor. Now my soul is troubled, and what 
shall I say? Father, save me from this hour? But for this I 
have come to this hour. Father, glorify thy name!" 

There came a voice from heaven, "I have glorified it and 



178 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 

will again glorify it." The crowd that was standing there and 
heard said that it had thundered. Others said, " An angel spoke 
to him." Jesus said, " This voice came, not on my account, but 
for you. Now is the judgment of this world. Now the Ruler 
of this world will be cast out. And I, if I am lifted up from the 
earth, will draw all men to me." This he said indicating by 
what death he was to die. The crowd answered him, "We 
have heard out of the Law that the Christ remains forever. 
How do you say that the Son of Man must be lifted up? Who 
is this Son of Man?" Jesus said to them, "A little while 
longer the Light is among you. Walk while you have the Light, 
that darkness may not overtake you. He who walks in dark- 
ness does not know where he is going. While you have the 
Light, believe in the Light, so as to become sons of Light." 

Jesus said these things and then went away and hid himself 
from them. But, though he had done so many signs before 
them, they did not believe in him, so that the word of Isaiah 
the prophet should be fulfilled. Isaiah said, "Lord, who has 
believed our report, and to whom has the arm of the Lord 
been revealed?" For this reason they could not believe, 
because Isaiah said again, "He has blinded their eyes and 
dulled their mind so that they may not see with their eyes nor 
understand with their mind and repent so that I should heal 
them." Isaiah said this because he saw his glory and he spoke 
of hjm. Nevertheless, even of the rulers many did believe in 
him, but because of the Pharisees they did not confess it, in 
order not to be expelled from the synagogue; for they loved the 
praise of men more than the praise of God. Jesus cried out, 
" He who believes in me does not believe in me, but in him who 
sent me, and he who looks upon me looks upon him who sent 
me. I have come as a Light into the world that no one who 
believes in me may remain in darkness. If any one hears my 
words and does not keep them, I do not judge him; for I have 
not come to judge the world, but to save the world. He who 
rejects me and does not accept my words has a judge. The 
message that I have spoken that will judge him on the last 
day. But he who sent me the Father himself has given 
i me a command what I am to say and what I am to speak, 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 179 

and I know that his command is life eternal. So what I am 
speaking I am speaking just as the Father has told me." 

XIII 

BEFORE the Feast of the Passover, Jesus, knowing that the 
hour had come for him to pass from this world to the Father, 
having loved his own who were in the world loved them to the 
end. During supper, the Devil having already put it into the 
heart of Judas Iscariot, the son of Simon, to betray him, Jesus, 
knowing that the Father had given all things into his hands 
and that he had come from God and was going to God, rose 
from supper and laid aside his upper garments and took a 
towel and put it around him. Then he poured water into a basin 
and began to wash the feet of the disciples and to wipe them 
with the towel he had around him. He came to Simon Peter. 
Peter said to him, "Master, are you washing my feet?" Jesus 
answered him, "What I am doing you do not know now; but 
you will know hereafter." Peter said to him, "You shall never 
wash my feet!" Jesus answered him, "Unless I wash you, you 
have no part with me." Simon Peter said to him, "Master, 
not my feet only, but also my hands and my head." Jesus said 
to him, "He who has bathed has no need to be washed, except 
his feet, but is all clean. And you are clean, though not all." 
For he knew the one who was going to betray him. For this 
reason he said, "You are not all clean." 

When he had washed their feet and had taken his upper 
garments and lain down again, he said to them, "Do you know 
what I have done to you? You call me Teacher and Master 
and you say rightly, for so I am. If then I, the Master and 
Teacher, have washed your feet, you too ought to wash one 
another's feet. For I have given you an example that you may 
do as I have done to you. Truly, truly, I tell you, the servant 
is not superior to his master nor the messenger superior to him 
who sent him.. If you know these things, blessed are you if 
you do them. I am not speaking of all of you. I know whom I 
have chosen. But that the Scripture may be fulfilled, 'He 
who is eating my bread has lifted up his heel against me.' I 
am now telling you before it occurs that when it does occur 



180 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 

you may believe that I am he. Truly, truly, I tell you, he who 
receives any one whom I send receives me. He who receives 
me receives him who sent me." 

After saying these things Jesus was disturbed in spirit and 
solemnly said to them, "Truly, truly, I tell you, one of you 
will betray me." The disciples looked at one another wonder- 
ing whom he meant. One of his disciples was leaning on 
Jesus 3 breast the one Jesus loved. Simon Peter nodded to 
him and said, "Say who it is that he is speaking of." He, lean- 
ing back on the breast of Jesus, said to him, "Master, who is 
it?" Jesus answered, "I will dip a piece of bread and give it to 
one. That is the man." When he had dipped the bread, he 
took it and gave it to Judas the son of Simon Iscariot. After 
the piece of bread Satan entered into him. Jesus said to him, 
"What you are doing do quickly." No one of those reclining 
at the table understood why he said this to him. Some thought, 
since Judas had the purse, that Jesus was telling him, "Buy 
what we need for the feast," or to give something to the poor. 
After taking the morsel Judas immediately went out. It was 
night. 

<* When Judas had gone, Jesus said, "Now the Son of Man 
has been glorified and God has been glorified in him. If God 
has been glorified in him, God will also glorify him in him- 
self and immediately will glorify him. Children, yet a little 
while I am with you. You will look for me and, as I said to the 
Jews, 'Where I am going you cannot come/ so I say now to 
you. A new command I give you, to love one another, as I 
have loved you that so you love one another. By this all 
will know that you are my disciples, if you have love to one 
another." Simon Peter said to him, "Master, where are you 
going?" Jesus answered, "Where I am going you cannot fol- 
low me now; but you will follow me later." Peter said to him, 
"Master, why cannot I follow you now? I will lay down my 
He for you." Jesus answered, " Will you lay down your life for 
me? Truly, truly, I tell you, the cock will not crow before you 
have disowned me three times." 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 181 

xrv 

"LET not your heart be troubled. Believe in God and believe 
in me. In my Father's house are many abiding places. If it 
were not so I would have told you. For I am going to prepare 
a place for you, and if I go and p pare a place for you, I will 
come again and take you to myself, that where I am you may 
be also. And to where I am going you know the way." Thomas 
said to him, "Master, we do not know where you are going. 
How can we know the way?" Jesus said to him, "I am the 
Way and the Truth and the Life. No one comes to the Father 
except through me. If you had known me you would have 
known my Father also. But now you know him and have seen 
him." Philip said to him, "Master, show us the Father and 
we shall be satisfied." Jesus said, "Have I been so much time 
with you and you have not known me, Philip? He who has 
seen me has seen the Father. How can you say, e Show us the 
Father 7 ? Do you not believe that I am in the Father and the 
Father is in me? The words that I say to you I speak not of 
myself. The Father abides in me and does his works. Believe 
me that I am in the Father and the Father in me. But if not, 
believe on account of the works themselves. Truly, truly, I 
tell you, he who believes in me the works that I am doing 
he also will do and greater works than these he will do, because 
I am going to the Father. Whatever you ask in my name that 
I will do, that the Father may be glorified in the Son. If you 
ask me anything in my name, I will do it. 

"If you love me, you will keep my commands, and I will ask 
the Father and he will give you another Counselor to be with 
you forever the Spirit of Truth, whom the world cannot 
accept because it neither sees him nor knows him. But you 
know him because he abides with you and will be in you. I 
will not leave you desolate; I will come to you. After a little 
while the world will no longer see me, but you will see me; 
because I am living you too will live. On that day you will 
know that I am in my Father and you in me and I in you. He 
who has my commands and keeps them he is the one that 
loves me. He who loves me will be loved by my Father, and I 



182 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 

will love Him and will show myself to him." Judas (not Is- 
cariot) said to him, "Master, what has happened that you are 
going to show yourself to us and not to the world?" Jesus 
answered him, " If any one loves me, he will keep my word, and 
my Father will love him and we will come to him and abide 
with him. He who loves me not does not keep my words. 
And the word that you hear is not mine, but is the word of 
the Father who sent me. 

"These things I have spoken to you while yet with you. 
The Counselor the Holy Spirit, whom the Father will send 
in my name will teach you all things and remind you of all 
that I have said to you. Peace I leave with you. My peace I 
give to you. Not as the world gives do I give to you. Let not 
your heart be troubled, nor fearful. You heard that I said to 
you I am going away and am coming back to you. If you 
loved me you would be glad that I am going to the Father, for 
the Father is greater than I. Now I have told you before it 
comes to pass, that when it does come to pass you may believe. 
I shall no longer speak much with you, for the Ruler of this 
world is coming and he has no part in me. But that the world 
may know that I love the Father, even as the Father com- 
manded me, so I am doing. Rise, let us go hence." 

XV 

" I AM the true Vine and my Father is the Vine-grower. Every 
branch in me that does not bear fruit he takes away, and every 
one that bears fruit he cleanses, that it may bear more fruit. 
You are already clean through the word that I have spoken to 
you. Abide in me and I in you. As the branch cannot bear 
fruit of itself unless it abides in the vine, so neither can you 
unless you abide in me. I am the Vine, you are the branches. 
He who abides in me and I in him he bears much fruit; but 
without me you cannot do anything. If any one does not abide 
in me, he is cast out like a branch and withers, and they gather 
them and throw them into the fire and they are burned. If you 
abide in me and my words abide in you, ask what you will and 
it will be done for you. By this is my Father glorified by your 
bearing much fruit and becoming my disciples. As the Father 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 183 

has loved me, so have I loved you; abide in my love. If you 
keep my commands, you will abide in my love as I have kept 
my Father's commands and abide in his love. These things 
I have spoken to you that my joy may be in you and your joy 
may be made complete. This is my command to love one 
another as I have loved you. Greater love has no one than this : 
to lay down his life for his friends. You are my friends if you 
do what I command you. I no longer call you servants, for the 
servant does not know what his master is doing; but I call you 
friends, for all that I have heard from the Father I have made 
known to you. It was not you who chose me, but I chose you 
and appointed you that you should go and bear fruit and that 
your fruit should remain, that whatever you ask the Father in 
my name he may give you. These things I am commanding 
you that you may love one another. 

" If the world hates you, you know that it hated me before it 
hated you. If you were of the world the world would love its 
own. But you are not of the world, but I chose you out of the 
world. For this reason the world hates you. Remember the 
word that I said to you, 'The servant is not superior to hia 
Master.' If they have persecuted me, they will persecute you 
also. If they have kept my word, they will keep yours also. 
But all these things they will do to you because of my name, 
because they do not know him who sent me. If I had not come 
and spoken to them, they would not have had sin; but now they 
have no excuse for their sin. He who hates me hates my Father 
also. If I had not done among them works which no other did, 
they would not have sin. But now they have seen and have hated 
both me and my Father. But in order that the saying written 
in their Law may be fulfilled, ' They hated me without a cause/ 

"When the Counselor comes, whom I will send to you from 
the Father the Spirit of Truth who goes forth from the 
Father he will witness concerning me. And you are wit- 
nesses because you have been with me from the beginning/' 

XVI 

" THESE things I have spoken to you that you may not stumble 
and fall. They will put you out of the synagogues. Indeed, 



184 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 

the hour is coming when every one who kills you will think 
that he is offering a sacrifice to God. These things they will do 
because they have not known the Father nor me. But these 
things I have told you in order that when their hour comes 
you may remember them that I told you. These things I 
did not tell you from the beginning because I was with you. 
But now I am going to him who sent me, and no one of you 
asks me, 'Where are you going?' but, because I have said 
these things to you, grief has filled your hearts. I tell you the 
truth, it is better for you that I should go away. For unless 
I go away, the Counselor will not come to you; but if I go, I 
will send him to you. And he, when he comes, will convince 
the world regarding sin and regarding righteousness and regard- 
ing judgment regarding sin, because they do not believe in 
me; regarding righteousness, because I am going to the Father 
and you no longer see me; regarding judgment, because the 
Ruler of this world has been judged. I have still many things 
to tell you; but you cannot bear them now. But when he 
comes the Spirit of Truth he will guide you into all the 
truth. For he will not speak his own thoughts, but all that he 
hears he will speak and he will announce to you the things to 
come. He will glorify me because he will take of mine and will 
announce it to you. All things that the Father has are mine. 
For that reason I say, 'He will take of mine and announce it to 
you/ After a little while you will no longer see me, and again 
a little while and you will see me." 

Some of his disciples said to one another, "What is this that 
he says, ' A little while and you will not see me, and again a 
little while and you will see me/ and, 'because I am going to 
the Father'?" So they said, "What is this that he says, 'A 
little while'? We do not know what he means." Jesus per- 
ceived that they wanted to ask him, and he said to them, 
"Are you discussing with one another about this that I said, 
* A little while and you will not see me, and again a little while 
and you will see me'? Truly, truly, I tell you, you will weep 
and lament, but the world will rejoice. You will grieve, but 
your grief will change into joy. A woman when she is bringing 
forth has grief because her hour has come. But when she has 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 185 

borne the child, she no longer remembers her anguish for the 
joy that a human being has been born into the world. And you 
have grief now, but I will see you again, and your heart will 
rejoice, and no one will take your joy from you. On that day 
you will ask me no questions. Truly, truly, I tell you, if you 
ask the Father for anything in my name, he will give it to you. 
So far you have asked for nothing in my name; ask and you 
will obtain, that your joy may be made full. 

"I have spoken these things to you in figures. The hour is 
coming when I will no longer speak to you in figures, but will 
tell you plainly about the Father. On that day you will ask in 
my name, and I do not tell you that I will make request of the 
Father for you, for the Father himself loves you, because you 
have loved me and have believed that I came forth from the 
Father's presence. I came forth from the Father and have 
come into the world. Again I am leaving the world and am 
going to the Father." His disciples said, "See, now you are 
speaking plainly and are using no figures. Now we know that 
you know all things and that you have no need to have any one 
question you. From this we believe that you have come forth 
from God." Jesus answered them, "Do you now believe? 
Indeed the hour is coming it has come for each one of 
you to be scattered to his own and leave me alone. Yet I am 
not alone, for the Father is with me. I have spoken these 
things to you that in me you may have peace. In the world 
you have distress. But be courageous. I have conquered the 
world." 

XVII 

THESE words spoke Jesus, and lifted his eyes to heaven and 
said, "Father, the hour has come. Glorify thy Son that the 
Son may glorify thee, as thou hast given him authority over all 
flesh, that he may give life eternal to all that thou hast given 
him. This is life eternal, to know thee, the only true God, and 
him whom thou hast sent, Jesus Christ. I have glorified thee 
on the earth by completing the work that thou gavest me to 
do. And now glorify me, Father, at thy side with the glory- 
that I had at thy side before the existence of the world. I have 



186 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 

revealed thy name to the men whom thou didst give me out of 
the world. Thine they were, and thou didst give them to me, 
and they have kept thy word. Now they know that all the 
things that thou hast given me are from thee. For the words 
that thou didst give me I have given them, and they have 
accepted them and have perceived truly that I came forth from 
thee, and they have believed that thou didst send me. 

" I pray for them. I do not pray for the world, but for those 
whom thou hast given me, for they are thine. All mine are thine 
and thine are mine, and I have been glorified in them. Now I am 
no longer in the world, but these are in the world, and I am 
coming to thee. Holy Father, keep in thy name those whom 
thou hast given to me, that they may be one, as we are. When 
I was with them I kept in thy name those whom thou hast 
given to me, and I guarded them, and none of them has per- 
ished but the son of perdition, that the Scripture might be'ful- 
filled. Now I am coming to thee, and these things I speak in 
the world that they may have my joy made full in themselves. 
I have given them thy word and the world has hated them, 
because they are not of the world, just as I am not of the 
world. I do not pray thee to take them out of the world, but 
to keep them from the evil. They are not of the world, just as 
I am not of the world. Make them holy through the truth. 
Thy word is truth. As thou didst send me into the world, so 
have I sent them into the world, and for them I consecrate 
myself, that they may be consecrated through the truth. 

" I pray not for them alone, but also for those who believe in 
me'tbjough their word, that all may be one, as thou, Father, 
art in me and I in thee, that they may be one in us, that the 
world may believe that thou didst send me. The glory that thou 
hast given me I have given to them, that they may be one as 
we are one, I in them and thou in me, that they may be per- 
fected into one, that the world may know that thou didst send 
me and didst love them just as thou didst love me. Father, 
those thou didst give me I will that they also may be with 
me where I am, to behold my glory which thou hast given 
me, for thou lovedst me before the foundation of the world. 
Righteous Father, the world did not know thee, but I knew 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 187 

thee, and these knew that thou didst send me. I have made 
known thy name to them and will make it known, that the love 
with which thou hast loved me may be in them, and I in them." 

XVIII 

WHEN Jesus had spoken these words, he went out with his 
disciples across the brook Kidron to a place where there was a 
garden. Into this he entered with his disciples. Judas who 
was betraying him knew the place, for Jesus often met with his 
disciples there. So Judas, getting a battalion of soldiers and 
some subordinate officers of the high priests and the Pharisees, 
came there with torches and lamps and weapons. Jesus, know- 
ing all things that were coining upon him, came forward and 
said to them, "Whom are you seeking?" They answered him, 
"Jesus the Nazarene." He said to them, "I am he." Judas 
the traitor was standing with them. When he said to them, 
"I am he," they moved backward and fell to the ground. 
Again he questioned them, "Whom are you seeking?" They 
said, "Jesus the Nazarene." Jesus answered, "I have told you 
that I am he. If then you are seeking for me, let these go." He 
said this that the word might be fulfilled which he had spoken, 
"Of those whom thou hast given me I have lost none." Simon 
Peter, having a sword, drew it and struck a servant of the 
High Priest, cutting off his right ear. The servant's name was 
Malchus. Jesus said to Peter, "Put your sword into its sheath. 
The cup that my Father has given me shall I not drink it?" 
So the battalion and the Tribune 1 and the Jewish policemen 
arrested Jesus and bound him and took hi first to Annas, for 
he was the father-in-law of Caiaphas who was High Priest that 
year. Caiaphas was the man who had advised the Jews that it 
was best that one man should die for the people. Simon Peter 
was following Jesus and so was another disciple. That disciple 
was known to the High Priest and he westm with Jesus into 
the court of the High Priest. Peter stood by the gate outside. 
The other disciple, who was known to the High Priest, went 
out and spoke to the girl at the door and brought in Peter. 
The girl at the door said to Peter, "You are not one of this 
1 A Roman officer of a rank near that of colonel in our army. 



188 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 

man's disciples, too, are you?" He said, "I am not/' The 
servants and policemen were standing there. They had made 
a fire, for it was cold, and were warming themselves. Peter was 
with them, standing and wanning himself. 

The High Priest questioned Jesus about his disciples and his 
teaching. Jesus answered him, "I have spoken frankly to the 
world. I constantly taught in synagogues and in the Temple 
courts where all the Jews assemble, and I have spoken nothing 
in secret. Why do you question me? Question my hearers 
what I said to them. Certainly they know what I said." 
When he said this, a policeman, who was standing by, gave 
Jesus a slap, saying, "Do you answer the High Priest that 
way?" Jesus answered him, "If I have spoken wrongly, bear 
witness against me of the wrong; but if I have spoken rightly, 
why do you strike me?" Annas sent him bound to Caiaphas 
the High Priest. 

Simon Peter was standing and warming himself. They said 
to him, "Are not you also one of his disciples?" He denied it 
and said, " I am not." One of the servants of the High Priest, a 
relative of the man whose ear Peter had cut off, said, "Did I 
not see you in the garden with him?" Again Peter denied, 
and immediately a cock crowed. 

They led Jesus from Caiaphas to the Castle. It was early 
morning. The Jews did not enter the Castle, wishing to avoid 
defilement, so that they might eat the Passover. Pilate went 
out to them and said, "What charge do you bring against this 
man?" They answered, "If he were not an evil-doer, we 
should not have handed him over to you." Pilate said to them, 
" Take him yourselves and judge him by your law." The Jews 
said to him, "It is not lawful for us to put any one to death." 
They said this that the word of Jesus might be fulfilled the 
word he had spoken indicating by what death he was to die. 
Pilate entered the Castle again and called Jesus and said to him, 
"Are you the King of the Jews?" Jesus answered, "Do you 
say this of yourself or did others tell you about me? " Pilate an- 
swered, " I am not a Jew, am I? Your nation and the high 
priests have handed you over to me. What have you done?" 
Jesus answered, "My kingdom ia not of this world. If my king- 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 189 

dom were of this world, my subordinates would be fighting to 
prevent my being delivered up to the Jews. But now my king- 
dom is not from here." Pilate said to him, "Are you not a king 
then?" Jesus answered, "I am a king, as you say. For this I 
was born and for this I have come into the world, to bear wit- 
ness to the truth. Every one who is of the truth listens to my 
voice." 

Pilate said to him, "What is truth?" After saying this he 
went out again to the Jews and said to them, "I find no crime 
in him* But you have a custom that I should release for you one 
at the Passover. Do you want me to release for you the King 
of the Jews?" They shouted again, saying, "Not this man, 
but Barabbas!" Barabbas was a robber. 

XIX 

THEN Pilate took Jesus and scourged him. The soldiers twisted 
a crown of thorns and placed it on his head, threw around him 
a purple cloak, and kept coming up to him and saying, "Hail, 
King of the Jews!" and slapping him. Pilate went out again 
and said to them, "See, I am bringing him out to you that 
you may know that I find no crime in him." Jesus came out 
wearing the crown of thorns and the purple cloak. Pilate said 
to them, "Here is the man!" When the high priests and their 
subordinates saw him, they shouted, "Crucify him, crucify 
him ! " Pilate said, " You take him and crucify him. For I find 
no crime in him." The Jews answered, "We have a law and 
by that law he ought to die, because he made himself the Son 
of God." When Pilate heard that, he was more alarmed and 
went into the Castle and said to Jesus, "Where do you come 
from?" But Jesus gave hi no answer. Pilate said to him, 
"Do you not speak to me? Do you not know that I have 
authority to release you and authority to crucify you?" Jesus 
answered, "You would not have any authority over me if it 
were not given you from above. For this reason he who de- 
livered me to you has a greater sin." After this, Pilate kept 
trying to release him, but the Jews shouted, "If you let this 
man go you are not a friend of Caesar. Every one who makes 
himself a king speaks against Caesar," JPilate, on hearing these 



190 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 

words, brought Jesus out and sat down on the judge's seat in 
the place called the Mosaic Pavement in Hebrew, Gab- 
batha. It was the Preparation Day of the Passover, about 
noon. He said to the Jews, "See your king!" They shouted, 
"Away with him, away with him! Crucify him!" Pilate said 
to them, "Shall I crucify your king?" The high priests an- 
swered, "We have no king but Csesar." Then he delivered 
him to them to be crucified. 

So they took Jesus and laid on him his cross and went out to 
what is called Skull Place in Hebrew, Golgotha where 
they crucified him. And with him they crucified two others, 
one on this side and one on that, and Jesus between them. 
Pilate wrote a sign and put it up on the cross. It was written: 

JESUS THE NAZABENE THE KING OF THE JEWS 

Many of the Jews read this sign, for the place where Jesus 
was crucified was near the city, and it was written in Hebrew, 
in Latin, and in Greek. The high priests of the Jews said to 
Pilate, "Do not write, 'The King of the Jews/ but, 'This man 
said, I am King of the Jews/ " Pilate answered, "What I have 
written, I have written." 

The soldiers, when they had crucified Jesus, took his clothes 
and made four parts, a part to each soldier, and there was his 
tunic besides. The tunic was seamless, woven from the top 
entire. They said to one another, "Let us not tear it, but cast 
lots who shall have it." This was so that the Scripture might 
be fulfilled, "They parted my garments among them and on 
my clothing they cast lots." The soldiers did this. 

There were standing beside the cross of Jesus his mother and 
his mother's sister, Mary the wife of Clopas, and Mazy Mag- 
dalene. When Jesus saw his mother and the disciple whom he 
loved standing there, he said to his mother, "Woman, there is 
your son." Then he said to the disciple, "There is your 
mother." From that hour the disciple took her to his own 
home. 

After this, Jesus knowing that now all things had been com- 
pleted, in order that the Scripture might be fulfilled said, "I 
am thirsty." A pitcher was standing there full of sour wine. 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 191 

Putting a sponge full of sour wine on a hyssop stem, they raised 
it to his mouth. When Jesus had taken the sour wine, he said, 
"It is finished/' and bowing his head gave up his spirit. 

The Jews, because it was Preparation Day, in order that the 
bodies might not remain on the cross on the Sabbath, for that 
Sabbath was a great day, requested Pilate to have their legs 
broken to kill them. So the soldiers came and broke the legs of 
the first man and of the other who was crucified with him. 
But, coming to Jesus, when they saw him already dead, they 
did not break his legs. But one of the soldiers with his spear 
pierced his side and immediately there came forth blood and 
water. He who saw it has borne witness and his witness is 
true, and he knows that he speaks the truth in order that you 
may believe. For this happened that the Scripture might be 
fulfilled, "A bone of him shall not be broken." And again 
another Scripture says, "They will look on hi whom they 
have pierced." 

After this, Joseph of Arimathsea, who was a disciple of 
Jesus, but secretly for fear of the Jews, asked of Pilate per- 
mission to carry away the body of Jesus, and Pilate granted it. 
So he came and carried his body away. Nicodemus, the man 
who came to him at first by night, came also bringing a 
mixture of myrrh and aloes, about a hundred pounds weight* 
They took the body of Jesus and wrapped it in linen cloths 
with the spices, according to the custom of the Jews in prepar- 
ing for burial. There was in the place where he had been 
crucified a garden and in the garden a new tomb in which no 
one had been laid. There, on account of the Preparation of the 
Jews, because the tomb was near, they laid Jesus. 

XX 

ON the first day of the week, early in the morning while it was 
still dark, Mary Magdalene came to the tomb and saw that the 
stone had been taken from the tomb. She ran and came to 
Simon Peter and to the other disciple whom Jesus loved, and 
said to them, "They have taken away the Master from the 
tomb and we do not know where they have laid him." Simon 
Peter and the other disciple went out and made their way to 



192 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 

the tomb. They were both running, and the other disciple 
outran Peter and came first to the tomb, and stooping he saw 
the linen cloths lying; but he did not enter. Simon Peter 
came following him and entered the tomb and looked at: the 
linen cloths lying and the handkerchief that had been about 
his head, not lying with the linen cloths, but rolled up in a 
place apart. Then the other disciple who had come first to the 
tomb entered, and he saw and believed. For they did not yet 
know the Scripture that he must rise from the dead. Then the 
disciples went back to where they were staying. 

Mary was standing by the tomb outside weeping. As she 
wept she stooped and looked into the tomb and saw two angels 
in white sitting one at the head and one at the feet where the 
body of Jesus had lain. They said to her, "Woman, why are 
you weeping?" She said to them, "Because they have carried 
away my Master and I do not know where they have laid him." 
After saying this, she turned and saw Jesus standing, but did 
not recognize that it was Jesus. Jesus said to her, "Woman, 
why are you weeping? Whom are you seeking?" She, think- 
ing that he was the gardener, said to him, "Sir, if you have 
removed him, tell me where you have laid him and I will take 
him away." Jesus said to her, "Mary!" She turned and said 
to him in Hebrew, "Rabboni!" (that is, Teacher). Jesus said 
to her, "Do not cling to me, for I have not yet ascended to the 
Father. But go to my brethren and say to them, 'I am ascend- 
ing to my Father and your Father, to my God and your God.' " 
Mary Magdalene came and told the disciples, "I have seen 
the Master," and she told that he had said these things to her. 

In the evening of that day, the first day of the week, when 
the doors had been closed where the disciples were, for fear of 
the Jews, Jesus came and stood in the midst and said to them, 
"Peace be with you." When he had said this, he showed them 
his hands and his side. The disciples were filled with joy on 
seeing the Master. He said to them again, " Peace be with you. 
As the Father sent me forth so I am sending you." When he 
had said this, he breathed on them and said, "Receive the 
Holy Spirit. If you forgive the sins of any, they are forgiven. 
If you retain the sins of any, they are retained." 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 193 

Thomas, one of the twelve, called Didymus (the Twin), was 
not with them when Jesus came. The other disciples said to 
him, "We have seen the Master." But he said to them, 
"Unless I see in his hands the print of the nails and put my 
finger into the print of the nails and put my hand into his side, 
I will not believe it." 

After eight days the disciples were again within and Thomas 
was with them. Jesus came and stood in the midst and said, 
" Peace be with you." Then he said to Thomas, " Reach your 
finger here. Here are my hands. Reach your hand and put it 
into my side, and become not faithless, but believing." Thomas 
answered him, "My Lord and my God!" Jesus said to him, 
* Because you have seen me you have believed. Blessed are 
those who have not seen and yet have believed." 

Jesus did before the disciples many other signs which are not 
written in this book. But these are written that you may be- 
lieve that Jesus is the Christ, the Son of God, and that believing 
you may have life through his name. 

XXI 

AFTER this, Jesus showed himself again to the disciples at the 
Lake of Tiberias. He showed himself in this way. There were 
together Simon Peter and Thomas, called Didymus (the Twin), 
and Nathanael of Cana in Galilee, and the sons of Zebedee 
and two other disciples. Simon Peter said to them, "I am 
going fishing." They said, "We will go along with you." They 
went out and got into a boat, but that night they caught 
nothing. - - ^ 

When day was breaking, Jesus stood on the beach. The 
disciples, however, did not recognize that it was Jesus. Jesus 
said to them, "Children, have you anything to eat?" They 
answered him, "No." He said to them, "Cast the net on the 
right side of the boat and you will find some." They cast, and 
now they could not draw it in for the multitude of fishes. That 
disciple whom Jesus loved said to Peter, "It is the Master!" 
Simon Peter, on hearing that it was the Master, girded around 
Mm his blouse, for he was naked, and threw himself into the 
lake. The other disciples came in the small boat, for they were 



194 THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 

not far from land about a hundred yards dragging the 
netful of fish. When they had gotten out on land, they saw a 
fire of coals and fish laid on it and bread. Jesus said to them, 
"Bring some of the fish that you have just caught." Simon 
Peter got into the boat and drew the net to land full of big 
fishes a hundred and fifty-three and though there were 
so many the net was not torn. Jesus said, " Come, take break- 
fast." No one of the disciples dared to ask him who he was, 
knowing that it was the Master. Jesus came and took bread 
and gave to them, and fish in the same manner. This is now the 
third time that Jesus showed himself to the disciples after 
rising from the dead. 

When they had breakfasted, Jesus said to Simon Peter, 
"Simon, son of John, do you love me more than these?" He 
said to him, "Yes, Master, you know that I love you." He 
said to him, "Feed my lambs." He said to him a second time, 
"Simon, son of John, do you love me?" He said to him, "Yes, 
Master, you know that I love you." He said to him, "Shep- 
herd my sheep." He said to him the third time, "Simon, son 
of John, do you love me?" Peter was grieved because he said 
to him the third time, " Do you love me?" and he said to him, 
"Master, you know all things. You know that I love you." 
Jesus said to him, "Feed my sheep. Truly, truly, I tell you, 
when you were young, you girded yourself and walked about 
wherever you wished. When you are old, you will stretch out 
your hands and another will gird you and carry you where you 
do not wish." This he said, indicating the kind of death by 
which he would glorify God. 

After saying this he said to him, "Follow me." Peter 
turned and saw the disciple whom Jesus loved, following. (It 
was he who at the supper had leaned on Jesus' breast and said, 
"Lord, who is it that will betray you?") Peter, seeing him, 
said to Jesus, "Master, what shall this man do?" Jesus said 
to him, " If I choose to have him stay until I come, what is that 
to you? You must follow me." So the report went out among 
the brethren that that disciple was not to die. But Jesus did 
not say to Peter that he would not die, but, " If I choose to have 
him stay until I come, what is that to you?" 



THE GOOD NEWS TOLD BY JOHN 195 

This is the disciple who witnesses to these things and who 
wrote these things, and we know that his testimony is true. 

There are also many other things that Jesus did, but if these 
are written, every one, I do not think that the world itself will 
have room for the books when written. 



THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 



IN my first book, Theophilus, I told of all that Jesus did and 
taught from the beginning down to the day when, after giving 
commands, through the Holy Spirit, to the apostles whom he 
had chosen, he was taken up to heaven. By many proofs he 
revealed himself to these men as still alive after his sufferings; 
for he was seen by them for forty days and spoke of things re- 
lating to the kingdom of God. Also while eating with them, he 
charged them not to leave Jerusalem, but to wait for the promise 
of the Father, "which," said he, "you have heard from me. 
For John baptized with water, but you will be baptized with 
the Holy Spirit not many days hence." 

When they came together, they asked him, "Master, will 
you at this time restore the kingdom to Israel?" He said to 
them, " It is not yours to know the times and seasons which the 
Father has put under his own authority. But you will receive 
power after the Holy Spirit has come upon you, and you will 
be witnesses for me in Jerusalem and in all Judsea and in 
Samaria and to the ends of the earth." 

He said this and then, while they were looking on, he was 
taken up and a cloud lifted him from their sight. They were 
gazing into the sky as he went, when suddenly two men in 
white robes were standing beside them and said, "Men of 
Galilee, why are you standing and looking up into the sky? 
This Jesus, who has been taken from you into heaven, will come 
back in the same way that you have seen him go into heaven/' 

They then returned to Jerusalem from the mountain called 
the Olive Orchard, which is near Jerusalem, a Sabbath day's 
journey l distant. When they came into the city, they went up 
to the upper room where they were staying. There were Peter 
and John, and James and Andrew, Philip and Thomas, Barthol- 
omew and Matthew, James the son of Alphseus and Simon the 
"* A little less than three quarters of a mile. 



THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 197 

Zealot, and Judas the son of James. All of these continued 
earnestly and unitedly in prayer with the women and Mary 
the mother of Jesus and with his brothers. 

In those days Peter stood up in the midst of the brethren 
(the company numbered about a hundred and twenty) and 
said: "Brethren, it was necessary that the Scripture should be 
fulfilled which the Holy Spirit spoke through the mouth of 
David concerning Judas, who became guide to those who ar- 
rested Jesus. For he was numbered among us and received a 
share, in this service. (This man bought a piece of land with the 
price of his wickedness, and falling headlong he burst asunder 
and all his entrails were poured out. It became known to all 
the inhabitants of Jerusalem, so that that field was called in 
their own language Akeldama, that is, the Field of Blood.) 
For it is written in the book of Psalms, 'Let his dwelling be- 
come desolate and let there be no one living in it/ and, 'His 
overseership let another take.' It is needful, therefore, that of 
the men who have been with us during all the time that the 
Lord Jesus went in and out among us, from the baptism of 
John down to the day that he was taken up from us that one 
of these should become a witness with us of his resurrection." 
So they put forward two, Joseph who is called Barsabbas, sur- 
named Justus, and Matthias. In prayer they said, "O Lord, 
thou who knowest the hearts of all, show which one of these 
two thou has chosen to take the place in this service and 
apostleship which Judas deserted to go to his own place.' 1 
Then they cast lots between them. The lot fell on Matthias 
and he was numbered with the eleven apostles. 

II 

DUBING the course of the day of Pentecost they were all to- 
gether in the same place, when suddenly there came from 
heaven a sound as of a strong rushing wind, and it filled all the 
house where they were sitting. Then there appeared to them, 
as it were, tongues of flame distributing themselves, and one 
rested on each of them. They were all filled with the Holy 
Spirit and began to speak in foreign tongues, as the Spirit 
gave them power of expression. , 



198 THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 

There were Jews living in Jerusalem, pious men from every 
nation under heaven. When this sound was heard, the crowd 
came together and were astonished because each one heard 
them speaking in his own language. They were amazed and, 
wondering, said, " Are not all these who are talking, Galilseans? 
How then does each of us hear them in his own native language? 
Parthians and Medes and Elamites and those who live in 
Mesopotamia, Judaea and Cappadocia, Pontus and Asia, 
Phrygia and Pamphilia, Egypt and the regions of Libya toward 
Gyrene, visitors from Rome, Jews and proselytes, Cretans 
and Arabians we hear them speaking in our languages the 
mighty works of God." They were all astonished and at a loss, 
one saying to another, "What does this mean?" Some scoff- 
ingly said, "They are full of sweet wine." 

But Peter, standing up with the eleven, raised his voice and 
declared to them: "Fellow Jews, and all of you who live in 
Jerusalem, understand this and listen to my words. These 
are not drunk, as you assume, for it is only nine o'clock in the 
morning; but this is what was spoken through the prophet Joel: 
'It will be in the last days, says God, that I will pour out my 
Spirit upon all mankind, and your sons and your daughters will 
prophesy, and your young men will see visions, and your old men 
will dream dreams. Yes, upon the slave men and slave girls that 
are mine I will pour out my Spirit in those days, and they will 
prophesy. I will give portents in heaven above and signs on 
the earth beneath, blood and fire and vapor of smoke. The 
sun will be turned into darkness and the moon into blood before 
the day of the Lord comes that great and glorious day. And 
every one who calls on the name of the Lord will be saved/ 
Fellow Israelites, listen to these words: Jesus the Nazarene 
was a man proved to be sent to you from God by miracles, 
wonders, and signs which God did through him in the midst 
of you, as you yourselves know. But when he had been de- 
livered up according to the fixed purpose and foreknowledge 
of God, you crucified and killed him through the hands of law- 
less men. But God freed him from the pangs of death and 
raised him up, since it was impossible that he should be held 
under the power of death. For David says of him, 'I saw the 



THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 199 

Lord always before my face, for he is at my right hand so that 
I may not be cast down. Therefore my heart is glad and my 
tongue rejoices, and my flesh still dwells in hope that thou 
wilt not leave my soul to Hades and wilt not let thy holy one 
see decay. Thou makest me know the paths of life. Thou wilt 
fill me with joy in thy presence/ 

"Brethren, allow me to say frankly to you regarding the 
patriarch David that he died and was buried and his tomb is 
among us to this day. But being a prophet and knowing that 
God had sworn to him an oath to place a descendant of his 
body upon his throne, he foreseeing spoke of the resurrection 
of the Christ, saying that he was not left to Hades and that 
his flesh did not see decay. This Jesus, God raised up, and all 
of us are witnesses of it. Therefore having been exalted to the 
right hand of God and having received from the Father the 
promise of the Holy Spirit, he has poured out this which you 
see and hear. For David did not ascend into the heavens, but 
he says, "The Lord said to my Lord, Sit at my right hand, 
till I make your enemies your footstool. 7 Let all the house of 
Israel know surely that this Jesus, whom you crucified, God 
has made both Lord and Christ." 

Hearing this they were cut to the heart and said to Peter 
and the other apostles, " What shall we do, brethren?" Peter 
said to them, "Repent and be baptized every one of you in 
the name of Jesus Christ, for the forgiveness of your sins, and 
you will receive the gift of the Holy Spirit. For the promise 
belongs to you and to your children and to all those who are 
far off, as many as the Lord your God may call." With many 
other words he bore witness and exhorted them, "Save your- 
selves from this perverse generation." Those who accepted his 
message were baptized, and there were added on that day about 
three thousand souls. These gave constant attention to the 
teaching of the apostles and to the fellowship and the breaking 
of bread and the prayers. 

Awe came on every soul. Many wonders and signs were 
done by the apostles. All who believed had all things together 
in common. They would sell their lands and goods and dis- 
tribute to all as any one had need. Every day, continuing with 



200 THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 

one accord in the Temple courts and in breaking bread from 
house to house, they ate together in joy and simplicity of 
heart, praising God and having favor with all the people. The 
Lord added daily to their number those who were being saved. 

HI 

PETER and John were going up into the Temple courts at the 
hour of prayer, three o'clock, when a man lame from his birth 
was being carried along. This man used to be placed every day 
near the gate of the Temple courts the one called the Beau- 
tiful Gate to beg of those who were entering. Seeing Peter 
and John about to go into the Temple courts, he begged to 
receive something. But Peter fixing his eyes on him, along with 
John, said, "Look at us." He gave attention to them, expecting 
to receive something from them. But Peter said, "Silver and 
gold I have not; but what I have I will give you. In the name 
of Jesus Christ the Nazarene, walk." Grasping his right hand 
he lifted him up. Immediately his feet and ankles became 
strong, and he sprang up and stood and walked and entered the 
Temple court with them, walking and leaping and praising 
God. All the people saw him walking about and praising 
God, and when they recognized that it was he who had sat 
begging at the Beautiful Gate of the Temple court, they 
were filled with wonder and amazement at what had happened 
to him. 

While he still clung to Peter and John, all the people ran 
crowding around them in what was called Solomon's Colon- 
nade, greatly astonished. Peter, seeing the people, explained, 
"Fellow Israelites, why do you wonder at this, or why do you 
gajze so at us, as if by our own power or piety we had made him 
walk? The God of Abraham and of Isaac and of Jacob, the 
God of our fathers, has glorified his servant Jesus whom you 
delivered up and disowned before Pilate when he had decided 
to release him. You disowned the holy and righteous one and 
begged to have a murderer granted you. You killed the Author 
of life, but God raised him from the dead. Of this we are wit- 
nesses. And now by faith in his name this man whom you see 
and know has been made strong by his name, and the faith that 



THE ACTS OP THE APOSTLES 201 

is through him has given this man this perfect soundness before 
you all. 

"Now, brethren, I know that you acted in ignorance, as also 
your rulers did. God in this way fulfilled what he had pre- 
dicted through the mouths of all the prophets that his Christ 
should suffer. Therefore, repent and turn about, that your sins 
may be wiped away and the gracious face of the Lord may bring 
times of refreshing, and he may send Jesus Christ, long ago 
appointed, but whom heaven must receive until the times of 
the restoration of all things, of which God spoke through the 
mouths of his holy prophets of old. 

"Moses indeed said, 'The Lord God will raise up for you a 
prophet from among your brethren, as he raised me; listen to all 
that he may say to you. It shall be that every person who does 
not listen to that prophet will be utterly destroyed from among 
the people.' And all the prophets, Samuel and those who fol- 
lowed him, all who spoke, also foretold these days. You are 
the sons of the prophets and of the covenant which God es- 
tablished with your fathers when he said to Abraham, e In your 
descendants all the families of the earth will be blessed.' To 
you first God, when he raised up his servant, sent him, to bless 
you by turning each one of you from his wicked ways." 

IV 

WHILE they were speaking to the people, the priests and the 
commandant of the Temple and the Sadducees came upon 
them, being offended because they were teaching the people 
and proclaiming in the case of Jesus the resurrection from the 
dead. They laid hands on them and placed them in custody 
until the next day, for it was already evening. But many of 
those who had heard the message believed, and the number of 
the men grew to be about five thousand. 

On the next day there was a gathering of their rulers and 
elders and scribes in Jerusalem, with Annas the High Priest 
and Caiaphas and John and Alexander and all who were of 
high priestly race. They placed the apostles in the midst and 
asked them, "By what power and in what name did you do 
this?" Then Peter, full of the Holy Spirit, said to them, 



202 THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 

"Rulers of the people and elders, if we must answer to-day 
regarding a benefit done to an infirm man, by what name he 
has been healed, be it known to all of you and to all the people 
of Israel, that by the name of Jesus Christ the Nazarene, 
whom you crucified, whom God raised from the dead by 
this name, this man stands here before you sound. This is the 
stone which was despised by you the builders, and which has 
become the corner stone. Nor is there salvation in any other. 
For there is no other name under heaven given among men by 
which we must be saved." 

Observing the fearless outspokenness of Peter and John and 
perceiving that they were common, uneducated men, they were 
astonished, and they recognized them as former compan- 
ions of Jesus. Seeing the man who had been healed standing 
there with the apostles, they had nothing to say in opposition. 
After ordering them to go out of the council, they conferred 
together, saying, "What shall we do to these men? For that 
a notable miracle has been done by them is plain to all who live 
in Jerusalem, and we cannot deny it. But that it may not 
spread further among the people, let us sternly forbid them to 
speak any longer in this name to any one." So, calling them 
in, they commanded them absolutely not to speak or teach in 
the name of Jesus. But Peter and John answered them, 
"Whether it is right in the sight of God to listen to you rather 
than to God, judge for yourselves. We, for our part, cannot 
refrain from saying what we have seen and heard." The Coun- 
cil after further threats set them at liberty, not finding any 
way to punish them on account of the people; for all were 
giving glory to God because of what had happened. For the 
man upon whom this miracle of healing had been performed 
was more than forty years old. 

The apostles upon being released came to their friends and 
told them all that the high priests and the elders had said. 
They hearing it unitedly lifted up their prayer to God and 
said, "0 Lord, thou who didst make the heaven and the earth 
and the sea and all things that are in them, who through the 
Holy Spirit by the mouth of our father David, thy servant, 
didst say, 'Why do the heathen rage and the people imagine 



THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 203 

vain things? The kings of the earth set themselves and the 
rulers are gathered together against the Lord and against his 
Christ' for truly in this city Herod and Pontius Pilate, with 
the Gentiles and the people of Israel, were gathered against 
thy holy servant Jesus, to do all that thy hands and thy will 
had predetermined should take place now, Lord, look upon 
their threats and enable thy servants to speak thy message 
with all fearlessness, while thou dostt stretch out thine hand 
for healing and while signs and wonders are done through the 
name of thy holy servant Jesus." After this prayer the place 
in which they were assembled was shaken, and they were all 
filled with the Holy Spirit and spoke the message of God with 
courageous freedom. 

The multitude of those who had believed was of one heart 
and one soul, and no one said that any part of his property was 
his own, but they had all things in common. With great power 
the apostles continued to bear witness to the resurrection of 
the Lord Jesus. Great grace was upon them all. Nor was any 
one in need among them, for all who were owners of lands or 
houses would sell them and bring the money for what had been 
sold and lay it at the apostles' feet, and it would be distributed 
to each as he had need. Joseph, to whom the apostles had 
given the name Barnabas, which means "Son of Encourage- 
ment/' a Levite born in Cyprus, being the owner of a farm, 
sold it and brought the money and laid it at the .apostles' 
feet. 

V 

BUT a man called Ananias, with Sapphira his wife, sold a piece 
of property and kept back a part of the price, with his wife's 
connivance, and brought a certain part and laid it at the apos- 
tles' feet. Peter said, " Ananias, why has Satan filled your heart 
to lie to the Holy Spirit and keep back part of the price of the 
land? While you had it, was it not yours? And after it was 
sold, was it not at your own disposal? Why have you con- 
ceived this deed in your heart? You have not lied to men, but 
to God." When Ananias heard these words he fell down and 
died. Great fear came upon all who heard these words. Then 



204 THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 

the young men arose and wrapped him in a shroud and car- 
ried him out and buried him. 

After an interval of about three hours, Ananias' wife came 
in, not knowing what had happened. Peter asked her, "Tell 
me, did you sell the land for so much?" She answered, "Yes, 
for so much." Peter said to her, "Why was it agreed between 
you to test the Spirit of the Lord? Even now the feet of those 
who have buried your husband are at the door, and they will 
carry you out." Immediately she fell down at his feet and died. 
The young men came in and found her dead, and carried her 
out and buried her beside her husband. Great awe came upon 
the whole church and upon all who heard these things. 

Many signs and wonders were done among the people by 
the hands of the apostles. They were all with one purpose in 
Solomon's Colonnade. Of the rest no one dared join thern^ 
but the people honored them highly. Believers in the Lord 
were more and more being added, crowds both of men and of 
women t so that they carried out the sick into the streets and 
laid them on couches and pallets with the hope that as Peter 
came by at least his shadow might fall on some one of them. 
A crowd was coming too from the towns around Jerusalem, 
bringing sick people and those who were troubled by impure 
spirits, and these were all being healed. 

But the High Priest and all his party the sect of the Sad- 
ducees became aroused and filled with indignation, and laid 
hands on the apostles and put them into the public jail. But 
an angel of the Lord opened the prison doors in the night and 
led them out and said, "Go, stand and speak to the people in 
the Temple courts all the words of this life," On hearing this 
they went into the Temple courts about daybreak and began 
teaching. When the High Priest and his party arrived, they 
called together the Council and all the eldership of the children 
of Israel and sent to the jail to have the men brought. But when 
the officers came there they did not find them in the prison. 
They returned and reported, "We found the prison shut with 
all security and the guards standing at the doors, but when we 
opened we found no one inside." On hearing these words the 
commandant of the Temple and the high priests were at a. 



THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 205 

loss as to what this would grow into. Then some one came and 
told them, "The men whom you put in jail are standing in the 
Temple courts and teaching the people/' Then the command- 
ant with his subordinates went and brought them, but without 
violence, for they were afraid of being stoned by the people. 

They brought them in and made them stand before the Coun- 
cil. The High Priest asked them, "Did we not strictly order 
you not to teach in this name? And here you have filled Jerusa- 
lem with your doctrine and want to bring this man's blood on 
us." Peter, answering for the apostles, said, "God must be 
obeyed rather than men. The God of our fathers raised up 
Jesus whom you had killed by hanging him on a cross. God 
has exalted him as Leader and Savior at his own right hand to 
give to Israel change of heart and forgiveness of sins. We are 
witnesses of these things, and so is the Holy Spirit which God 
has given to those who obey him." On hearing this they be- 
came furious and wanted to kill them. But a certain Pharisee 
named Gamaliel a teacher of the law honored by all the 
people arose in the Council and, after directing that the 
men should be taken outside for a little while, said, "Men of 
Israel, consider carefully what you are going to do to these men. 
For before these days arose Theudas, professing to be some- 
body. A number of men, about four hundred, joined them- 
selves to him. But he was slain and all who followed him were 
scattered and came to naught. After him arose Judas the 
Galilaean, in the days of the Census, and led away people 
after him. He too perished, and all who followed him were 
scattered. And now I advise you to keep away from these men 
and let them alone, for if this plan or work is of men it will 
collapse, but if it is of God you will not be able to suppress 
them. You might even be found to be fighting against God." 

They were persuaded by him. So they called in the apostles 
and gave them a flogging and ordered them not to go on speak- 
ing in the name of Jesus, and then set them at liberty; but they 
went away from before the Council rejoicing because they were 
thought worthy to be put to shame for the Name. And every 
day in the Temple courts and from house to house they un- 
ceasingly taught and told the good news of Jesus the Christ. 



206 THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 

VI 

IN those days, when the number of disciples was increasing, 
the Greek-speaking Jews began to grumble at the Hebrew 
Jews because their widows were being overlooked in the daily 
service. Then the twelve called the body of disciples together 
and said, "We do not wish to leave the message of God and 
wait on tables. Therefore, brethren, pick out seven men from 
among you, men of reputation, full of the Spirit and of wisdom, 
and we will appoint them to look after this need. But we will 
devote ourselves to prayer and to the service of the message." 
This proposal pleased the whole body. So they chose Stephen, 
a man full of faith and of the Holy Spirit, and Philip and Pro- 
chorus and Nicanor and Timon and Parmenas and Nicolaiis, 
a proselyte from Antioch. These they presented before the 
apostles, who after prayer laid their hands upon them. 

The message of God continued to spread and the number of 
the disciples in Jerusalem .increased greatly, and even a great 
body of the priests were obedient to the faith. 

Stephen, full of grace and of power, was doing great wonders 
and signs among the people. But certain persons from what 
was called the synagogue of the Libyans and Cyrenians and 
Alexandrians, and some from Cilicia and Asia, rose up and 
disputed with Stephen; yet they could not hold their own 
against the wisdom and the Spirit with which he spoke. Then 
they got some men to say, "We have heard him speaking pro- 
fane words against Moses and against God." They excited the 
people and the elders and the scribes, and coming suddenly 
upon Stephen they arrested Mm and led him to the Council. 
There they put forward false witnesses who said, "This man 
never ceases saying things against this holy place and the law. 
We have heard him say that this Jesus, the Nazarene, will 
destroy this place and will change the customs that Moses 
handed down to us/' All who were sitting in the Council as 
they looked at him saw that his face was like the face of an 



THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 207 

VII 

THE High Priest said, "Are these things true?" Stephen 
said: "Brethren and Fathers, listen. The God of glory 
appeared to our father Abraham while he was in Meso- 
potamia, before he lived in Haran, and said to him, ' Leave your 
land and your kindred and go into whatever land I shall 
show you.' Then he came out from the land of the Chaldseans 
and settled in Haran. From there, after the death of his 
father, God removed Him into this land in which you now live, 
but he did not give him any inheritance in it, not even a foot 
of it. Still he promised to give it as a possession to Him and to 
his descendants after him, though at that time he had no 
child. God spoke thus, 'His descendants will sojourn in a land 
not their own, and they will be enslaved and maltreated four 
hundred years.' And God said, ' That nation by which they are 
enslaved I will judge, and after that they shall come out and 
serve me in this place.' God gave Abraham the covenant of 
circumcision. So Abraham circumcised his son Isaac on the 
eighth day, and Isaac circumcised his son Jacob, ^and Jacob 
circumcised his sons, the twelve patriarchs. 

"The patriarchs becoming jealous of Joseph sold Him into 
Egypt. But God was with him and delivered him out of all his 
trials, and gave him favor and wisdom before Pharaoh, king of 
Egypt, who made him governor over the land of Egypt and 
all his own house. Then there came a famine over all Egypt 
and Canaan, and great distress, and our fathers found no food. 
When Jacob heard that there was food in Egypt he sent our 
fathers the first time. On their second visit Joseph made Him- 
self known to his brothers, and Joseph's family was made known 
to Pharaoh. Then Joseph sent and invited down Jacob his 
father and all his relatives, seventy-five persons, and Jacob 
went down into Egypt and died there he and our fathers. 
They were brought to Shechem and buried in the tomb which 
Abraham bought for a price in silver from the sons of Hamor 
in Shechem. 

"As the time drew near for the fulfillment of the promise 
which God had made to Abraham, the people grew and multi* 



208 THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 

plied in Egypt until there arose to ride over Egypt a different 
king, who did not know Joseph. He adopted a crafty policy 
toward our race and oppressed our fathers, forcing them to 
expose their babes so that they should not be kept alive. 

"At that time Moses was born, and was beautiful in God's 
sight. For three months he was cared for in his father's house, 
When he had been exposed, Pharaoh's daughter took him up 
and reared him as her own son. Moses was educated in all the 
wisdom of the Egyptians and was strong in words and in deeds. 
When he reached the age of forty years it came into his heart 
to look after his brethren, the children of Israel. Seeing one of 
them being wronged, he defended him and did justice for the 
injured man by striking down the Egyptian. He thought that 
his brethren knew that God would give them freedom through 
his hand. But they did not understand it. On the next day 
Moses appeared when two of them were fighting, and tried to 
make peace between them, saying, 'Men, you are brethren. 
Why are you injuring each other?' But he who was injuring 
his neighbor pushed hi away, saying, 'Who appointed you a 
ruler and judge over us? Do you mean to kill me as you killed 
the Egyptian yesterday?' At that word Moses fled and be- 
came a sojourner in the land of Midian, and there he had two 
sons. 

"When forty years had passed, an angel appeared to him in 
the desert of Mount Sinai in the flames of a burning bush. 
When Moses saw the sight he was astonished, but as he was 
approaching to look closely, the voice of the Lord was heard, 
' I am the God of your fathers, the God of Abraham and of 
Isaac and of Jacob/ Then Moses trembled and did not dare 
to look closely. The Lord said to him, 'Loose your sandals 
from your feet, for the place on which you are standing is holy 
ground. I have plainly seen the distress of my people in Egypt 
and I have heard their groans and have come down to deliver 
them. Come now and I will send you to Egypt/ 

"This Moses whom they disowned, saying, 'Who made you 
a ruler and judge?' this man God sent as ruler and deliverer 
by the hand of the angel who appeared to him in the bush. 
This man led them out, doing wonders and signs in the land 



THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 209 

of Egypt and at the Red Sea and in the wilderness for forty 
years. This is the Moses who said, 'God will raise up for you 
a prophet like me from among your brethren.' This is he who 
was in the assembly in the wilderness, with the angel who spoke 
to him in Mount Sinai and with our fathers, and he received 
the living words to give to us. Our fathers would not obey 
him, but thrust him away and turned back in their hearts 
toward Egypt, saying to Aaron, 'Make us gods to lead us; for 
this Moses, who led us out of the land of Egypt we do not 
know what has become of him/ And they made the image of 
a calf in those days and brought sacrifices to the idol and 
rejoiced in the work of their own hands. So God turned and 
gave them up to worship the stars of heaven, as it is written 
in the book of the prophets, 'Did you offer to me slaughtered 
animals and sacrifices forty years in the wilderness, O house of 
Israel? No, you carried the tent of Moloch and the star of the 
god Rephan, the images that you made for worship. Therefore 
I will remove you beyond Babylon.' 

"In the wilderness OUT fathers had the Tent of the Testi- 
mony made as he who spoke to Moses directed, according to 
the model which he had seen. This Tent our fathers who were 
with Joshua received in their turn and brought into the land of 
the nations whom God drove out from before our fathers, and 
it remained until the days of David. He found favor with God 
and prayed that he might provide a temple for the house of 
Israel. But Solomon built for him a house. Yet the Most High 
does not dwell in buildings made by hands; as the prophet says, 
' Heaven is my throne and the earth is my footstool. What sort 
of house will you build for me, says the Lord, or what is my 
place of rest? Did not my hand make all these things?' 

"You stiff-necked men, uncircumcised in hearts and ears, 
you always resist the Holy Spirit! As your fathers did, so do 
you. Which one of the prophets did not your fathers persecute? 
Yes, they killed those who announced in advance the coming 
of the righteous one of whom now you have become the 
betrayers and murderers you who received the law as it 
was transmitted by angels and have not kept it." 

As they listened to these things they were cut to the heart 



210 THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 

and ground their teeth at him. But he being full of the Holy 
Spirit looked up into heaven and saw the glory of God, and 
Jesus standing at God's right hand, and he said, "I see heaven 
opened and the Son of Man standing at God's right hand!" 
With a great shout they stopped their ears and rushed upon 
him with one purpose, and hurried him out of the city and 
stoned him. The witnesses laid down their cloaks at the feet 
of a young man named Saul. They stoned Stephen as he was 
praying and saying, "Lord Jesus, receive my spirit/ 7 Kneeling 
he cried aloud, "Lord, do not lay up this sin against them!" 
After saying this he fell asleep. 

vni 

SATJL also approved of their putting him to death. On that 
day arose a great persecution of the church in Jerusalem. 
All except the apostles were scattered through Judaea and 
Samaria. Pious men carried Stephen away for burial and 
made great lamentation over him. Saul cruelly hounded the 
church from house to house, entering and dragging out men 
and women and handing them over into prison. 

Those who were scattered went to various places telling the 
good news. Philip went down to the city of Samaria and pro- 
claimed the Christ to them. The crowds with one mind gave 
attention to what was said by Philip, listening to his words and 
seeing the signs that he did. Tor impure spirits came out 
shrieking from many who had been possessed, and many 
paralytic and lame people were healed. There was great rejoic- 
ing in that city. 

A certain man named Simon had previously been practicing 
magic in the city and astonishing the people of Samaria, giving 
out that he was some great one. They had all given attention 
to him, from the least to the greatest, saying, "This man is 
the power of God which is called great." They had given atten- 
tion to him because for a long time he had amazed them by his 
magic. But when they believed Philip, who was telling the 
good news of the kingdom of God and the name of Jesus 
Christ, they were baptized, both men and women. Simon him- 
self also believed and was baptized and attached himself to 



THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 211 

Philip, and seeing the signs and great miracles that took place 
he was astonished. 

When the apostles in Jerusalem heard that Samaria had 
accepted the message of God, they sent to them Peter and 
John. They on arrival prayed for them, that they might 
receive the Holy Spirit. For the Spirit had not yet fallen on 
any one of them; they had merely been baptized in the name of 
the Lord Jesus. Then they laid their hands on them and they 
received the Holy Spirit. When Simon saw that the Spirit was 
given through the laying on of the apostles 3 hands, he offered 
them money, saying, " Give to me also this power that whoever 
I lay hands on may receive the Holy Spirit/' But Peter said to 
him, " Your money perish with you because you have thought 
that you could buy the gift of God with money! You have no 
part or lot in this matter. For your heart is not right before 
God. Repent of this wickedness of yours, and pray the Lord 
that, if possible, the thought of your heart may be forgiven you. 
For I see that you are in the gall of bitterness and the fetters 
of unrighteousness." Simon answered, " You pray for me to the 
Lord that nothing of what you have said may come on me." 

So when they had borne their testimony and had spoken the 
message of the Lord, they returned to Jerusalem, telling the 
good news in many villages of the Samaritans. 

An angel of the Lord said to Philip, "Arise and go south- 
ward on the road that goes down from Jerusalem to Gaza, the 
road through the desert." He arose and went. Now there 
was a man of Ethiopia, a eunuch of high rank under Candace, 
queen of the Ethiopians, who was over her treasury. He had 
been to Jerusalem to worship and was on his return, sitting in 
his chariot and reading the prophet Isaiah. The Spirit said to 
Philip, "Go up and join this chariot." Philip ran up and heard 
him reading Isaiah the prophet, and said, "Do you understand 
what you are reading?" He said, "How can I without some 
one to guide me?" He begged Philip to come up and sit with 
him. 

The passage of Scripture that he was reading was, "He wag 
led as a sheep to slaughter, and as a lamb before his shearer 
is dumb, so he did not open his mouth. In his humiliation 



212 THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES . 

justice was denied him. Who will describe his generation? For 
his life is taken away from the earth." The eunuch said to 
Philip, "Please tell me, of whom is the prophet speaking of 
himself or of some one else?" Philip opened his mouth and 
beginning with that Scripture told him the good news about 
Jesus. 

As they were going along the road they came to water, and 
the eunuch said, "Here is water. What is* there to hinder my 
being baptized? " He ordered the chariot to stop and they both 
went down into the water, Philip and the eunuch, and he 
baptized him. When they had come up out of the water, the 
Spirit caught away Philip, and the eunuch saw him no more. 
He went on his way rejoicing. But Philip found himself at 
Azotus, and passing through all the cities he told the good news 
until he came to Csesarea. 

DC 

SAUL was still breathing cftit threats and murder against the 
disciples of the Lord. He went to the High Priest and asked 
from hi letters to the synagogues in Damascus, that if he 
should find any persons who were of the Way, whether men or 
women, he might bring them bound to Jerusalem. 

On his journey he was getting near to Damascus when sud- 
denly a light from heaven flashed round him. He fell to the 
ground and heard a voice saying to him, "Saul, Saul, why are 
you persecuting me?" He asked, "Who is speaking?" The 
answer was, "I am Jesus whom you are persecuting. But stand 
up and go into the city and it will be told you what you must 
do." The men who were on the road with him stood struck 
dumb, hearing the voice, but seeing no one. Saul rose from the 
earth and opened his eyes, but he could see nothing. Taking 
him by the hand they led him into Damascus, and he was 
three days without seeing, and neither ate nor drank. 

There was in Damascus a certain disciple named Ananias. 
The Lord said to him in a vision, "Ananias." He answered, 
"Here I am, Lord." The Lord said to him, "Rise and go to 
the street called Straight street, and ask in the house of Judas 
for a man named Saul from Tarsus. He is now in prayer, and 



THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 213 

has seen a man named Ananias come in and lay his hands on 
him in order that he may receive his sight/' Ananias answered, 
"Lord, I have heard about this man from many people how 
many wicked things he has done to thy holy ones in Jerusalem, 
and here he has authority from the high priests to bind all 
who call upon thy name." But the Lord said to him, "Go, for 
this man is a chosen instrument of mine to carry my name 
before nations and kings and the children of Israel. I will show 
him how much he must suffer for my name." Ananias went 
and entered the house and put his hands on Saul, and said, 
"Brother Saul, the Lord has sent me Jesus who appeared to 
you on the road as you were coming that you may receive 
your sight and be filled with the Holy Spirit." Immediately 
scales seemed to fall from his eyes and he could see, and he 
arose and was baptized, and after taking food he regained his 
strength. 

Saul passed some days with the disciples who were in Damas- 
cus, and at once he began to proclaim in the synagogues that 
Jesus was the Son of God. All who heard him were astonished 
and said, "Is not this the man who in Jerusalem persecuted 
those who call on this name, and who came here for the very 
purpose of binding and taking them to the high priests?" 
But Saul grew stronger and put to confusion the Jews who 
lived at Damascus, as he proved that this man was the Christ. 

When a number of days had passed, the Jews plotted to put 
him out of the way, but this became known to Saul. They 
watched the gates day and night to seize him. But the disciples 
took him at night and let him down through an opening in the 
wall, lowering him in a basket. 

When Saul reached Jerusalem, he tried to attach himself to 
the disciples, but all were afraid of him, not believing that he 
was a disciple. But Barnabas took him and brought him, to the 
apostles, and related to them how he had seen the Lord on the 
road and how the Lord had spoken to him, and how courage- 
ously he had spoken in Damascus in the name of Jesus. After 
that Saul was with them in Jerusalem, going out and in and 
speaking freely in the name of the Lord. He frequently spoke 
and debated with the Greek-speaking Jews. But they kept 



214 THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 

trying to put him out of the way. When the brethren learned 
of it, they took him down to Csesarea and sent him away to 
Tarsus. 

So the church had peace throughout all Judaea and Galilee 
and Samaria, and was built up, and advancing in the reverence 
of the Lord and by the encouragement of the Holy Spirit grew 
continually in numbers. 

It happened that Peter, while passing about 'among all the 
holy, came down also to those who were dwelling at Lydda. 
He found there a man named JSneas who had been for eight 
years lying on a pallet, for he was a paralytic. Peter said to 
him, "jEneas, Jesus Christ is healing you. Rise up and make 
your bed." Immediately he arose. All who were living in 
Lydda and Sharon saw him, and they turned to the Lord. 

In Joppa there was a disciple named Tabitha (in Greek 
Dorcas, Gazelle). She abounded in good works and acts of 
kindness which she was accustomed to do. It happened at 
that time that she fell sick and died. They bathed her and laid 
her out in an upper room. Since Lydda was near to Joppa and 
the disciples had heard that Peter was there, they sent two 
men to him begging biro, "Do not delay to come on down to 
us." Peter arose and went along with them. On his arrival 
they took him up to the room. All of the widows came around 
him wailing and showing the tunics and cloaks that Dorcas 
had made while she was with them. Peter sent them all out 
and kneeling down he prayed. Then turning to the body he 
said, "Tabitha, rise/' She opened her eyes, and seeing Peter 
she sat up. Giving her his hand he raised her to her feet. Then 
calling the holy and the widows he presented her to them 
alive. This became known through all Joppa and many be- 
lieved in the Lord. Peter stayed in Joppa many days with a 
man named Simon, a tanner. 

X 

THERE was in Csesarea a man named Cornelius, a centurion 
in the battalion called the Italian cohort. He was a pious man, 
reverencing God with all his household, doing many acts of 
charity to the people and praying to God constantly. About 



THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 215 

three o'clock one afternoon he saw plainly in a vision an angel 
come in and say to him, "Cornelius." He gazed at him in 
alarm and asked, "What is it, my Lord?" The angel said to 
him, "Your prayers and your gifts of charity have come up as 
an evidence before God. Now send men to Joppa and ask for 
a man named Simon, who is called Peter. He is the guest of a 
certain Simon, a tanner, whose house is by the seaside." 

When the angel who had been speaking to Hm had gone, 
Cornelius called two of his servants and a pious soldier of those 
who were attached to him, and, after explaining everything to 
them, sent them to Joppa. On the next day, while they were 
on the road and approaching the city, Peter went up on the 
housetop to pray. It was about noon. He began to feel hungry 
and wished to eat. While they were preparing food, he fell into 
a trance and saw the heavens opened and something descending 
like a great sheet being let down to the ground by the four 
corners. In it were all kinds of f ourf ooted animals and reptiles 
and birds of the air. Then a voice came to him, "Bise, Peter, 
kill and eat." But Peter said, "By no means, Lord, for I have 
never eaten anything unclean or impure." A second time the 
voice came to him, "What God has cleansed you must not 
think unclean," This happened a third time, and then im- 
mediately the sheet was taken up into the heavens. 

Peter was thinking this over and was at a loss what the 
vision meant. Just then the men who had been sent by 
Cornelius, after inquiring for the house of Simon, came to the 
door and called to know whether Simon called Peter was a 
guest there. While Peter was debating with himself about the 
vision, the Spirit said, "Here are two men looking for you. 
Rise and go down and go with them without misgivings, for 
I have sent them." Peter went down and said to the men, 
"Here I am the man you are looking for. What is the reason 
for your coming?" They said, "Cornelius, a centurion, an 
upright and God-fearing man, well spoken of by the whole 
Jewish nation, was directed by a holy angel to send for you to 
come to his house, and to listen to your words." Then he in- 
vited them in and entertained them. 

The next day Peter arose and went away with them, and some 



216 THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 

of the brethren from Joppa accompanied him. On the follow- 
ing day they came to Csesarea. Cornelius was expecting them 
and had assembled his relatives and his close friends. As Peter 
was about to enter, Cornelius met him and falling at his feet did 
him reverence. But Peter lifted him up, saying, "Stand up; I 
myself also am a man." Conversing with him Peter entered 
the house and found many people assembled. He said to them, 
"You understand that it is against our Law for a Jew to be 
closely associated with a Gentile or to visit him. But God has 
taught me not to call any person common or unclean. There- 
fore when I was sent for I came without making any objection. 
So now I ask, For what reason have you sent for me?" 

Cornelius said, "Four days ago, at this hour, I was offering 
the three o'clock prayer in my house, when suddenly a man 
stood before me in shining dress and said, 'Cornelius, your 
prayer has been heard and your gifts of charity have been 
remembered before God. Send to Joppa and call for Simon 
who is surnamed Peter. He is a guest in the house of Simon a 
tanner near the sea. 7 Immediately I sent to you and you have 
done well in coming. Now here we all are in God's presence to 
hear all that the Lord has commanded you." 

Peter opened his mouth and said, "Truly I understand that 
God is not partial, but in every nation whoever reverences him 
and lives righteously is acceptable to him. As to the message 
which he sent to the children of Israel telling the good news of 
peace through Jesus Christ who is Lord of all you know 
the story that spread through all Judaea. It began in Galilee 
after the baptism which John proclaimed. You know of Jesus 
of Nazareth, how God anointed him with the Holy Spirit and 
with power. He went about doing good and healing all wh6 
were harassed by the Devil, for God was with him. We are 
witnesses of all that he did in the country of the Jews and in 
Jerusalem. They hung him on a cross and so killed him. But 
God raised him up on the third day and granted that he should 
become visible, not to all the people, but to witnesses previ- 
ously chosen by God, namely, to us who ate and drank with 
him after his resurrection from the dead. God commanded us 
to proclaim to the people and to testify that he is the divinely 



THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 217 

appointed Judge of the living and the dead. All of the prophets 
testify to this, that every one who believes in him obtains for- 
giveness of sins through his name." 

While Peter was speaking these words, the Holy Spirit fell 
on all who were listening to his message. All the believers who 
were of the circumcision who had come along with Peter were 
amazed that the gift of the Holy Spirit was poured out on 
the Gentiles, for they heard them speaking with tongues and 
glorifying God. Then Peter said, "Can any one forbid water 
for the baptism of these people who have received the Holy 
Spirit just as we did?" And he directed that they should be. 
baptized in the name of Jesus Christ. Then they asked him to 
remain there a few days. 

XI 

THE apostles and the brethren throughout Judsea heard that 
the Gentiles also had received the message of God. When 
Peter went up to Jerusalem, those who were of the circumcision 
criticized him, saying, "You went into the houses of uncir- 
cumcised men and ate with them." But Peter began and 
explained consecutively all that had happened. He said, "I 
was in the city of Joppa and was praying, and in a trance I saw 
a vision. Something like a great sheet was descending, lowered 
from heaven by the four corners, and it came to where I was. 
I looked at it attentively and saw the f ourf ooted fl.ninrifi.1a of the 
earth and the wild beasts 'and the reptiles and the birds of 
the air. Then I heard a voice saying to me, 'Rise, Peter, kill 
and eat/ I said, 'By no means, Lord, for never has anything 
common or unclean entered my mouth.' The voice spoke 
again from heaven, 'What God has cleansed you must not 
think common/ This happened three times and then every- 
thing was drawn up again into heaven. Immediately three 
men came to the house in which we were. They had been 
sent from Caesarea to me. The Spirit directed me to go with 
them without any questioning. These six brethren also went 
with me, and we entered the man's house. He related to us 
how he had seen in his house an angel who stood and said, 
'Send to Joppa for Simon who is called Peter. He will speak to 



218 THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 

you words by which you and your whole household will be 
saved/ When I began speaking the Holy Spirit fell on them, 
just as on us at the beginning, and I remembered the words of 
the Lord how he said, 'John baptized with water, but you will 
be baptized with the Holy Spirit,' If then God gave to them the 
same gift that he gave to us on believing in the Lord Jesus, who 
was I that I could oppose God?" 

On hearing this they ceased their criticism and gave glory- 
to God, saying, "Then even to the Gentiles God has granted 
the change of heart that leads to life." 

Those who were scattered abroad by the persecution that 
arose in connection with Stephen went as far as Phoenicia and 
Cyprus and Antioch, telling the message to none but Jews. 
Some of them were men of Cyprus and Cyrene, and they on 
reaching Antioch spoke also to the Greeks, telling them the 
good news of the Lord Jesus. The hand of the Lord was 
with them, and a large number believed and turned to the 
Lord. 

Word came to the ears of the church in Jerusalem regard- 
ing these men, and they sent Barnabas to Antioch. When he 
arrived and saw the grace of God he was delighted, and he 
encouraged all to be firmly faithful to the Lord. For he was a 
good man and full of the Holy Spirit and of faith. A consider- 
able number were added to the Lord. 

Barnabas went away to Tarsus to look up Saul, and upon 
finding him he brought him to Antioch. For a whole year they 
met with the church and taught a large company, and it was in 
Antioch that the disciples were first called "Christians." 

In those days some prophets went down from Jerusalem to 
Antioch. One of them named Agabus arose and foretold 
through the Holy Spirit that a great famine was going to occur 
over all the inhabited world. (It happened in the time of 
Claudius.) Then the disciples determined, each according to 
his means, to send something for the help of the brethren who 
were living in Judaea. This they did, sending it to the elders by 
the hands of Barnabas and Saul. 



THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 219 

xn 

ABOUT that time King Herod laid hands on some members of 
the church in order to maltreat them. He killed James the 
brother of John with the sword. Seeing that it was pleasing to 
the Jews, he proceeded to arrest Peter also. This was during 
the Days of Unleavened Bread. He seized him and put him 
in prison, committing him to four guards of four soldiers each 
for safe keeping, intending to bring him out to the people alter 
the Passover. So Peter was under guard in the prison. But 
prayer was continually made by the church to God for him. 

On the very night before Herod was going to bring him out, 
Peter was sleeping between two soldiers bound with two chains, 
and guards before the door were watching the prison. Sud- 
denly an angel of the Lord was there. Light shone in the cell. 
Striking Peter's side he woke him, saying, "Rise up quickly." 
TTis chains fell off his hands. The angel said to him, "Put on 
your belt and your sandals." Peter did so. The angel said to 
him, "Throw your cloak around you and follow me." Peter 
came out and followed along, not knowing whether what the 
angel was doing was real. He thought he was seeing a vision. 
After passing the first guard and the second, they came to the 
iron gate that leads into the city. This opened for them of its 
own accord and they went out and went along one street. Then 
suddenly the angel left him. 

When Peter came to himself, he said, " Now I know truly that 

the Lord has sent his angel and has delivered me out of the 

\ hands of Herod, and from all the expectation of the Jewish 

i people." So understanding the situation, he came to the house 

of Mary the mother of John called Mark, where a number were 

assembled and were praying. 

When Peter knocked at the door of the entry, a girl named 
Rhoda came to listen, and when she recognized Peter's voice, 
without opening the door, she ran for joy and told them that 
Peter was standing at the door. They said to her, "You are 
insane." But she was positive that it was so. They said, "It 
is his angel." Peter continued knocking. When they opened 
the door and saw him they were amazed. He motioned to 



220 THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 

them with his hand to be silent, and explained to them how 
the Lord had delivered him out of the prison, and he said, 
"Tell this to James and the brethren." Then he left and went 
to a different place. 

When day came there was no small commotion among the 
soldiers as to what had become of Peter. Herod searched for 
him, but not finding him he closely questioned the guards and 
ordered them to be led away to execution. Then he went down 
from Jerusalem to Csesarea and stayed there. 

Herod had a bitter feud with the Tyrians and Sidonians. 
But they came to him with one mind, and having won over 
Blastus, the King's chamberlain, they begged for peace, be- 
cause their country depended for its food supply on the King's 
country. On an appointed day Herod in his royal robes sat on a 
platform and made an address to them. The people shouted, 
"It is a god's voice, not a man's." Immediately an angel of 
the Lord struck him, because he did not give the glory to 
God, and he was eaten by worms and expired. But God's 
message grew and spread. 

Barnabas and Saul after fulfilling their mission returned 
from Jerusalem, bringing along with them John, surnamed 
Mark. 

xui 

THERE were in Antioch among the members of the church 
several prophets and teachers Barnabas, and Symeon, who 
was called Niger, and Lucius of Gyrene and Manaen (a com- 
panion in childhood of Prince Herod) and Saul, As they were 
serving the Lord and fasting, the Holy Spirit said, "Set apart 
for me Barriabas and Saul for the work to which I have called 
them." Then, after fasting and praying and laying their hands 
upon them, they sent them off. 

Sent out in this way by the Holy Spirit, Barnabas and Saul 
went down to Seleucia and from there sailed for Cyprus. 
Arriving at Salamis they announced God's message in the 
synagogues of the Jews. They had John as their assistant. 
After passing through the whole island as far as Paphos, they 
came across a Jewish magician and false prophet, named Bar- 



THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 221 

Jesus, who was in the company of the Proconsul, Sergius 
Paulus, an intelligent man. The Proconsul invited in Barnabas 
and Saul and desired to hear God's message. But Elymas the 
ro&gician (for that is the translation of his name) opposed them, 
-endeavoring to turn the Proconsul away from the faith. But 
Satil (who is also called Paul), full of the Holy Spirit, fixed his 
eyes on him and said, " You who are full of every kind of fraud, 
you son of the Devil, you enemy of all righteousness, will you 
never stop perverting the straight paths of the Lord? And now 
the hand of the Lord is upon you and you will be blind for a 
time, unable to see the sun." Immediately a dimness and 
darkness fell on him, and he went about seeking for people to 
lead him by the hand. Then the Proconsul, seeing what had 
happened, believed, being amazed at the teaching of the Lord. 

Sailing away from Paphos, Paul and his companions came to 
Perga in Pamphylia. John left them there and returned to 
Jerusalem. But they went on from Perga and came to Antioch 
in Pisidia. On the Sabbath they went into the synagogue and 
sat down. After the reading of the Law and the Prophets, the 
synagogue directors sent to them saying, " Brethren, if you have 
any word of encouragement for the people, speak it." 

Paul rose and motioning with his hand said, "Israelites and 
you who reverence God, listen. The God of this people Israel 
chose our fathers and made the people great during their so- 
journ in the land of Egypt, and with an uplifted arm brought 
them out. For a period of about forty years he fed them in the 
wilderness, and after destroying seven nations in the land of 
Canaan he gave them their land as an inheritance for about 
four hundred and fifty years. After that he gave them judges 
down to the prophet Samuel. Next they asked for a king and 
God gave them Saul the son of Kish, a man of the tribe of 
Benjamin, for forty years. After removing him, God raised up 
David to be their king, to whom he bore testimony, fi l have 
found David the son of Jesse, a man after my own heart. He 
will carry out all my purposes/ 

"Of this man's descendants God, according to his promise, 
brought to Israel a savior Jesus, before whose coming John 
had proclaimed to all the people of Israel baptism for a change 



222 THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 

of heart. As John was finishing his career he used to say, 
'What do you think that I am? I am not he. But one is com- 
ing after me the sandals of whose feet I am not worthy to 
unfasten/ 

"Brethren, sons of Abraham's race and those among you who 
reverence God, the message of this salvation has been sent to 
you. For the inhabitants of Jerusalem and their rulers, neither 
understanding him nor the utterances of the prophets which 
are read every Sabbath, fulfilled those utterances by condemn- 
ing him. Although they found no ground for putting him to 
death they begged Pilate to have him killed. When they had 
completely done all that had been predicted about him, they 
took him down from the cross and laid him in a tomb. But 
God raised him from the dead and he appeared for many days 
to those who had gone up with him from Galilee to Jerusalem. 
They are now his witnesses to all the people. 

"We tell you the good news that the promise to our fathers 
has been kept; for God has fulfilled it for our children in raising 
up Jesus, as it is written in the second psalm, c Thou art my son; 
to-day I have become thy father/ And as to his raising him 
from the dead, never to return to decay, he spoke thus; 'I will 
give you the holy and sure promises made to David. 7 There- 
fore he says also in another psalm, 'Thou wilt not let thy holy 
one see decay/ For David after serving the will of God in his 
own generation fell asleep and was laid with his fathers and saw 
decay. But he whom God raised up saw no decay. 

"Therefore let it be known to you, brethren, that through 
him forgiveness of sins is proclaimed to you. Yes, every one 
who believes in him is cleared from all the sins from which you 
could not be cleared by the Law of Moses. Take care then that 
what was said in the Prophets does not come on you, 'See, you 
disdainful ones, and wonder and perish; for I am working a 
work in your days a work which you will not believe even if 
some one fully explains it to you/" 

As Paul and Barnabas were going out, the people begged that 
these words might be spoken to them on the next Sabbath. 
After the synagogue was dismissed, many of the Jews and of 
the pious converts to Judaism followed Paid and Barnabas, who 



THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 223 

talked to them and endeavored to persuade them to hold fast 
to the grace of God. 

On the next Sabbath almost the whole city came together to 
hear the message of God. But the Jews, seeing the crowds, were 
filled with anger and kept speaking in abusive language against 
what was said by Paul. Then Paul and Barnabas said with 
fearless plainness, "The message of God had to be spoken first 
to you. But since you thrust it away and do not judge your- 
selves worthy of life eternal now, we turn to the Gentiles. 
For so the Lord has commanded us, 'I have set you for a light 
of the Gentiles, that you may be for salvation to the ends of the 
earth. 3 " When the Gentiles heard this, they rejoiced and 
glorified the message of the Lord, and all who were predestined 
to life eternal believed. 

The message of the Lord was carried abroad through the 
whole country. But the Jews stirred up the pious women of 
high standing and the leading men of the city, and started a 
persecution against Paul and Barnabas and expelled them from 
their boundaries. They shook off the dust of their feet as a pro- 
test against them, and came to Iconium. The disciples were 
filled with joy and with the Holy Spirit. 

XXV 

IN Iconium Paul and Barnabas went in the same way into the 
synagogue and spoke so that a large number both of Jews and 
of Greeks believed. But the unbelieving Jews excited and 
embittered the minds of the Gentiles against the brethren. 
Therefore the apostles spent considerable time speaking freely 
and fearlessly in reliance upon the Lord, who bore witness to 
his gracious message by permitting signs and wonders to be 
done by their hands. The people of the city became divided; 
some were with the Jews and some with the apostles. But 
when there was a rush made by the Gentiles and the Jews, 
along with their rulers, to hustle them and stone them, the 
apostles learned of it and fled to the cities of Lycaonia, Lystra 
and Derbe, and the surrounding country, and there they went 
on telling the good news. 
In Lystra there was a man sitting who was powerless in his 



224 THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 

feet. He had been lame from his mother's womb and never had 
walked. He was listening to Paul as he was speaking. Paul 
fixed his eyes on him, and, seeing that he had faith to be healed, 
said in a loud voice, "Stand up straight on your feet." He 
sprang up and walked about. 

When the crowds saw what Paul had done, they raised their 
voices, saying in Lycaonian, " The gods have taken human form 
and come down to us." They called Barnabas Zeus and Paul 
Hermes, because he was the principal speaker. Then the priest 
of Zeus, whose temple was in front of the city, brought bulls 
and garlands to the gates, followed by the crowds, and in- 
tended to offer sacrifice. But when the apostles Barnabas and 
Paul heard of it, they rent their garments and sprang into the 
crowd, crying out, "Men, why are you doing this? We too are 
men with the same weaknesses that you have. We are bringing 
you the good news that you are to turn from these foolish 
. things to the living God, who made the heavens and the earth 
and the sea and all things that are in them. In past genera- 
tions he permitted all the nations to go their own ways, though 
he did not leave himself without evidence, for he did you good 
and gave rains from heaven and fruitful seasons, filling your 
hearts with food and gladness." Even by saying this they with 
difficulty kept the crowds from offering sacrifice to them. 

But Jews arrived from Antioch and Iconium and won over 
the crowds, and they stoned Paul and dragged him outside of 
the city, thinking that he was dead. But when the disciples 
gathered around him he rose up and reentered the city. On the 
next day he left with Barnabas for Derbe. Telling the good 
news in that city they made a number of disciples. Then they 
returned to Lystra and Iconium and Antioch, reassuring the 
minds of the disciples and encouraging them to be steadfast in 
the faith, saying, "Through many trials we must enter into the 
kingdom of God." They appointed elders for them in every 
church, and after prayer and fasting committed them to the 
Lord in whom they had believed. 

They passed through Pisidia and came into Pamphylia. 
After telling the message in Perga, they came down to Attalia, 
From there they sailed for Antioch, where they had been com- 



THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 225 

mitted to the grace of God for the work which they had now 
completed. Upon their arrival they assembled the church and 
narrated all that God, working with them, had done, and how 
he had opened the door of faith to the Gentiles. There they 
passed no little time with the disciples. 

XV 

Bur certain men came down from Judaea and undertook to 
teach the brethren, "Unless ypu are circumcised according to 
the custom of Moses, you cannot be saved." Since no little 
dissension and controversy arose between Paul and Barnabas 
and these men, it was arranged that Paul and Barnabas and 
some others of them should go up to Jerusalem to the apostles 
and elders about this question. So they were sent on by the 
church and passed through Phoenicia and Samaria, relating the 
conversion of the Gentiles, which caused great joy to all the 
brethren. On their arrival in Jerusalem they were welcomed 
by the church and the apostles and the elders, and they nar- 
rated all that God, working with them, had done. Then some 
of the party of the Pharisees, who had become believers, rose 
and said, "We must circumcise them and tell them to keep the 
Law of Moses." 

The apostles and elders met to confer about this matter. 
After there had been much debate, Peter rose and said to them, 
"Brethren, you know that in early days God chose among you 
that through my mouth the Gentiles should hear the message 
of good news and should believe. And God, who knows all 
hearts, bore witness to them by giving them the Holy Spirit, 
just as he did to us. He made no difference between us and 
them in cleansing their hearts by faith. Now, therefore, why 
are you testing God by putting on the neck of the disciples a 
yoke which neither our fathers nor we have been able to bear? 
On the contrary we believe that we are saved through the 
grace of the Lord Jesus just as they are." 

The whole assembly remained silent and listened to Barna- 
bas and Paul relating all the signs and wonders that God had 
done through them among the Gentiles. When they ceased 
speaking, James said, "Brethren, listen to me. Symeon has 



226 THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 

told how first God graciously visited the Gentiles and took a 
people for his name. With this the words of the prophets agree, 
as it is written, 'After this I will return and build up again the 
tent of David which has fallen down; yes, I will build up its 
ruins and erect it again, that the rest of mankind may seek 
the Lord, even all the Gentiles upon whom my name has been 
bestowed, says the Lord who does these things foreknown from 
of old/ Therefore I judge best not to trouble those of the Gen- 
tiles who have turned to God, but to write to them to abstain 
from contamination with idols, and from unchastity, and from 
what has been strangled, and from blood. For Moses has had 
for generations past in every city those who preach him, for 
he is read in the synagogues every Sabbath." 

Then it seemed good to the apostles and the elders, with the 
whole church, to select men from themselves and to send them 
to Antioeh with Paul and Barnabas; namely, Judas called 
Barsabbas, and Silas, men esteemed among the brethren. 
They wrote and sent by their hands the following letter: 

"The Apostles and the Brethren who are elders, to the 
Brethren from the Gentiles in Antioeh and Syria and Cilicia: 
Greeting'. 

"Inasmuch as we have heard that certain persons from us 
have troubled you with words, unsettling your minds, men 
whom we did not authorize, it seemed good, after unani- 
mous agreement, to select some men and send them to you 
with our beloved Barnabas and Paul, who have exposed their 
lives for the name of our Lord Jesus Christ. We have sent 
therefore Judas and Silas, who will tell you orally the same 
things. For it seemed good to the Holy Spirit and to us to lay 
on you no further burden than these necessary things: to 
abstain from things sacrificed to idols, and from blood, and 
from strangled things, and from unchastity. If you keep your- 
selves from these you will do well. Farewell." 

So they were sent away and went down to Antioeh, where 
they called together the whole body and delivered over the let- 
ter. On reading it they rejoiced over the encouragement. 
Both Judas and Silas, being themselves prophets, encouraged 
and confirmed the brethren by long addresses. After spend- 



THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 227 

ing some time they were sent away with a message of peace 
from the brethren to those who had sent'them. Paul and Barna- 
bas stayed on in Antioch teaching and telling, in association 
with many others, the good news of the Lord's message. 

After some time Paul said to Barnabas, "Let us go back and 
visit the brethren in every city in which we made known the 
Lord's message, and see how they are prospering." Barnabas 
wished to take along John who was called Mark. But Paul did 
not approve of taking him, along, since he had left them in 
Pamphylia and had not gone on with them into the work. 
Such a difference of feeling resulted that they separated from 
each other. Barnabas took Mark and sailed away to Cyprus. 
Paul selected Silas and left, after being commended to the 
grace of the Lord by the brethren. They went through Syria 
and Cilicia strengthening the churches. 

XVI 

THEY came to Derbe and Lystra. At Lystra there was a 
distiple named Timothy, the son of a Jewish woman, who was 
a believer, and of a Greek father. He had a good reputation 
among the brethren in Lystra and Iconium. Paul wished to 
h$ve Timothy go with him.. So he took him and circumcised 
him because of the Jews who were in those parts. For they all 
knew that his father was a Greek. 

Thus they traveled through the cities and delivered to the 
disciples for observance the rules that had been decided on by 
the apostles and elders in Jerusalem. So the churches grew 
firmer in faith and increased in numbers from day to day. 

They went through Phrygia and the Galatian country, the 
Holy Spirit having prevented their speaking the message in 
Asia. Upon reaching Mysia they attempted to go into Bi- 
thynia, but the spirit of Jesus did not allow them. Passing by 
Mysia they came down to Troas. There a vision appeared to 
Paul in the night a Macedonian man was standing and 
begging him saying, "Come over into Macedonia and help 
us." After Paul had seen the vision, we at once tried to go 
out to Macedonia, inferring that God had called on us to tell 
the good news to the people there. 



228 THE ACTS OP THE APOSTLES 

Sailing away from Troas we made a straight run to Samo- 
thrace, and on the next day to Neapolis. From there we went to 
Philippi, which is the first city of that part of Macedonia and 
is a Roman colony. We remained in that city for a number of 
days. 

On the Sabbath day we went outside of the gate to a place 
on the riverside where it was customary to go for prayer, and 
we sat down and talked with the women who had gathered 
there. One woman named Lydia, a dealer in purple, from the 
city of Thyatira, .who reverenced God, was listening. God 
opened her heart to receive what was said by Paul. When she 
had been baptized along with her household, she begged us, 
"If you have judged me to be faithful to the Lord, come into 
my house and stay," and she insisted on our doing so. 

It so happened that as we were going to the place of prayer 
a certain slave girl who had a spirit of divination met us. She 
was bringing great gain to her masters by divining. She fol- 
lowed Paul and us and kept calling out, "These men are serv- 
ants of God Most High, and they are teaching you the way 
of salvation." This she kept doing for many days. Paul was 
annoyed, and turning he said to the spirit, "I tell you in the 
name of Jesus Christ to come out of her," and it came out at 
that very moment. 

When her masters saw that the hope of their gain was gone, 
they laid hold of Paul and Silas and dragged them into the 
public square before the authorities* Bringing them in, they 
said to the magistrates, "These men, who are Jews, are dis- 
turbing our city and teaching customs which it is not proper 
for us, who are Eomans, to receive or practice." The crowd 
joined in the attack upon them, and the magistrates tore off 
their clothes and ordered them to be beaten with rods. After 
laying many stripes upon them they cast them into prison, or- 
dering the jailer to keep them securely. He on receiving such 
an order thrust them into the inner prison and made their feet 
secure in the stocks. 

But about midnight Paul and Silas were praying and singing 
hymns to God, and the other prisoners were listening. Sud- 
denly there was a great earthquake, so that the, foundations 



THE ACTS OP THE APOSTLES 229 

of the prison were shaken. Immediately all the doors were 
opened and every one's fetters were loosed. The jailer, waking 
from sleep and seeing the doors of the prison open, drew his 
sword and was about to kill himself, thinking that the prison- 
ers had escaped. But Paul said with a loud voice, " Do no harm 
to yourself , for we are all here/' Calling for a light he sprang 
in and fell down trembling before Paul and Silas, and led them 
out and said, "Men, what must I do to be saved?" They said, 
"Believe in the Lord Jesus and you will be saved, and your 
household/' and they told the message of God to him and to all 
who were in his house. He took them at that hour of the night 
and washed their stripes. Then he was baptized, he and all of 
his household, immediately. He brought them into his house 
and spread the table for them, and rejoiced with his whole 
family because he had believed in God. 

When morning came the magistrates sent their orderlies to 
say, "Set those men at liberty." The jailer told this order to 
Paul, "The magistrates have sent to have you set at liberty. 
Now go out and proceed on your journey in peace." But Paul 
said to them, "After beating us publicly and without a trial, 
although we are Romans, they cast us into prison. And are 
they now sending us out secretly? No, let them come them- 
selves and lead us out." The orderlies reported these words to 
the magistrates. When they heard that they were Romans they 
were alarmed, and came and begged them, and after leading 
them out requested them to leave the city. They came out of 
the prison and went into Lydia's house, and after seeing and 
encouraging the brethren they departed. 

XVII 

AFTER passing through Atnphipolis and Apollonia they came 
to Thessalonica. Here there was a synagogue of the Jews. 
According to Paul's custom he went in to meet with them, 
and on three Sabbath days he reasoned with them from the 
Scriptures, explaining and showing that it was necessary that 
the Christ should suffer and rise from the dead, and saying, 
"Jesus of whom I am telling you is the Christ." 
Some of them were persuaded and attached themselves to 



230 THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 

Paul and Silas a large number of the pious Greeks and not 
a few of the leading women. But the Jews became excited and, 
taking with them some of the base loafers from the market- 
place, they made a mob and threw the city into confusion. 
They attacked the house of Jason and tried to bring Paul and 
Silas out to the people. Not finding them, they dragged Jason 
and certain brethren before the magistrates, shouting, "These 
men who have upset the world have now come here. Jason has 
received them. They all do contrary to the decrees of Caesar, 
saying that there is a different king Jesus." Both the 
crowd and the magistrates were disturbed on hearing this. So 
they took security from Jason and the rest and then dismissed 
them. 

The brethren immediately sent off Paul and Silas in the 
night to Bercea. They on arrival went into the synagogue of 
the Jews. These people were nobler than those in Thessalonica. 
They welcomed the message with all readiness and examined 
the Scriptures daily to see whether these things were so. Con- 
sequently many of them believed, and also not a few Greeks; 
women of high standing and men. 

When the Jews of Thessalonica learned that God's message 
had been proclaimed by Paul also in Bercea, they came there 
agitating and disturbing the crowds. At once then the brethren 
sent away Paul to go down to the sea coast. Silas and Timothy 
remained there. Those who were conducting Paul took him 
as far as Athens, and, after receiving a letter to Silas and 
Timothy to come to bin? as soon as possible, they left. 

While Paul was waiting for them in Athens, his spirit was 
stirred within him as he looked upon the city full of idols. He 
often debated in the synagogue with the Jews and pious per- 
sons, and in the market-place every day with whoever hap- 
pened to be there. Some of the Epicurean and Stoic philoso- 
phers encountered him, and some said, "What can this idle 
talker mean?" Others said, "He seems to be a proclaimer of 
foreign gods," because he was telling the good news of Jesus 
and the resurrection. They took him and led him up on to the 
Areopagus, saying, "May we know what this new doctrine 
that you are speaking of is? For you are bringing strange and 



THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 231 

surprising things to our ears. We wish to know what these 
things are." For all the Athenians and the foreigners residing 
there spent their time in nothing else than in telling or hearing 
something newer than the last. Paul took his stand in the 
midst of the Areopagus and said: 

"Men of Athens, I see that you are in every way unusually 
reverential to the gods. For in. passing about and contemplat- 
ing your sacred objects I came upon an altar on which was 
inscribed, 'To an unknown God/ What you are worshiping 
in ignorance that I am making known to you. 

"The God who made the world and all the things that are 
in it, he who is Lord of heaven and earth, does not dwell in 
temples made by hands, nor is he served by human hands, as if 
he needed anything. For he gives to all life and breath and all 
things. And he made of one every nation of men to dwell on 
all the face of the earth, having marked out the appointed 
times and the boundaries of their abodes, that they might seek 
for God, if they could feel after him and find him, though, 
indeed, he is not far from each one of us. For in him we live 
and move and are; as some of your own poets have said, 'For 
we also are his offspring.' Being then the offspring of God, we 
ought not to think that deity is like gold or silver or stone, a 
thing carved by man's art and thought. The times of ignorance 
God overlooked, but now he commands all men everywhere to 
change, since he has set a day in which he will soon judge the 
world in justice by the man whom he has appointed, and of 
whom he has given evidence to all men by raising him from the 
dead." 

When they heard of the resurrection of the dead, some 
sneered; others said, "We will hear you again about this." So 
Paul went out from the midst of them. But certain men at- 
tached themselves to him and believed. Among them was 
Dionysius the Areopagite, and there was a woman named 
Damaris and several other persons. 

XVIII 

AFTER this Paul left Athens and came to Corinth. There he 
found a Jew named Aquila, born in Pontus but recently come 



232 THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 

from Italy with Priscilla his wife, because Claudius had ordered 
all Jews to leave Rome. Paul visited these people, and because 
he was of the same trade stayed with them and they worked 
together; for by trade they were tent-makers. But in the 
synagogue every Sabbath he reasoned and endeavored to 
persuade both Jews and Greeks. 

When Silas and Timothy came down from Macedonia, Paul 
was absorbed by the message, bearing witness to the Jews that 
Jesus was the Christ. When they resisted and spoke profane 
words, he rent his garments and said to them, "Your blood is 
on your own heads. I am clear, and from now on I am going to 
the Gentiles." So he changed over from there and came into 
the house of a man named Titus Justus, who reverenced God. 
His house was next to the synagogue. Crispus, the synagogue 
Director, believed in the Lord with all his household, and many 
of the Corinthians when they heard believed and were baptized. 
The Lord spoke in the night by a vision to Paul, " Do not fear, 
but speak and be not silent, for I am with you and no one shall 
attack and harm you, for I have many people in this city." 
So he stayed a year and six months, teaching among them 
the message of God. 

While Gallio was Proconsul of Achaia, the Jews with one 
mind made an attack on Paul and brought him before the 
court, saying, "This man is inducing men to worship God in 
a way contrary to law." As Paul was about to open his mouth, 
Gallio said to the Jews, "If it was some crime or wicked 
knavery, O you Jews, I would have reasonable patience with 
you. But if it is a dispute about doctrine and names and your 
own law, see to it yourselves. I will not be a judge of these 
things," and he drove them from before the judge's seat. Then 
they laid hold of Sosthenes, the synagogue Director, and beat 
him right in front of the judge's seat. But Gallio cared for 
none of these things. 

Paul remained a number of days more. Then after taking 
leave of the brethren he sailed away to Syria, and Priscilla and 
Aquila went with him. He had shaved his head at Cenchreae, 
for he had a vow. They came to Ephesus and Paul left his 
companions there. He himself went into the synagogue and 



THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES . 233 

debated with the Jews. Although they begged him to stay 
longer, he did not consent, but took his leave, saying, "I will 
return to you again, God willing." From Ephesus he put to 
sea and came to Csesarea. Then he went up [to Jerusalem] and 
greeted the church, and from there returned to Antioch. 
After spending some time there he set out and went through 
the Galatian country and Phrygia, place by place, strengthen- 
ing all the disciples. 

A certain Jew named Apollos, an Alexandrian by birth, a 
learned man, had come to Ephesus. He was strong in knowl- 
edge of the Scriptures and had been instructed in the way of 
the Lord, and, being very earnest in spirit, was teaching ac- 
curately about Jesus, although he knew no baptism but 
John's. This man began to speak fearlessly in the synagogue. 
When Priscilla and Aquila heard him, they took him and 
explained to him the way of God more accurately still. As he 
wished to cross over to Achaia, the brethren encouraged him 
and wrote to the disciples to welcome him. So he went and 
greatly helped those who had believed through grace. For he 
powerfully and publicly refuted the Jews, showing from the 
Scriptures that Jesus is the Christ. 

XIX 

WHILE Apollos was in Corinth, Paul, after passing through tho 
upper country, came to Ephesus and found certain disciples. 
He said to them, "Did you receive the Holy Spirit when you 
believed?" They said to him, "On the contrary, we did not 
even hear that there was a Holy Spirit." He said, "How then 
were you baptized?" They said, "With John's baptism." 
Paul said, "John baptized with the baptism of a change of 
heart, telling the people to believe in one who was coming after 
him, that is, in Jesus." On hearing that, they were baptized in 
the name of the Lord Jesus, and when Paul laid his hands on 
them the Holy Spirit came on them and they spoke with 
tongues and prophesied. There were about twelve of these 
men in all. 

For three months Paid went into the synagogue and spoke 
fearlessly, arguing persuasively regarding the kingdom of God. 



234 THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 

When some were hardened and would not believe and spoke 
evil of the Way before the congregation, he departed from them 
and took away his disciples and discussed daily in the lecture- 
hall of Tyrannus. This went on for two years, so that all the 
inhabitants of Asia, both Jews and Greeks, heard the message of 
the Lord. 

Through the hands of Paul, God did miracles of no ordinary 
kind, so that handkerchiefs and aprons that had touched his 
body were carried to the sick, and the diseases left them and 
the evil spirits departed. Then some of the wandering Jewish 
exorcists undertook to invoke over those who had evil spirits 
the name of the Lord Jesus, saying, "I adjure you by Jesus 
whom Paul proclaims." There were seven sons of a certain 
Sceva, a Jewish high priest, who did this. But the evil spirit 
answered them, "Jesus I know and Paul I know; but who are 
you?" and the man in whom the evil spirit was sprang on them 
and overpowered both of them, and so belabored them that 
they fled from that house naked and wounded. This became 
known to all who were living in Ephesus, both Jews and Greeks, 
and awe fell on all of them, and the name of the Lord Jesus 
came to be held in high honor. Many of those who had be- 
come believers came confessing and telling of their practices. 
A number of those who had practiced magic brought their 
books and burned them before all. Adding up the prices of 
them they found the total to be fifty thousand pieces of silver. 1 
Thus vigorously the Lord's message grew and strengthened. 

When these things had been accomplished Paul took it in 
mind to pass through Macedonia and Achaia and go to Jerusa- 
lem, saying, "After I have been there I must see Rome also." 
He sent on into Macedonia two of his assistants, Timothy and 
Erastus, but he himself remained awhile in Asia. 

At that time there arose no small commotion about the Way. 
For a certain man named Demetrius, a silversmith, a maker of 
silver shrines of Artemis, was bringing to the artisans no small 
gain. He gathered these and the workmen employed about 
such things and said, "Men, you know that from this business 
we get our wealth, and you see and hear that not only at Ephe- 
1 Probably about ten thousand dollars. 



THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 235 

sus, but also throughout almost all Asia this Paul has per- 
suaded and drawn away a large number, saying that hand- 
made gods are not gods at all. Not only is this trade of ours 
in danger of coming into disrepute, but also the temple of the 
great goddess Artemis is in danger of being held of no account, 
and she whom now all Asia and the wide world worship will be 
deposed from her majesty." 

Upon hearing this, they became full of anger and shouted, 
"Great is Artemis of the Ephesians!" The city was filled with 
confusion, and the people rushed with one mind into the 
theater, having gotten hold of Gaius and Aristarchus, fellow 
travelers of Paul's. When Paul wished to go in and face the 
people the disciples would not let him. Some of the city offi- 
cials who were his friends sent to him and begged him not to 
expose himself in the theater. Some were shouting one thing 
and some another, for the assembly was in confusion, and the 
most did not know why they had come together. Some of the 
crowd fixed on Alexander, since the Jews were putting him 
forward. And Alexander motioned with his hand and wished 
to make a defense before the people. But when they recognized 
that he was a Jew, there arose one shout from all for about two 
hours, "Great is Artemis of the Ephesians!" 

Then the City Clerk quieted the crowd and said, "Men of 
Ephesus, who is there of all men who does not know that the 
city of Ephesus is the temple-keeper of the great Artemis, and 
of her image which fell down from Zeus? Since these things are 
indisputable, you ought to be calm and do nothing rash. For 
you have brought here these men who are not robbers of tem- 
ples nor defamers of your goddess. If Demetrius and the 
artisans with hi have a charge against any one, there are 
court days and there are proconsuls; let the parties state their 
cases. If you are seeking anything further, it shall be settled in 
a lawful assembly. For we are in danger of being called in 
question regarding to-day's mob, and we shall not be able to 
give a reason for this tumult." By saying this he dissolved the 
gathering* 



236 THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 

xx 

WHEN the uproar had ceased, Paul sent for the disciples, and, 
after encouraging them, he bade them farewell and left to pro- 
ceed to Macedonia. Passing through those parts and en- 
couraging them by many addresses, he came into Greece. 
There he spent three months. When a plot was formed against 
him by the Jews as he was about to sail for Syria, he decided to 
return through Macedonia. There were in company with him 
Sopater of Bercea, the son of Pyrrhus, and of the Thessalonians 
Aristarchus and Secundus, and Gaius of Derbe and Timothy, 
and from Asia Tychicus and Trophimus. These went on and 
were waiting for us in Troas. After the Days of Unleavened 
Bread we sailed from Philippi and came to them in Troas in 
five days. There we spent seven days. 

On the first day of the week, when we all were assembled to 
break bread, Paul was discoursing to them, being about to leave 
in the morning, and he extended his address until midnight. 
There were many lamps in the upper room where we were 
assembled. A certain young man named Eutychus, sitting in 
a window, was overcome with deep sleep while Paul went on 
discoursing. At last overpowered by sleep he fell from the 
third story and was taken up dead. But Paul went down and 
threw himself on him and embraced him and said, "Do not 
make a noisy wailing; for his life is still in him." Then he went 
up and broke bread and ate and talked on till daybreak and so 
departed. They brought the boy living, and were not a little 
comforted. , 

We went in advance to the ship and sailed for Assos, intend- 
ing to take on Paul there, for so he had arranged, intending to 
come himself by land. So when he joined us at Assos, we took 
him aboard and came to Mitylene. From there we sailed next 
day and arrived off Chios. The next day we came to Samos, 
and on the following day to Miletus. For Paul had determined 
to sail by Ephesus in order not to spend time in Asia. He was 
hurrying to be in Jerusalem, if possible, on the Day of Pente- 
cost. 

From Miletus he sent to Ephesus for the elders of the church. 



THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 237 

When they came to him, he said to them, "You know how I 
have lived among you the whole time since the first day I set 
foot in Asia, serving the Lord with all humility and with tears 
and with trials that befell me through the plots of the Jews 
how I did not shrink from telling you anything that was prof- 
itable or from teaching you publicly and from house to house, 
urging upon both Jews and Greeks the need of a change of 
heart toward God and of faith in our Lord Jesus. 

"And now I am on my way, bound in spirit, to Jerusalem, 
not knowing what is to befall me there, except that the Holy 
Spirit testifies from city to city that chains and trials are wait- 
ing for me. But I do not hold my life as of any account if only 
I may finish my race and the service which I received from the 
Lord Jesus, to testify to the good news of the grace of God. 
And now I know that you all, among whom I have gone about 
heralding the kingdom, will never see my face again. There- 
fore I testify to you to-day that I am clear of the blood of all. 
For I did not shrink from telling you the whole purpose of 
God. 

"Be watchful of yourselves and of all the flock of which the 
Holy Spirit has placed you as overseers. Shepherd the church 
of God which he bought with his own blood. I know that after 
my departure fierce wolves will come among you, not sparing 
the flock. And from among yourselves men will arise speaking 
perverse things to draw away the disciples after themselves. 
Therefore watch, remembering that for three years I never 
ceased night nor day to exhort each one of you with tears. 

"And now I commit you to the Lord and to his gracious 
message, which can build you up and give you the heritage 
among all those who have been made holy. I have coveted no 
man's silver or gold or apparel. You yourselves know that 
these hands provided for my needs and the needs of my com- 
panions. In all things I showed you that so laboring we ought 
to help the weak, and to remember the words of the Lord 
Jesus, that he said, *It is more blessed to give than to re- 
ceive/" 

After saying this he kneeled with them all and prayed. All 
wept aloud, and falling on Paul's neck theyjdssed him affec- 



238 THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 

tionately, grieving especially because he had said that they 
would never see his face again; and they escorted him to the 
ship. 

XXI 

WHEN we had torn ourselves away from them and had sailed, 
we made a straight run to Cos, then on the next day to Rhodes 
and from there to Patara. There finding a ship crossing to 
Phoenicia we went on board and sailed. After sighting Cyprus 
and leaving it on the left, we sailed on to Syria and landed at 
Tyre; for there the ship was to discharge her cargo* 

We looked up the disciples and stayed with them seven days. 
They repeatedly told Paul through the Holy Spiritnot to go up 
to Jerusalem. But when we had finished the days, we left and 
continued our journey, and they all with their wives and chil- 
dren escorted us until we got outside of the city. Then, after 
kneeling down on the beach and praying, we tore ourselves 
from one another; we went aboard the ship and they went 
back to their homes. 

We made the voyage from Tyre and arrived at Ptolemais* 
There we greeted the brethren and remained one day with 
them. On the next day we left and came to Csesarea, and 
entered the house of Philip the evangelist, who was one of the 
Seven, and we stayed with him. Philip had four unmarried 
daughters who had the gift of prophecy. 

During our stay of many days a certain prophet named 
Agabus came down from Jerusalem. He came to see us, and 
took Paul's belt and bound his own feet and hands and said, 
"Thus says the Holy Spirit, 'So will the Jews in Jerusalem 
bind the man who owns this belt, and will deliver him into the 
hands of the Gentiles/ " When we heard this, both we and the 
residents there begged him not to go up to Jerusalem. Paul 
answered, "What are you accomplishing by weeping and 
breaking my heart? For I hold myself ready not only to be 
bound, but to die in Jerusalem for the name of the Lord Jesus." 
When he would not be persuaded, we stopped talking, saying, 
"The Lord's will be done," 

At the end of these days we packed up and went up to 



THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 239 

Jerusalem. Some of the disciples from Csesarea went up with 
us, taking along Mnason, a Cypriote, an old-time disciple, 
whose guests we were to be. 

When we reached Jerusalem, the brethren welcomed us 
cordially. On the next day, Paul went in with us for an inter- 
view with James, and all the elders came. After saluting them, 
he related in detail all that God had done among the Gen- 
tiles through his service. After hearing him, they gave glory 
to God and said to Paul, "You see, brother, how many tens 
of thousands of believers there are among the Jews, and they 
are all zealous for the Law. These have heard reports that 
you are teaching all the Jews who live among the Gentiles to 
break away from Moses, telling them not to circumcise their 
children and not to observe the customs. What then? It will 
be generally heard that you have come. So do this that we tell 
you. There are among us four men who are under a vow. Take 
these men and go through purification with them and pay 
their expenses, so that they may shave their heads. Then all 
will know that what they have heard about you amounts to 
nothing, but that you yourself walk in obedience to the Law. 

"But as to the Gentiles that have believed, we have, after 
consideration, sent our decision that they shall guard them- 
selves against what has been sacrificed to idols, and against 
blood, and against what has been strangled, and against un- 
chastity." 

Then Paul on the next day took the men, and, after purifying 
himself, entered the Temple courts, giving notice of the com- 
pletion of the days of purification the time until a sacrifice 
would have been offered for each one of them. 

But when the seven days were nearly completed, the Jews 
from Asia saw him in the Temple courts, and stirred up all the 
crowd and laid their hands on Paul, shouting, "Men of Israel, 
help. This is the man who teaches everybody everywhere 
against our people and the Law and this place, and moreover, 
he has brought Greeks into the Temple courts and has dese- 
crated this holy place." For they had previously seen Trophi- 
mus the Ephesian in the city with Paul, and they thought that 
he had brought him into the Temple courts. 



240 THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 

The whole city was excited and the people rushed together. 
Seizing Paul, they drew him out of the Temple courts, and 
immediately the gates were closed. As they were trying to kill 
him, word went up to the Tribune of the battalion that all 
Jerusalem was in commotion. He at once took soldiers and 
centurions and ran down to the people. They, on seeing the 
Tribune and the soldiers, stopped beating Paul. Then the 
Tribune coming up arrested him and ordered him to be bound 
with two chains, and inquired who he was and what he had 
done. Some called out one thing and some another in the crowd* 
Not being able to find out anything for certain on account 
of the confusion, he ordered Paul to be taken into the barracks. 

When Paul got upon the stairs, it so happened that he was 
being carried by the soldiers on account of the violence of the 
mob. For the crowd of people was following and shouting, 
"Kill him!" As he was about to enter the barracks Paul said 
to the Tribune, "May I say something to you?" He replied, 
"Can you speak Greek? Are you then not the Egyptian who 
some time ago raised a sedition and led off four thousand 
assassins into the desert?" Paul said, "I am a Jew from 
Tarsus, in Cilicia, a citizen of no insignificant city. I beg you 
to let me talk to the people." He gave him leave, and Paul 
standing on the stairs motioned with his hand to the people. 
There was a great silence, and, speaking loudly in Hebrew, 
Paul said: 

XXII 

"BKETHRBN and Fathers, listen to the defense I now make to 
you." Hearing him speaking to them in the Hebrew language, 
they kept all the more quiet. He continued: "I am a Jew, 
born in Tarsus, in Cilicia, but brought up in this city, educated 
at the f eetpf Gamaliel in exact knowledge of our ancestral Law, 
and I was zealous for God as you all are to-day. I persecuted 
this Way to the death, binding and delivering into prison both 
men and women, as the High Priest and all the eldership can 
testify for me. From them I received letters to the brethren 
and was journeying to Damascus in order to bring back in 
chains to Jerusalem for punishment those who had gone there. 



THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 241 

It happened that as I was journeying and nearing Damascus, 
about noon, suddenly a great light flashed from heaven around 
me. I fell to the ground and heard a voice saying to me, ' Saul, 
Saul, why are you persecuting me?' I asked, 'Who is speak- 
ing?' He said to me, 'I am Jesus the Nazarene, whom you are 
persecuting.' My companions saw the light, but did not hear 
the voice of him who spoke to me. I said, 'What shall I do, 
Lord?' The Lord said to me, 'Rise and go into Damascus, and 
there you will be told about all that it has been appointed for 
you to do,' Since I could not see, owing to the brightness of 
that light, my companions led me by the hand, and so I entered 
Damascus. 

"Then a man named Ananias, a strict observer of the Law 
and highly esteemed by all the Jews who lived there, came to 
see me and stood by me and said, 'Brother Saul, receive your 
sight,' and I, at that moment, could see him. He said, 'The 
God of our fathers has appointed you to know his will, and to 
see the Righteous One and to hear the voice from his mouth, 
for you shall be a witness for him to all men of what you have 
seen and heard. And now why delay? Rise, be baptized and 
wash away your sins, calling upon his name.' 

"After I had returned to Jerusalem, and was praying in the 
Temple courts, I fell into a trance and saw Jesus saying to me, 
'Hasten and depart quickly from Jerusalem, for they will not 
receive your testimony concerning me.' But I said, 'Lord, 
they know that I used to imprison and beat from synagogue to 
synagogue those who believe in thee, and when the blood of 
Stephen thy martyr was shed I myself was standing by and 
approving it, and taking care of the cloaks of those who were 
putting him to death.' But he said to me, 'Go, for I will send 
you far away to Gentiles.'" 

They listened up to this point, but now they broke out, 
shouting, "Away with such a fellow from the earth! He ought 
never to have lived!" While they were shouting and rending 
their garments and throwing dust into the air, the Tribune 
ordered him to be led into the barracks and directed that he 
should be examined with the lash, so that he might know for 
what crime they were shouting so against him. 



242 THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 

When they had tied him up with the thongs, Paul said to the 
Centurion who was standing by, " Is it lawful for you to scourge 
a man who is a Roman, and without a trial? " On hearing that, 
the Centurion went to the Tribune and told Mm," What are you 
going to do? For this man is a Roman." Then the Tribune 
came to him and said, "Tell me; are you a Roman?" He said, 
"Yes." The Tribune said, " I obtained this citizenship by pay- 
ing a great sum of money." Paul said, "But I was born to it." 
At once those who were about to examine him went away from 
him, and the Tribune was alarmed when he learned that he was 
a Roman, because he had chained him. 

On the next day, wishing to know certainly why he was 
accused by the Jews, the Tribune loosed Paul and ordered the 
high priests and all the Council to assemble, and brought Paul 
down and stood him before them. 

XXIII 

PAUL fixed his eyes on the Council and said, "Brethren, I have 
conducted myself with all good conscience toward God up to 
this day." The High Priest Ananias told those who stood near 
him to strike him on the mouth. Then Paul said to him, "God 
will soon strike you, you whitewashed wall. Are you sitting to 
judge me by the Law and yet violating the Law by ordering me 
to be struck?" Those who stood by said, "Are you insulting 
God's High Priest?" Paul said, "I did not know, brethren, 
that he was High Priest. It is written, 'Thou shalt not speak 
evil of the Ruler of thy people.'" Then Paul, perceiving that 
one party was of Sadducees and the other of Pharisees, shouted 
out in the Council, "Brethren, I am a Pharisee, a son of Phar- 
isees. I am being tried for the hope of the resurrection of the 
dead." On his saying this, a dissension arose between the 
Pharisees and Sadducees, and the assembly became divided. 
For the Sadducees say that there is no resurrection nor any 
angel or spirit, but the Pharisees confess both. So a great 
uproar arose, and some of the scribes of the party of the 
Pharisees arose and contended, saying, "We find nothing wrong 
in this man. What if a spirit has spoken to him, or an angel?" 
When the strife was becoming violent, the Tribune, fearing 



THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 243 

that Paul might be torn to pieces by them, ordered the soldiers 
to go down and take him from the midst of them and bring him 
into the barracks. 

On the following night the Lord stood beside Paid and said, 
"Courage! As you have witnessed for me in Jerusalem, so 
you must witness in Rome." "When it was day, the Jews made 
a conspiracy and bound themselves by an oath not to eat or 
drink until they had killed Paul. There were more than forty 
who had taken this oath. They came to the high priests and 
elders and said, " We have bound ourselves by an oath to taste 
nothing until we have killed Paul. Now therefore you and the 
Council must ask the Tribune to bring him down to you, as if 
you were going to inquire more exactly about him, and we, 
before he comes near, will be ready to put him out of the way." 

But the son of Paul's sister heard of the ambush, and he 
came and entered the barracks and told Paul. Paul called to 
him one of the centurions and said, "Take this young man to 
the Tribune, for he has something to tell him." He took him 
and led him to the Tribune and said, " Paul, the prisoner, called 
me and asked me to bring this young man to you. He has some- 
thing to say to you." The Tribune took him by the hand and led 
him aside and asked, "What is it that you have to tell me?" 
He said, "The Jews have agreed to ask you to bring Paul down 
to-morrow to the Council to inquire something more exactly 
about him. But do not yield to them, for more than forty men 
of them are lying in ambush, and they have taken an oath not 
to eat or drink until they have killed him ; and now they are 
ready, expecting a promise from you." The Tribune dismissed 
the young man after charging him, " Tell no one that you have 
revealed this to me." Then calling to him two of the centurions 
he said, "Prepare two hundred soldiers to go to Csesarea, and 
seventy horsemen and two hundred spearmen, at nine o'clock 
to-night." They were to provide animals for Paul to ride and 
take him safely to Felix the Governor. He wrote a letter in 
the following form: "Claudius Lysias to his Excellency, 
Governor Felix: greeting. This man was seized by the Jews and 
was about to be killed by them when I came up with soldiers 
and rescued him, having learned that he was a Roman. Wish- 



244: THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 

ing to find what was the charge that they had against him I 
took him down to their Council. I found him accused regarding 
disputed questions of their law, but of nothing deserving of 
death or of bonds. Information has come to me that there will 
be a plot against the man, and so I am sending him at once to 
you, and I have commanded his accusers to state their case 
against him before you." 

So the soldiers, according to their orders, took Paul and con- 
ducted Mm by night to Antipatris. On the next day they let 
the horsemen go on with him, but they themselves returned to 
the barracks. The horsemen came on to Csesarea and deliv- 
ered the letter to the Governor, and also placed Paul before 
him. He read the letter and asked of what province ^he 
was, and learned that he was from Cilicia. Then he said, "I 
will hear what you have to say when your accusers also arrive." 
He gave orders that Paul should be guarded in Herod's castle. 

XXIV 

AFTER five days the High Priest Ananias came down with cer- 
tain elders and an advocate named Tertullus, and they spoke 
against Paul to the Governor, When Paul had been called in, 
Tertullus began to accuse him, saying, "Because we enjoy 
great peace through your administration and reforms are 
taking place for this nation through your prudence, we accept 
it always and everywhere, most excellent Felix, with all grati- 
tude. But not to burden you further, I beg you in your fairness 
to hear us briefly. We have found this man a pest and an in- 
citer of sedition among all the Jews throughout the world, and 
a leader of the sect of the Nazarenes. He even tried to dese- 
crate the Temple courts, but we overpowered him. You 
yourself can examine him and learn from him as to all these 
things of which we are accusing him." The Jews joined in the 
attack upon him, affirming that these things were so. 

Paul answered, when the Governor nodded to him to speak, 
"Because I know that for many years you have been a judge to 
this nation, I f$el courage in defending myself. You can as- 
certain that it is not more than twelve days since I went up to 
Jerusalem to worship. Neither did they find me discussing 



TEE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 245 

with any one ia the Temple courts nor making any tumultuous 
gatherings in the synagogues nor anywhere in the city, nor can 
they bring you proofs of their accusations against me. 

"This I do confess to you, that in the Way which they'call 
a heresy I worship the God of our fathers, believing all things 
that are according to the Law and what is written in the Proph- 
ets and having the hope in God which they themselves also 
accept that there will be a resurrection both of the just and 
of the unjust. And in this I take pains, to have always a clear 
conscience toward God and toward men. 

"After many years I came to my nation to make gifts of 
charity and offerings. They found me in the Temple thus 
occupied and purified, with no crowd or noise but there 
were some Jews from Asia, who ought to have been here before 
you to present their accusations if they had anything against 
me, or let these themselves say what wrong they found in me 
when I stood before the Council; unless it was in the single 
assertion that I shouted as I stood among them, 'It is re- 
garding the resurrection of the dead that I am on trial to-day 
before you !'" 

Felix adjourned the case, since he was well informed regard- 
ing the Way, saying, "When Lysias the Tribune comes down, 
I will inquire into your matters." He gave orders to the Cen- 
turion to guard him, but to let him have indulgence, and not to 
hinder any of his friends from attending to his wants. 

After some days Felix came with Drusilla his wife, who was 
a Jewess, and sent for Paul and heard him regarding faith in 
Christ Jesus. While Paul was reasoning about righteousness 
and self -discipline and the judgment that is to come, Felix be- 
came alarmed and said," Go for the present. When I find a con- 
venient time I will send for you." At the same time he was in 
hopes that money would be given him by Paul and therefore 
he used to send for him more frequently and converse with him. 
But at the end of two years Felix received Porcius Festus as a 
successor, and, wishing to do the Jews a favor, he left Paul 
in chains* 



24:6 THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 

xxv 

PESTUS entered the province and after three days went up to 
Jerusalem from Csesarea. There the high priests and the lead- 
ers of the Jews spoke to him against Paul and begged as a fa- 
vor that he would send for him to Jerusalem, intending to have 
an ambush and kill Mm O n the road. But Festus answered that 
Paul was being kept in Csesarea and that he himself was going 
back very soon. "Let those of you who can," he said, "go 
down with me, and, if there is anything wrong about the man, 
let them bring their charges against him." 

After spending not more than eight or ten days among them, 
he went down to Csesarea and on the next day took his seat on 
the judge's bench and ordered Paul to be brought in. When he 
had come in, the Jews who had come down from Jerusalem 
stood around him and brought many serious charges, which 
they were unable to prove, while Paul claimed in his own 
defense, "Neither against the Jewish Law nor against the 
Temple courts nor against Caesar, have I committed any 
wrong." 

Festus, wishing to gain favor with the Jews, asked Paul, 
"Are you willing to go up to Jerusalem and there be tried for 
this before me?" Paul said, "I am standing before Caesar's 
bar, where I ought to be tried. I have not harmed any Jews in 
anything, as you very well know. If I am in the wrong and 
have committed anything worthy of death, I do not ask not to 
die. But if there is nothing in the accusations of these men, no 
one has the power to give me up to them. I appeal to Caesar." 
Then Festus, after talking with his council, answered, "You 
have appealed to Caesar; to Caesar you shall go." 

When some days had passed, Agrippa the King and Bernice 
came to Caesarea to pay their respects to Festus. As they were 
spending a good many days there, Festus laid Paul's case before 
the King. "There is a man here," he said, "who was left a 
prisoner by Felix, against whom when I was in Jerusalem the 
high priests and the elders of the Jews had much to say, asking 
to have him condemned. I answered them that it is not the 
custom of the Romans to give up any person for punishment 



THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 247 

before the accused has his accusers face to face and has oppor- 
tunity for defense against the charge. 

"So they came along down here and, without making any de- 
lay, on the very next day I took my seat on the judge's bench 
and ordered the man to be brought in. When his accusers arose, 
they brought no charge of such crimes as I was expecting, but 
they had some disputes with him about their own religion 
and concerning a certain Jesus who had died and whom Paul 
affirmed to be alive. Being at a loss about a question of this 
kind, I asked if he would be willing to go to Jerusalem and be 
tried there on the charges. But when Paul appealed to be kept 
for the examination of the Emperor, I ordered him to be kept 
until I could send him to Csesar." Agrippa said to Festus, "I 
should like to hear the man myself." "To-morrow," he re- 
plied, "you shall hear him." 

So on the next day Agrippa came and Bernice with much 
display, and they entered the auditorium with the military 
tribunes and the principal men of the city, and at Festus 1 
command Paul was led in. Festus said, "King Agrippa and 
all present here with us, you see this man against whom all the 
multitude of the Jews pleaded with me, both in Jerusalem and 
here, crying out that he ought not to live any longer. But I 
understood that he had done nothing worthy of death, and 
when he himself had appealed to the Emperor, I decided to 
send him. Concerning him I have nothing certain to write to 
my Lord. Therefore I have brought him before you all, and 
especially before you, King Agrippa, that after an examination 
I may have something to write. For it seems to me unreasonable 
in sending a prisoner not to specify the charges against him." 

XXVI 

AGRIPPA said to Paul, " You are at liberty to speak for your- 
self." Then Paul stretched out his hand and made his defense: 
"In regard to all of the things of which I am accused by Jews, 
King Agrippa, I consider myself fortunate that I am to make 
my defense to-day before you, since you are especially expert 
in all Jewish customs and questions. Therefore I pray you to 
hear me patiently. 



248 THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 

"My life from boyhood, which was from the beginning among 
my own nation and in Jerusalem, all Jews know. They knew me 
from long ago, if they were willing to testify, and that according 
to the strictest sect of our religion I lived a Pharisee. And now I 
stand to be tried for the hope of the promise which God made 
to our fathers, to which our twelve tribes devotedly serving 
God night and day hope to attain. For this hope I am accused 
by the Jews, O King. 

"Why do all of you consider it incredible if God raises dead 
men? I thought with myself that I ought to do much against 
the name of Jesus the Nazarene. And I did it in Jerusalem 
and many holy men I shut up in prison, getting authority from 
the high priests, and when they were put to death I gave my 
vote against them. In all the synagogues and often I punished 
them and compelled them to say profane words. Being ex- 
cessively mad against them, I pursued them even to foreign 
cities. 

"Thus engaged, as I was journeying to Damascus with au- 
thority and commission from the high priests, about midday, 
on the road, I saw, O King, a light above the brightness of the 
sun shining from heaven around me and my companions. We 
all fell to the ground and I heard a voice saying to me in 
Hebrew, 'Saul, Saul, why are you persecuting me? It is hard 
for you to kick against the goad/ I said, 'Who is speaking?' 
He said, 'I am Jesus whom you are persecuting. But rise and 
stand on your feet: for I have appeared to you for the very 
purpose of appointing you a servant and a witness of the times 
you have seen me and of the times I shall appear to you. I will 
deliver you from your people and from the Gentiles, to whom 
I am sending you, to open their eyes and turn them from dark- 
ness to light and from the power of Satan to God, that they may 
receive forgiveness of sins and inheritance among those who 
are made holy by faith in me/ After that, King Agrippa, I was 
not disobedient to the heavenly vision, but first to the people 
in Damascus and then to the people of Jerusalem and through 
all the land of Judaea and to the Gentiles, I proclaimed that 
they should repent and turn to God and do deeds suitable for a 
change of heart* 



THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 249 

"For this reason Jews seized me in the Temple courts and 
tried to kill me. But obtaining help from God I have con- 
tinued until this day witnessing to small and great, saying 
nothing but what the prophets and Moses said would be, that 
the Christ would suffer and that he first, by rising from the 
dead, would proclaim light to our people and to the Gentiles." 

While Paul was thus defending himself, Festus said loudly, 
"You are raving, Paul. Much learning is driving you insane." 
''I am not insane," he said, "most noble Festus, but am utter- 
ing words of truth and soberness. The King knows about this, 
and to him I speak with perfect frankness, for I am persuaded 
that not one of these things has escaped his attention, for this 
has not been done in a corner. King Agrippa, do you believe 
the prophets? I know that you believe them." Agrippa said 
to Paul, "With little effort you are persuading me to become 
a Christian." Paul said, "I would to God that whether with 
little or with much, not only you, but all who hear me this day, 
would become such as I am except for these chains." 

Then the King rose and the Governor and Bernice and those 
who had been sitting with them, and after withdrawing they 
said to one another, "This man is doing nothing deserving of 
death or chains." Agrippa said to Festus, "This man could 
have been set at liberty if he had not appealed to Caesar." 

XXVII 

WHEN it was decided that we should sail for Italy, they com- 
mitted Paul and certain other prisoners to a centurion named 
Julius, of an imperial battalion. Going on board a ship of 
Adramyttium which was about to sail to the places along the 
coast of Asia we put to sea. Aristarchus, a Macedonian of 
Thessalonica, was with us. On the next day we reached Sidon, 
where Julius treated Paul kindly and allowed him to go to see 
his friends and enjoy their attentions. Putting to sea from 
there, we sailed under the lee of Cyprus because the winds were 
contrary. After crossing the sea off Cilicia and Pamphylia, we 
came to Myra in Lycia. There the centurion found an Alex- 
andrian ship bound for Italy and put us on board of her. By 
slow sailing for many days we with difficulty arrived off Cnidus. 



250 THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 

Then the wind being against us, we sailed under the lee of 
Crete off Salmone and with difficulty got past it and came to 
a place called Fair Havens, near which was the city of Lasea. 

When much time bad passed and sailing was now dangerous 
because it was already after the Fast, Paul addressed them. 
"Men," he said, "I see that the voyage is going to be rough 
and with much loss not only of the cargo and the ship but also 
of our lives." But the Centurion listened more to the sailing 
master and the ship owner than to what Paul said, and as the 
harbor was not convenient to winter in, the majority adopted the 
purpose of sailing away on the chance of being able to reach 
Phoenix and winter there. Phoenix is a harbor of Crete facing 
the southwest and the northwest. When the south wind blew 
softly, thinking that they had secured their purpose, they 
weighed anchor and coasted along Crete. 

But before -long a hurricane, such as is called Euraquilo, 
swept down off the land. When the ship was caught and un- 
able to keep her head to the wind, we gave up and let her drive 
before it. Running under the lee of an island called Cauda, we 
contrived with difficulty to secure the small boat. When we 
had got it in, we used ropes to undergird the ship. Fearing that 
we might get stranded on the Syrtis, they lowered the sail and 
so drifted. So violently were we battered by the storm that on 
the next day they lightened the ship and on the third day with 
their own hands they threw over the ship's tackle. When for 
many days neither sun nor stars appeared and no small tempest 
lay on us, at last all hope of our being saved was being taken 
away. After they had long gone without food, Paul stood up 
in the midst of them and said, " Men, you ought to have listened 
to me and not to have sailed away from Crete and met this rough 
experience and loss. But now I beg you to have courage, for 
there will be no loss of life of any of you, but only of the ship. 
For this night an angel of the God whose I am and whom I 
serve stood by me and said, ' Never fear, Paul ! You must stand 
before Caesar. And now God has granted to you all the men 
who are sailing with you.' So cheer up, men. For I trust in 
God that it will be as it has been told me. We must, however, - 
run on to a certain island.' 7 



THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 251 

When the fourteenth night came, as we were being driven 
through the Adriatic, about midnight the sailors surmised that 
land was getting near. Sounding they found twenty fathoms, 
and after a little they sounded again and found fifteen fathoms. 
Then fearing that they might run into rocky places, they cast 
out four anchors from the stern and prayed for day to come. 
The sailors were intent on escaping from the ship and lowered 
the small boat into the sea under the pretense of laying out 
anchors from the bow, but Paul said to the Centurion and the 
soldiers, "Unless these men stay in the ship, you cannot be 
saved." Then the soldiers cut the ropes of the small boat and 
let her fall off. Until day began to dawn, Paul kept urging all to 
take food. He said, "To-day is the fourteenth day that you 
have been on the watch fasting, not taking anything. There- 
fore, I beg you, take some food. For this is for your safety. 
Not a hair of the head of any one of you is going to perish." 
Saying this he took a loaf and gave thanks to God before all and 
broke it and began to eat. Then all cheered up and themselves 
took food. We in the ship were in all two hundred and seventy- 
six souls. After eating heartily, they lightened the ship, throw- 
ing over the wheat into the sea. 

When day came they did not recognize the land, but they 
observed a bay with a beach. Into this they planned to run the 
ship if they could. So abandoning the anchors they left them 
in the sea; at the same time loosening the bands of the steering 
oars and raising the foresail to the wind, they made for the 
beach. But falling into a place where there were cross-currents 
, they ran the ship aground. The bow stuck fast and remained 
immovable, but the stern was breaking up under the violence 
of the sea. 

The soldiers* advice was to kill the prisoners for fear that 
some one of them might swim out and escape. But the Cen- 
turion, wishing to save Paul, kept them back from their plan. 
He ordered those who could swim to jump overboard first and 
get to shore, and the rest to follow, some on boards and some on 
things from the ship. And so all got safe to land* 



252 THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 

XXVHI 

WHEN we were safe ashore, we found that the island was called 
Melita. The foreign people showed us uncommon kindness. 
For they kindled a fire and welcomed us all because of the rain 
that was falling and the cold. Paul had collected a bundle of 
sticks and laid it on the fire, when a snake came out of the 
heat and fastened on his hand. When the foreigners saw the 
creature hanging from his hand, they said to one another, "Cer- 
tainly this man is a murderer, whom, although he has escaped 
the sea, Justice does not permit to live." He however shook off 
the creature into the fire and felt no harm. They kept watch* 
ing to see him swell up or suddenly fall down dead. But after 
watching a long time and seeing nothing amiss happen to him, 
they changed their minds and said that he was a god. 

In the neighborhood of that place were lands belonging to 
the Governor of the island, whose name was Publius. He 
welcomed us and for three days hospitably entertained us. It 
happened that the father of Publius was lying ill with fever 
and dysentery. Paul went in to see him and prayed and laid 
his hands on him and healed him. After this happened, the rest 
in the island who had infirmities came also and were healed. 
They bestowed many honors on us and when we sailed they 
put on board supplies for our needs. 

After three months we sailed in a ship that had wintered in 
the island. She was from Alexandria and her figure-head was 
the IVin Brothers. Landing at Syracuse we remained there 
three days. From there we came around and got to Rhegium, 
After one day there, a south wind sprang up and we came on 
the second day to Puteoli. Here we found brethren and were 
begged by them to stay seven days. And so we came to Rome. 
From there the brethren, when they got news of us, came 
to meet us as far as the Market of Appius and the Three 
Taverns. On seeing them Paul thanked God and took courage. 
When we reached Rome, Paul was allowed to live by himself 
with a soldier who guarded him. 

After three days he invited the leading men among the Jews, 
and when they had assembled, he said to them, "Brethren, 



THE ACTS OF THE APOSTLES 253 

although I had done nothing against our people or our ancestral 
customs, I was delivered up as a prisoner from Jerusalem into 
the hands of the Romans. They, after investigating my case, 
wished to set me free because I had done nothing deserving of 
death. But when the Jews spoke against it, I was compelled 
to appeal to Caesar, not that I have any charge to bring against 
my own nation. For this reason I have invited you to see me 
and talk with me; because it is for the sake of the hope of 
Israel that I have this chain around me." 

They said to him, "We on our part have received no letters 
about you from Judsea nor has any one of the brethren come 
and reported or spoken anything evil of you. We think it well 
to hear from you what your views are; for as to this sect we 
know that it is everywhere spoken against." 

They appointed a day for him and many came to Him at his 
lodging. He explained to them, testifying to the kingdom of 
God, trying to persuade them concerning Jesus from the Law of 
Moses and from the Prophets, from early morning until evening. 
Some were persuaded by what he said and some did not believe. 
They dispersed, disagreeing with one another, after Paul had 
said one word, "Well said the Holy Spirit through Isaiah, the 
prophet, to your fathers, 'Go to this people and say, You will 
hear plainly but you will not understand, and you will see 
plainly but you will not perceive. For the heart of this people 
has grown fat and with their ears they are hard of hearing and 
their eyes they have shut, so that they may never see with 
their eyes nor hear with their ears nor understand with their 
heart and repent, so that I may heal them.' Therefore be it 
known to you that this salvation of God has been sent to the 
Gentiles. They will listen." 

Paul remained two whole years in his own rented lodging 
and received all who came to him, proclaiming the kingdom 
of God and teaching about the Lord Jesus Christ with all free- 
dom of speech, unhindered. 



PAUL'S LETTER TO THE ROMANS 

I 

PAUL, a servant of Christ Jesus, called to be an apostle, set 
apart to bear the good news of God, which he foretold through 
his prophets in Holy Scripture, concerning his Son Jesus Christ 
our Lord (who became one of the descendants of David ac- 
cording to the flesh, and was with power proved to be the Son 
of God according to the Spirit of holiness by his resurrection 
from the dead) ; through whom we obtained grace and apostle- 
ship to promote obedience of faith for the sake of his name, 
among all the Gentiles, among whom are you, called by Jesus 
Christ; to all who are in Rome, beloved by God, called to be 
holy: 

Grace to you and peace from God our Father and the Lord 
Jesus Christ. 

First of all I thank my God through Jesus Christ for all of 
you, because your faith is spoken of through all the world. 
For God, whom I serve in my spirit in the good news of his Son, 
is my witness how unceasingly I make mention of you, always 
in my prayers asking if I may somehow at some time by the 
will of God find the way open to come to you. For I long to see 
you that I may impart to you some spiritual gift of grace in 
order that you may be strengthened, that is, that I may be 
encouraged with you and by you through our mutual faith, 
yours and mine* I am not willing that you should be ignorant, 
brethren, that often I have purposed to come to you (though 
until now I have been hindered), in order that I might have 
some fruit among you as among the other Gentiles. I am a 
debtor to Greeks and to Barbarians, to wise men and to un- 
thinking men; so, for my part, I am eager to tell the good news 
also to you in Rome. 

For I am not ashamed of the good news. It is the power of 
God for salvation to every one who believes, to the Jew first 



LETTER TO THE ROMANS 255 

and also to the Greek. For a righteousness of God is revealed 
in it from faith to faith, as it is written, " He who is righteous by 
faith shall live." 

For the wrath of God is revealed from heaven against all im- 
piety and wickedness of men who hold the truth but practice 
unrighteousness. Because what may be known of God is man- 
ifest within them, for God has manifested it to them. For 
God's invisible qualities his everlasting power and deity 
are, since the creation of the world, clearly seen, being known 
from what he has made. So they are without any excuse. For 
although they knew God they did not glorify him as God and 
did not give him thanks, but fell into futile speculations and 
their stupid hearts were darkened. Boasting of being wise, 
they became fools and changed the glory of the incorruptible 
God into images of mortal man, and of birds and beasts and 
reptiles. 

Therefore God gave them over, in the lusts of their hearts, to 
uncleanness, to dishonor their bodies mutually. They changed 
the truth of God into a lie, and reverenced and paid worship to 
the creature rather than to the Creator who is blessed 
forever, Amen! Therefore God gave them over to disgraceful 
passions. For their females changed the natural use for one 
contrary to nature, and their males, leaving the natural use of 
the female, burned in their lust for one another, males with 
males practicing indecency and receiving in themselves the 
deserved penalty of their error. 

And as they did not think fit to keep God in their knowledge, 
God gave them over to an abandoned mind, to do the things 
that are shameful, filled with all injustice, wickedness, greed, 
malice, full of envy, murder, strife, fraud, malignant craftiness, 
whisperers, slanderers, hateful to God, insolent, arrogant, boast- 
ers, inventors of evil things, disobedient to parents, without 
common sense, without faithfulness, without family affection, 
without pity. They know the just judgment of God that those 
who practice such things are worthy of death, yet they not only 
do them themselves, but are pleased with those who practice 
them. 



256 LETTER TO THE ROMANS 

II 

THEREFORE you are without excuse, man, whoever you are, 
when you judge. For in judging another you condemn your- 
self. For you, the judge, practice the same things. But we know 
that the judgment of God is according to truth upon those who 
practice such things. Do you think, O man, you who judge 
those who practice such things while you do the same, that you 
will escape the judgment of God? Or do you despise the 
wealth of his kindness and forbearance and long-suffering, not 
knowing that the kindness of God is calling you to a change of 
heart? Are you with a hard and unrepentant heart treasuring 
for yourself wrath for the day of wrath and for the revelation 
of the just judgment of God? He will give to each an award 
according to his works. To those who by constancy in good 
work seek for glory and honor and immortality he will award 
life eternal. But to those of a partisan spirit who do not obey 
the truth, but obey wickedness, there will be wrath and hot 
anger. Distress and crushing calamity will fall upon every 
human soul that works evil, upon the Jew first and also upon 
the Greek. But glory and honor and peace will come to every 
one who works good, to the Jew first and also to the Greek, 
For God has no partiality. 

As many as have sinned without a law will perish without a 
law, and as many as have sinned under law will be judged by 
law (for it is not the hearers of law who are righteous before 
God, but iihe doers of law are pronounced righteous; for 
when Gentiles who have no law do by nature what the Law 
enjoins, these, although they have no law, are a law to them- 
selves; they show the requirements of the Law written in their 
hearts, since their conscience corroborates it and their thoughts 
argue in mutual accusation or in self-defense), on the day when 
God judges the secrets of men through Jesus Christ, as my 
good news sets forth. 

But if you bear the name of Jew and rely upon the Law, and 
make your boast in God and know his will and are a judge of 
things that differ, because you have been taught out of the Law 
and are confident that you yourself are a guide of the blind, 



LETTER TO THE ROMANS 257 

a light of those who are in darkness, an instructor of the un- 
wise, a teacher of the simple, because you have the form of 
knowledge and of truth in the Law you who are teaching 
another, do you not teach yourself? You who preach not to 
steal, do you steal? You who say not to commit adultery, do 
you commit adultery? You who abhor idols, do you rob tem- 
ples? You who boast of the Law, do you dishonor God by 
breaking the Law? For "The name of God is reviled among 
the Gentiles because of you," as it is written. 

Circumcision has value if you obey the Law. But if you are a 
breaker of the Law, your circumcision has become uncircum- 
cision. If an uncircumcised man keeps the requirements of the 
Law, shall not his uncircumcision be credited for circumcision? 
And the natural uncircumcision if it keeps the Law will judge 
you who with a written code and circumcision are still a law- 
breaker. For it is not he who is one outwardly that is a Jew, 
nor is that circumcision which is outward in the flesh'. But he 
who is one secretly is a Jew, and circumcision is of the heart 
and in the spirit, not in the letter. His praise l is not from men, 
but from God. 

Ill 

WHAT then is the advantage of the Jew, or what is the benefit of 
circumcision? Much in every way. First, they were intrusted 
with the oracles of God. For what if some were faithless, will 
their faithlessness prevent the faithfulness of God? Never. 
Let God be true, but every man a liar, as it is written, "That 
thou mayest be proved right in thy words and triumph when 
thou art judged." But if our unrighteousness shows the right- 
eousness of God, what shall we say? Is God unrighteous when 
he inflicts his wrath? (I am speaking humanly.) Never. 
If so how can God judge the world? But if the truth of God 
has become more abundant to his glory through my lie, why 
am I still condemned as a sinner? We are not going to say, as 
some people slanderously affirm that we say, "Let us do evil 
that good may come/' are we? The condemnation of such 
people is just. 

1 The name Jew in Hebrew means "Praised," 



258 LETTER TO THE ROMANS 

What then? Have we an advantage? Not at all. We have 
already brought the charge against both Jews and Greeks that 
they are all under sin, as it is written, "There is not even one 
righteous ; there is none that seeks God. All have turned away; 
together they have become worthless; there is none who does 
what is useful, not even one. Their throat is an open sepulcher; 
with their tongues they deceive ; the poison of asps is under their 
lips. Their mouth is full of cursing and bitterness; their feet 
are swift to shed blood; ruin and misery are in their paths. 
The path of peace they do not know. There is no reverence 
for God before their eyes." 

We know that all that the Law says, it says to those who are 
under the Law, that every mouth may be shut and all the world 
may come under the condemnation of God. Therefore by 
works of the Law no human being will be pronounced righteous 
before him. For through the Law comes the knowledge of sin. 

But now, apart from law, a righteousness of God has been 
revealed, confirmed by the Law and the Prophets a righteous* 
ness from God through faith in Jesus Christ for all believers. 
For there is no difference. All have sinned and have come short 
of the glory of God. All are pronounced righteous by his grace 
through the redemption that is in Christ Jesus, whom God has 
set forth as a propitiation by his blood through faith, for the 
manifestation of his righteousness, because of the passing over 
of previous sins in the forbearance of God for a manifestation 
at the present time of his righteousness, that he may himself 
be righteous and may accept as righteous him who has faith 
in Jesus. 

Where then is boasting? It is excluded. By what law? 
That of works? No, but by the law of faith. For we'reason that 
a man is pronounced righteous by faith aside from works of 
law. Does God belong to the Jews only? Does he not belong 
also to the Gentiles? Yes, to the Gentiles, if God is one and 
will pronounce the circumcision righteous by faith and the 
uncircumcision righteous through faith. Do we then by faith 
nullify the Law? Never. On the contrary we establish the Law. 



LETTER TO THE ROMANS 259 

IV 

WHAT then shall we say that Abraham, our forefather accord- 
ing to the flesh, experienced? For if Abraham was pronounced 
righteous because of works, he had something to boast of. But 
he had nothing before God; for what says the Scripture? 
"Abraham believed God, and it was credited to him for right- 
eousness." To him who works, wages are credited not as by 
grace, but as due; but to him who does not work, but believes 
in him who calls the unrighteous man righteous, his faith is 
credited for righteousness. Just so David speaks of the blessed- 
ness of the man to whom God credits righteousness apart from 
works, " Blessed are they whose lawless acts have been for- 
given, and whose sins have been covered over. Blessed is the 
man whose sin the Lord will not charge up to him." Does this 
blessedness come to the circumcision, or also to the uncircum- 
cision? For we say, "Faith was credited to Abraham for 
righteousness." How was it credited, when he was in circum- 
cision or in uncircumcision? Not in circumcision, but in un- 
circumcision. And he received the sign of circumcision as a 
seal of the righteousness of faith that he had in uncircumcision, 
so that he should be the father of all who believe while un- 
circumcised, and righteousness should be credited to them; 
and the father of the circumcised, that is, of those who are not 
only circumcised, but who walk in the steps of the faith which 
our father Abraham had while uncircumcised. 

It was not through the Law that the promise came to Abra- 
ham or to his descendants that he should be the heir of the 
world, but through the righteousness of faith. For if those who 
are of the Law are heirs, faith is emptied of value and the 
promise is nullified. For the Law works wrath. But where there 
is no law, neither is there lawbreaking. Therefore all depends 
on faith, that it may be of grace, and thus the promise be sure 
for all his descendants, not only those who are of the Law, but 
also those who are of the faith of Abraham, who is the father 
of all of us (as it is written, " I have made thee a father of many 
nations ") , in the view of the God whom he believed, who makes 
alive the dead and calls things that are not as if they were. 



260 LETTER TO THE ROMANS 

Abraham, when hope was past, believed in hope so that 
he became the father of many nations, according to what was 
said to him, "So shall your descendants be "; and without being 
weakened in faith he recognized his own body as dead, when 
he was about a hundred years old, and the deadness of Sarah's 
womb. Still he did not hesitate through want of faith in the 
promise of God, but was strong in faith, thus giving glory to 
God, and was fully confident that what God had promised he 
was able to perform. Therefore it was credited to him for 
righteousness. 

It was not written for his sake only, that it was credited to 
him, but also for our sake, to whom it will be credited if we 
believe in him who raised up from the dead Jesus our Lord, 
who was delivered up on account of our sins and was raised 
again that we might be accounted righteous. 



So then, since we have been accounted righteous by faith, 
let us have peace with God, through our Lord Jesus Christ. 
Through him we obtained entrance into this grace in which we 
stand and exult in hope of the glory of God. Not only so, but 
we also exult in trials, knowing that trial develops endurance, 
and endurance develops a tested character, and a tested char- 
acter develops hope, and hope does not disappoint, for the 
love of God has been poured out in our hearts through the 
Holy Spirit granted to us. 

For while we were still without strength Christ, at the due 
time, died for the unrighteous. Hardly for a righteous man 
will any one die. For a good man some one perhaps may dare 
to die. But God shows his own love to us in that while we were 
still sinners Christ died for us. Much more then, now that we 
have been pronounced righteous through his blood, shall we 
be saved from wrath by him. For if while enemies we were 
reconciled to God through the death of his Son, much more, 
now that we are reconciled, shall we be saved by his life. And 
not only so, but we exult in God through our Lord Jesus Christ, 
through whom we have now obtained the reconciliation. 

Therefore as through one main sin entered the world, and 



LETTER TO THE ROMANS 261 

through sin death entered, and so death spread to all men, since 
all sinned for down to the time of the Law sin was in the 
world, and yet sin is not charged where there is no law; but 
death reigned from Adam to Moses even over those who had 
not sinned like Adam, who is the type of him who was coming. 
But the gracious gift is not like the fall. For if by the fall of the 
one the many sinned, much more did the grace of God and the 
free gift by the grace of the one man Jesus Christ abound to the 
many. And the free gift was not like the sentence that came 
through one who sinned; for the sentence came from one fall 
for condemnation, but the free gift was that men should be 
called righteous in spite of many falls. For if by the'f all of one 
man death reigned through that one, much more those who 
receive the abounding grace and the free gift of righteousness 
will reign in life through one, that is, through Jesus Christ. 
As then through one fall sentence came upon all men and they 
were condemned; so through one righteous act the free gift 
came to all men so that they are pronounced righteous and live. 
For as by the disobedience of the one man the many were set 
down as sinners, so by the obedience of the one the many will 
be set down as righteous. But law came in alongside that the 
fall might be greater; but where sin became greater grace 
became greater still, in order that as sin reigned in death 
grace might reign through righteousness and issue in life eternal 
through Jesus Christ our Lord. 

VI 

WHAT shall we say then? Shall we remain in sin so that grace 
may be great? Never. How shall we who died to sin still live 
in it? Are you ignorant that all of us who have been baptized 
into Christ Jesus were baptized into his death? We were 
buried with him by baptism into death, in order that as Christ 
was raised from the dead through the glory of the Father, so we 
too might walk in newness of life. For if we have grown into 
union with him by the likeness of his death, surely we shall be 
united with him by the likeness of his resurrection. For we 
know this, that our old-time humanity was crucified with him, 
in order that the sinful body might be made powerless, that we 



262 LETTER TO THE ROMANS 

might no longer be slaves of sin. For one who has died has been 
pronounced righteous and free from sin. But if we died with 
Christ we believe that we shall live with him, knowing that 
Christ, after being raised from the dead, dies no more; death 
no more reigns over him. For the death that he died, he died 
to sin once for all; but the life that he lives, he lives to God. 
So you must think yourselves dead to sin, but living to God 
in Christ Jesus. 

Do not let sin reign in your mortal body so that you will 
obey its lusts, and do not yield your members to sin as the 
instruments of wickedness; but present yourselves to God as 
men once dead, but now living, and yield your members to 
God as the instruments of righteousness. For sin shall not be 
king over you; for you are not under law, but under grace. 

What then? May we sin because we are not under law, but 
under grace? Never. Do you not know that to whom you 
present yourselves as servants intending obedience, you are 
the servants of the one you obey, whether of sin, resulting in 
death, or of obedience, resulting in righteousness? Thanks be 
to God that though you were slaves of sin you became obedi- 
ent from the heart to the type of teaching in which you were 
instructed. You were made free from sin and made servants 
to righteousness. I am speaking humanly on account of the 
weakness of your human nature. As you did present your mem- 
bers as servants to impurity and to lawlessness to do lawlessness, 
so now you have presented your members as servants to right- 
eousness for holy living. When you were servants of sin you 
were free from righteousness. What fruit did you have then? 
Fruit of which you are now ashamed; for the end of those 
things is death* But now freed from sin and having become 
servants of God you have your fruit in holy living and its 
outcome, life eternal. For the wages of sin is death, but the 
gracious gift of God is life eternal in Christ Jesus our Lord. 

VII 

ABE you ignorant, brethren, for I am speaking to those who 
know law, that the Law rules over a person while he is living? 
For a married woman is by law bound to her husband while 



LETTER TO THE ROMANS 263 

he is living. But if the husband dies, she is freed from the law 
of her husband. Therefore while her husband is living she is 
called an adulteress if she becomes another man's. But if her 
husband dies she is free from the law, so that she is not an 
adulteress when she becomes another man's. So, my brethren, 
you were made dead to the Law through the body of Christ, 
that you might become wedded to another, to him who was 
raised from the dead, that we might bear fruit to God. 

For when we were in the flesh the sinful passions that arise 
through the Law were active in our members, so that we bore 
fruit to death. But now the Law has been made inoperative on 
us, since we have died to that by which we were held, so that 
we serve in newness of the spirit and not in oldness of the 
letter. 

What shall we say then? Is the Law sin? Never. But I should 
not have come to know sin except through the Law. I should 
not have known lust if the Law had not said, "Thou shalt 
not lust." Sin, taking occasion through the commandment, 
worked in me every lust. For apart from the Law sin is dead. 
I was living once, apart from law. But when the commandment 
came, sin began to live and I died, and the commandment 
which meant life was found to mean death. For sin, taking 
occasion through the commandment, deceived me and by it 
killed me. 

So the Law is holy and the commandment is holy and just 
and good. Did then what is good become death to me? Never. 
But sin, that it might appear sin, worked death in me through 
the good, in order that it might become beyond measure sinful* 
For we know that the Law is spiritual; but I am fleshly, sold 
under sin. For what I am doing I do not understand. For not 
what I choose is what I practice, but what I hate, this I do. But 
if I do what I do not choose, I agree with the law that it is 
right. And now it is no longer I that do it, but the Sin that 
dwells in me. I find then this rule, when I choose to do the 
right, that evil is present with me. I delight in the Law in my 
inner man, but I see another law in my members, warring with 
the law of my mind and leading me captive under the law of sin 
which is in my members. Wretched man that I am! who will 



264 LETTER TO THE ROMANS 

deliver me from this body of death? Thanks be to God through 
Jesus Christ our Lord! So then I myself with my mind serve 
the Law of God, but with my flesh the law of sin. 

vm 

THERE is therefore now no condemnation to those who are in 
Christ Jesus. For the law of the Spirit of life in Christ Jesus 
has freed you from the Law of sin and death. For, what was 
impossible for the Law, because it was weak through the flesh 
God, sending his own Son in the form of sinful flesh and for sin, 
condemned the sin that is in the flesh, so that the righteousness 
required by the Law might be fulfilled in us who live not ac- 
cording to the flesh, but according to the spirit. For those who 
are living according to the flesh have their minds on the things 
of the flesh, but those who are living according to the spirit 
have their minds on the things of the spirit. Fleshly minded- 
ness is . death, but spiritual mindedness is life and peace. 
Therefore fleshly mindedness is hostile to God; for it is not 
subject to the Law of God, nor can it be. Those who are in 
the flesh cannot please God. 

But you are not in the flesh, but in the spirit, if the Spirit of 
God dwells in you. If any one has not the Spirit of Christ, that 
man is not his. If Christ is in you the body is dead because of 
sin, but the spirit is life because of righteousnesss. If the Spirit 
of him who raised up Jesus from the dead dwells in you, he 
who raised up Christ Jesus from the dead gives life even to 
your mortal bodies, through his indwelling Spirit in you. 

So then, brethren, we are debtors, not to the flesh to live 
according to the flesh; for if you live according to the flesh, you 
will die; but if by the Spirit you put to death the practices of 
the body, you will live. For as many as are led by the Spirit 
of God, they are the sons of God. For you did not receive 
a spirit of bondage leading again to fear, but you received a 
spirit of sonship, in which we cry, Abba, Father. The Spirit 
itself witnesses with our spirits that we are children of God. 
And if children, we are also heirs heirs of God, joint heirs 
with Christ, since we suffer with hi that we may also be 
glorified with him. 



LETTER TO THE ROMANS 265 

For I estimate that the sufferings of this present time amount 
to nothing in comparison with the glory that is to be revealed 
for us. For the earnest expectation of the creation is waiting 
for the revelation of the sons of God. For the creation was 
made subject to folly not willingly, but for the sake of him who 
subjected it, in hope, because the creation itself will be freed 
from the slavery of decay into the glorious freedom of the 
children of God. For we know that all the creation groans in 
the pangs of childbirth until now. And not the creation alone, 
but we ourselves also who have the first-fruits of the Spirit, 
groan within ourselves in expectation of the sonship, the lib- 
eration of our bodies. For we are saved by hope; but hope that 
is seen is not hope, for what any one sees, why does he hope 
for? But if we hope for what we do not see, we patiently wait 
for it. 

Thus also the Spirit helps us in our weakness. For we do not 
know what to pray for as we ought, but the Spirit itself inter- 
cedes for us with sighs beyond words. And he who searches 
hearts knows what is the mind of the Spirit, because he inter- 
cedes for the holy according to the will of God. 

We know that all things work together for good to those who 
love God, to those who are called according to his purpose. 
For those whom he foreknew he also predetermined to be con- 
formed to the image of his Son, that he might be the first-born 
among many brethren. And those whom he predetermined he 
also called, and those whom he called he also pronounced right- 
eous, and those whom he pronounced righteous he also glorified. 

What then shall we say to this? If God is for us, who is 
against us? He who did not spare his own Son, but gave him 
up for us all, how shall he not with him graciously give 
us all things? Who shall bring a charge against God's elect? 
God pronounces them righteous. Who is there to condemn? 
Christ Jesus died, or rather was raised, and he is on the right 
hand of God interceding for us. Who shall separate us from 
Christ's love? Shall trial or distress or persecution or famine 
or nakedness or danger or sword? (As it is written, "For thy 
sake we are killed all the day. We are counted as sheep for 
slaughter.") On the contrary, in all these we more than con- 



266 LETTER TO THE ROMANS 

quer through him who loved us. For I am persuaded that 
neither death nor life nor angels nor archangels, nor things 
present nor things to come, nor powers, nor height nor depth 
nor any other created thing will be able to separate us from 
God's love in Christ Jesus our Lord. 

IX 

I AM speaking the truth in Christ; I am saying nothing false; 
my conscience bears witness with me in the Holy Spirit that I 
have great grief and unceasing pain in my heart. For I could 
wish myself to be accursed and cast away from Christ for the 
sake of my brethren, my kinsmen according to the flesh, who 
are Israelites, whose is the sonship and the glory and the 
covenants and the reception of the law and the worship and 
the promises; whose are the fathers and from whom by physi- 
cal descent the Christ came. God who is over all be blessed 
through the ages! Amen. 

Not that God's word has failed* For not all who are of 
Israel are Israel; nor because they are descendants of Abraham 
are they all children; but "through Isaac shall your descend- 
ants be named." That is, not the physical descendants are 
children, but the children of the promise are counted for 
descendants. For the wording of the promise was, "At this 
time next year I will come and Sarah shall have a son." And 
not only so, but when Rebecca was about to bear children to 
our father Isaac, though the same man was father of both 
children and they were not yet born and had done nothing 
good or bad, in order that the purpose of God according to his 
choice might stand, not according to their works, but accord- 
ing to his call, it was said to her, "The older shall serve the 
younger." In the same way it is written, "Jacob I loved, but 
Esau I hated." 

What shall we say -then? Is there unrighteousness on God's 
part? Never. For he says to Moses, "I will have mercy on 
whom I have mercy and I will have compassion on whom I 
have compassion." So then it is not a question of the man who 
wills or who runs, but of God who shows mercy. For the Scrip- 
ture says to Pharaoh, "For this very purpose I raised you up 



LETTER TO THE ROMANS 267 

in order to show my power upon you and to have my name 
proclaimed in all the earth." So then he has mercy on whom 
he chooses and he hardens whom he chooses. 

You will say to me then, " Why does he still find fault? For 
who has opposed his will?" But who are you, O man, who are 
answering back to God? Does the thing that is moulded say 
to the moulder, "Why have you made me so? " Has not the 
potter the right to make from the same lump of clay one vessel 
for honor and another for dishonor? What if God, choosing to 
exhibit his wrath and to make known what he can do, bore in 
long patience the vessels of wrath made for destruction, and in 
order to make known the richness of his glory upon the vessels 
of mercy which he had prepared for glory called us not only 
from the Jews but also from the Gentiles? As also he says in 
Hosea, "Those who are not my people I will call my people, 
and her who has not been beloved I will call beloved, and in the 
place where it was said to them, 'You are not my people/ there 
they shall be called sons of the living God." Isaiah cried aloud 
regarding Israel, "Though the number of the sons of Israel is 
as the sand of the sea, only a remnant will be saved. For the 
Lord will execute his sentence on the earth completely and 
speedily." Even as Isaiah predicted, "Unless the Lord of ar- 
mies had left us some descendants, we should have become like 
Sodom and should have been made to resemble Gomorrah." 

What shall we say then? That Gentiles who did not pur- 
sue righteousness obtained righteousness, the righteousness of 
faith, but Israel pursuing after the Law of righteousness did not 
attain to the Law. Why? Because they pursued it not by 
faith, but as it were by works. They stumbled over that stum- 
bling stone, as it is written, "See, I am laying in Zion a stum- 
bling stone, a rock to trip over, but he who has faith in him will 
never be put to shame." 

x 

BBETHBEN, the desire of my heart and my prayer to God for 
them is for their salvation. For I bear them witness that they 
have a zeal for God, but not an intelligent one. For, ignorant 
of God's righteousness and seeking to establish their own, they 



268 LETTER TO THE ROMANS 

have not submitted to God's righteousness. For Christ is the 
end of the Law for righteousness to every believer. For Moses 
writes that he who does the righteousness of the Law shall live 
by it. But the righteousness of faith says, " Do not say in your 
heart, 'Who shall ascend into heaven?*'' that is, to bring 
Christ down "or, 'Who shall descend into the abyss?'" 
that is, to bring up Christ from the dead. But what does it say? 
"The word is near you, in your mouth and in your heart" 
that is, the word of faith which we are proclaiming, that if you 
confess with your mouth the Lord Jesus and believe in your 
heart that God raised him from the dead you will be saved. 
For with the heart a man believes and becomes righteous, and 
with the mouth he confesses and attains salvation. For the 
Scripture says, "No one who believes in him will be put to 
shame." For there is no difference between Jew and Greek. For 
there is the same Lord of all, rich toward all who call upon 
him. For " Every one who calls on the name of the Lord will be 
saved." 

How then shall they call on him in whom they have not 
believed? How shall they believe in hirn of whom they have 
not heard? How shall they hear without some one to proclaim 
him? How shall they proclaim him unless they are sent? As 
it is written, "How beautiful are the feet of those who bring 
good news!" 

But have not all heard the good news? For Isaiah says," Lord, 
who has believed our report?" So then faith comes from the 
report and report comes through the word of Christ. But I 
say, it cannot be true that they have not heard, can it? On 
the contrary, "Their sound has gone out into all the earth and 
their words to the ends of the world, " I say, it cannot be that 
Israel did not know, can it? First Moses says, " I will excite you 
to jealousy by what is not a nation and by a foolish nation I will 
provoke you to anger." And Isaiah makes bold to say, " I was 
found by those who were not seeking me: I became manifest 
to those who were not inquiring for me." But to Israel he 
says, "All day long I stretched forth my hands to a people who 
disobey and answer back," 



LETTER TO THE ROMANS 269 

XI 

I SAY then, can it be that God has repudiated his people? 
Never. For I am an Israelite, a descendant of Abraham, of the 
tribe of Benjamin. God has not repudiated his people whom 
he foreknew. Do you not know what the Scripture says in the 
story of Elijah, how he prays to God against Israel? "Lord, 
they have killed thy prophets : they have demolished thy altars, 
and I only am left and they are seeking my life." But what 
was the divine response? " I have left to myself seven thousand 
men who have not knelt to Baal." So at this present time there 
is a remnant according to a gracious selection. But if it is by 
grace it is no longer because of works, for then grace would be 
no longer grace. 

What then? Israel has not found what it is seeking, but the % 
chosen have found it. And the rest have been made dull, as it is 
written, "God gave them a stupid spirit, eyes not for seeing 
and ears not for hearing until this day." And David says, 
"Let their table become a snare and a trap, a stumbling block 
and a retribution. Let their eyes be darkened so as not to see, 
and bow down their backs always." 

I say, then, have they stumbled just in order that they may 
fall? Never. But by their fall salvation comes to the Gentiles 
so as to arouse the emulation of the Jews. If their fall is the 
riches of the world and their loss the riches of the Gentiles, 
how much more will their full restoration be I 

But I say to you Gentiles since I am an apostle to Gen- 
tiles I glory in my office, if in any way I may arouse to emula- 
tion my own kindred and save some of them if their rejec- 
tion is the reconciliation of the world, what will their welcome 
back be but life from the dead? If the first fruit was holy, 
so will the mass be; and if the root was holy, so will be the 
branches. 

If some of the branches were broken off and you, who are^a 
wild olive, were grafted in among them and became a sharer in 
the root and rich sap of the olive, do not exult over the branches. 
Even though you exult, it is not you who are supporting the 
root, but the root is supporting you. You will say then, 



270 LETTER TO THE ROMANS 

"Branches were broken off so that I might be grafted in." 
Certainly, for lack of faith they were broken off, and you are 
standing by faith. Do not be proud, but be afraid. For if God 
did not spare the natural branches, neither will he spare you. 
See the kindness and the rigor of God, toward those who fell 
rigor, but toward you God's kindness, if you continue in his 
kindness, else you too will be cut off. And they if they do not 
continue in their unbelief will be grafted in. For God is able to 
graft them back. For if you were cut from your natural stock, 
a wild olive tree, and were grafted, contrary to nature, into a 
good olive tree, how much more will the natural branches be 
grafted into their own olive tree! 

I would not have you ignorant, brethren, of this mystery, 
that you may not be self-conceited, because stupidity in a 
measure has come upon Israel until the full number of Gentiles 
comes in, and thus all Israel will be saved, as it is written, 
"From Zion will come the deliverer. He will remove ungodli- 
ness from Jacob. And this is my covenant with them when I 
take away their sins." According to the good news they are 
enemies for your sake, but according to the promise they are 
beloved for their fathers' sake. God never changes his mind 
about his gifts and his call. For as you were once disobedient 
to God, but now have found mercy through their disobedience, 
so they have now been disobedient in your time of mercy, that 
they too may now obtain mercy. For God has shut up all in 
unbelief in order that he may have mercy on all. O the depth 
of the wealth both of the wisdom and the knowledge of God! 
How unsearchable are his judgments, how untraceable his 
ways! For who has known the mind of the Lord? Or who 
became his counsellor? Who first gave to him so as to receive 
repayment? For from him and through him and to hiyr> are all 
things. To him be glory through the ages! Amen. 

xn 

I BEG you therefore, brethren, by the mercies of God, to present 
your bodies as a living and holy sacrifice, pleasing to God 
your rational worship. Do not follow the fashions of this 
world, but be transformed by the renewal of your minds so as 



LETTER TO THE ROMANS 271 

to recognize what is the good and pleasing and perfect will of 
God. Through the grace given to me I say to every one among 
you not to think of himself more highly than he ought, but to 
think so as to become wise, as God has allotted to each a meas- 
ure of faith. For as in one body we have many members and 
the members do not all have the same function, so we who are 
many are one body in Christ and individually members of one 
another. Having gifts differing according to the grace given to 
us, if it is prophecy, let us use it according to the proportion of 
our faith; if it is service, let us use it in service. Let the teacher 
use his gift in teaching. Let the exhorter use his gift in exhort- 
ing. Let him who gives do it in simplicity. Let him who 
manages do it earnestly. Let him who helps the needy do it 
cheerfully. 

Let your love be without pretense. Abhor what is evil; cling 
to the good. Have brotherly love toward one another like 
family affection, in honor preferring one another, never flagging 
in zeal, fervent in spirit, serving the Lord, rejoicing in hope, 
patient in trial, constant in prayer, contributing to the needs of 
the holy, devoted to hospitality. 

Pray for blessings on your persecutors, blessings, not curses. 
Rejoice with those who rejoice, weep with those who weep. 
Be in harmony with one another. Do not be thinking of high 
things, but be content with humble things. Do not become 
conceited. Repay to no one evil for evil. Aim at what is honor- 
able in the sight of all men. If possible, so far as depends on 
you, live at peace with all men. Do not revenge yourselves, 
beloved, but give place to God's wrath. For it is written, 
"Vengeance is mine; I will repay, says the Lord." But, "if 
your enemy is hungry, feed him; if he is thirsty, give him drink; 
for in so doing you will heap coals of fire on his head." Do not 
be overcome by evil, but overcome evil with good. 

xin 

LET every person be obedient to the superior authorities. For 
there is no authority except from God and the actual authori- 
ties have been appointed by God. So he who resists the author- 
ity opposes the arrangement of God. Those who resist will 



272 LETTER TO THE ROMANS 

bring on themselves condemnation. For rulers are not a terror 
to good deeds, but to bad. Do you wish not to fear the author- 
ity? Do what is good and you will have praise from it. For he 
is a servant of God to promote your good. But if you are doing 
evil, be afraid; for he does not bear the sword to no purpose. 
For he is God's servant to inflict his wrath on him who practices 
evil. Therefore we must be obedient, not only because of the 
punishment but as a matter of conscience. 

For this reason also you pay tribute. For they are God's 
officers attending to this very thing. Pay to all their dues, 
tribute to whom tribute is due, custom to whom custom is due, 
respect to whom respect is due, honor to whom honor is due. 
Owe no one anything, except to love one another. He who loves 
the other has fulfilled the Law. For the commandments, " Thou 
shalt not commit adultery/' " Thou shalt not commit murder," 
" Thou shalt not steal," " Thou shalt not covet," and any other 
that there may be, are summed up in this: "Thou shalt love 
thy neighbor as thyself." Love works no evil to a neighbor. 
Love therefore is full obedience to the Law. 

Live thus because you know this crisis, for it is already time 
for you to awake from sleep. For now our salvation is nearer 
than when we became believers. The night is far spent, the day 
draws near. Let us put away the deeds of darkness, let us put 
on the weapons of light. Let us live becomingly as in the day, 
not in revelry and drunkenness, not in sensuality and licen- 
tiousness, not in quarrelling and jealousy. But put on the Lord 
Jesus Christ and make no provision for gratifying physical 
passions. 

xiy 

WELCOME him who is weak in the faith, but not in order 
to decide disputed questions. (One man believes in eating all 
things. The weak man eats vegetables. The man who eats is 
not to despise the one who does not eat, and he who does not 
eat is not to judge the one who eats. For God has accepted him. 
Who are you to judge the servant of another? To his own 
master he stands or falls, and stand he will, for God is able to 
make hJTp stand. 



LETTER TO THE ROMANS 273 

One man esteems one day above another, another man 
esteems every day. Let each be fully persuaded in his own 
mind. He who regards the day regards it to the Lord and he 
who eats eats to the Lord, for he gives thanks to God. And he 
who does not eat abstains for the Lord and gives thanks to 
God. For no one of us is living for himself and no one dies for 
himself. If we live we live for the Lord and if we die we die for 
the Lord. So whether we live or die we are the Lord's. For to 
this end Christ died and lived again, in order that he might be 
Lord both of the dead and of the living. 

But you, why do you judge your brother? Or you, why do 
you treat your brother with contempt? For we shall all stand 
before the judgment seat of God. For it is written, "As I live, 
says the Lord, every knee shall bend to me and every tongue 
shall confess to God." So then each one of us shall give account 
for himself to God. Therefore let us no longer judge one an- 
other, but let us rather decide not to put a stumbling block in 
a brother's way, or anything to trip him up. 

I know and am persuaded in the Lord Jesus that nothing is 
defiling in itself. But to one who thinks anything to be defiling 
it is defiling. If because of your food your brother is grieved, 
you are no longer walking in love. Do not with your food 
destroy him for whom Christ died. Do not let what is good to 
you be spoken of as evil. For the kingdom of God is not food 
and drink, but righteousness and peace and joy in the Holy 
Spirit. For he who thus serves Christ is pleasing to God and 
esteemed by men. Therefore, let us seek for what makes for 
peace and our mutual upbuilding. Do not for the sake of food 
break down the work of God. AH things are pure, but any- 
thing is evil to the man who eats it with a feeling of doing 
wrong. It is noble not to eat meat or to drink wine or to do 
anything over which your brother stumbles. The faith that 
you have, have to yourself] before God. Blessed is the man 
who does not condemn himself for what he allows himself. He 
who has doubts and still eats stands condemned, because he is 
not acting from faith. But whatever does not spring from faith 
is sin. 



274 LETTER TO THE ROMANS 

xv 

WE who are strong ought to bear the infirmities of the weak, 
and not to please ourselves. Each of us should please his 
neighbor for his good so as to build him up. For Christ did not 
please himself, but, as it is written, "The reproaches of those 
who were reproaching thee fell on me." All that was written of 
old was written for our instruction, in order that by patience 
and by the encouragement of the Scriptures we may have hope. 
May the God of patience and encouragement grant to you to 
have harmony with one another, in the manner of Christ Jesus, 
so that with one mind and one voice you may glorify the God 
and Father of our Lord Jesus Christ. 

Therefore, welcome one another as Christ welcomed us, to 
the glory of God. For I say that Christ became a servant of cir- 
cumcision for the sake of God's truth, in order to confirm the 
promises given to the fathers and that the Gentiles might 
glorify God for his mercy, as it is written, "For this will I con- 
fess thee among the Gentiles and sing to thy name." And again 
Scripture says, "Rejoice, Gentiles, with his people." And 
again, "Sing to the Lord, all Gentiles, and let all the peoples 
praise him." And again Isaiah says, "There will be a root of 
Jesse, and one who rises to rule Gentiles: in him Gentiles will 
hope." May the God of hope fill you with all joy and peace in 
believing, so that you may abound in hope through the power 
of the Holy Spirit! 

I am persuaded, my brethren yes, I myself regarding 
you, that you are full of goodness, filled with all knowledge, 
able to instruct one another. But I have written rather boldly 
to you, partly to remind you, because of the grace given to me 
from God, that I may be a minister of Christ Jesus to the 
Gentiles, in priestly service of the good news of God, in order 
that the offering of the Gentiles may be acceptable, sanctified 
by the Holy Spirit. I do boast in Christ Jesus of my work for 
God. For I will not venture to speak except of what Christ has 
done through me to promote obedience of Gentiles, by word 
and deed, through the power of signs and wonders, by the power 
3f the Holy Spirit, so that from Jerusalem around to Illyricum 



LETTER TO THE ROMANS 275 

I have fully proclaimed the good news of Christ, being ambi- 
tious to tell the good news where Christ has not been named, so 
that I might not build on any other man's foundation, but as 
it is written, " They who have had no message of him shall see, 
and they who have not heard shall understand." 

This is why I have been so much hindered in coming to you. 
But now having no more territory in these regions and hav- 
ing for many years had a strong desire to come to you while 
making a journey to Spain, I hope to see you as I pass through 
and to be furthered on my journey by you, after first partially 
satisfying my desire of being with you. But now I am on my 
way to Jerusalem to render service to the holy. For Macedonia 
and Achaia have been pleased to make a contribution for the 
poor among the holy in Jerusalem. They have been pleased 
to do this and indeed they are indebted to them. For if the 
Gentiles have shared their things of the spirit, they owe them 
sacred service in things of the body. So after completing this 
and sealing to them this fruit I shall come away and pass by 
you to Spain. And I know that when I come to you it will be 
in the fullness of the blessing of Christ. 

I beg you, brethren, for the sake of our Lord Jesus and the 
love of the Spirit to join me in wrestling in prayer to God on 
my behalf, that I may be delivered from the unbelievers in 
Judaea and that nay service in Jerusalem may be pleasing to 
the holy, that I may come to you with joy by the will of God 
and be refreshed with you. The God of peace be with all of 
youl Amen. 

XVI 

I COMMEND to you our sister Phoebe, a servant of the church in 
Cenchrese, that you may receive her in the Lord in a way wor- 
thy of the holy, and help her in any matter in which she may 
need you. For she has been a provider for many, myself 
included. 

Give my greetings to Prisca and Aquila, my fellow workers 
in Christ Jesus, who for my life risked their own necks, to whom 
not I alone give thanks, but also all the churches of the Gen- 
tiles. Give my greetings also to the church in their house. 



276 LETTER TO THE ROMANS 

Give my greetings to Epaenetus my beloved, who is the first- 
fruit of Asia for Christ. Give my greetings to Mary, who has 
worked hard for you. Give my greetings to Andronicus and 
Junias, men of my race and my companions in prison, who are 
eminent among the apostles, who also were in Christ before 
me. Give my greetings to Ampliatus my beloved in the Lord. 
Give my greetings to Urbanus our fellow worker in Christ, and 
to Stachys my beloved. Give my greetings to Apelles, that 
tested man in Christ. Give my greetings to the household of 
Aristobulus. Give my greetings to Herodion, who is of my race. 
Give my greetings to those of the household of Narcissus who 
are in the Lord. Give my greetings to Tryphsena and Try- 
phosa, those workers in the Lord. Give my greetings to Persis 
the beloved, who has worked hard in the Lord. Give my greet- 
ings to Rufus the chosen in the Lord, and to his mother and 
mine. Give my greetings to Asyncritus, Phlegon, Hermes, 
Petrobas, Hennas, and the brethren with them. Give my 
greetings to Philologus, and Julia, Nereus and his sister, and 
Olympas, and all the holy with them. Give my greetings to 
one another with a holy kiss. All the churches of Christ send 
their greetings to you. 

I beg you, brethren, to keep your eye on those who are mak- 
ing divisions and occasions for sin contrary to the teaching 
which you have learned, and to shun them. For such persons 
are not serving our Lord Christ, but their own stomachs, and 
by their smooth and pleasing talk they mislead the hearts of 
the innocent. For your 'obedience has come to the knowledge 
of all men. Therefore I rejoice over you, but I wish you to be 
wise regarding what is good, and simple in regard to what is 
evil. The God of peace will crush Satan under your feet 
shortly. 

The grace of our Lord Jesus be with you! 

Timothy, my fellow worker, sends his greeting, and so do 
Lucius and Jason and Sosipater, who are of my race. I, Tertius, 
who penned this letter, greet you in the Lord. Gaius, my 
host and the host of the whole church, sends his greetings. 
Erastus the city treasurer sends his greetings, and so does 
Quartus the brother. 



LETTER TO THE ROMANS 277 

To him who is able to make you strong according to the 
good news which I bear, and the proclamation of Jesus Christ, 
and according to the revelation of the mystery kept secret 
through ages, but now made manifest through the prophetic 
Scriptures by the command of the eternal God, to promote 
obedience to the faith made known to all the Gentiles to 
God, the only wise, be glory through Jesus Christ for the ages 
of the ages! 



PAUL'S FIRST LETTER TO THE CORINTHIANS 



PAUL called by the will of God to be an apostle of Christ Jesus, 
and Sosthenes our brother, to the Church of God in Corinth, 
made holy in Christ Jesus, called to be holy, with all every- 
where who call upon the name of our Lord Jesus Christ, their 
Lord and ours: 

Grace to you and peace from God our Father and from the 
Lord Jesus Christ! 

I am always thanking God for you because of the grace of 
God given to you in Christ Jesus, that you are rich in him in 
everything, in readiness of speech and in all knowledge, so 
that my testimony to Christ has been confirmed among you 
and so that you are not lacking in any gift while waiting for 
our Lord Jesus Christ to be revealed. He will keep you strong 
to the end and free from reproach on the day of our Lord 
Jesus Christ. God is faithful, and it is by him that you have 
been called into the fellowship of his Son, Jesus Christ our Lord. 

I beg you, brethren, in the name of our Lord Jesus Christ, 
all to say the same thing and not to have divisions among you, 
but to be united in the same mind and in the same opinion. 
For it has been told me regarding you, brethren, by Chloe's 
people, that there are dissensions among you. I mean that each 
of you is saying, "I belong to Paul," "I belong to Apollos," 
"I belong to Cephas," or, "I belong to Christ." Has Christ 
been divided? Was Paul crucified for you? Or were you bap- 
tized in the name of Paul? I am thankful that I baptized no 
one 'of you except Crispus and Gaius, so that no one can say 
that you were baptized in my name. I baptized also the 
household of Stephanas. Beyond that I do not know that I 
baptized any one else. For Christ did not send me to baptize, 
but to proclaim the good news not in wisdom of words, 
that the cross of Christ might not be emptied of meaning. 



FIRST LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 279 

For the message of the cross is foolishness to those who are 
perishing, but to us who are being saved it is the power of 
God. For it is written, "I will destroy the wisdom of the wise 
and I will bring to nought the prudence of the prudent.'' 
Where is the wise? Where is the scribe? Where is the debater 
of this world? Has not God made foolish the wisdom of the 
world? For when in the wisdom of God the world by its wis- 
dom did not come to know God, God was pleased to save 
through the foolishness of our proclamation those who believe. 
Jews ask for signs and Greeks seek for wisdom, but we proclaim 
Christ crucified, to Jews a stumbling block, to Gentiles folly, 
but to those who are called, whether Jews or Greeks, Christ, 
the power of God and the wisdom of God. For God's foolish- 
ness is wiser than men and God's weakness is stronger than 
men. 

Consider your own call, brethren, that not many wise, 
humanly speaking, not many powerful, not many high-born 
have been called. But God has chosen the foolish things of the 
world to put to shame the wise, and God has chosen the weak 
things of the world to put to shame the strong, and God has 
chosen the low-born things and the things of no account, the 
things that are not, to defeat the things that are, that no 
human being may boast in God's presence. By God's act you 
are in Christ Jesus, who has become to us wisdom from God and 
righteousness and holiness and deliverance, so that, as it is 
written, "Let him who boasts boast in the Lord/' 

II 

AND I in coming to you, brethren, did not come with superi- 
ority of speech or of wisdom, announcing to you the testimony 
of God. For I determined to know nothing among you but 
Jesus Christ and him crucified. And I came to you in weak- 
ness and in fear and in much trembling, and my speech and my 
proclamation were not in persuasive words of wisdom, but with 
spiritual and powerful proof, that your faith might not depend 
on the wisdom of man but on the power of God. We do speak 
wisdom among the mature, but a wisdom not of this world nor 
of the defeated rulers of this world. But we speak a wisdom of 



280 FIRST LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 

God in a mystery, the hidden wisdom which God predestined 
before the world began for our glory. None of the rulers of 
this world knew it, for if they had known it they would not 
have crucified the Lord of glory. But as it is written, "What 
eye has not seen and what ear has not heard and what has not 
entered human mind, God has prepared for those who love 
him." To us God has revealed this by his Spirit, For the 
Spirit searches all things, even the depths of God. For who of 
men knows what pertains to a man except the spirit of the man 
which is in him. Just so no one knows what pertains to God 
except the Spirit of God. But we did not receive the spirit of 
the world, but the Spirit that is from God, so that we know the 
gracious gifts of God. And these we speak of, not in words 
taught by man's wisdom, but in words taught by the Spirit, 
expressing spiritual things in spiritual words. But the animal 
man does not receive the things of the Spirit of God, for they 
are foolishness to him, nor can he know them because they are 
spiritually understood. But the spiritual man understands all 
things though he himself is understood by no one. For "Who 
has known the mind of the Lord? Who will teach him?" But 
we have the mind of Christ. 

Ill 

AND I myself, brethren, could not speak to you as spiritual, but 
as fleshly, as babes in Christ. I fed you with milk, not solid 
food. For you were not able to take it. -Nor are you yet able, 
for you are still fleshly. For while there is jealousy and strife 
among you, are you not fleshly and living in man's way? For 
when one says, "I belong to Paul/' and another, "I belong to 
Apollos," are you not men? What then is Apollos? What is 
Paul? Servants through whom you were led to faith, as the 
Lord granted to each of us. I planted, Apollos watered, but 
God made the seed grow. So then neither is he who planted 
anything nor he who watered, but God who makes the seed 
grow. Each will receive his own reward according to his own 
labor. We are God's fellow workers: you are God's farm 
God's building. 
According to the grace of God granted to me, as a wise 



FIRST LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 281 

master-builder I have laid a foundation and another is building 
on it. But let each be careful how he builds on it. For no one 
can lay any other foundation than that which has been laid, 
which is Jesus Christ. If any one builds on this foundation 
gold, silver, costly stones, wood, hay, straw every one's 
work will become manifest. For the day will show it, because 
it will be revealed in fire and the fire will test each one's work, 
of what quality it is. If the work which any one has built 
stands he will get a reward. If any one's work burns up he will 
suffer loss, though he himself will be saved, but as through fire. 
Do you not know that you are God's temple and the Spirit of 
God dwells in you? If any one mars the temple of God, God 
will mar him, for the temple of God is holy, and you are the 
temple. 

Let no one deceive himself. If any one of you thinks himself 
wise in this world, let him become a fool in order to become 
wise. For the wisdom of this world is foolishness in God's 
sight. For it is written, "He catches the wise in their own 
craftiness," and again, "The Lord knows the reasonings of the 
wise to be futile." Therefore let no one boast in men. For all 
things are yours Paul or Apollos or Cephas or the world or 
life or death or things present or things to come all are 
yours and you are Christ's and Christ is God's. 

IV 

LET a man view us as servants of Christ and stewards of God's 
mysteries. Moreover, in the case of stewards it is required that 
a man be found faithful. But it is of very slight importance to 
me to be judged by you or any human court. I do not even 
pass judgment on myself. For I am not conscious of any 
wrong, but I am not proved by that to be faultless. The Lord 
is my judge. So do not judge anything before the time, before 
the Lord comes. He will throw light on the hidden things of 
darkness and will make manifest the purposes of hearts. Then 
each one will have his praise from God. 

All this, brethren, I have applied to myself and Apollos for 
your sake, that you may learn the maxim, "Nothing beyond 
what is written," and may not be puffed up in partisanship for 



282 FIRST LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 

one against the other. For who gives you superiority? What 
have you that you did not receive? Why are you boasting as if 
you had not received it? You are already fully satisfied. You 
have already become rich. You have become kings without us. 
Would that you had become kings so that we might be kings 
with you! For it seems to me that God has set us apostles out 
last of all as men doomed to death, that we may be a spectacle 
to the world and to angels and to men. We are fools for Christ's 
sake, but you are wise in Christ; we are weak, but you are 
strong; you have glory, but we are despised. Up to this present 
hour we are hungry and thirsty and naked and beaten. We 
wander about and labor, working with our own hands. When 
abused we bless, when persecuted we endure it, when slandered 
we entreat. We have come to be, as it were, the sweepings of 
the world, the riffraff of all things up to now. 

I am not writing this to shame you, but to warn you as my 
beloved children. For if you have ten thousand teachers in 
Christ, still you have not many fathers. For I was your father 
in Christ Jesus through the good news. So I beg you to be 
imitators of me. For this very purpose I have sent to you 
Timothy, who is my loved and faithful child in the Lord. He 
will remind you of my ways in Christ how I teach every- 
where in every church. 

Some persons have become puffed up, thinking that I am 
not coming to you. But I shall come to you shortly, if the 
Lord wills, and I will find out, not the talk of these puffed-up 
ones, but their power. For the kingdom of God is not in talk, 
but in power. Which do you wish? Shall I come with a rod or 
in love and a spirit of gentleness? 

V 

IT is generally reported that there is unchastity among you, 
and such unchastity as is not even among the Gentiles, so that 
a man has his father's wife! And you are puffed up with pride 
and have not rather grieved and taken steps to expel from among 
you the doer of this deed! For I, absent in body, but present 
in spirit, have already as if I were present judged the man who 
has acted thus. When you assembled in the name of the Lord 



FIRST LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 283 

Jesus and my spirit was also present with the power of our 
Lord Jesus, I decided to deliver over such a one to Satan for 
the destruction of the flesh, that the spirit may be saved in the 
day of the Lord. 

Your boasting is unbecoming. Do you not know that a little 
yeast sets the whole mass fermenting? Cleanse out the old 
yeast that you may be new dough, free from yeast, as indeed 
you are. For Christ, our Passover, has been sacrificed. So 
let us keep the festival, not with the old yeast nor with the 
yeast of evil and wickedness, but with the unleavened bread of 
sincerity and truth. 

I wrote to you in my letter not to associate with unchaste 
people, certainly not meaning the unchaste of this world, or 
the covetous or extortionate or idolaters, since in that case you 
would have to leave the world. But now I write to you not to 
associate with any one who is called a brother, if he is unchaste 
or covetous or idolatrous or abusive or drunken or extortionate 
not even to eat with such a one. For what business of mine 
is it to judge outsiders? Is it not for you to judge those inside? 
But outsiders God will judge. Expel the wicked man from 
among yourselves. 

VI 

DOBS any one of you, if he has a grievance against another, 
dare to bring the case before the unrighteous and not before 
the holy? Do you not know that the holy are going to judge 
the world? If the world is to be judged by you, are you unfit 
for the most trivial cases? Do you not know that we are to 
judge angels, to say nothing of affairs of this life? If then you 
have affairs of this life, do you ask men who in the view of the 
church count for nothing to sit as judges? I say this to your 
shame. Is it true that there is among you no one wise enough 
to judge between a man and his brother, but brother goes to 
law with brother and that before unbelievers? Now this is an 
utter failure on your part that you have lawsuits with one 
another. Why not rather let yourselves be wronged? Why not 
rather be defrauded? But you yourselves practice wrongs and 
frauds and that upon your brethren. Do you not know that 



284 FIRST LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 

unrighteous people will not inherit the kingdom of God? Make 
no mistake, neither the unchaste, nor idolaters, nor adulterers, 
nor those who practice unnatural vices, nor thieves, nor the 
avaricious, nor drunkards, nor the abusive, nor extortioners 
will inherit the kingdom of God. And such some of you were. 
But you have washed yourselves; but you have been made 
holy; but you have been pronounced righteous in the name of 
the Lord Jesus Christ and in the Spirit of our God. 

All things are lawful for me, but not everything is beneficial. 
All things are lawful, but I will not be overpowered by any- 
thing. Food of all kinds is for the stomach and the stomach 
for foods. But God will end the function of one and the other. 
The body is not for unchastity, but for the Lord, and the Lord 
is for the body. God raised the Lord and will also raise us 
through his power. Do you not know that your bodies are 
members of Christ? Shall I then take the members of Christ 
and make them members of a prostitute? Never! Do you not 
know that he who unites himself to a prostitute is one body 
with her? For God says, "The two shall become one flesh." 
He who is united to the Lord is one spirit. Shun unchastity. 
Every other sin that a man does is apart from the body, but 
the unchaste sins against his own body. Do you not know that 
your body is the temple of the Holy Spirit within you, which 
you have from God, and that you are not your own? For you 
were bought with a price. Glorify God then in your bodies. 

vn 

WITH reference to the matters you wrote of: It is an excellent 
thing for a man not to touch a woman. But because of the 
prevailing unchastity, let each man have his own wife and each 
woman her own husband. Let the husband pay his wife con- 
jugal dues and the wife her husband. The wife has not power 
over her own body, but her husband has. In the same way the 
husband has not power over his own body, but his wife has. 
Do not deprive one another, unless by agreement for a time, 
that you may have freedom for prayer, and again come to- 
gether. You must not let Satan tempt you through your lack 
of self-control. I say this by way of indulgence, not by way of 



FIRST LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 285 

command, I wish that every one were just as I am. But each 
has his own gift from God, one in one way and one in another. 

I say to the unmarried and the widows, it is excellent for 
them to remain as I do. But if they lack self-control, let them 
marry. It is better to marry than to burn. To the married I 
command yet not I, but the Lord that the wife is not to 
leave her husband (if she leaves him let her remain unmarried 
or be reconciled to her husband) and the husband is not to put 
away his wife. 

To the rest I say not the Lord: If any brother has a wife 
who is an unbeliever and she is pleased to live with him, let 
him not put her away. And if any woman has a husband who 
is an unbeliever and he is pleased to live with her, let her not 
put him away. For the unbelieving husband has been made 
holy by the wife and the unbelieving wife has been made holy 
by the husband. Otherwise your children would be impure, 
but now they are holy. But if the unbelieving one actually 
leaves, let him leave. The brother or sister is not under 
bondage in such cases; but God has called you to peace. For 
how do you know, wife, whether you will save your husband? 
Or how do you know, husband, whether you will save your 
wife? 

But, as the Lord has allotted to each, let each go on living as 
when God called him. So I prescribe in all the churches. Was 
any one already circumcised when called? Let him not efface it. 
Was any one called when uncircumcised? Let him not become 
circumcised. Circumcision is nothing and uncircumcision is 
nothing, but the keeping of the commandments of God is all. 
Let each stay in that condition in which he was called. Were 
you called when a slave? Let it not trouble you. On the 
contrary, even if you can become free, take it in preference. 
For the slave who has been called in the Lord is the Lord's 
freedman. Just so the free man, when called, is the slave of 
Christ. You were bought with a price. Do not become slaves 
of men. Let each one, brethren, stay in that condition in 
which he was called, close to God. 

In regard to unmarried women I have no command of the 
Lord, but I give my opinion as one who through the mercy of 



286 FIRST LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 

the Lord is trustworthy. I think then that this is an excellent 
thing on account of the present distress that it is an excel- 
lent thing for a person to be unmarried. Have you been bound 
to a wife? Seek not release. Have you been freed from a wife? 
Do not seek a wife. But even if you marry, you have not 
sinned. Even if a maiden marries, she has not sinned. But 
such will have trouble in the flesh, and I would spare you. 

But this I say, brethren: The time is shortened. For what 
remains let those who have wives be as if they had none, and 
those who weep as if they wept pot, and those who rejoice as 
if they rejoiced not, and those who buy as if they possessed 
nothing, and those who use the world as if not overusing it. 
For the present order of this world is passing away. 

I wish you to be free from worry. The unmarried man is 
anxious about the things of the Lord how he may please the 
Lord. The married man is anxious about the things of the 
world how he may please his wife, and his interest is divided. 
So the rmTnfl.TnV.H woman or the maiden is anxious about the 
things of the Lord, that she may be holy in body and spirit. 
But the married woman is anxious about the things of the 
world how she may please her husband. This I say for 
your benefit, not to throw a noose over you, but to promote 
decorum and constant devotion to the Lord without distrac- 
tion. 

If any one thinks that he is acting unbecomingly toward his 
virgin, if she is ripe for marriage and there is need, let him do 
what he will. He does not sin. Let them marry. He who 
stands firm in his heart, having no necessity, and has power 
over his own will and has decided in his heart to keep his virgin, 
will do well. So he who marries his virgin does well, and he 
who does not marry her will do better. 

A woman is bound as long as her husband is living. But if 
her husband falls asleep, she is free to marry whom she will, 
though only in the Lord. But in my opinion she is happier 
if she stays as she is. And I think that I have the Spirit of 
God. 



FIRST LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 287 

vm 

Now as to things that have been sacrificed to idols, we know 
that we all have knowledge. Knowledge puffs up, but love 
builds up. If any one thinks that he knows anything, he does 
not yet know as he ought to know. If any one loves God, he is 
known by him. Regarding the eating of things that have been 
sacrificed to idols, then, we know that an idol is nothing in the 
world, and that there is no God but one. And though there 
are so-called gods in heaven and on earth, for there are gods 
many and lords many, still to us there is one God the Father, 
of whom are all things and we for him, and one Lord, Jesus 
Christ, through whom are all things and we through him. 
But all have not this knowledge. Some, having been ac- 
customed to idols up to the present time, eat the food as a 
sacrifice to an idol, and their conscience being weak is stained, 
But food does not bring us near to God, for neither do we lose 
by not eating nor gain by eating. But be careful that this 
power of yours may not become a stumbling block to the weak. 
For if any one sees you who have knowledge reclining at table 
in an idol's temple, will not the conscience of that weak one be 
emboldened to eat things that have been sacrificed to idols? 
Thus the weak man is ruined by your knowledge the 
brother for whom Christ died. So sinning against the brethren 
and wounding their weak consciences you sin against Christ. 
Therefore if food makes my brother stumble I will not eat meat 
while the world stands, for fear of making my brother stumble, 

IX 

AM I not free? Am I not an apostle? Have I not seen Jesus 
our Lord? Are you not my work in the Lord? If to others I 
am not an apostle, certainly I am to you. For you are the seal 
of my apostleship in the Lord. My defence to those who criti- 
cize me is this: Have we not the right to eat and drink? Have 
we not the right to take about with us a sister as wife, as the 
rest of the apostles do and the brothers of the Lord and Cephas? 
Or am I only, and Barnabas, without the right not to do 
manual labor? Who ever serves as a soldier and supplies his 



288 FIRST LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 

own pay and rations? Who plants a vineyard and does not eat 
the fruit of it? Who keeps a flock and does not drink any of the 
milk of the flock? Am I saying these things from a man's point 
of view or does not the Law also say them? For in the Law of 
Moses it is written, "You shall not muzzle an ox when he is 
treading out grain." Is God thinking of the oxen? or does he 
say this wholly for our sakes? For our sakes; for it was written 
because the plowman ought to plow in hope and the thresher 
ought to thresh in hope of having a share. If we sowed for you 
things of the spirit, is it a great matter if we reap your things of 
the flesh? If others share this right over you, do not we still 
more? 

But we have not used this right. No, we endure all things 
in order not to cause any hindrance to the good news of 
Christ, Do you not know that those who do the work of the 
Temple eat the things that come from the Temple, and those 
who minister at the altar share with the altar? So the Lord 
has directed that those who proclaim the good news shall have 
their living from the good news. But I have used none of 
these rights and I am not writing this in order that it may be 
done in my case. For it would be better for me to die No 
one shall make my boast an empty one! For although I tell 
the good news I have nothing to boast of. For a necessity is 
laid upon me. Alas for me if I do not tell the good news! If 
I do it voluntarily I have a reward, but if reluctantly, I have 
been charged with a responsibility. What then is my reward? 
That in telling the good news I make the good news free, and 
do not take full advantage of my rights in the good news. 
For though I am free from all I have enslaved myself to all 
that I may gain the more. I became to the Jews a Jew, to gain 
the Jews; to those under law as under law, though not myself 
under law, to gain those who are under law. To those without 
law, I became as without law, though not without the law of 
God and under the law of Christ, to gain those who are without 
law. To the weak I became weak to gain the weak. To all men 
I became all things in order by all means to save some. I do all 
things for the sake of the good news that I may become a 
partner with it. 



FIRST LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 289 

Do you not know that those who run in a stadium all run, 
yet one gets the prize? Run so as to win. Every one who 
contends in the games practices self-restraint in all things. 
They do it to win a fading crown, but we for an unfading one. 
Thus I run with no uncertain goal: thus I strike, not as if 
pounding the air. On the contrary, I maul and master my 
body so that I may not, after preaching to others, become 
myself unable to stand the test. 



I DO not wish you to be ignorant, brethren, that our fathers 
were all under the cloud and all passed through the sea and all 
received baptism in the cloud and in the sea, and all ate the 
same spiritual food and all drank the same spiritual drink. 
For they drank from a spiritual rock that followed them, and 
the rock was Christ. But with the most of them God was not 
well pleased. For they were strewn in the desert. These things 
happened as warnings for us, that we may not be eager for evil 
things as they were eager. Be not idolaters, as some of them 
were, as it is written, "The people sat down to eat and drink 
and rose up to dance." Nor let us be unchaste, as some of them 
were and twenty-three thousand fell dead in one day. Nor let 
us try the patience of the Lord, as some of them tried him and 
were destroyed by serpents. Nor murmur, as some of them 
murmured and perished by the destroyer. These things hap- 
pened to those people as warnings and they were written for the 
instruction of us to whom the closing events of the ages have 
come. So let him who thinks that he is standing beware of 
falling. No trial has taken you but what belongs to human 
nature. God is faithful and he will not let you be tried beyond 
your power, but will make, with the trial, a way of escape so 
that you can endure it. 

Therefore, my beloved, shun idolatry. I speak as to thought- 
ful men. Judge for yourselves what I am saying. The cup of 
blessing which we bless, is it not a fellowship in the blood of 
Christ? The bread which we break, is it not a fellowship in the 
body of Christ? Because there is one bread we though many 
are one body; for we all partake of the one bread. Look at 



290 FIRST LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 

Israel according to the flesh; are not those who eat of the 
sacrifice partakers of the altar? What then am I saying? 
That meat sacrificed to idols is anything or that an idol is any- 
thing? But I say that what they sacrifice they sacrifice to 
demons and not to God, And I would not have you become 
partakers with demons. You cannot drink the cup of the 
Lord and the cup of demons. You cannot partake of the 
table of the Lord and the table of demons. Or are we arousing 
the jealousy of the Lord? Are we stronger than he? 

All things are lawful, but not all are beneficial. All things 
are lawful, but not all build up character. Let no one seek his 
own interest, but the interest of others. Everything that is 
sold in market eat, raising no questions of conscience. For 
"the earth is the Lord's and the fullness thereof." If any one 
of the unbelievers invites you and you wish to go, eat whatever 
is set before you, raising no questions of conscience. But if any 
one says to you, "This is meat that has been sacrificed," do 
not eat, for the sake of him who mentioned it and for con- 
science' sake conscience, I say, not yours, but the other 
man's. For why is my liberty judged by the conscience of 
another? If I partake with thanksgiving, why am I denounced 
for that for which I give thanks? 

Therefore, if you eat or if you drink or whatever you do, do 
all to the glory of God. Cause no offense either to Jews or 
Greeks or to the church of God, as I also in all things accom- 
modate myself to all men, not seeking my own interest but 
that of the many, in order that they may be saved. 

XI 

IMITATE me as I imitate Christ. I praise you because you 
remember me in all things and hold firmly the traditions as I 
passed them on to you. I wish you to know that the head of 
every man is Christ, and the head of a woman is her husband, 
and the head of Christ is God. Every man praying or prophe- 
sying with his head draped dishonors his head. But every 
woman praying or prophesying bareheaded dishonors her 
.head. For it is one and the same as if she had her head shaved. 
For if a woman is not covered, then let her cut off her hair* 



FIRST LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 291 

But if it is a shame to a woman to cut off her hair or to shave, 
let her veil herself. For a man has no need to cover his head 
since he is the image and glory of God. But the woman is the 
glory of man. For man was not from woman, but woman from 
man, for man was not formed for woman, but woman for man. 
Therefore, the woman ought to have a badge of authority on 
her head because of the angels. 

Yet neither is woman without man nor man without woman 
in the Lord. For as woman is from man so is man through 
woman, but all things from God. Decide for yourselves: is it 
becoming for a woman to pray to God unveiled? Does not 
Nature herself teach you that if a man has long hair, it is 
a dishonor to him, but that if a woman has long hair, it is a 
glory to her? Because the hair is given to her for a covering. 
But if any one cares to be contentious, we have no such cus- 
tom, nor have the churches of God. 

In giving the following directions I do not praise you, be- 
cause you do not assemble for the better, but for the worse. 
For, in the first place, I hear that when you assemble as a 
church there are parties among you, and to some extent I 
believe it. For there must be parties among you in order that 
it may become plain who are worthy of approval. When, there- 
fore, you assemble it is not possible to eat the Lord's supper. 
For in eating each one tries to get his own supper first and one 
is hungry and another is drunken. Have you not homes to eat 
and drink in? Or do you mean to show contempt for the 
church of God and put to shame those who have no homes? 
What shall I say to you? Shall I praise you? For this I do not 
praise you. 

For I received from the Lord that which I passed on to you 
that the Lord Jesus, on the night in which he was betrayed, 
took bread, and when he had given thanks he broke it and said, 
"This is my body which is broken for you. Do this in memory 
of me." In like manner he took also the cup after supper, 
saying, "This cup is the new covenant in my blood. Do this, 
as often as you drink it, in memory of me." For as often as you 
eat this bread and drink the cup you proclaim the Lord's 
death, until he comes. Therefore, whoever eats the bread or 



292 FIRST LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 

drinks the cup of the Lord unworthily will be guilty of the body 
and blood of the Lord. But let a man examine himself and so 
let him eat of the bread and drink of the cup. For he who eats 
and drinks eats and drinks condemnation to himself, if he does 
not honor the Lord's body. For this reason many are weak 
and sickly among you and a number are asleep. If we judged 
ourselves we should not be judged. But when we are judged by 
the Lord, we are disciplined in order that we may not be con- 
demned along with the world. So then, my brethren, 'when you 
assemble to eat, wait for one another. If any one is hungry, let 
him eat at home, that your assembling may not bring con- 
demnation on you. The other matters I will arrange when I 
come. 

xn 

CONCERNING spiritual things, brethren, I do not wish you to be 
ignorant. For you know that when you were Gentiles you were 
led away after the dumb idols just as might happen. Therefore 
I inform you that no one speaking in the Spirit of God says, 
"Jesus is accursed," and no one can say, "Jesus is Lord/* 
except in the Holy Spirit. 

There are varieties of gifts, but the same Spirit. And there 
are varieties of service, but the same Lord. And there are 
varieties of products, but the same God who produces ail 
things in all. To each one is given some manifestation of 
the Spirit for what is profitable. To one are given, through the 
Spirit, words of wisdom, to another words of knowledge by 
the same Spirit, to another faith by the same Spirit, to an- 
other gifts of healing by the same Spirit, to another works 
of power, to another prophecy, to another the discernment of 
spirits, to another varieties of tongues, to another interpre- 
tation of tongues* One and the same Spirit produces all of 
these gifts, distributing to each one individually as he will. 

For as the body is one and yet has many members, and all 
the members of the body, though many, are one body, so also 
is Christ. For in one Spirit we were all baptized into one body, 
whether Jews or Greeks, whether slaves or free, and were all 
made to drink of one Spirit. For the body is not one member, 



FIRST LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 293 

but many. If the foot says, "Because I am not a hand I am not 
of the body," it is not for that reason not of the body. And if 
the ear says, "Because I am not an eye I am not of the body," 
it is not for that reason not of the body. If the whole body 
were an eye, where would be the hearing? If the whole were 
hearing, where would be the smelling? But now God has 
placed the members each one of them in the body as he 
pleased. If all were one member, where would be the body? 
But now the members are many, but the body is one. And the 
eye cannot say to the hand, "I have no need of you/' or the 
head to the feet, " I have no need of you." Indeed, much more 
those members of the body that seem to be the weaker are 
necessary, and those that we deem the less honorable parts of 
the body we surround with greater honor and our uncomely 
parts have additional dignity, while our comely parts have no 
need. But God has organized the body, giving greater honor to 
the part that lacks, that there may be no discord in the body, 
but that the members may have a common concern for one 
another. And if one member suffers, all the members suffer 
with it; if a member is honored, all the members rejoice with it. 
You are the body of Christ and individually members. God 
placed some in the church first as apostles, secondly as proph- 
ets, thirdly as teachers, then miracle-workers, then those with 
gifts of healing, helpers, administrators, speakers of different 
kinds of tongues. Are all apostles? Are all prophets? Are all 
teachers? Are all miracle-workers? Do all have gifts of heal- 
ing? Do all speak with tongues? Do all interpret? Seek earn- 
estly for the greater gifts; and yet I will show you a way that 
surpasses all. 

XIH 

IF I speak with the tongues of men and of angels, but have not 
love, I have become sounding brass or a clanging cymbal* 
And if I have the power of prophecy and understand all myster- 
ies and all knowledge, and if I have all faith, so as to remove 
mountains, but have not love, I am nothing. And if I distribute 
all that I have to feed the poor, and if I give my body to 
be burned, but have not love, it profits me nothing. Love is 



294 FIRST LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 

long-suffering, love is kind, is not jealous, love does not boast, 
is not conceited, does not behave unbecomingly, does not seek 
her own interest, is not irritable, does not count up her wrongs, 
does not rejoice in wickedness, but rejoices with the truth, 
excuses all things, believes all things, hopes all things, endures 
all things. Love never fails; but if there are prophetic powers, 
they will become useless; if there are tongues, they wiU cease; 
if there is knowledge, it will become useless. For we know in 
part- and we prophesy in part, but when the perfect comes 
what is in part will become useless. When I was a child, I 
talked like a child, I thought like a child, I reasoned like a 
child. Since I have become a man, I have no use for childish 
things. For as yet we are looking at puzzling reflections in a 
mirror, but then face to face. As yet I know in part, but then 
I shall know fully, as I have been fully known. But now faith, 
hope, love these three endure. And the greatest of these 
is love. 

XIV 

SEEK love earnestly, be eager for spiritual gifts, but most to 
prophesy. For he who speaks with a tongue speaks not to men, 
but to God. For no one understands, and he speaks mysteries 
in the Spirit. But he who prophesies speaks to men what will 
build up, encourage, and comfort. He who speaks in a tongue 
builds himself up, but he who prophesies builds up the church. 
I wish you all to speak with tongues, but I wish more to have 
you prophesy. He who prophesies is greater than he who 
speaks with tongues, unless he interprets so that the church 
may receive upbuilding. Now, brethren, if I come to you 
speaking with tongues, what benefit will I be to you unless I 
speak to you in a revelation or in knowledge or in prophecy or 
in teaching. Inanimate things that give a sound, such as the 
flute or harp, unless they give a distinction in the sounds, 
how will it be known what is being played on flute or harp? 
If the trumpet gives a dubious sound, who will prepare himself 
for battle? And so you, if you do not give by the tongue 
words easy to understand, how will it be known what is said? 
For you will be talking into the air. There are, it may be, so 



FIRST LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 295 

many kinds of languages in the world, and none without 
meaning. If then I do not know the meaning of the language, 
I shall be a barbarian to him who is speaking, and he will be a 
barbarian to me. And so you, since you are eager for spiritual 
gifts, seek to abound in what will build up the church. There- 
fore let him who speaks with a tongue pray to interpret. For 
if I pray in a tongue my spirit prays, but my understanding is 
unfruitful. What then? I will pray with the spirit and with 
the understanding. I will sing with the spirit and with the 
understanding. If you thank God with the spirit, how shall 
he who fills the place of the ordinary man s.ay Amen to your 
thanksgiving? For he does not know what you are saying. 
You give thanks excellently, but the other is not helped by it. 
I thank God that I speak with tongues more than any of you. 
But in church I would rather speak five words with my under- 
standing so as to instruct others, than to speak ten thousand 
words in a tongue. 

Brethren, be not children in intelligence, but be babes in 
wickedness. In intelligence be adults. In the Law it is written, 
"By men of strange speech and by the lips of strangers I will 
speak to this people, and not even thus will they listen to me, 
says the Lord, " So then tongues are for a sign not to believers, 
but to unbelievers, and prophecy is not for unbelievers, but 
for believers. If therefore the whole church assembles and all 
speak with tongues and ordinary men or unbelievers come in, 
will they not say that you are insane? But if all prophesy and 
any unbeliever or ordinary man comes in, he is convinced by 
all, he is judged by all, the secrets of his heart become manifest, 
and so falling on his face he worships God, declaring that God 
is really among you. 

What then, brethren? When you assemble each one has a 
psalm, has a teaching, has a revelation, has a tongue, has an 
interpretation. Let all things be done for the upbuilding of 
character. If any one speaks with a tongue, let it be two, or at 
the most three, at a time and in turn and let one interpret. If 
there is no interpreter, let the man keep silent in church and 
let him speak to himself and to God. Of the prophets let two 
or three speak and let the others reflect. If a revelation comes 



296 FIRST LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 

to another who is sitting by, let the first become silent. For 
you can all prophesy one by one so that all may learn and all 
be encouraged. The spirits of the prophets are under the 
control of the prophets. For God is not a God of confusion, 
but of peace. 

As in all the churches of the holy, let the women be silent in 
your assemblies. For it is not allowed to them to speak; but 
let them be in subjection as also the Law says. If they wish to 
learn anything, let them ask their own husbands at home. 
For it is disgraceful for a woman to speak in church. Did 
the message of God come out from you or did it come to you 
alone? If any one thinks himself a prophet or spiritual, let 
him recognize that what I am writing to you is the command 
of the Lord. But if any one does not know, he is himself un- 
known. 

So then, my brethren, seek earnestly to prophesy and do not 
hinder speaking with tongues. Let all things be done becom- 
ingly and in order. 

XV 

LET me recall to your minds, brethren, the good news which I 
announced to you and which you accepted, in which also you 
stand, through which also you are being saved, if you hold fast 
the message that I announced to you, unless your faith was 
thoughtless. 

For among the first things I passed on to you what I had 
received, that Christ died for our sins according to the Scrip- 
tures, and that he was buried, and that he was raised on the 
third day, according to the Scriptures, and that he was seen by 
Cephas, then by the twelve, then he was seen by more than 
five hundred brethren at once, of whom the most are still 
living, but some have fallen asleep, then he appeared to James, 
then to all the apostles. Last of all, as if to one untimely born, 
he appeared also to me. For I am the least of the apostles and 
am not fit to be called an apostle, because I persecuted the 
church of God. But by the grace of God I am what I am, and 
his grace toward me was not without result, but I labored 
more abundantly than all of them, yet not I, but the grace of 



FIRST LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 297 

God that was with me. Whether then it was I or they, so we 
proclaim and so you believed. 

But if Christ is proclaimed that he has been raised from 
the dead how do some among you say that there is no resur- 
rection of the dead? If there is no resurrection of the dead; 
then neither has Christ been raised. If Christ has not been 
raised, then our proclamation is an empty thing and your 
faith is an empty thing. And we are found false witnesses of 
God because we testified regarding God. that he raised up 
Christ, whom he did not raise if the dead are not raised. For 
if the dead are not raised, neither has Christ been raised. And 
if Christ has not been raised, your faith is futile, you are still 
in your sins. Then also those who have fallen asleep in Christ 
have perished. If in this life only we have hope in Christ, we 
are of all men most pitiable. 

But now Christ has been raised from the dead, the first-fruit 
of those who have fallen asleep. For since by a man came 
death, by a man also came resurrection of the dead. For as in 
Adam all die, so also in Christ all will be made alive. But each 
in his own order. The first-fruit is Christ, then those who are 
Christ's, at his coming. Then will be the end when he delivers 
up the kingship to God his Father, when he has defeated 
every archangel and authority and power. For he must be 
king until he "puts all his enemies under his feet." The last 
enemy to be defeated will be death. For "he subjected all 
things under his feet." But when it says, "all things have 
been subjected/' it is plain that it means all things except God 
who subjected all things to him. But when all things have 
been subjected to him, then the Son himself will be subjected 
to him who subjected all things to him, that God may be all 
in all. 

Then what shall they do who are baptized for the dead? If 
the dead do not rise at all, why are they then baptized for them? 
And why do we run risks every hour? I die every day, I swear 
it by the boast I make of you and which I have in Christ Jesus 
our Lord. If, humanly speaking, I fought wild beasts at 
Ephesus, what is my gain? If the dead do not rise, "let us eat 
and drink; for to-morrow we die." Do not be led astray; 



298 FIRST LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 

"bad associations corrupt good morals." Return to soberness 
and cease to sin, for some are ignorant of God. I say it to your 
shame. 

But some one will say, How are the dead raised, and with 
what sort of bodies do they come? Thoughtless man! What 
you yourself sow does not come to life unless it dies. And what 
you sow is not the body that will come, but a mere grain, 
perhaps of wheat or of something else. But God gives it a body 
as he has pleased, and to each kind of seed a body of its own. 
All flesh is not the same flesh, but there is one kind of flesh of 
men, another flesh of beasts, another flesh of birds, and another 
flesh of fishes. There are bodies celestial and bodies terrestrial. 
But the glory of the celestial is of one kind and the glory of the 
terrestrial is of another. There is one glory of the sun and 
another glory of the moon and another glory of the stars. For 
star differs from star in glory. 

So also will be the resurrection of the dead* It is sown in 
decay; it is raised imperishable. It is sown in dishonor; it is 
raised in glory. It is sown in weakness; it is raised in power. 
It is sown an animal body; it is raised a spiritual body. If 
there is an animal body there is also a spiritual body. Just as it 
is written, "The first man Adam became a living animal," the 
last Adam became a lifegiving spirit. But the spiritual is not 
first, but the animal, then the spiritual. The first man was 
from the earth, earthly; the second man is the Lord from 
heaven. As is the earthly man such are also those who are 
earthly, and as is the heavenly man such are also those who aore 
heavenly. And as we have borne the image of the earthly man, 
we shall bear the image of the heavenly man. 

But I say this, brethren, flesh and blood cannot inherit the 
kingdom of God, nor will decay inherit imperishability. I am 
telling you a mystery. We shall not all fall asleep, but we 
shall all be transformed, in a moment, in the twinkling of an 
eye, at the last trumpet-call. For the trumpet will sound and 
the dead will be raised imperishable, and we shall be trans- 
formed. For this perishable must clothe itself with imperish- 
ability, and this mortal must clothe itself with immortality. 
When this perishable has clothed itself with imperishability 



FIRST LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 299 

and -this mortal has clothed itself with immortality, then will 
come to pass the word that is written, "Death has been swal- 
lowed up in victory. Death, where is thy victory? O Death, 
where is thy sting? " The sting of death is sin, and the power of 
sin is the Law. But thanks be to God who gives us the victory 
through our Lord Jesus Christ! 

So then, my beloved brethren, be firm, immovable, always 
abounding in the work of the Lord; since you know that your 
labor is not fruitless in the Lord. 

XVI 

REGARDING the collection for the holy, as I arranged for the 
churches of Galatia, you must do the same. On the first day of 
the week let each of you lay up at home something according 
as he may be prospering, in order that no collections may be 
going on when I come. When I come, whatever persons you 
may approve, I will send with letters to carry your gracious 
gift to Jerusalem. And if it seems best for me to go, they shall 
go with me. I shall come to you after I pass through Mace- 
donia. For I shall pass through Macedonia and perhaps I shall 
make some stay with you or pass the winter with you, so that 
you may send me forward wherever I may be going. I do not 
wish to see you now merely in passing, for I hope to spend some 
time with you, if the Lord permits. I shall remain in Ephesus 
until Pentecost, for a great and effective door has been opened 
to me, and there are many opponents, 

If Timothy comes, see to it that he becomes free from fear in 
his relations to you. For he is doing the Lord's work, just as I 
am. So let no one think him of no account. Send him, forward 
in peace on his journey to me, for I am expecting him with the 
brethren. 

As to Apollos our brother, I urged him strongly to go to you 
with the brethren. But it was not at all his will to go now, but 
he will come when it is convenient. 

Watch, stand firmly in the faith, be manly, be strong, let all 
that you do be done in love. 

I beg you, brethren you know the household of Stephanas, 
that it is the first-fruit of Achaia and they have devoted them- 



300 FIRST LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 

selves to serving the holy I beg you to show deference to 
such and to every fellow worker and laborer. 

I rejoice in the arrival of Stephanas and Fortunatus and 
Achaicus, because they made up for my lack of you. For they 
refreshed my spirit and yours. Appreciate such men. 

The churches of Asia send you their greetings. Aquila and 
Prisca with the church in their house greet you heartily in the 
Lord. All the brethren send greetings to vou. Greet one 
another with a holy kiss. 

Here is the greeting of me, Paul, by my own hand. If any one 
does not love the Lord, let him be accursed! Maran atha! * 
The grace of the Lord Jesus be with you. My love to all of 
you in Christ Jesus. 

1 An Aramaic phrase which may mean "Our Lord has come/' or, possibly, 
''Lord, come." 



PAUL'S SECOND LETTER TO THE 
CORINTHIANS 



PAUL, an apostle of Christ Jesus by the will of God, and 
Timothy the brother, to the church of God that is in Corinth 
with all the holy that are in all Achaia: 

Grace to you and peace from God our Father and the Lord 
Jesus Christ! 

Blessed be the God and Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, the 
Father of loving kindness and the God of all encouragement, 
who encourages us in every distress so that we may be able to 
encourage those who are in every distress by the encourage- 
ment by which we ourselves have been encouraged by God. 
Because as the sufferings of Christ are abundant in our case, so 
through Christ our encouragement is abundant. But if we are 
in distress, it is for your encouragement and salvation. If we 
are encouraged, it is for your encouragement which is effective 
in the endurance of the same sufferings that we suffer. Our 
hope is strong regarding you, since we know that as you are 
partakers of the sufferings so you are of the encouragement. 

For we do not wish you to be ignorant, brethren, regarding 
the distress that came on us in Asia that we were exceedingly 
weighed down, beyond our strength, so that we despaired 
even of life. Indeed we have the sentence of death within our- 
selves, that our trust may not rest on ourselves, but on God 
who raises the dead. He delivered us from such a death and 
will deliver, and we have hope in him that he will go on deliver- 
ing, while you help by your prayers for us, so that from many 
persons thanksgiving may arise for the gift granted to us 
through the prayers of many for us. 

For this is what we boast of, the witness of our conscience 
that in holiness, and sincerity before God, not in fleshly 
wisdom, but in the grace of God, we have lived in the world 



302 SECOND LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 

and especially toward you. For we are not writing to you any- 
thing but what you read and acknowledge and I hope you will 
acknowledge to the end, as you have partly acknowledged it 
about us, that we are your ground of boasting and you are ours 
on the day of our Lord Jesus. 

With this confidence I intended to come to you first, so that 
you might have a second favor, by my visiting you on the way 
to Macedonia and again coming back from Macedonia to you 
and being sped by you on my way toward Judaea. When I was 
intending this, did I show fickleness? Or do I plan what I plan 
according to the flesh, so that I may say yes, yes, and no, no? 
As God is faithful, my word to you is not yes and no. For the 
Son of God, Christ Jesus, who was proclaimed among you by 
us myself and Silvanus and Timothy was not yes and no, 
but in him was yes. For all the promises of God, however 
many, have their yes in him. Therefore also through him is 
the Amen to the glory of God through us. It is God who makes 
us and you steadfast to Christ, and has anointed us and sealed 
us and has given the pledge of the Spirit in our hearts. 

I call God as a witness against my soul that in order to spare 
you I have not yet come to Corinth. Not that we are lords over 
your faith, but fellow workers sharing your joy, for you are 
standing firm in the faith. 

H 

Bur I decided this in my own mind, not to come again to you 
in sorrow. For if I grieve you, who is there to cheer me except 
those who are grieved by me? I am writing this very thing so 
that I may not come and have grief from those who ought to 
make me gjad, for I am confident in regard to all of you that 
my joy is yours. For out of great distress and pain of heart I 
am writing with many tears, not that you may be grieved, but 
that you may know the love that I have beyond measure for 
you. 

But if any one has caused grief, he has grieved not me, but to 
some extent not to be too severe all of you. Sufficient 
for such a one is this punishment by the majority, so that on 
the contrary you should rather forgive him and encourage him, 



SECOND LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 303 

that such a one may not be swallowed up in excessive grief* 
Therefore I beg you to assure him of your love. Because for 
this purpose I am writing, that I may know your tested char- 
acter, whether you are obedient in everything. To whomever 
you forgive anything I also forgive it, and what I have forgiven, 
if I have forgiven anything, it was for your sake in the sight of 
Christ, that Satan may not take advantage of us, for we are not 
ignorant of his purposes. 

When I came to Troas for the good news of Christ and a door 
had been opened for me in the Lord, I had no rest in my spirit 
because I did not find Titus my brother, but bidding them 
farewell I came away to Macedonia. Thanks be to God who 
always leads us in his triumph in Christ and spreads through us 
the sweet odor of the knowledge of him in every place. For 
we are for God a sweet odor of Christ in the saved and in the 
perishing. To the latter an odor from death to death, to the 
former an odor from life to life. And who is competent for 
this? For we are not, like the most, adulterating the message of 
God for gain, but in sincerity, as from God, in the presence 
of God, we speak in Christ. 

HI 

AEE we beginning again to recommend ourselves? Do we need, 
as some do, letters of recommendation to you or from you? 
You are our letter, written hi our hearts, known and read by 
all men, evidently a letter of Christ delivered by us, written 
not with ink, but with the Spirit of the living God, not on stone 
tablets, but on tablets that are hearts of flesh. 
' We have such confidence through Christ toward God. Not 
that of ourselves we are fit to reason out anything as from our- 
selves, but our fitness is from God, who has fitted us to be 
servants of a new covenant, not of the letter, but of the spirit. 
For the letter kills, but the spirit gives life. 

If the service that brought death, engraved in letters on 
stones, came in glory, so that the children of Israel could not 
look steadily at the face of Moses because of the glory of his 
face that fading glory how much more glorious will not the 
service of the Spirit be? For if the service that brought con- 



304 SECOND LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 

damnation was glory, much more will the service that brings 
righteousness surpass in glory. For what was made so glorious 
is in a way no longer glorious compared with the glory that 
surpasses it. For if what was to be ended came in glory, much 
more glorious must be that which is enduring. 

With such a hope then we speak with great frankness, and 
are not like Moses, who used to put a veil over his face so that 
the children of Israel might not see when the vanishing glory 
ended; but their thinking was dulled. For to this day the 
same veil remains unlifted when the old covenant is read; be- 
cause it is done away only in Christ. To this day when 
Moses is read the veil lies on their hearts; "but when they 
turn to the Lord the veil is taken away." The Lord is the 
Spirit, and where the Spirit of the Lord is there is liberty. And 
we all, with unveiled face, reflecting the glory of the Lord, are 
changed into the same likeness from glory to glory as by the 
Spirit of the Lord. 

IV 

THBEEFORE, having this service through God's mercy, we are 
not downhearted, but we have renounced shameful secret 
things, not living in craftiness nor adulterating God's message, 
but by the openness of truth commending ourselves to every 
man's conscience in the sight of God. If our good news is 
veiled, it is veiled to those who are going to ruin, in whom the 
god of this world has blinded the thinking of the unbelieving so 
that the light of the glorious good news of Christ, who is the 
image of God, may not shine in. For we are not proclaiming 
ourselves but Christ Jesus as Lord, and ourselves as your serv- 
ants for Jesus' sake. Because it is the God who said, "Light 
shall shine out of darkness," who has shone in our hearts bring* 
ing the light of the glorious knowledge of God in the face of 
Christ. 

But we have this treasure in earthen jars, that the surpassing 
power may be God's and not ours in every way distressed, 
but not reduced to straits, perplexed, but not in despair, 
persecuted, but not forsaken, cast down, but not destroyed, 
always bearing about in our bodies the death of Jesus that the 



SECOND LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 305 

life also of Jesus may be manifest in our bodies. For we, though 
living, are always delivered up to death for Jesus' sake, that 
also the life of Jesus may be manifested in our mortal flesh. 
So death works in us, but life in you. Having the same spirit 
of faith, as it is written, "I believed, therefore I spoke," we 
too believe and therefore speak, knowing that he who raised 
up Jesus will also raise us up with Jesus and place us in his 
presence with you. For all things are for your sake, that grace 
abounding through many may overflow in thanksgiving to the 
glory of God. 

Therefore we are not downhearted, but even if our outward 
man is wasting away, yet our inward man is renewed day by 
day. For our momentary and light distress is working out for 
us a far surpassing and eternal weight of glory while we con- 
template not the things that are seen, but the things unseen. 
For the things that are seen are transient, but the things un- 
seen are eternal. 



FOB we know that if this tent, our earthly home, is thrown 
down, we have a building of God, a home not made by hands, 
eternal in the heavens. For in this we sigh in earnest desire to 
put on our dwelling that comes from heaven, since if we put 
that on we shall not be found naked. For while we are in this 
tent we sigh being burdened, not that we wish to be unclothed, 
but to put on the other, that what is mortal may be swallowed 
up in life. He who has prepared us for this very thing is God, 
and he has given to us the pledge of the Spirit. 

So being always of good courage and knowing that while 
living at home in the body we are living in a foreign land away 
from the Lord for we walk by faith, not by sight I say we 
are of good courage and wish rather to live in the land foreign 
to the body and be at home with the Lord. Therefore also we 
are ambitious to be pleasing to him, whether at home with him 
or in this foreign land. For we must all appear as we truly are 
before the judgment seat of Christ, that each may receive the 
award for what he has done with his body, according to his 
actions, whether good or bad. 



306 SECOND LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 

Knowing, therefore, the fear of the Lord, we are persuading 
men. What we are is plain to God, and I hope that it is also 
plain to your consciences. We are not recommending ourselves 
again to you, but giving occasion to you for boasting on our 
behalf, that you may have it to use against those who boast of 
appearances and not of heart. For if we were out of our minds 
it was for God, and if we are sane it is for you. For the love of 
Christ impels us, convinced of this, that if one died for all, then 
all died, and he died for all that the living may no longer live for 
themselves, but for him who died for them and was raised 
again. 

So we, from now on, know no man according to the flesh. 
Even if we have known Christ according to the flesh, yet now 
we know him so no more. So if any one is in Christ he is a new 
creature. The old things have passed away, they have become 
new. And all things are from God, who has reconciled us to 
himself through Christ and given to us the service of reconcilia- 
tion to proclaim that God was in Christ reconciling the 
world to himself, not counting against men their sins, and that 
he has committed to us the message of reconciliation. So we 
are ambassadors for Christ, as if God were appealing to you 
through us. We pray you on Christ's behalf to be reconciled to 
God. Him who knew no sin God made sin for our sake that we 
might become the righteousness of God in him. 

VI 

As God's fellow workers we also beg you not to receive his 
grace fruitlessly. For.he says, "At a favorable time I heard you 
and on a day of salvation I. helped you." Now is a particularly 
favorable time, now is a day of salvation. We give no occasion 
for stumbling to any one that our service may not be blamed, 
but in everything we commend ourselves as God's servants 
in great patience, in distresses, in necessities, in hardships, in 
floggings, in prisons, in riots, in toils, in sleepless nights, in 
fastings; with purity, with knowledge, with long-suffering, with 
kindness, with the Holy Spirit, with sincere love, with the 
message of truth, with the power of God; by the weapons of 
righteousness in the right hand and the left, by honor and 



SECOND LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 307 

shame, by slander and praise; as deceivers yet true, as un- 
known yet well known, as dying and yet we are living, as 
chastised yet not put to death, as sorrowful yet always re- 
joicing, as poor yet making many rich, as having nothing yet 
owning all things. 

Our mouth is open to you, Corinthians, our heart expands 
itself. You find no narrowness in us, the narrowness is in your 
own sympathies. As a fair return, I am speaking as to my chil- 
dren, let your hearts expand. 

Do not be yoked up, like unmatched animals, with unbe- 
lievers. For what partnership have righteousness and lawless- 
ness, or what fellowship has light with darkness, or what har- 
mony has Christ with Belial, or what share has a believer with 
an unbeliever? What agreement has the Temple of God with 
idols? For we are the Temple of the living God, as God said, 
" I will dwell in them and walk among them, and I will be their 
God and they shall be my people. Therefore come out from the 
midst of them and be separate, says the Lord, and do not touch 
an unclean thing, and I will receive you and will be a Father to 
you and you shall be sons and daughters to me, says the Lord, 
the Ruler of all." 

vn 

HAVING then these promises, beloved, let us purify ourselves 
from every defilement of flesh or spirit, in reverence for God 
making our holiness complete. 

Make room for us in your hearts. We have wronged no one; 
we have injured no one; we have taken advantage of no one, 
I am not saying this to condemn you, for I have already said 
that you have such a place in our hearts that we are ready to 
die with you or to live with you. Great is my frankness in 
speaking to you; great is my boasting of you; I am filled with 
encouragement, running over with joy at every distress of ours. 
For since we came to Macedonia our flesh has had no rest, but 
we have been distressed in every way, conflicts without, fears 
within. But God, who encourages the depressed, encouraged us 
by the coming of Titus, and not by his coming only, but also 
by the encouragement by which he was encouraged about you. 



308 SECOND LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 

He told us of your longing for me, your lamentation, your zeal 
in my behalf, so that I rejoice the more. For if I grieved you 
in my letter I do not regret it, though I did regret it, seeing that 
that letter grieved you even for a time, but I am glad now, not 
that you were grieved, but that your grief led to a change of 
heart. You were grieved as God approves so that you should 
in nothing suffer loss from us. For such grief as God approves 
works a change of heart leading to salvation and is never to be 
regretted. But the grief of the world results in death. Notice 
this very grieving as God approves, how great earnestness re- 
sulted from it in your case, what effort to defend yourselves, 
what indignation, what fear, what longing, what zeal, what 
just punishment! In everything you showed yourselves 
blameless in the matter. So although I wrote to you, I did it 
not for the sake of him who did the wrong, nor for the sake of 
bim who suffered wrong, but that your earnestness for us might 
be made plain to you before God. On this account we have 
been encouraged. 

In addition to this encouragement of ours, we rejoiced very 
much more over the joy of Titus because his spirit has been 
refreshed by you all, for if I have made any boast regarding 
you I have not been put to shame, but as we spoke everything in 
truth to you so our boasting over Titus turned out the truth. 
And his affections go out more strongly to you when he re- 
members the obedience of you all, how with reverence and 
trembling you received him. I am glad to be in every respect 
of good courage regarding you. 

vni 

I MUST tell you, brethren, of the grace of God that has been 
given to the churches of Macedonia, that in a great trial of 
distress their abundant joy and their deep poverty have 
abounded in the wealth of their liberality. For according to 
their ability, I bear witness, and beyond their ability, of their 
own accord, with great urgency they begged of us the favor of 
fellowship in the service for the holy, and this not as we had 
hoped, but first they gave themselves to the Lord and to us 
through the will of God. Therefore we encouraged Titus that 



SECOND LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 309 

as he had begun so he should complete this grace among you. 
But as you excel in every way, in faith and speech and knowl- 
edge and in all earnestness and in the love you learned from 
us, be sure to excel in this grace also. I speak not by way of 
command, but testing the genuineness of your love by the 
earnestness of others. For you know the grace of our Lord Jesus 
Christ, that though he was rich yet for your sake he became 
poor, that you by his poverty might become rich. In this I give 
my opinion, for this is advantageous for you, since a year ago 
you were first to begin not only the doing but the wanting to 
do anything. But now complete the doing, that as there was a 
readiness in willing so there may be a completion according to 
your means. For if there is first the readiness, a gift is acceptable 
according to what a man has, not according to what he has not. 
I do not mean that others shall have relief and you shall have 
trouble, but by equality at the present time your abundance 
may supply their need so that their abundance may come at 
your need that there may be equality, as it is written, "He 
who gathered much had nothing over and he who gathered little 
had no lack." 

Thanks be to God who puts into the heart of Titus the same 
interest in you. For he welcomed our appeal, but being unusu- 
ally interested comes to you of his own choice. With him we 
are sending the brother whose praise for service to the good 
news has spread through all the churches, and not only that, 
but he was appointed by the churches as our fellow traveler in 
this gracious errand carried out by us to the glory of the Lord 
himself and by our own eager desire. We are taking care that 
no one shall blame us for our administration of this bountiful 
fund, for we are providing arrangements honorable, not only 
in the sight of the Lord, but also in the sight of men. We 
are sending along with them also our brother whose earn- 
estness we have tested many times in many ways, and who 
is now especially earnest because of his great confidence in 
you. 

If any one asks about Titus, he is my intimate friend and 
fellow worker for you. If it is our brethren, they are the mes- 
sengers of the churches, the glory of Christ. Show them in the 



310 SECOND LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 

sight of the churches your love and the ground of our boasting 
to them about you. 

IX 

REGAEDING the service to the holy, it is superfluous for me to 
write to you. For I know your readiness and I am boasting 
about you to the Macedonians, that Achaia was ready a year 
ago, and your zeal has stimulated the most of them. I am 
sending the brethren that our boasting about you may not be 
proved in this matter an empty boast, so that you may be ready 
as I have said, and if any Macedonians come with me and 
find you unprepared, we, not to say you, may not be made 
ashamed of this confidence. So I think it necessary to urge 
the brethren to go on in advance to you and prepare before- 
hand your promised gift, that it may be ready as a gift and 
not as if extorted. 

Remember this, he who sows sparingly will reap sparingly 
and he who sows bountifully will reap bountifully. Let each 
give as he has purposed in his heart, not grudgingly nor of 
necessity, for God loves a cheerful giver. God is able to make 
every blessing abound for you so that having in everything 
always all that you need, you may abound in every good work, 
as it is written, "He scattered, he gave to the poor, his right- 
eousness endures forever." He who supplies seed to the sower 
and bread for food will supply and make abundant your seed 
and will increase the fruits of your righteousness. You will be 
enriched in everything so that you will have all liberality 
which through our agency causes thanksgiving to God. For the 
performance of this sacred service not only supplies the needs of 
the holy, but also overflows to God in many thanksgivings. By 
the proof afforded by this service men are led to glorify God for 
your fidelity to your profession of faith in the good news of 
Christ, and for the liberality of your contributions toward them 
and toward all. In their prayers in your behalf they pour out 
their longing love for you because of the surpassing grace of 
God that is upon you. Thanks be to God for his unspeakable 
gift! 



SECOND LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 311 



I MYSELF, Paul, beg you by the gentleness and sweet reason- 
ableness of Christ I who "to your face am humble when 
among you, but when absent am bold toward you" I pray 
that I may not when present have to be bold with the con- 
fidence with which I expect to show my courage against some 
who think of us as living according to the flesh. For although 
living in the flesh we do not carry on our warfare according to 
the flesh, for the weapons of our warfare are not weapons of 
the flesh, but powerful under God for the destruction of for- 
tresses. We overthrow reasonings and every high thing that 
exalts itself against the knowledge of God, and take captive 
every thought into obedience to Christ and are ready to take 
vengeance upon every disobedience when your obedience is 
complete. 

Look at what is right before your eyes. If any one is confident 
that he belongs to Christ, let him again consider this regard- 
ing himself, that just as he belongs to Christ so also do we. 
For if I boast somewhat excessively of our authority, which the 
Lord gave for building you up and not for pulling you down, I 
shall not be ashamed. Let me not seem as if meaning to 
frighten you by letters. Because, "His letters," they say, "are 
mighty and strong, but his bodily presence is weak and his 
speaking amounts to nothing." Let such a person consider this, 
that what we are in words by letters when absent such we will 
be in deeds when present. 

We do not venture to class ourselves or compare ourselves 
with some of those who are commending themselves. But they, 
measuring themselves among themselves and comparing them- 
selves with themselves, do not understand. We will not boast 
beyond measure, but according to the measure of the measur- 
ing rod which God assigned to us, and that reaches as far as 
you. For we are not stretching ourselves, as if we did not reach 
to you, for we were the first to reach you with the good news of 
Christ. We are not boasting beyond measure in the labors of 
others, but we have hope that as your faith grows we may have 
larger influence among you according to our measure and be- 



312 SECOND LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 

yond, so that we may tell the good news to the regions lying 
beyond you and not boast of things already done in some other 
man's territory. "Let him who boasts boast in the Lord." 
For it is not he who commends himself that is approved, but 
whom the Lord commends. 

XI 

THAT you would bear with me in a little foolishness. Yes, bear 
with me. For I am jealous over you with the jealousy of God, 
for I betrothed you to one husband to present you as a pure 
virgin to Christ. But I fear that, as the serpent deceived Eve 
by his cunning, your thoughts may be led away from sincerity 
and purity toward Christ. For if some newcomer proclaims 
another Jesus whom we did not proclaim, or if you receive a 
different kind of spirit which you did not receive, or a differ- 
ent good news which you did not welcome, you bear with him 
finely. I consider that I am in nothing inferior to the most 
eminent apostles. If I am an ordinary man in speaking, still 

1 am not in knowledge, but in everything we made that alto- 
gether clear to you. 

Did I commit a sin when I humbled myself that you might 
be exalted, because I proclaimed to you the good news of God 
without pay? I robbed other churches by taking wages for 
serving you, and when I was with you and in need I was not a 
burden to any one, for the brethren who came from Macedonia 
supplied my need. In every way I kept myself from being a 
burden to you, and shall keep myself so. As the truth of 
Christ is in me, this boast of mine shall not be stopped in the 
region of Achaia. Why? Because I do not love you? God knows. 
But what I am doing I shall do so as to cut away all ground of 
attack from those who wish ground, and that in what they 
boast of they may be found just like us. For such are false 
apostles, deceitful workers, disguising themselves as apostles of 
Christ. And no wonder, for Satan himself disguises himself as 
an angel of light. So it is no great thing if his servants too 
disguise themselves as servants of righteousness. Their end 
will be according to their deeds. 

I say again, let no one think me foolish. But, even if so, 



SECOND LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 313 

receive me as foolish, that I too may boast a little. What I 
am saying I am not saying by the Lord's command, but as it 
were in foolishness, in this confident boasting. Since many are 
boasting according to the flesh, I too will boast, for you who 
are wise bear pleasantly with the foolish. You bear it if any 
one enslaves you, if any one devours you, if any one takes 
possession of you, if any one exalts himself, if any one strikes 
you in the face. I say it with shame as if we had been weak. 
But in whatever any one is bold (I say it foolishly) I too am 
bold. Are they Hebrews? So am I. Are they Israelites? So 
am I. Are they descended from Abraham? So am I. Are they 
servants of Christ? (I speak as if I were out of my mind) I 
superlatively in labors beyond measure, in prisons beyond 
measure, in floggings excessively, in deaths often. From Jews 
five times I received forty stripes less one, three times I was 
beaten with rods, once I was stoned, three times I was ship- 
wrecked, a night and day I have been in the deep; in journeys 
often, in perils of rivers, in perils of robbers, in perils from my 
own race, in perils from Gentiles, in perils in the city, in perils 
in the open country, in perils on the sea, in perils among false 
brethren; in toil and labor, in many a sleepless night, in hunger 
and thirst, in fastings often, in cold and nakedness. Aside, 
from other things there is that which weighs on me daily, anx- 
iety for all the churches. Who is weak and I am not weak? 
Who stumbles and I am not burning? If there must be boasting, 
I will boast of the things that show my weakness. The God and 
Father of the Lord Jesus knows, he who is blessed forever, 
that I am not lying. In Damascus the Governor under King 
Aretas was guarding the city of the Damascenes to arrest me, 
and through a window I was lowered in a basket and escaped 
from his hands* 

xn 

I MUST boast, though it is unprofitable. I will come to visions 
and revelations of the Lord. I know a man in Christ fourteen 
years ago whether in the body I know not, or out of the 
body I know not; God knows such a man caught up to the 
third heaven. I know such a man whether in the body or out 



314 SECOND LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 

of the body I know not; God knows that he was caught up 
into Paradise and heard unspeakable words which it is not 
lawful for man to speak. Of such a one I will boast, but of my- 
self I will not boast except of my weaknesses. Even if I choose 
to boast I shall not be foolish, for I shall speak the truth. But I 
guard myself that no one may think of me beyond what he 
sees me to be, or hears from me, and because of the surpassing 
nature of the revelations. For this reason, that I should not be 
puffed up, there was given to me a thorn in the flesh, an angel 
of Satan, to torment me, so that I should not be puffed up. 
Regarding this I three times begged the Lord that it might 
leave me. But he has said to me, "My grace is sufficient for 
you; for power is made perfect in weakness." Most gladly 
then will I boast in my weaknesses, that the power of Christ 
may abide upon me. Therefore I rejoice in weaknesses, in 
rough treatment, in necessities, in persecutions, in distresses 
for Christ's sake; for when I am weak, then I am strong. 

I have become foolish; you made me. For I ought to have 
been recommended by you. For in nothing have I been inferior 
to the most eminent apostles, even though I am nothing. The 
signs of an apostle were performed among you in all patience 
by miracles and wonders and deeds of power. What is there in 
which you were made inferior to the rest of the churches except 
that I was not a burden to you? Forgive me this wrong. 

Now this third time I am ready to come to you, and I shall 
not be a burden to you. For I am not seeking yours, but you. 
For the children ought not to lay up money for the parents, but 
the parents for the children. And I will most gladly spend and 
be spent for your souls. If I love you too much, am I loved the 
less? Be that as it may, I was not a burden to you. 

But being crafty I caught you with cunning? Did I take 
advantage of you through any one of those I sent .to you? I 
begged Titus to go, and I sent along with him the brother. Did 
Titus take advantage of you? Did we not act in the same 
spirit and walk in the same steps? 

Are you thinking all this while that we are defending our- 
selves to you? We are speaking before God in Christ. All this, 
beloved, is to build you up. For I am afraid that when I come 



SECOND LETTER TO CORINTHIANS 315 

I shall not find you such as I wish, and I myself may not be 
found by you such as you wish. I am afraid that there may be 
strife, jealousy, anger, rivalry, slanders, whisperings, conceit, 
disorders. I am afraid that when I come again my God may 
humble me in your presence, and that I shall grieve over many 
of those who have been long sinning and have not repented of 
the impurity and unchastity and sensuality which they have 
practiced. 

xin 

THIS third time I am coming to you. "By the evidence of two 
witnesses, or three, every matter shall be proved," Those who 
have been long sinning and all the rest I have forewarned and 
now forewarn, when I was present with you the second time 
and now when absent, that if I come again I shall not spare; 
since you are eager to have a test of Christ speaking in me. He 
is not weak toward you, but powerful among you. He was 
crucified in weakness, but he is living by the power of God. 
And we are weak in him, but we shall live with him by the 
power of God for you. Test yourselves whether you are in the 
faith, put yourselves to the proof. Are you not conscious that 
Jesus Christ is in you? He is, unless you cannot stand the test, 
I hope that you know that we are not unable to stand the test. 
I pray to God that you may do nothing evil, not in order that 
we may seem to stand the test, but in order that you may do 
the right, though we should seem unable to stand the test. 
For we cannot do anything against the truth; our power is for 
the truth. We rejoice when we are weak and you are strong. 
This we are praying for, your all-round character. For this 
reason I am writing this while absent, so that when present I 
may not act with severity in the use of the authority which the 
Lord gave me for building you up, not for pulling you down. 

Now, brethren, farewell. Be fully equipped; take courage; 
be of one mind; live in peace; then the God of love and peace 
will be with you. Greet one another with a holy kiss. All the 
holy send greetings. 

The grace of the Lord Jesus Christ, and the love of God, and 
the fellowship of the Holy Spirit be with you all. 



PATTL'S LETTER TO THE GALATIANS 



PAUL an apostle not from men or through men, but through 
Jesus Christ and God the Father, who raised him from the dead 
and all the brethren with me, to the churches of Galatia: 

Grace to you and peace from God our Father and the Lord 
Jesus Christ, who gave himself for our sins to deliver us from 
the present wicked world according to the will of our God and 
Father! To him be glory through the ages of the ages! Amen. 
I am astonished that you are so quickly changing over from 
him who called you by the grace of Christ to a different kind of 
good news, though it is not another good news. But there are 
some who are perplexing you and wishing to pervert the good 
news of Christ. But even if we, or an angel from heaven, should 
bring you any good news different from what we did bring you, 
let him be accursed! As I said before, I say now again, if any 
one brings you good news different from what you have received, 
let Mm be accursed! 

Am I now trying to please men or God? If I were still trying 
to please men I should not be Christ's servant. For I assure you, 
brethren, that the good news which I brought is not of man's 
devising. For neither did I receive it from man nor was I 
taught it through man, but through a revelation of Jesus Christ. 
You have heard of my former life in Judaism, that I furiously 
persecuted the church of God and made havoc of it, and I went 
further in Judaism than many of my own age and race, being 
intensely zealous for the traditions of my forefathers. But when 
he who had appointed me when I was in my mother's womb, 
and had called me by his grace, was pleased to reveal his Son 
in me that I might tell the good news of him among the Gentiles, 
immediately I did not consult with flesh and blood, nor did I 
go up to Jerusalem to those who were apostles before me, but 
I went away into Arabia, and came back to Damascus. 



LETTER TO THE GALATIANS 317 

Then, after three years, I went up to Jerusalem to visit 
Peter and stayed with him fifteen days. But I saw no other 
one of the apostles, though I did see James the Lord's 
brother. In what I am writing to you, before God I am not 
lying. Then I came into the regions of Syria and Cilicia. I 
was not known by face to the churches of Christ in Judsea. 
Only they had heard that "he who used to persecute us is now 
telling the good news of the faith of which he once made 
havoc," and they glorified God on my account. 

II 

THEN after fourteen years I again went up to Jerusalem with 
Barnabas, taking along Titus. I went up by revelation, and I 
stated to them the good news which I proclaim among the 
Gentiles. But I did this privately before those who were most 
esteemed, that I might not be running, or have run, to no 
purpose. 

But even Titus, who was with me and was a Greek, was not 
compelled to be circumcised, though it was suggested on ac- 
count of false brethren who had been brought in, who had crept 
in to spy out our liberty which we have in Christ Jesus, in order 
to enslave us. But we did not yield in subjection to them even 
for an hour, that the truth of the good news might continue with 
you. But from those who were esteemed to be something 
whatever they were, it makes no difference to me; God does 
not regard the social standing of a man those who were most 
esteemed did not impart to me anything additional. But, on 
the contrary, seeing that I was entrusted with the good news 
for the uncircumcision as Peter was for the circumcision, for he 
who had worked in Peter for the apostleship to the circumcision 
had worked in me for the Gentiles, recognizing the grace given 
to me, James, Cephas, and John, who were regarded as pillars, 
gave the right hand of fellowship to me and Barnabas, that we 
should go to the Gentiles and they to the circumcision. Only 
they wished us to remember the poor. This very thing I also 
was earnest in doing. 

But when Peter came to Antioch, I opposed him to his face, 
because he had been justly censured. For before certain per- 



318 LETTER TO THE GALATIANS 

sons came from James, he was eating with the Gentiles. But 
when they came, he drew back and separated himself, fearing 
those who were of the circumcision. And the rest of the Jews 
practiced the same hypocrisy with him, so that even Barna- 
bas was led off with them in their hypocrisy. But when I saw 
that they were not walking straight according to the truth of the 
good news, I said to Cephas before them all, "If you who are a 
Jew are living like a Gentile and not like a Jew, how can you 
compel the Gentiles to live like Jews? " We who are Jews by 
nature and not sinners of the Gentiles, knowing that a man is 
not declared righteous because of works of law, but through 
faith in Christ Jesus, we also have put our faith in Christ Jesus 
that we may be declared righteous because of faith in Christ, 
and not because of works of law, for because of works of law no 
human being will be declared righteous. If while seeking to be 
declared righteous in Christ we ourselves are found sinners, is 
Christ then a servant of sin? Never. For if I am building up 
again what I pulled down, I show myself as a transgressor. 
For I through law died to law that I might live to God. I have 
been crucified with Christ. I am living, yet no longer I, but 
Christ is living in me. The life that I am now living in flesh I 
am living by faith in the Son of God, who loved me and gave 
himself for me. I do not make nothing of the grace of God, 
for if righteousness is through law, then Christ died for nothing. 

Ill 

THOUGHTLESS Galatians, who has bewitched you before 
whose eyes Jesus Christ was pictured crucified? Only this I 
wish to learn from you : Was it because of works of law that you 
received the Spirit, or because of hearing with faith? Are 
you so thoughtless? After beginning with spirit are you now 
finishing with flesh? Have you suffered such things to no 
purpose? if it is to no purpose. He who supplies to you the 
Spirit and works miracles among you, is he doing it because of 
works of law or because of hearing with faith, just as Abraham 
had faith in God and it was credited to hi for righteousness? 
You know, then, that those who are of faith they are 
children of Abraham. For the Scripture, foreseeing that God 



LETTER TO THE GALATIANS 319 

would declare the Gentiles righteous because of faith, an- 
nounced the good news in advance to Abraham, " In you all the 
Gentiles will be blessed." So then those who are of faith are 
blessed with faithful Abraham. For all who are of the works 
of law are under a curse, for it is written, "Cursed is every one 
who does not abide by all the precepts of the book of the Law 
and do them." But that by law no one is declared righteous 
before God is plain, because, "He who is righteous by faith 
shall live." But the Law is not of faith, but "He who does these 
things shall live by them." Christ redeemed us from the curse 
of the Law by becoming a curse for our sake, for it is written, 
"Cursed is every one who hangs on a tree," in order that the 
blessing of Abraham might in Jesus Christ come on the Gentiles, 
that they might receive through faith the promise of the Spirit. 
Brethren, I am speaking humanly, a ratified covenant, al- 
though but a man's, no one can set aside or add to. But the 
promises were spoken to Abraham and to his offspring. It 
does not say, "and to offsprings," as meaning many, but as if 
meaning one, "and to your offspring," who is Christ. I mean 
this, a covenant ratified by God, the Law that came four hun- 
dred and thirty years afterward does not annul, so as to defeat 
the promise. For if the inheritance is by law, it is no longer by 
promise. But God granted it to Abraham by promise. 

Why then was the Law? It was added later to make trans- 
gressions, until the Offspring should come to whom the promise 
had been made, and it was arranged through angels by the 
hand of a mediator. A mediator does not belong to one per- 
son, but God is one. Is the Law then against the promises of 
God? Never. For if a law had been given which could give 
life, then really righteousness would have come by law. But the 
Scripture has shut up all under sin that the promise based on 
faith in Jesus Christ may be given to those who have faith. 

Before faith came we were guarded under law, shut up 
waiting for the faith that was to be revealed. Thus the Law 
became our tutor leading us to Christ, that we might be de- 
clared righteous by faith. Now that faith has come, we are no 
longer under a tutor. You are all sons of God through faith in 
Christ Jesus. All who have been baptized into Christ have 



320 LETTER TO THE GALATIANS 

put on Christ. There cannot be Jew or Greek, slave or free, 
male or female: for you all are one in Christ Jesus. If you are 
Christ's, then you are Abraham's offspring and heirs according 
to the promise. 

IV 

I SAT that as long as the heir is under age he differs in nothing 
from a slave, though he be owner of all. But he is under 
guardians and managers until the day appointed by the father. 
So we, when we were under age, were enslaved under the ele- 
mentary lessons of the world; but, when the fullness of time 
came, God sent forth his Son born of a woman, born under the 
Law, that he might redeem those who were under Law, that we 
might receive the recognition as sons. Because you are sons, 
God has sent into our hearts the Spirit of his Son crying Abba, 
Father. So you are no longer a slave, but a son, and if a son, 
then also an heir, through God's act. 

At the time when you did not know God you were enslaved 
to what by nature are not gods. But now that you know God, 
or rather have been known by God, how are you turning back 
to the weak and beggarly elementary lessons to which you wish 
to be slaves again? You observe days and months and seasons 
and years. You make me afraid that I have labored over 
you uselessly. 

Become like me, brethren, I beg of you, for I became like 
you. You have not wronged me in anything. You know that 
because of weakness of the flesh I told you the good news at 
first. And you did not despise or spurn what was a trial to you in 
my bodily condition, but welcomed me as you would an angel 
of God, as you would Christ Jesus. Where now is the blessing 
you pronounced on me? For I bear you witness that if it had 
been possible you would have plucked out your own eyes and 
given them to me. Have I become your enemy because I tell 
you the truth? They are paying court to you, but not honor- 
ably. No, they wish to shut you out, so that you may pay 
court to them. It is honorable to be courted in an honorable 
matter always, and not only when I am with you, my children, 
for whom I again am suffering birth pangs until Christ is 



LETTER TO THE GALATIANS 321 

formed in you. Would that I could be present with you now 
and could change my tone, for I am at a loss about you. 

Tell me, you who wish to be under law, do you not hear the 
Law? For it is written that Abraham had two sons, one born of 
the slave girl and one born of the free wife. But he who was 
born of the slave girl was born according to the flesh, while he 
who was born of the free wife was born by promise. This is an 
allegory. For these women are the two covenants, one from 
Mount Sinai, bearing children for slavery. This is Hagar. 
Hagar is Mount Sinai in Arabia. She represents the present 
Jerusalem, for she is in slavery along with her children. But 
the Jerusalem on high is free and she is our mother. For it is 
written, "Rejoice, O barren one, you who do not bear! Break 
forth and shout, you who feel no birth pangs! For many are 
the children of the desolate more than those of her who has 
a husband." But you, brethren, are, as Isaac was, children of 
promise. But just as then he who was born according to the 
flesh persecuted him who was born according to the Spirit, so it 
is now. But what says the Scripture? "Cast out the slave 
girl and her son. For the son of the slave girl shall not inherit 
along with the son of the free wife." Therefore, brethren, we 
are not children of a slave girl, but of the free wife. 



STAND firm, therefore, in the freedom with which Christ set us 
free, and do not wear any yoke of slavery. 

See, I, Paul, tell you that if you receive circumcision, Christ 
will be of no use to you. I testify again to every man who 
receives circumcision that he is under obligation to carry out 
the whole Law. You have put an end to Christ's work for you, 
you who are declared righteous by law; you have fallen away 
from grace. For we in the Spirit because of faith are waiting 
for the hope of righteousness. For in Christ Jesus neither has 
circumcision any value nor uncircumcision, but faith working 
through love. 

You were running finely. Who hindered you from obeying 
the truth? The persuasion was not from him who called you. 
A little yeast sets the whole lump fermenting. I am persuaded 



322 LETTER TO THE GALATIANS 

in regard to you in the Lord that you will have no other mind* 
He who is troubling you must bear his condemnation, whoever 
he may be. But I, brethren, if I am still proclaiming circum- 
cision, why am I persecuted? Then the offensiveness of the 
cross has been done away. Would that those who are troubling 
you would even cut off all! 

For you were called to freedom, brethren; only do not let 
your freedom be an opportunity for the flesh, but in love be 
servants to one another. For the whole Law is summed up in 
one word: "You shall love your neighbor as yourself." But if 
you bite and devour one another, take care that you are not 
destroyed by one another. 

I say, walk in the Spirit and you will not carry out the pas- 
sions of the flesh. For the flesh has passions contrary to the 
Spirit and the Spirit contrary to the flesh, for these are opposed 
to each other, so that you may not do whatever you wish. 
But if you are led by the Spirit you are not under law. The 
works of the flesh are obvious, such as unchastity, impurity, 
indecency, idolatry, magic, hatred, strife, jealousy, anger, 
rivalries, dissensions, factions, envyings, drinking bouts, revel- 
ries, and the like. Of these I tell you beforehand, as I have 
already told you, that those who practice such things will not 
inherit the kingdom of God. But the fruit of the Spirit is love, 
joy, peace, slowness to anger, kindness, benevolence, faithful- 
ness, gentleness, self-control; against such there is no law. 
Those who belong to Christ Jesus have crucified the flesh with 
its emotions and passions. 

If we are living in the Spirit let us direct our lives by 
the Spirit. Let us not be vainglorious, irritating one another, 
envying one another. 

VI 

BRETHREN, if a man is surprised in some sin, you who are 
spiritual are to restore such a one in a spirit of gentleness, each 
looking out for himself to avoid being tempted. 

Bear one another's burdens and so fulfill the law of Christ, 
If any one thinks that he is something when he is nothing, he 
deceives himself. Let each one test his own work and then he 



LETTER TO THE GALATIANS 323 

will have his reason for boasting in himself alone and not in 
another. For each must bear his own load. 

Let him who is taught the message share with his teacher in 
all good things. Do not be deceived; God is not mocked; what 
a man sows that he will also reap. For he who sows to his own 
flesh will from the flesh reap decay; but he who sows to the 
Spirit will from the Spirit reap life eternal. Let us not grow 
discouraged in doing what is noble, for in due time we shall 
reap if we do not grow faint. So then as we have opportunity 
let us work for the good of all men, and especially of those who 
belong to the household of the faith. 

See with what great letters I write with my own hand. All 
who wish to make a fair show in the flesh are trying to compel 
you to receive circumcision, but only that they may not be 
persecuted for the cross of Christ. For even those who are cir- 
cumcised do not themselves keep the Law, but they wish you 
to be circumcised in order to boast in your flesh. But let me 
never boast except in the cross of our Lord Jesus Christ, by 
which the world is crucified to me and I to the world. For 
neither is circumcision anything nor uncircumcision, but a 
new creation. All who walk by this rule may peace and 
mercy be on them, and on the Israel of God! 

For the future let no one trouble me; for I bear on my body 
the brands of Jesus. 

The grace of our Lord Jesus Christ be with your spirits, 
brethren. Amen. 



PAUL'S LETTER TO THE EPHESIANS 



PAUL, an apostle of Christ Jesus by the will of God, to the 
Holy who are at Ephesus, faithful in Christ Jesus: 

Grace and peace from God our Father and the Lord Jesus 
Christ! 

Blessed be the God and Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, who 
has blessed us with every spiritual blessing in the heavenly 
heights in Christ, even as he chose us in him before the founda- 
tion of the world to be holy and spotless before him in love. 
He predestined us to recognition as sons to himself through 
Jesus Christ according to the kindness of his will, to the praise 
of his glorious grace which he bestowed on us in the Beloved, 
in whom we have redemption through his blood, the forgiveness 
of our sins, according to the wealth of his loving kindness which 
he made to abound toward us in all wisdom and understanding. 
He has made known to us the mystery of his will according to 
his grace which he purposed in him for the government of the 
fullness of the ages, to bring to unity all things in Christ, both 
things in the heavens and things on the earth. In him we were 
predestined according to the plan of him who works in all 
things according to the purpose of his will, and we were made 
God's heritage in order that we might bring praise to his glory 
we who first have fixed our hope on Christ. In him you also, 
after hearing the message of the truth, the good news of your 
salvation, and putting your faith in him, were sealed by the 
promised Holy Spirit, which is the pledge of our inheritance in 
anticipation of the full redemption of God's own people to the 
praise of his glory. 

For this reason I also, since hearing of your faith in Jesus 
and your love to all the saints, never cease giving thanks for 
you when I mention you in my prayers, that the God of our 
Lord Jesus Christ, the Father most glorious, may give to you 
a spirit of wisdom and revelation in the knowledge of himself, 



LETTER TO THE EPHESIANS 325 

enlightening the eyes of your heart, that you may know what 
is the hope of his calling, and what the glorious wealth of his 
inheritance in the holy, and what the surpassing greatness of his 
power toward us who believe according to the inworking of his 
vast might, which he put forth in Christ when he raised him 
from the dead and made him sit at his own right hand in the 
heavenly heights, far above every archangel and authority and 
power and lordship and every name that is named not only in 
this world but also in the world to come. He put all things under 
his feet and placed him as head over all for the church, which is 
his body, the fullness of him who fills all in all. 

II 

You also God raised to life when you were dead in misdeeds 
and sins in which you once walked, following the ways of this 
age of the world, led by the Ruler of the power of the air, the 
spirit who now works in the sons of disobedience. Among 
these we all lived once in the passions of our flesh and of our 
thoughts, and we were by nature children of wrath like the 
rest. But God, who is rich in mercy, because of his great love 
with which he loved us, even when we were dead in misdeeds, 
made us alive along with Christ by grace we have been 
saved and raised us up with him and made us sit with him 
in the heavenly heights in Christ Jesus, that he might show in 
the ages to come the surpassing richness of his grace in his 
kindness to us in Christ Jesus. For by grace you have been 
saved through faith, and that not of yourselves; it is the gift 
of God, not of works, that no one may boast. For we are his 
work, formed in Christ Jesus for good works in which God had 
prepared beforehand to have us live. 

Therefore remember that once you were Gentiles in the 
flesh and were called uncircumcision by the so-called circum- 
cision in the flesh, made by hands, and that you were then 
apart from Christ, aliens from the commonwealth of Israel 
and strangers to the covenants of promise, without hope and 
without God in the world. But now in Christ Jesus you who 
once were far have become near by the blood of Christ, For 
he is our peace. He has made both Jew and Gentile one and has 



326 LETTER TO THE EPHESIANS 

broken down the dividing wall, the enmity. In his own flesh he 
has ended the force of the law of commandments in ordinances 
in order to make the two, in himself, into one new man, thus 
making peace, and in order to reconcile both in one body to 
God through his cross, by slaying the enmity by it. And he 
came and brought the good news of peace to you who were 
far and peace to those who were near. For through him we, 
both Jews and Gentiles, have access through one Spirit to 
the Father. So then you are no longer strangers and resident 
aliens, but fellow citizens with the holy and members of the 
household of God, built on the foundation of the apostles and 
prophets, Jesus Christ himself being the corner stone. In him 
all the building, framed together, is growing into a holy temple 
in the Lord, in whom you also are being built for a dwelling of 
God in the Spirit. 

m 

FOE this reason I, Paul, the prisoner of Christ Jesus for the 
sake of you Gentiles, if you have heard of the gracious com- 
mission which God has given me to you, that by revelation 
the mystery has been disclosed to me, as I wrote before briefly, 
In reading that letter you can learn my understanding in the 
mystery of Christ, a mystery which was not disclosed in other 
generations to the sons of men as it has now been revealed 
to his holy apostles and prophets by the Spirit, namely, that 
the Gentiles are fellow heirs and fellow members of the body, 
fellow sharers of the promise in Christ Jesus through the good 
news, of which I became a servant according to the free grace 
of God which was given me by the inworking of his power. 
To me, the least of all the holy, has this grace been given, to 
proclaim to the Gentiles the good news of the unsearchable 
riches of Christ and to show what is the working of the mys- 
tery which has been hidden for ages in God, who created all 
things in order to disclose now to the archangels and powers in 
the heavenly heights, through the church, the varied wisdom 
of God, according to the eternal purpose which he has accom- 
plished by Christ Jesus our Lord, in whom we have boldness 
and confident access through faith in him. 



LETTER TO THE EPHESIANS 327 

So I beg you not to lose heart because of the distresses that 
come on me for your sake. They are a high honor to you. 

For this reason I bow my knees to the Father from whom 
every family in heaven and on earth is named, that he may 
grant to you according to his glorious wealth to be strengthened 
with might through his Spirit in the inner man, that Christ may 
dwell in your hearts through faith, and that you, rooted and 
founded in love, may be able with all the holy to compre- 
hend what is the breadth and length and height and depth 
yes, to know the love of Christ, which yet surpasses knowledge, 
and may be filled with all the fullness of God. 

To him who is able to do far beyond all we ask or think by 
the power that works in us, to him be glory in the church and 
in Christ Jesus through all the generations of the ages! Amen. 

IV 

I, THE prisoner of the Lord, beg you, then, to live worthily of 
the calling with which you have been called, with all modesty 
and gentleness, being slow to anger, bearing with one another 
in love, earnest in keeping the unity of the Spirit in the bond 
of peace. There is one body and one Spirit, just as you were 
called with one hope that belongs to your calling, one Lord, one 
faith, one baptism, one God and Father of all, who is over all 
and through all and in all. 

To each one of us grace was given according to the measure 
of the gift of Christ. Therefore it says, "He ascended on high; 
he led away captives; he gave gifts to men." What does "he 
ascended" mean, except that he had descended into the lowest 
parts of the earth? He who descended is also he who " ascended " 
high above all the heavens to fill all things. And he "gave" 
to some to be apostles, some prophets, some tellers of the good 
news, some shepherds and teachers, for the equipment of the 
saints, for the work of service, for building up the body of Christ, 
until we all attain oneness in the faith and the knowledge of 
the Son of God, and the maturity of manhood and the meas- 
ure of the stature of the fullness of Christ. Then we sh#ll be 
no longer children tossed and borne about by every wind of 
teaching through the trickery of men and craftiness in the 



328 LETTER TO THE EPHESIANS 

devices of deceit, but speaking the truth in love we shall grow 
wholly into him who is the head, Christ, from whom the whole 
body framed together and strengthened by what every joint 
supplies vigorously, in the measure of each, makes growth in 
building itself up in love. 

This then I say and solemnly protest in the Lord: that you 
are no longer to live as the Gentiles live in vacancy of mind, 
having their understanding darkened, aliens from the life of 
God because of the ignorance that is in them, and because of 
the hardness of their hearts. Lost to any sense of shame they 
have abandoned themselves' to sensuality for the practice of 
every kind of impurity with greediness. But you have not so 
learned Christ, if you have heard him and have been taught in 
him as the truth is in Jesus, that you should put away the old 
man who belonged to your former way of life and was perish- 
ing in deluding passions, and that you should be made new in 
the spirit of your minds and put on the new man formed as God 
approves in the righteousness and holiness of truth. 

Therefore put aside lying and speak truth every one to his 
neighbor, for we are members one of another. "Be angry and 
do not s'n." Do not let the sun go down on your wrath, neither 
give place for the Devil. He who steals must steal no longer, 
but rather he must labor, working with his own hands some- 
thing good, so as to have something to share with any one in 
need. Let no vile word come out of your mouth, but, if any- 
thing, a good word for needed upbuilding of character to give 
grace to those who hear. Do not grieve the Holy Spirit of God 
by whom you have been sealed for the day of redemption. 
Let all bitterness and anger and wrath and clamor and abu- 
sive language be put away from you with every kind of malice. 
Be kind to one another, sympathetic, forgiving one another just 
as God in Christ has forgiven you. 



.BE imitators of God as beloved children and live in love, as 
Christ loved us and gave himself for us, an offering and sacrifice 
to God yielding a fragrant odor. 
Unchastity or any kind of impurity or greediness must not be 



LETTER TO THE EPHESIANS 329 

mentioned among you, as befits holy people; nor should there 
be indecent and foolish talk or jesting, which are unbecoming, 
but rather thanksgiving. For you know well that no unchaste 
or impure person, no greedy person who is an idolater 
has any inheritance in the kingdom of Christ and God. Let no 
one deceive you with empty words; for because of these things 
the wrath of God comes on the sons of disobedience. Do not, 
then, be partakers with them. For you were once darkness, but 
now you are light in the Lord. Live like children of light for 
the fruit of light appears in all generosity and righteousness 
and truth testing what is pleasing to the Lord, and have no 
fellowship with the unfruitful works of darkness, but rather 
reprove them, for the things that they do in secret it is shame- 
ful even to speak of. But all things when reproved are shown 
truly by the light, for everything shown truly is light. There- 
fore it says, "Wake, O sleeper, and rise from the dead and 
Christ will give you light." 

Be strictly careful, then, how you live, not as unwise but as 
wise. Buy up the opportunity, because these are evil days. 
Therefore do not be thoughtless, but understand what is the 
Lord's will. Do not be drunk with wine, in which there is prof- 
ligacy, but be full of the Spirit, speaking to one another in 
.psalms and hymns and spiritual songs, singing and playing the 
harp heartily to the Lord, giving thanks always for all things in 
the name of our Lord Jesus Christ to God the Father. 

Be subject to one another in reverence for Christ, wives to 
their own husbands as in the Lord, because a man is the head of 
his wife as Christ is the head of the church and he is the savior 
of the body. But as the church is subject to Christ, so wives are 
to their husbands in everything. Husbands, love your wives, 
as Christ also loved the church and gave himself for it, that 
he might make it holy, cleansing it by the washing with water 
according to his word, that he might present to himself the 
church glorious, without spot or wrinkle or any such thing, 
but holy and faultless. Thus ought men to love their own wives 
as their own bodies. He who loves his own wife loves himself, 
for no one ever hates his own flesh, but nourishes and cherishes 
it, just as Christ does the church, for we are members of his 



330 LETTER TO THE EPHESIANS 

body. "Therefore shall a man leave his father and his mother 
and shall cleave to his wife and the two shall become one flesh. " 
This mystery is great, but I am speaking of Christ and the 
church. But each one of you must love his own wife as himself, 
and the wife must reverence her husband. 

VI 

CHILDEEN, obey your parents in the Lord, for this is right. 
"Honor your father and your mother." This is the first com- 
mandment with a promise, "That it may go^well with you and 
you may be long-lived in the land." 

And you, fathers, do not irritate your children, but bring 
them up in the education and admonition of the Lord. 

Slaves, obey those who according to the flesh are your 
masters, with reverence and awe in singleness of your hearts 
as to Christ, not with eye service as pleasers of men, but as 
Christ's slaves, doing the will of God in a whole-souled way, 
giving service with cheerfulness as to the Lord and not to men, 
knowing that whatever good thing each one does that he will 
be rewarded for by the Lord, whether he be slave or free. 

And you, masters, do the same by them, avoiding threats, 
knowing that the Master both of them and of you is in the 
heavens, and there is no partiality for rank with him. 

To conclude: Be strong in the Lord and in the power of his 
might. Put on the complete armor of God so that you may be 
able to stand against the cunning arts of the Devil. For our 
wrestling is not against flesh and blood, but against the arch- 
angels, against the authorities, against the world-rulers of this 
darkness, against spiritual forces of wickedness in the heavenly 
heights. 

Therefore take the complete armor of God, that you may 
be able to withstand in the evil day and, after going through 
everything, to stand. Stand, then, belted with truth, wearing 
the breastplate of righteousness, shod with the readiness of the 
good news of peace. In every event take up the shield of faith 
by which you will be able to quench all the fiery darts of the 
Evil One, and accept the helmet of salvation and the sword of 
the Spirit, which is the word of God. Pray at all times in the 



LETTER TO THE EPHESIANS 331 

Spirit with all manner of prayer and entreaty; be awake to 
this with all intentness and with prayer for all the holy and in 
my behalf, that words may be given to me when I open my 
mouth to make known with fearlessness the mystery of the 
good news, for which I am an ambassador in chains, that I may 
tell it fearlessly as I ought. 

That you also may know my situation, what I am doing, 
Tychicus the beloved brother and faithful servant in the Lord, 
whom I am sending to you for this very purpose, will tell you 
everything, so that you may know the news of me and he may 
encourage your hearts. 

Peace to the brethren and love with faith from God the 
Father and the Lord Jesus Christ! Grace be with all who love 
our Lord Jesus Christ with undying love! 



PAUL'S LETTER TO THE PHILIPPIANS 



PAUL and Timothy, servants of Christ Jesus, to all the Holy 
in Christ Jesus who are in Philippi, with Bishops and Deacons: 

Grace be to you and peace from God our Father and the 
Lord Jesus Christ. 

I thank my God for all your remembrance of me, always in 
every prayer of mine for you all making request with joy for 
your fellowship in spreading the good news from the first day 
until now, being confident of this very thing, that he who has 
begun the good work in you will carry it on to completion on 
the day of Christ Jesus, So it is right for me to think of you all, 
because you have me in your hearts, and in my chains and in my 
defense and in establishing the good news you are all sharers in 
my privilege. For God is my witness how much I long for you 
all in the affections of Christ Jesus. And this is my prayer that 
your love may abound more and more in knowledge and all 
insight, so that you may discriminate between the things that 
differ, that you may be pure and blameless in the day of Christ, 
filled with the fruit of knowledge through Jesus Christ to the 
glory and praise of God. 

I wish you to know, brethren, that my affairs have turned 
out rather to the furtherance of the good news, so that my 
chains have become well known as for Christ to the whole 
Praetorian Guard and to all the rest, and the most of the breth- 
ren in the Lord, made confident by my chains, are unusually 
brave in speaking the message fearlessly. Some indeed pro- 
claim Christ because of envy and rivalry, some also because of 
good will. Some announce Christ from love, knowing that I am 
placed for the defense of the good news, but others out of 
partisanship, thinking to add distress to my chains. What then? 
Still in every way, whether in pretense or in truth, Christ is 
proclaimed and in that I rejoice, yes, and will rejoice. For I 



LETTER TO THE PHILIPPIANS 333 

know that this will make for my salvation through your prayer 
and the supply of the Spirit of Jesus Christ, according to my 
earnest expectation and hope that I may be put to shame in 
nothing, but with all courage, as always, so now Christ may be 
honored in my body, whether by my life or by my death. 

For to me to live is Christ and to die is gain. If it is to be 
life in the flesh, that means fruitful work for me. I know not 
which to choose. I am under pressure both ways, having the 
desire to depart and be with Christ, for it is far better, yet that 
I should stay in the flesh is more needful on your account. And 
this I confidently know, that I shall stay and stay near you all 
for your advancement and joy of faith, that your exultation 
in Christ Jesus may overflow on my account, because of my 
presence again with you. 

Only exercise your citizenship in a manner worthy of the 
good news of Christ, so that, whether I come and see you or in 
absence hear news of you, I may know that you are standing in 
one spirit, with one mind wrestling in the faith of the good news 
and not frightened in anything by your adversaries, which for 
them is a sign of ruin, but for you of salvation, and that from 
God; because it has been graciously allowed you not only to 
believe in Christ but also to suffer for his sake, and you have 
the same struggle that you saw in me and now hear of in me* 

n 

IF there is any encouragement in Christ, any persuasive power 
in love, any fellowship in the Spirit, any sympathies and com- 
passions, fill up my joy by having the same love, being of the 
same mind, thinking the same thing, doing nothing in a partisan 
or vainglorious way, but each modestly regarding the others as 
of more account than himself* Do not be each intent on his own 
interests, but also on the interests of others. Let this mind be in 
you which was also in Christ Jesus, who, though he was in the 
form of God, did not think that equality with God was some- 
thing to be grasped, but emptied himself, taking the form of a 
servant and coming into the likeness of men, and when found in 
the condition of a man he humbled himself by becoming obedi- 
ent even to death death on the cross. Therefore, God has 



334 LETTER TO THE PHILIPPIANS 

highly exalted Him and has graciously given him the name which 
is above every name, that at the name.of Jesus every knee may 
bow, of beings in heaven and those on earth and those under 
the earth, and every tongue confess that Jesus Christ is Lord, 
to the glory of God the Father. 

So then, my beloved, as you have always obeyed, not in my 
presence only, but now much more in my absence, work out 
your own salvation with reverence and awe. For it is God who 
is working in you both the willing and the doing because of 
his kindness. Do everything without murmurings or disputings 
that you may be blameless and pure, children of God, spotless 
in the midst of a crooked and perverse generation among whom 
you shine as lights in the world, holding forth the message of 
life, so that on the day of Christ I can boast that I did not run 
in vain or labor in vain. But if I am poured out as a libation 
on your sacrificial offering of faith, I rejoice and share the joy 
of you all. In the same way you must rejoice and share my joy. 

But I hope in the Lord Jesus to send Timothy to you soon, 
that I may be cheered by knowing about you. For I have no 
one likeminded with him who will so sincerely care for your 
interests. For all pursue their own aims, not those of Christ 
Jesus. But you know how he has been tested and how like a 
child with a father he has served with me in spreading the good 
news. So I hope to send him at once when I see how my affairs 
are going. And I trust in the Lord that I myself shall come 
quickly. I think it necessary to send to you Epaphroditus, my 
^brother and fellow worker and fellow soldier, and your messen- 
ger and minister to my needs, since he longs for you all and is 
troubled because you have heard that he was sick. Indeed he 
was sick and near to death. But God had mercy on him, and 
not on him alone, but also on me, that I might not have sorrow 
upon sorrow. I send him the more readily that you may see 
him and rejoice again and I be less sorrowful. Receive him in 
the Lord with all joy and hold such men in honor, because for 
the work of Christ he was near to death, hazarding his life to 
complete the service you were not here to do for me. 



LETTER TO THE PHILIPPIANS 335 

III 

To conclude, my brethren: rejoice in the Lord. To repeat to 
you the same things is not tiresome to me and it is safe for you. 

Beware of the dogs, beware of the bad workmen, beware of 
the excision. For we are the circumcision, we who worship in the 
Spirit of God and exult in Christ Jesus, and have no confidence 
in the flesh, though I have ground for confidence even in the 
flesh. If any other man thinks that he has ground for confidence 
in the flesh, I have more circumcised the eighth day, of the 
race of Israel, of the tribe of Benjamin, a Hebrew of Hebrews, 
as to the Law a Pharisee, as to zeal persecuting the church, as to 
the righteousness of the Law blameless. 

But the things that were gain to me, those I have counted 
loss for Christ. Yes, I count all to be loss because of the sur- 
passing worth of the knowledge of Christ Jesus my Lord, for 
whom I have suffered the loss of all things and count them 
but refuse, that I may gain Christ and be found in him, not 
having my own righteousness that was from the Law, but that 
which is through faith in Christ, the righteousness which comes 
from God and rests on faith, that I may know him and the 
power of his resurrection and the fellowship of his sufferings, 
becoming like him in death, if possibly I may attain to the 
resurrection from the dead. Not that I have already obtained 
it or have already been made perfect, but I press on to lay hold 
of that for which I was laid hold of by Christ Jesus, 

Brethren, I do not consider myself yet to have laid hold of 
it. But one thing I do: forgetting what is behind and stretching 
forward to what is in front I press toward the goal for the prize 
of the heavenly call of God in Christ Jesus. Let us all who are 
full grown think in this way. If in anything you think differ- 
ently, even that God will reveal to you, but so far as we have 
attained let us walk in the same path. 

Unite in imitating me, brethren, and watch those who are 
living according to our example. For many are living as I used 
often to tell you and now say even weeping that they are ene- 
mies of the cross of Christ. Their end is ruin, their God is 
their stomach, their glory is in their shame, they think earthly 



336 LETTER TO THE PHILIPPIANS 

thoughts. For the state of which we are citizens is in the hea- 
vens and from there we are expecting a Savior, the Lord Jesus 
Christ. He will transform the body we have in our low estate 
into the likeness of the body he has in glory by the power by 
which he can subject all things to himself* 

IV 

So, my brethren beloved and longed for, my joy and crown, 
stand firm thus in the Lord, beloved. I beg Euodia and I beg 
Syntyche to be of the same mind in the Lord. Yes, I ask you, 
true yokefellow, help them, since they struggled in spreading 
the good news along with me and Clement and the rest of my 
fellow workers whose names are in the book of life. 

Rejoice in the Lord always. Again I say rejoice. Let your 
fairness be known to all men. The Lord is near. Do not worry, 
but in everything by prayer and entreaty with thanksgiving 
let your requests be made known to God. And the peace of 
God which passes all understanding will guard your hearts 
and your thoughts in Christ Jesus. 

To conclude, brethren, whatever is true, whatever is digni- 
fied, whatever is just, whatever is pure, whatever is lovable, 
whatever is highly spoken of if there is any virtue or any 
praise think of that. What you learned and accepted and 
heard and saw in me practice that. And the God of peace 
will be with you. 

I rejoiced in the Lord greatly that now at length your 
thoughtfulness for me had revived. You were thoughtful for 
me all along, but lacked opportunity. Not that I am speaking 
because of want; for I have learned how to be content in what- 
ever circumstances I am. I know how to live humbly and I 
know how to enjoy abundance. In each and every situation 
I have been initiated into the secret both of being well fed 
and of going hungry, both of having abundance and of bearing 
want. I can do all things through him who gives me strength. 
Yet you did nobly in sharing with me in my distress. You 
Philippians know that at the beginning of the good news, when 
I came away from Macedonia, no church shared with me in the 
matter of giving and receiving except you only, and that IB 



LETTER TO THE PHILIPPIANS 337 

Thessalonica you sent once, yes, twice, for my need. Not 
that I am seeking for the gift, but I am seeking for the fruit 
that increases to your credit. I have enough of everything and 
more than enough. I am fully supplied since receiving from 
Epaphroditus the things from you, a fragrant odor, an accept- 
able sacrifice, pleasing to God. My God will supply every need 
of yours according to his wealth in glory in Christ Jesus. 

To God our Father be glory for the ages of the ages! Amen. 

Greet every holy one in Christ Jesus. The brethren with 
me send greetings to you. All the holy send greetings to you, 
especially those of Csesar's household. 

The grace of the Lord Jesus Christ be with your spirits! 



PAUL'S LETTER TO THE COLOSSIANS 



, an apostle of Christ Jesus by the will of God, and 
Timothy our brother, to the holy and faithful brethren in 
Christ in Colossse: 

Grace be to you and peace from God our Father! 

We always thank God, the Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, 
in praying for you, because we have heard of your faith in 
Christ Jesus and the love that you have to all the holy because 
of the hope laid up for us in heaven. Of this you have already 
heard in the true message of the good news which has come to 
you. Just as in all the world it is bearing fruit and growing, so 
also it is among you since the day that you heard and learned 
of the grace of God in truth. So you learned it from Epaphras, 
our beloved fellow servant, who is a faithful servant of Christ 
in your behalf, and who has told us of your love in the Spirit. 

For this reason we also, from the day we heard it, never 
cease praying for you and asking that you may have full knowl- 
edge of his will in all wisdom and spiritual insight, and that you 
may live lives worthy of the Lord and please him in every way. 
May you bear fruit in every good work and grow in the knowl- 
edge of God. May you be strengthened with all strength ac- 
cording to his glorious power, so as to have all patience and 
endurance. May you joyfully give thanks to the Father who 
has made you fit to share in the inheritance of the holy in 
light. He has saved us from the power of darkness and trans- 
ferred us into the kingdom of his beloved Son, in whom we 
have redemption, the forgiveness of our sins. He is the image 
of the invisible God, the first born of all creation; for in him 
were created all things in heaven and on earth, both visible 
and invisible, whether thrones or lordships or archangels or 
powers all things have been created through him and for 
him, and he is before all things and in him all things unite* 



LETTER TO THE COLOSSIANS 339 

And he is the head of the body, the church. He is the begin- 
ning, the firstborn from the dead, that he may be first in all 
things, because it pleased God to have all his fullness dwell in 
him and to reconcile all things to himself through him, mak- 
ing peace through the blood of his cross all things, I say, 
whether on earth or in heaven. And you who were once alien- 
ated and enemies in your minds, living in wicked works, he 
has reconciled by his body of flesh through death, to present 
you holy and spotless and blameless before him, if you remain 
in the faith, firm and steadfast, never moving from the hope of 
the good news which you have heard and which has been pro- 
claimed in all the creation under heaven, and of which I, Paul, 
became a servant. 

Now I rejoice in what I suffer for your sake, and in my turn 
am filling up in my flesh what was lacking in the afflictions of 
Christ for the sake of his body, that is, the church. I became a 
servant of the church according to the commission from God 
given to me for you, to deliver fully God's message, the mystery 
hidden for ages and generations but now made plain to his 
holy ones, to whom God willed to make known what is the 
glorious wealth of this mystery among the Gentiles, which is 
Christ in you the hope of glory. And we are announcing him, 
warning every man and teaching every man in all wisdom in 
order that we may present every man complete in Christ. For 
this also I labor, wrestling with the energy of him who works 
powerfully within me. 



FOR I wish you to know how I am wrestling for you and for 
those in Laodicea and for all who have not seen my face in the 
flesh, that your hearts may be encouraged and that joined 
together in love you may reach all the wealth of the full assur- 
ance of insight into the knowledge of the mystery of God, which 
is Christ. In him all the treasures of wisdom and knowledge 
lie hidden. I say this that no one may deceive you by plausible 
arguments. For even though I am absent in the flesh, yet in 
the spirit I am with you, rejoicing to see your good order and 
the firmness of your faith in Christ. 



340 LETTER TO THE COLOSSIANS 

Since, then, you have received Christ Jesus as Lord, live in 
him, rooted and built up in him, growing strong in the faith 
as you have been taught, and overflowing with thanksgiving. 
Beware that no one carries you away captive by his philosophy 
and empty deceit according to the tradition of men, according 
to the elementary teachings of the world and not according to 
Christ. For in him dwells all the fullness of God in bodily form, 
and you have been.filled in him. He is the head of every arch- 
angel and authority. In bitn you were circumcised with a cir- 
cumcision not done by hands, by laying aside your fleshly body 
in the circumcision of Christ. You were buried with him in 
baptism and raised again through faith in the inworking of 
God who raised him from the dead. You who were dead in 
your sins and in the uncircumcision of your flesh God has made 
alive with him, and has forgiven us all our sins. He erased the 
writing that was against us in the rules, the writing that was 
opposed to us. He has taken it out of the way by nailing it to 
his cross. He despoiled the archangels and authorities and 
fearlessly made an example of them when he triumphed over 
them on the cross. 

Let no one then judge you in the matter of food or drink or in 
regard to a festival or new moon or Sabbath. These were a 
shadow of coming things, but the body is Christ's. Let no one 
as umpire defraud you of your prize, if he delights in excessive 
humility and ceremonial worship of the angels, searching into 
his own visions, emptily puffed up by his fleshly mind and not 
holding to the Head, from whom the whole body, supplied and 
held together by joints and bands, grows as God gives it growth. 

If you died with Christ to the elementary teachings of the 
world, why do you, as if still living in the world, have such 
rules as, "Do not touch, " "Do not taste, " "Do not handle" 
referring to things that perish when used? These rules follow 
the commandments and teachings of men. They have an 
appearance of wisdom in self-imposed ceremonial and excessive 
humility and severity to the body, but have no value against 
the indulgence of the flesh. 



LETTER TO THE COLOSSIANS 341 

III 

IF then you have been raised with Christ, seek the things 
above, where Christ is sitting at the right hand of God, Have 
your minds on the things above and not on the things on the 
earth. For you have died and your life is hidden with Christ in 
God. When Christ, our life, appears, then you also will appear 
with him in glory. 

Treat the members of your earthly bodies as dead dead to 
unchastity, impurity, passion, evil desire, and avarice, which is 
idolatry. On account of these things comes the wrath of God. 
To them you also were once habituated when you lived in 
them. But now you also must put away all wrath, anger, 
malice, abusive language. Vile talk must not be in your mouths. 
Do not lie to one another. You have stripped off the old self 
with his practices and have clothed yourselves with the new 
self, which is being renewed into knowledge in the image of its 
Creator. Here there is no Greek or Jew, circumcision or uncir- 
cumcision, barbarian, Scythian, slave or freeman, but Christ is 
all and in all. 

Put on, then, as the chosen of God, holy and beloved, sym- 
pathies, compassions, kindness, humility, gentleness, slowness 
to anger, bearing with one another and forgiving one another, 
if any one has a grievance against any. Just as the Lord forgave 
you, so must you forgive. Above all these, clothe yourselves 
with love, which is the perfect bond of union. Let the peace of 
Christ be umpire in your hearts. For this you were called 
into one body. And be thankful. The message of Christ must 
dwell in you richly, as you teach in all wisdom and admonish 
one another with psalms and hymns and spiritual songs and 
sing with grace in your hearts to God. And whatever you do 
in word or deed, do all in the name of the Lord Jesus, giving 
thanks to God the Father through him. 

Wives, be in subjection to your husbands, as is fitting in the 
Lord. Husbands, love your wives and .do not be harsh toward 
them. Children, obey your parents in everything, for this is 
pleasing in the Lord. Fathers, do not irritate your children, 
for they may lose heart. Slaves, obey in everything your mas- 



342 LETTER TO THE COLOSSIANS 

ters in the flesh, not with eye-service as men-pleasers, but 
in sincerity of heart, because you reverence the Lord. What- 
ever you do, do it heartily as for the Lord and not for men, for 
you know that from the Lord you will receive the reward of the 
inheritance. You are slaves to the Lord Christ. He who does 
wrong will be repaid for the wrong he has done, and there is no 
partiality. 

IV 

MASTERS, give to your slaves what is just and equal, for you 
know that you have a Master in heaven. 

Be earnest and constant in prayer. Be thankfully watchful 
in it. Pray along with us and for us that God may open for us 
a door for the message, so that I may tell the mystery of Christ 
for the sake of which I am in chains so that I may make it 
clear, as I ought. Behave wisely towards outsiders, buying 
up the opportunity. Let what you say be always with 
grace, seasoned with salt. Know how you should answer 
each one. 

Tychicus, the beloved brother and faithful worker and fel- 
low servant in the Lord, will tell you everything about me. 
I am sending him to you for this very purpose, that you may 
know my situation and that he may encourage your hearts. 
And with him I am sending Onesimus, the faithful and beloved 
brother, who is one of you. They will tell you all about affairs 
here. 

Aristarchus, my fellow prisoner, sends his greetings, and so 
does Mark, the cousin of Barnabas (you have received letters 
about him; if he comes, welcome him), and so does Jesus who 
is called Justus. These alone of those who are circumcised are 
my fellow workers for the kingdom of God, and they have been 
a comfort to me. 

Epaphras, the servant of Christ Jesus, who is one of you, 
sends his greetings to you. He always wrestles in prayer on 
your behalf that you may stand mature and fully assured Jn all 
the will of God. I bear witness to the burden that he carries for 
you and for those in Laodicea and those in Hierapolis. Luke, 
the beloved physician, and Demas send you their greetings. 



LETTER TO THE COLOSSIANS 343 

Give our greeting to the brethren in Laodicea and to Nympha 
and the church that meets in her house. 

When this letter has been read among you, have it read in 
the church of the Laodiceaois, and you are to read ;the letter 
that will come from Laodicea. 

Say to Archippus, See to it that you fully perform the 
service which you have accepted in the Lord. 

The greeting of Paul, by my own hand. Remember my 
chains. Grace be with you. 



PAUL'S FIRST LETTER TO THE 
THESSALONIANS 

I 

PAUL and Silvanus and Timothy, to the Church of the Thes- 
galonians in God the Father and the Lord Jesus Christ: 

Grace to you and peace. 

We thank God always for you all when we mention you in 
our prayers, unceasingly remembering your work of faith and 
labor of love and patience of hope in our Lord Jesus Christ 
before God our Father. We know, brethren beloved by God, 
that he has chosen you and that our good news came to you 
not in word only but in power and in the Holy Spirit and in 
, great assurance, just as you know we acted among you for your 
benefit. You became imitators of us and of the Lord, receiving 
the message in great affliction with joy which the Holy Spirit 
gave, so that you became a pattern for all believers in Mace- 
donia and in Achaia. For the message of the Lord sounded 
forth from you not only in Macedonia and Achaia, but in 
every place your faith toward God has gone abroad, so that 
there is no need for us to speak a word. For the people them- 
selves are telling about us, what a reception we had with you, 
and how you turned to God from idols, to serve the living and 
true God and to wait for his Son from heaven his Son Jesus 
whom he raised from the dead and who is saving us from the 
coming wrath, 

n 

You yourselves know, brethren, what a reception we had from 
you, that it was not without result, but after we had suffered 
and been roughly treated, as you know, in Philippi, we made 
bold in our God to speak to you the good news of God with 
great wrestling. For our appeal springs not from deception, 
nor from impure motives, nor from cunning, but as we have 



FIRST LETTER TO THE THESSALONIANS 345 

been approved by God to be entrusted with the good news, so 
we speak, not as if we were pleasing men, but God, who tests our 
hearts* Nor did we ever fall into flattering talk, as you know, 
nor use any pretext for self-enrichment God is witness 
nor did we seek glory from men, either from you or others, 
although we could have claimed the dignity of Christ's apostles. 
But we became gentle in the midst of you like a nursing 
mother cherishing her own children. Yearning over you so, we 
would gladly have imparted to you not only God's good news 
but our own lives as well, because you had become dear to us. 

For you remember, brethren, our toil and labor as we 
worked night and day so as not to burden any one of you while 
we proclaimed to you the good news of God. You are witnesses 
and God is witness how purely and justly and blamelessly 
we acted toward you who believe. You know that just like a 
father toward his own children we encouraged each one of you, 
and warned and conjured you to live lives worthy of the God 
who is calling you into his own kingdom and glory. 
; For this reason we unceasingly give thanks to God that 
when you received from us the report of the message of God 
youjaccepted it not as the message of men, but, as it truly is, 
the message of God, which also is doing its work in you who 
believe. For you became imitators, brethren, of the churches 
of God that are in Judaea in Christ Jesus, because you too 
suffered the same things from your fellow countrymen that 
they did from the Jews, who killed both the Lord Jesus and the 
prophets, and drove us out and do not please God and are 
enemies to all men, trying to prevent us from speaking to the 
Gentiles so that they may be saved. All this goes always to fill 
up the measure of their sins. But God's fiercest wrath has 
overtaken them. 

But we, brethren, when bereft of you for a little while, out of 
sight not out of mind, endeavored more earnestly to see your 
faces, with great longing. For that reason we determined to 
come to you, yes, I, Paul, more than once: but Satan hindered 
us. For what is our hope or joy or crown to boast of before our 
Lord Jesus at his coming? ^ Is it not you? You are our glory 
a-nd joy. 



346 FIRST LETTER TO THE THESSALONIANS 

III 

So when we could no longer endure the anxiety, we chose to be 
left at Athens alone and sent Timothy, our brother and God's 
servant in the good news of Christ, to strengthen and encourage 
you in your faith, that no one might be disturbed in these trials. 
For you yourselves know that we are destined to this. For 
when we were with you we told you in advance, " We shall soon 
have trouble." And so it came to pass, as you know. 

Therefore, when I could no longer^endure the anxiety, I sent 
to know about your faith for fear that the tempter had tempted 
you and our labor had gone for nothing. But now that Timothy 
has come to us from you and has brought us good news of your 
faith and love, and that you always keep us well in mind and 
long to see us, just as we long to see you, we have been cheered, 
brethren, in regard to you, in all our straits and distresses by 
your faith. Now we are living, since you are standing firm in 
the Lord. For how can we be grateful enough to God for you 
in view of all the joy we have because of you, while we pray 
beyond measure night and day that we may see your faces and 
make good whatever lacks there may be in your faith? 

May our God and Father himself and our Lord Jesus Christ 
open the way for us to come to you. The Lord make you to 
abound and overflow in love toward one another and toward 
all men, just as we do toward you, that your hearts may be 
made firm and you may be blameless in holiness before our 
God and Father at the coming of our Lord Jesus with all his 
holy ones. 

IV 

To conclude, brethren, we beg of you and urge you In the Lord 
Jesus that, as you learned from us how you ought to live to 
please God, and are living, you will excel still more. For you 
know what directions we have given you through the Lord 
Jesus. For this is the will of God : to have you become holy and 
have you shun unchastity; to have each of you know how to 
take a wife for himself in holiness and honor, not in the passion 
of lust, as the Gentiles do who know not God; to have no one 



FIRST LETTER TO THE THESSALONIANS 347 

trespass or take advantage of his brother in this matter; for the 
Lord is the punisher of all such, as we have already told you 
and solemnly warned you. God has not called us to live in 
impurity, but in holiness. Therefore he who disregards this dis- 
regards not man, but God, who gives his Holy Spirit to you. 

Regarding brotherly love you have no need for me to write 
to you. For you yourselves have been taught by God to love 
one another, and you do the same to all the brethren in the 
whole of Macedonia. But we urge you, brethren, to excel still 
further and to be ambitious to lead a quiet life and to mind 
each his own business and to work with your hands, as we 
instructed you. Thus you will live becomingly in the sight of 
outsiders and will have need of nothing. 

We do not wish you to be ignorant, brethren, regarding those 
who are sleeping, that you may not sorrow as the rest of men 
who have no hope. For since, as we believe, Jesus died and rose, 
so too God will through Jesus bring with him those who have 
fallen asleep. This we tell you by the word of the Lord: We, 
the living, who have been left until the coming of the Lord, will 
not have the start of those who have fallen asleep. .For the 
Lord himself will descend from heaven with a shout, with the 
voice of an archangel and with God's trumpet-call, and first 
the dead in Christ will rise. Then we, the living, who are left, 
will be caught up along with them into the clouds to meet the 
Lord in the air. And thus we shall forever be with the Lord, 
So encourage one another with these words. 

V 

Bur regarding times and dates, brethren, you do not need to 
have me write to you. For you yourselves know perfectly that 
the day of the Lord will come like a thief in the night. When 
they are saying, "Peace and safety," then sudden destruction 
is upon them, like the pangs upon a woman with child, and 
they will not escape. But you, brethren, are not in darkness so 
that the day can take you like a thief. You are all sons of light 
and sons of day. We do not belong to night or to darkness. 

Then let us not be sleeping like the rest of men, but let us 
watch and be sober. For those who sleep sleep in the night and 



348 FIRST LETTER TO THE THESSALONIANS 

those who drink drink in the night. But let us who are of the 
day be sober. Let us put on the breastplate of faith and love 
and for a helmet the hope of salvation. For God has not des- 
tined us to wrath, but to the winning of salvation through 
our Lord Jesus Christ, who died for us that whether we are 
waking or sleeping we may live in company with him. There- 
fore encourage one another and build up one another, as indeed 
you are doing. 

We beg you, brethren, to regard those who are laboring 
among you and who preside over you in the Lord and give you 
counsel, and to esteem them very highly in love on account of 
their work. Be at peace among yourselves. We urge you, 
brethren, to warn the disorderly, encourage the faint-hearted, 
help the weak, be patient with all. Take care that no one 
repays evil with evil, but always seek eagerly what is good in 
dealing with one another and with every one. Always be joyful. 
Pray without ceasing. In everything give thanks, for this is 
God's will in Christ for you. Do not quench the Spirit. Do 
not despise prophecies. Test all things; hold fast the good. 
Avoid every kind of evil. 

May the God of peace himself make you completely holy, 
and may your spirits and souls and bodies be kept faultless 
and blameless for the coming of our Lord Jesus Christ. He is 
faithful who calls you and he will do it. 

Brethren, pray for us. 

Greet all the brethren with a holy kiss. I solemnly charge 
you in the Lord's name to have this letter read to all the 
brethren. 

The grace of our Lord Jesus Christ be with you* 



PAUL'S SECOND LETTER TO THE 
THESSALONIANS 

I 

PAUL and Silvanus and Timothy to the Church of the Thes- 
salonians in God our Father and the Lord Jesus Christ: 

Grace to you and peace from God the Father and the Lord 
Jesus Christ. 

We ought always to thank God for you, brethren, as is fit- 
ting, since your faith is growing greatly and the love of each 
and all of you toward one another is increasing, so that we our- 
selves glory in you among the churches of God because of your 
endurance and faith in all of your persecutions and in the dis- 
tresses you arc bearing. This is a proof of God's righteous 
judgment. It is to make you worthy of God's kingdom, on 
behalf of which you are suffering, since it is just on God's part 
to repay with trouble those who are troubling you, and to repay 
to you, who are being troubled, rest with us at the revelation 
of the Lord Jesus from heaven with his mighty angels. With 
flaming fire he will inflict vengeance on those who do not know 
God and do not obey the good news of our Lord Jesus. They 
will suffer the penalty of eternal destruction and be sent away 
from the face of the Lord and from his glorious power, when he 
comes to be glorified among his holy ones and to be wondered 
at on that day among all believers for our testimony to you 
was believed. 

To this end we are always praying for you that our God will 
make you worthy of the call, and will by his power bring to 
completion every one of your kind purposes and works of 
faith, that the name of our Lord Jesus may be glorified in you, 
according to the grace of our God and of the Lord Jesus Christ. 



WITH regard to the coming of our Lord Jesus Christ and our 
bdug gathered to moot him, I beg you, brethren, not to be 



350 SECOND LETTER TO THE THESSALONIANS 

quickly unsettled in mind nor excited by either a revelation or 
by a message or a letter supposed to be from us, to the effect that 
the day of the Lord is close at hand. Let no one lead you astray 
in any way, because it will not come until the Apostasy has 
first come and the Man of Lawlessness has been revealed 
the Son of Perdition, who opposes and exalts himself above 
everything called God and every object of worship, so that he 
enters the Temple of God and seats himself there, declaring 
that he himself is God. 

Do you not remember that while I was still with you I used 
to tell you this? And now you know what is restraining him 
until he is revealed at his appointed time. For the mystery 
of lawlessness is already working, only there is just now one 
who is restraining it until he passes out of the way. And then 
the Lawless One will be revealed. But the Lord Jesus will 
sweep him away with the breath of his mouth and will make 
him powerless by the splendor of his coming. For his coming 
will be whentSatan is active in every sort of power and in false 
signs and wonders and in every kind of wicked deception of 
those who are perishing, because they did not receive the love 
of the truth so that they might be saved. For this reason God 
sends to them a deceptive influence so that they believe a lie, 
that all who have not believed the truth but have delighted in 
wickedness may be condemned. 

We ought always to thank God for you, brethren, beloved 
by the Lord, because God chose you from the beginning for 
salvation through the Spirit's making you holy and your own 
faith in the truth. To this he called you through the good news 
that we brought, so that you may share the glory of our Lord 
Jesus Christ. 

Now then, brethren, stand firm and hold fast the teachings 
that you have been taught whether by our words or by our letter. 
May our Lord Jesus Christ himself and God our Father, who 
loved us and gave us eternal encouragement and good hope 
through grace, encourage your hearts and make you strong in 
every good word and work. 



SECOND LETTER TO THE THESSALONIANS 351 

III 

IN conclusion, brethren, pray for us, that the Lord's message 
may run and be glorified, as among you, and that we may be 
saved from the unreasonable and wicked men, for faith does 
not belong to all. But the Lord is faithful and he will strengthen 
you and guard you from evil. We are persuaded in the Lord 
in regard to you that you are doing and will do what we direct. 
The Lord guide your hearts in the love of God and the patience 
of Christ* 

We charge you, brethren, in the name of the Lord Jesus 
Christ, to stand aloof from every brother who is living in a 
disorderly way and not according to the teaching that you 
received from us. For you yourselves know that you should 
imitate us, for we were not disorderly when among you, nor 
did we eat bread with any one without paying, but with labor 
and toil night and day we worked in order not to burden any 
ono of you. Not that we have not the authority, but in order 
to give you ourselves as an example for you to imitate. For 
when we were with you we gave you this command, "If any 
one will not work, neither is he to eat." For we hear that some 
among you are leading disorderly lives, busy about nothing and 
yet busybodies. Such we command and urge in the Lord 
Jesus Christ to work quietly and eat their own bread. 

But you, brethren, must not become discouraged in doing 
well. If any one does not obey our words in this letter, mark 
that man and do not associate with him, so that he may be 
ashamed. Yet do not regard him as an enemy, but warn him 
as a brother. The Lord of peace himself give you peace at all 
times in all ways. The Lord be with you all. 

The greeting of Paul by my own hand, which is the sign in 
every letter. This is my handwriting. The grace of our Lord 
Jeaus Christ be with all of you. 



PAUL'S FIRST LETTER TO TIMOTHY 



PAUI,, an apostle of Christ Jesus by the appointment of God, 
our Savior, and Christ Jesus our hope, to Timothy my true 
child in faith: 

Grace, mercy and peace from God the Father and Christ 
Jesus our Lord. 

As I begged you to stay in Ephesus when I was leaving for 
Macedonia, that you might charge some not to teach new and 
strange doctrines nor give' attention to myths and endless 
genealogies, which promote disputes rather than God's plan 
in the faith, so I beg you now. The aim of the commandment 
is love out of a pure heart and a good conscience and a sincere 
faith. Some nmsing these have turned aside to empty talk, 
wishing to be teachers of the Law, but not understanding either 
what they arc saying or what the things are that they are so 
positive about* 

We know that the Law is excellent, if any one uses it law- 
fully. But wo know this: that law is not laid down for a 
righteous man, but for the lawless and the insubordinate, the 
ungodly and sinnona, tho unholy and profane, for murderers 
of fathers and murderers of mothers, for manslayers, for the 
unchaste, for thono who practice unnatural vices, for slave- 
dealers, liars, perjurers, and for whatever else is contrary to 
wholesome teaching uch ns accords with the glorious good 
news of the blessed God, with which I have been entrusted. 

I thank Christ Jesus our Lord who has given me strength, 
because he thought mo faithful and put me into his service, 
though before that I spoke profanely and was a persecutor and 
insolent in outrages. But I received mercy because I did it 
ignorantly in unbelief- And tho grace of our Lord overflowed 
in me with faith and love In Christ Jesus. Tho saying is trust- 
worthy and deserving of full acceptance that "Christ Jesus 



FIRST LETTER TO TIMOTHY 353 

came into the world to save sinners/* of whom I am the fore- 
most. But I received mercy for this reason, that in me, as the 
foremost, Jesus Christ might show all of his long-suffering for 
an example for those who are to believe in him and gain life 
eternal. To the King of the ages, the immortal, invisible, only 
God, be honor and glory for the ages of the ages! Amen. 

This command I lay down for you, my child Timothy, in 
accordance with the prophecies that came in advance regarding 
you, in order that armed with them you may wage the noble 
war, holding to faith and a good conscience, which some have 
cast aside and thus made shipwreck of their faith. Among 
these are Hymenseus and Alexander, whom I have handed 
over to Satan, that they may learn not to speak profanely. 

n 

I BEG, then, first of all, that petitions, prayers, supplications, 
and thanksgivings be made in behalf of all men, in behalf of 
kings and all who arc in authority, that we may lead a quiet 
and peaceful life in all piety and sobriety. This is excellent and 
pleasing in the sight of God, our Savior, who wishes all men 
to be saved and to come to the knowledge of the truth. For 
there is one God and one Mediator between God and men, 
himself man, Christ Jesus, who gave himself as a ransom for 
all, a fact to be witnessed to at the fitting time. To this I was 
appointed a herald and an apostle I am telling the truth, 
I am not lying a teacher of Gentiles in faith and truth. 

I wish, then, that the men offer prayer in every place, lifting 
up holy hands without wrath or debate. Also that the women 
adorn themselves in becoming dress modestly and discreetly, 
not with braided hair or gold or pearls or costly clothes, but 
as is becoming for women professing piety with good deeds. 

A woman is to learn in all subjection- I do not permit a 
woman to teach or to usurp authority over a man, but she 
must remain silent. Adam was first formed, then Eve. And 
Adam was not deceived; the woman was deceived and fell into 
con. But they will be saved through child-bearing, if they 
continue in faith and love and holiness with self-control. 



354 FIRST LETTER TO TIMOTHY 

III 

THE saying is trustworthy: "If any one aspires to the office of 
a bishop, he desires a noble work." A bishop, then, should be 
above reproach, true to one woman, temperate, self-controlled, 
dignified, hospitable, with a gift for teaching, not given to wine 
or to blows, but fair-minded, averse to strife, not a lover of 
money, presiding well over his own house, with children 
obedient and respectful. But if any one does not know how to 
preside over his own house, how will he take care of the church 
of God? He must not be a new convert, for fear he may be 
blinded by pride and fall into the condemnation of the Devil. 
He must have a good reputation with outsiders so as not to fall 
into reproach and the snare of the Devil. 

Deacons, in the same way, must be dignified, not double- 
tongued, not given to much wine, not eager for base gain, 
holding the mystery of the faith with a pure conscience. They 
must first be tested, and then let them fill the office of deacon 
if there is nothing against them. Women, in the same way, 
must be dignified, not slanderers, temperate, trustworthy in 
everything. Deacons must be men true to one woman, presid- 
ing well over their children and their own houses. Those who 
have filled the office of deacon well win for themselves a high 
standing and great boldness in the faith in Christ Jesus. 

I am writing these things to you, although I hope to come to 
you soon, but so that if I am delayed you may know how 
people should conduct themselves in the household of God, 
which is the church of the living God, the pillar and base of the 
truth. Confessedly great is the mystery of godliness: "Who 
was manifested in flesh, declared righteous in spirit, seen by 
angels, proclaimed among Gentiles, believed on in the world* 
received up in glory." 

IV 

THE Spirit says distinctly that in later times some will desert 
from the faith, giving attention to deceiving spirits and 
teachings of demons, through the hypocrisy of men who teach 
falsely, branded in their own consciences, forbidding marriage, 



FIRST LETTER TO TIMOTHY 855 

and insisting on abstinence from certain kinds of food which 
God made to be partaken of with thanksgiving by those who 
are faithful and know the truth. For everything made by God 
is excellent and nothing is to be rejected if taken with thanks- 
giving. For it is made holy through God's message and through 
prayer. 

In teaching this to the brethren you will be a noble servant 
of Christ Jesus, nourished by the words of the faith and of the 
excellent teaching which you have followed. But avoid profane 
and old-womanish myths. Exercise yourself in godliness* 
Bodily exercise is useful to a small degree, but godliness is useful 
for everything. "It has the promise of the present life and of 
the life that is to come." This saying is trustworthy and 
deserving of full acceptance. For to this end we are laboring 
and wrestling, because we have set our hope on the living God, 
who is the Savior of all men, especially of believers. 

Command and teach these things. Let no one look down on 
you because you are young, but be an example to believers in 
speech, in the life you lead, in love, in faith, in purity. Until I 
come give attention to reading, to exhortation, to teaching. 
Do not neglect the gift that is in you, which was given to you 
through prophecy with the laying on of the hands of tho older- 
ship. Be careful about these things, bo fully occupied with them, 
that your progress may be plain to all. Be thoughtful about 
yourself and your teaching. Persevere in this; for in doing so 
you will save yourself and those who hear you, 

V 

Do not rebuke an older man, but entreat him as a father, the 
younger men as brothers, the older women as mothers and the 
younger women as sisters, in all purity. 

Honor widows if they are really widows. If any widow has 
children or grandchildren, let them learn first to act piously 
toward their own family and to repay what they owe to their 
parents and grandparents* For this is pleasing in the sight of 
God. A real widow who is left alone haa set her hope on God 
and devotes herself to prayers and supplications night and day, 
But the pleasure-loving widow, though living, is already dead. 



356 FIRST LETTER TO TIMOTHY 

Give these commands that they may be free from reproach. 
If any one does not provide for his own, and especially those of 
his own household, he has disowned the faith and is worse than 
an unbeliever. 

A widow is to be put on the list if she has reached the age 
of not less than sixty years, if she has been true to one husband, 
has a reputation for good deeds, has brought up children, has 
entertained strangers, has washed the feet of the holy, has 
ministered to people in distress, has been active in every good 
work* But younger widows refuse, for when wanton desires 
lead them away from Christ they wish to many and thus they 
incur condemnation for breaking their first promise. At the 
same time they learn to be idle, going around from house to 
house, and not only idle, but gossips, and busybodies, saying 
what they should not. 

I would, therefore, have the younger widows many, bear 
children, keep house, give no occasion to our enemies' for 
slander. For already some have turned aside after Satan* 

If any woman who is a believer has widows, she must pro- 
vide for them and the church must not be burdened, so that it 
may provide for those who are really widows. 

The elders who preside well should be thought worthy of 
double salary, especially those who labor in speaking and teach- 
ing. For the Scripture says, "You shall not muzzle the ox 
while he is treading out the grain/' and the workman deserves 
his wages. 

Against an elder do not receive an accusation unless on the 
testimony of two or three witnesses. Those who are gping on 
in sin rebuke before all, that the rest may fear* 

I charge you before God and Christ Jesus and the chosen 
angels to observe these directions without prejudice, doing 
nothing through partiality. 

Do not lay hands of ordination upon any one hastily. Have 
no share in the sins of other men. Keep yourself pure. Do not 
keep on being a water-drinker, but use a little wine for the 
sake of your stomach and because of your frequent ailments. 

Some men's sins are conspicuous and go on before to con- 
demnation, but the sins of some men follow after them. Just 



FIRST LETTER TO TIMOTHY 357 

so noble deeds are conspicuous and those that are otherwise 
cannot be hid. 

VI 

ALL who are slaves tinder the yoke must regard their own mas- 
ters as worthy of all honor, so that the name of God and the 
teaching may not be profanely slandered. Those who have 
believing masters must not despise them because they are 
brothers, but rather work as slaves for them because those 
who are benefited by their good work are believers and be- 
loved. 

Teach and urge these things. If any one teaches otherwise 
and does not agree to wholesome words, those of our Lord 
Jesus Christ, and to religious teaching, he is conceited, knowing 
nothing, but morbidly fond of disputes and controversies from 
which come envy, strife, abusive language, wicked suspicions, 
and wranglings of men of depraved minds who are destitute of 
the truth* They think of religion as a source of gain. 

Religion with contentment is a great source of gain. For 
we brought nothing into the world and we cannot carry any- 
thing out. If we have food and clothing we will be content with 
these. But those who are determined to be rich fall into temp- 
tation and a snare and many foolish and injurious passions 
which plunge men into destruction and ruin. For the love of 
money is a root of all kinds of evil. Some men grasping for it 
have strayed from the faith and have pierced themselves with 
many pangs. 

But you, man of God, must shun this. Pursue righteous- 
ness, piety, faith, love, endurance, gentleness. Play the grand 
hard game of the faith. Lay hold on life eternal, to which you 
have been called and have made the noble confession before 
many witnesses. 

I chaise you in the presence of God who gives life to all, and 
Christ Jesus who before Pontius Pilate made the noble con- 
fession, to keep the commandment stainless and free from 
reproach until the appearing of our Lord Jesus Christ, which in 
due time he will show, who is the blessed and only Potentate, 
the King of kings and Lord of lords, who alone has immortality, 



358 FIRST LETTER TO TIMOTHY 

who dwells in light unapproachable, whom no man has seen 
or can see. To him be honor and power eternal! Amen. 

Command those who are rich in this world not to be haughty 
nor to fix their hope on uncertain wealth, but on God who 
provides all things richly for our enjoyment. They must do 
good work, be rich in noble deeds, be generous, ready to share, 
treasuring up for themselves a good fund for the future, that 
they may lay hold on the life that is real. 

O Timothy, guard what has been entrusted to you, turning 
away from profane and empty talk and contradictions of what 
is falsely called "knowledge." Some while professing it have 
gone astray as regards the faith, 

Grace be with you all. 



PAUL'S SECOND LETTER TO TIMOTHY 



PATJL, an apostle of Christ Jesus by the will of God according 
to the promise of life in Christ Jesus, to Timothy my beloved 
child: 

Grace, mercy, and peace from God the Father and from 
Christ Jesus our Lord. 

I thank God whom I serve, following in the steps of my 
forefathers, with a pure conscience, while I constantly mention 
you in my prayers night and day, remembering your tears and 
longing to see you, that I may be filled with joy. I remember 
the sincere faith that is in you, which lived first in your grand- 
mother Lois and then in your mother Eunice, and I am confi- 
dent that it lives in you also. For this reason let me remind 
you to kindle anew the gift of God that is in you by the lay- 
ing on of my hands. For God has not given us a spirit of fear, 
but of power and love and self-control. 

Do not be ashamed to testify for our Lord or for me his 
prisoner, but join in suffering hardships for the good news as 
God gives power. It is he who saved us and called us with a 
holy calling, not according to our deeds but according to his 
own purpose and grace, given to us in Christ Jesus ages ago 
but now manifested by the appearance of our Savior Christ 
Jesus, who has defeated death and brought to light life and 
immortality by the good news* For this I was made a herald 
and an apostle and a teacher, and for this reason I am suffering 
these things* But I am not ashamed, for I know in whom I 
have put my faith, and am confident that he is able to guard 
what I have entrusted to him until that day. 

Hold to the example of wholesome words which you heard 
from me in faith and love in Christ Jesus. Guard through the 
Holy Spirit which dwells in us the precious trust committed to 
you. 



360 SECOND LETTER TO TIMOTHY 

You know that all of those in Asia have deserted me. Among 
them are Phygelus and Hermogenes. The Lord grant mercy 
to the family of Onesiphorus, for he often cheered me and was 
not ashamed of my chain; but when he came to Rome he 
looked me up eagerly and found me. The Lord grant to him to 
find mercy from the Lord on that day ! And in how many ways 
he served me in Ephesus you know better still. 

II 

You, therefore, my child, must be strong in the grace that is in 
Christ Jesus, and the things you heard from me, which came 
through many witnesses, you must commit to trustworthy men 
who will be able to teach others also. Take your share of hard- 
ship as a good soldier of Christ Jesus. No one while serving as 
a soldier entangles himself in the affairs of life, for the soldier 
must please him who enlisted him. And if any one enters an 
athletic contest, he is not crowned unless he competes accord- 
ing to the rules. The farmer who does the labor ought first to 
have his share of the fruits. Think over what I am saying, for 
the Lord will give you insight in all things. 

Remember Jesus Christ, raised from the dead, a descendant 
of David, as my good news teaches. In telling it I am suffering 
hardships even to chains, as if I were an evildoer, but God's 
message is not chained. For this reason I am enduring all for 
the sake of the chosen, that they may gain the salvation that 
is in Christ Jesus with eternal glory. Trustworthy is the say- 
ing, "For if we have died with him we shall also live with 
him; if we endure we shall also be kings with him; if wo dis- 
own him, he will disown us; if we arc faithless, he remains 
faithful; for he cannot disown himself/' 

Remind them of these things, charging them before God not 
to engage in controversy to no profit, but to the ruin of the 
hearers. Be earnest in presenting yourself to God as a tested 
man, a workman who has no cause to bo ashamed, rightly 
handling the message of truth. But shun profano and empty 
talk. It will grow into greater impiety, and its teachings will 
spread like a gangrene. Hymcnssus and Philettis am of this sort. 
They have gone astray as to the truth, saying that the rt*sur~ 



SECOND LETTER TO TIMOTHY 361 

rection has already taken place, and they are overthrowing the 
faith of some. However, God's solid foundation stands, with 
this inscription, "The Lord knows his own," and, "Let every- 
one who names the Lord's name turn from wickedness." 

In a great house there are not only utensils of gold and silver, 
but also of wood and earthenware, and some are for honorable 
and others for dishonorable uses. If any one keeps himself 
pure from these errors, he will be ready for honorable use, holy, 
fit for the master's service, prepared for every good work. But 
flee the passions of youth and pursue righteousness, faith, love, 
peace, in the company of those who call on the Lord out of a 
pure heart. Avoid foolish disputes of the uneducated, knowing 
that they give rise to quarrels, and the servant of the Lord must 
not quarrel, but be courteous to all, skillful in teaching, for- 
bearing, instructing opponents with gentleness, for God may 
give them a change of heart which will lead them to knowledge 
of the truth, and they may return to soberness and escape the 
snare of the Devil when captured by the Lord's servant to do 
the Lord's will. 

Ill 

I WOULD have you know this, that in the last days trying times 
will come; for people will be lovers of self, lovers of money, 
boasters, haughty, abusive, disobedient to parents, ungrateful, 
profane, without family affection, relentless, slanderers, with- 
out self-control, brutal, haters of good, treacherous, reckless, 
conceited, lovers of pleasure rather than lovers of God. They 
will have a form of religion, but will cast off its power. Avoid 
such people. For of this class are those who make their way 
into houses and take captive weak women loaded with sins, led 
by varying passions, always learning and never able to come 
to the knowledge of the truth. 

Just as Jannes and Jambres opposed Moses, so these men 
oppose the truth, depraved in mind, proved to be worthless as 
regards the faith. But they will go no further, for their folly 
will be manifest to all as that of Jannes and Jambres became. 
But you have kept track of my teaching, my course of life, my 
purpose, my faith, my slowness to anger, my love, my patience, 



362 SECOND LETTER TO TIMOTHY 

my persecutions, my sufferings what happened to me at 
Antioch, Iconium, Lystra, what persecutions I underwent. 
But the Lord delivered me out of all of them. And all who are 
determined to live religiously in Christ Jesus will be persecuted. 
Wicked men and impostors will go on from bad to worse, 
deceiving and being deceived. 

But you must stand by what you learned and were persuaded 
of, knowing from whom you learned it and that from childhood 
you have known the sacred writings which can give you wisdom 
to gain salvation through faith in Christ Jesus. All Scripture 
is divinely inspired and is useful for teaching, for proof, for 
correction of error, for education in righteousness, that the 
man of God may be complete, equipped for every good work. 

IV 

I CHAKGE you before God and Christ Jesus, who will soon 
judge the living and the dead, and by his appearing and his 
kingdom: proclaim the message, be at it in season and out 
of season, convince, rebuke, encourage, with all patience in 
teaching. For there will be a time when they will not endure 
wholesome teaching, but following their own fancies and 
wishing to have their ears tickled, they will get a crowd of 
teachers. They will turn their ears away from the truth and 
give attention to myths. 

But you must be calm in all circumstances, suffer hardships, 
do the work of a bringer of the good news, carry out fully all 
the duties of your office. For I am already being poured out 
like a drink offering, and the time of my departure is near. I 
have played the grand hard game, I have finished my race, 
I have kept the faith. Now the crown of righteousness is 
awaiting me. The Lord the righteous judge will give it to me 
on that day, and not only to me but to all those who have 
loved his appearing. 

Make haste to come to me quickly. For Demas deserted me 
because he loved the present world and has gone to Thessar 
lonica. Crescens has gone to Galatia, Titus to Dalmatia. 
Luke alone is with me. Get Mark and bring him with you, 
for he is useful to me in service. I sent lychicus to Ephesus* 



SECOND LETTER TO TIMOTHY 363 

When you come, bring the cloak that I left at Troas with Car- 
pus, and the books, and particularly the parchments. 

Alexander the coppersmith showed much ill will toward me. 
The Lord will repay him according to his deeds. Be on your 
guard against him, for he strongly opposed our teachings. 

At my first defense no one came to my help; all deserted me. 
May it not be laid up against them! But the Lord stood by 
me and strengthened me so that through me the proclamation 
might be fully published and all the Gentiles might hear it, and 
I was saved from the mouth of the lion. The Lord will rescue 
me from every wicked attack and will keep me safe for his 
heavenly kingdom. To him be glory for the ages of the ages! 
Amen. 

Give my greetings to Priscaand Aquilaand the household of 
Onesiphorus. Erastus stayed at Corinth. Trophimus I left at 
Miletus, sick. Try to come before winter. Eubulus and Pudens 
and Linus and Claudia and all the brethren send their greet- 
ings to you. 

The Lord be with your spirit. Grace be with you all. 



PAUL'S LETTER TO TITUS 



PAUL, a servant of God and an apostle of Jesus Christ to pro- 
mote the faith of God's chosen and their knowledge of the 
truths of religion, in hope of life eternal, which the God who 
never lies promised ages ago but in due time made known as 
his message through the proclamation with which I was en- 
trusted by the commission of God our Savior, to Titus my true 
child in our common faith: 

Grace and peace from God, the Father, and from Christ 
Jesus, our Savior. 

For this reason I left you in Crete: to arrange the things 
that are lacking and appoint elders in every city as I directed 
you, wherever there is a man of irreproachable character, 
true to one woman, with believing children who are not charged 
with dissolute conduct and not unruly. For a bishop, as God's 
steward, must be above reproach, not self-willed, not quick- 
tempered, not given to wine, not given to blows, not eager for 
base gain, but hospitable, a lover of good, self-controlled, just, 
holy, temperate, holding to the trustworthy message which is 
according to the teaching, so that he may be able also to en- 
courage others by wholesome teaching and to refute opposers. 

For there are many insubordinate persons, foolish talkers 
and deceivers, especially those who are of the circumcision, 
who ought to be silenced, for they are upsetting whole house- 
holds, teaching what they should not, merely for the sake of 
base gain. One of themselves, a prophet of their own, said, 
"Cretans are always liars, base brutes, lazy gluttons." Thia 
testimony is true. For this reason rebuke them sharply, tliat 
they may be sound in the faith, not giving attention to Jewish 
myths and rules laid down by men who are turning away from 
the truth. To the pure all things are pure; but to the polluted 
and unbelieving nothing is pure. Even their minds and coa- 



LETTER TO TITUS 365 

sciences are polluted. They profess to know God, but by their 
deeds they disown him. They are detestable, disobedient, and 
worthless for any good work. 

II 

You must speak to them of the matters which should have a 
place in wholesome teaching. Tell the older men to be tem- 
perate, dignified, self-controlled, sound in faith, in love, in 
patience. Tell the older women, in the same way, to be reverent 
in behavior, not slanderers, not enslaved to much wine, 
teachers of what is noble, that they may train the young 
women to be loving wives and loving mothers, self-controlled, 
pure, home-workers, kind, submissive to their own husbands, 
that God's message may not be slandered. Urge the younger 
men, in the same way, to practice self-control in everything. 
Make yourself an example of good works, sincerity in teaching, 
dignified behavior and wholesome talk that is above censure, 
that our opponents may be ashamed, having nothing evil to 
say about us. Tell slaves to be submissive to their own masters 
in all things and to try to please them, not answering back, 
not pilfering, but showing all kindly fidelity, so as to make the 
teaching about God our Savior seem beautiful in all respects. 
For the grace of God has appeared bringing salvation to all 
men, teaching us to renounce all irreligion and worldly passions 
and to live soberly, justly and piously in this present world, 
waiting for the blessed hope, the glorious appearing of the great 
God and of our Savior Christ Jesus, who gave himself for us to 
redeem us from all sin and purify us as his own people earnest 
in honorable work. Tell them these things, urge, convince 
with all authority; let no one slight you. 

Ill 

REMIND them to be submissive to ruling authorities, to be 
obedient, to be ready for every good work, to speak abusively 
to no one, to bo peaceable, to bo fair, showing all gentleness 
toward all men. For we ourselves were once thoughtless, 
disobedient, astray, enslaved to passions and various pleasures, 
living in malice and envy, hateful and hating one another. 



366 LETTER TO TITUS 

But when the kindness of our Savior, God, and his love to men 
appeared, " not because of works that we had done in righteous- 
ness, but out of his own mercy he saved us through the bath of 
the new birth and the renewing of the Holy Spirit which he 
poured out upon us richly through Jesus Christ our Savior, 
that we might be declared righteous by his grace and become 
heirs with the hope of life eternal." That is a trustworthy 
saying. 

I wish you to insist on these things so that those who have 
put their faith in God may give earnest attention to honorable 
work. These things are honorable and also useful to men. But 
avoid f oolish disputes and genealogies and strife and quarrels 
about the Law; for they are unprofitable and futile. If a man 
is factious, after one or two warnings, have nothing more to 
do with him, knowing that such a one is perverted and goes 
on sinning though self-condemned. 

When I send Artemas to you or Tychicus, try to come to me 
at Nicopolis, for I have decided to pass the winter there. Do 
your best in helping Zenas, the lawyer, and Apollos forward on 
their journey so that they may lack nothing. Our people too 
must learn to give attention to honorable work, so as to be 
able to meet pressing needs, that they may not be fruitless. 

All who are with me send you their greetings. Give our greet- 
ings to those who love us in the faith. 

Grace be with all of you. 



PAUL'S LETTER TO PHILEMON 

I 

PAUL, a prisoner of Christ Jesus, and Timothy our brother, to 
Philemon, our beloved fellow worker, and to Apphia, our sister, I 
and to Archippus, our fellow soldier, and to the Church that 
meets at your house: 

Grace to you and peace from God our Father and the Lord 
Jesus Christ. ' 

I always thank my God when I mention you in my prayers, 
for I hear of the love and the loyalty that you have to the Lord 
Jesus Christ and to all the holy. I pray that your fellowship in 
the faith may become effective in the knowledge of all the good 
there is in us in our relation to Christ. For I have had great 
joy and encouragement in your love, because the hearts of the 
holy have been refreshed by you, brother. 

Therefore, though I might have great boldness in Christ to 
command you what is fitting, I beg you rather for love's sake, 
as Paul the old man and now the prisoner of Christ Jesus I 
beg you in behalf of my child Onesimus, born to me in my 
chains, who once was useless * to you, but now is useful to you 
and to me. I am sending him back to you, though he is my 
very heart. I should like to have him for my own, to serve me 
in my chains for the good news, as your representative, but 
without your consent I am unwilling to do anything, so that 
your goodness may not be of necessity but of free will. 

Perhaps it was for this that he was separated from you for a 
time, that you might have him back for ever, no longer as a 
slave, but more than a slave, a brother beloved, especially to 
me, but how much more to you, both in the flesh and in the 
Lord. If then you hold me for a partner, receive him as you 
would me* If he has wronged you in any way or owes you any- 
thing, charge that to my account. I, Paul, write it with my 
* Thfc ia & play on the name Oaosimus, which in Greek mean* L* Helpful/' 



368 LETTER TO PHILEMON 

own hand. I will pay it not to mention to you that you owe 
me your own self besides. Yes, brother, let me have this help l 
from you in the Lord; refresh my heart in Christ. 

I am writing to you confident of your obedience and knowing 
that you will do more than I say. At the same time I want 3^ou 
to prepare a lodging for me, for I hope that through your 
prayers I shall be given back to you. 

Epaphras, my fellow prisoner in Christ Jesus, and Mark, 
Aristarchus, Demas and Luke, my fellow workers, send you 
their greetings. 

The grace of the Lord Jesus Christ be with your spirits. 

1 Again a play on the name Onesimus, "Helpful." 



THE LETTER TO THE HEBREWS 



MANY times and in many ways God spoke of old to our fathers 
by the prophets; but at the end of these days he has spoken to 
us by a Son, whom he has appointed heir of all things and 
through whom he made the world, who is the reflection of his 
glory and the expression of his nature and sustains all things 
by his word of power, and who, when he had made purification 
from sins, took his seat at the right hand of the Majesty on 
high, having become as much superior to the angels as the 
name he has inherited surpasses theirs. 

For to which of the angels did he ever say, "Thou art my 
son; I have to-day become thy Father"? and again, "I will 
be to him a Father and he shall be to me a Son"? And again 
when he brings his first-born into the world of men he says. 
"And let all the angels of God bow down to him." Referring 
to the angels he says, "He makes his angels winds, his servants 
a flame of fire." But regarding the Son he says, "Thy throne, 
O God, is forever and over. Thy royal scepter is a scepter of 
justice. Thou lovest righteousness and hatest lawlessness, 
therefore God, thy God, has anointed thee with the oil of glad- 
ness beyond thy companions." And, "Thou, in the begin- 
ning, O Lord, didst found the earth, and the heavens are works 
of thy hands. They will perish, but thou wilt endure. They all 
will grow old like a garment and like a mantle thou wilt roll 
them up. But thou art the same and thy years will never end." 
To which of the angels did he ever say, "Sit at my right hand 
till I make thine enemies thy footstool"? Are they not all 
ministering spirits sent forth for service in behalf of those who 
are to inherit salvation? 

n 

FOE this reason we should give special attention to the things 
that we have heard, ao as not to drift away from them* For if 



370 THE LETTER TO THE HEBREWS 

the message spoken through angels was sure and every viola- 
tion and disobedience received merited punishment, how shall 
we escape if we neglect so great a salvation, which at the be- 
ginning was spoken by the Lord and was confirmed to us by 
those who heard him, while God added his testimony by signs 
and wonders and many kinds of miracles and impartations of 
the Holy Spirit according to his will? 

For he has not subjected to angels the coming world of 
which we speak. But somewhere one says, "What is man that 
thou rememberest him? Or the son of man that thou carest 
for him? Thou hast made him, a little lower than the angels. 
With glory and honor thou hast crowned him. All things thou 
hast put under his feet." When he put all things under him. 
he left nothing that was not put under him. We do not yet 
see all things put under him, but we see Jesus, who was made 
a little lower than the angels for the suffering of death that by 
the grace of God he might taste of death for every man, now 
crowned with glory and honor. For it was fitting that he 
through whom are all things and for whom are all things, when 
leading many sons to glory, should make the great Leader of 
their salvation perfect through sufferings. For he who makes 
holy and they who are made holy are all of one. For this cause 
he is not ashamed to call them brothers, saying, "I will tell 
thy name to my brothers. In the midst of the assembly I will 
sing praise to thee," and again, " I will trust in him," and again, 
"Here am I and the children whom God has given me." 

Since then the children share in blood and flesh, he himself 
in the same way shared in them, in order that through death 
he might defeat him who had the power of death, that is, the 
Devil, and set free all those who through fear of death were all 
their lives doomed to slavery. For he does not come to the 
help of angels, but he comes to the help of the descendants of 
Abraham. And for that reason he had to be made like his 
brethren in everything, so as to be a compassionate and faith- 
ful high priest in things relating to God, to make propitiation 
for the sins of the people. For since he himself has suffered 
when tempted he is able to help those who are tempted* 



THE LETTER TO THE HEBREWS 371 



III 

THEREFOKE, holy brethren, sharers in a heavenly call, consider 
the Apostle and High Priest of our confession, Jesus, who was 
faithful to him who made him as also Moses was in all God's 
house. For he has been thought worthy of more glory than 
Moses, just as he who has built a house has more honor than 
the house. For every house is built by some one, but he who 
built all things is God. Moses was faithful in all God's house 
as a servant for a testimony to the things that were to be 
spoken, but Christ as a Son over his own house. We are his 
house if we hold firmly to the end our confidence and the hope 
of which we boast. 

Wherefore, as the Holy Spirit says, "To-day if you will hear 
his voice, do not harden your hearts as when they made me 
angry on the day when they tried me in the desert, when your 
fathers put me to a test and saw my deeds for forty years. 
Therefore I was much displeased with that generation and said, 
'They always go astray in their hearts and they do not know 
my paths.' So I swore in my wrath, 'They shall not enter into 
my rest/ " See to it, brethren, that there shall not be in any 
one of you a wicked, unbelieving heart ready to forsake the 
living God, but encourage one another daily while it is called 
" to-day," that no one may be hardened by the deceitfulness of 
sin. For we become sharers with Christ if we hold firmly to 
the end the assurance with which we began. When it is said, 
" To-day if you will hear his voice, do not harden your hearts as 
when they made me angry" who when they heard made 
him angry? Was it not aU those who camo out of Egypt with 
Moses? With whom was he much displeased for forty years? 
Was it not with those who sinned, whose bodies fell in tho 
desert? To whom did he swear that they should not enter his 
rest, except to those who had no faith? We see that they were 
unable to enter because of their lack of faith. 

IV 

LET us, then, be afraid that, though the promise of entering 
his rest is still left, some one of you may seem to have missed 



372 THE LETTER TO THE HEBREWS 

it. For we have received the good news just as they did, but the 
message that was heard did not benefit them, since it did not 
meet with faith in the hearers. For we who have faith are 
entering into the rest, as he said, "As I swore in my wrath, 
'They shall not enter into my rest,'" although his works had 
been finished since the creation of the world. For he has some- 
where spoken of the seventh day thus, "And God rested on the 
seventh day from all his works," and in this place again, " They 
shall not enter into my rest." Since, then, it remains for some 
to enter into it, and those who first received the good news did 
not enter because of lack of faith again he indicates a day, 
"to-day," saying in David so long after, as has been already 
quoted, "To-day if you will hear his voice, do not harden your 
hearts." For if Joshua had given them rest he would not be 
speaking of another day after that. Therefore there still re- 
mains a rest -for the people of God. For he who has entered into 
God's rest has rested from his works as God did from his. 

Let us endeavor then to enter into that rest so that no one 
shall fall, after that example of lack of faith. For the word of 
God is living and effective and sharper than any two-edged 
sword, and it pierces until it divides soul and spirit, joints and 
marrow, and it judges the thoughts and purposes of the heart. 
There is not a creature invisible to him, but all things are naked 
and defenseless before the eyes of him to whom we must 
account. 

Since, then, we have a great High Priest who 1ms passed 
through the heavens, Jesus, the Son of God, let us hold fast 
our confession. For we have not a high priest who cannot 
sympathize with our weaknesses, for he has been tempted in 
every way just as we are, yet without sin. Therefore lot us 
come with confidence to the throne of grace and receive com- 
passion and find grace for timely help. 

V 

FOB every high priest taken from among men is appointed in 
behalf of men in things relating to God to offer gifts and sacri- 
fices for sins. He is able to sympathize with the ignorant mid 
the erring, since he himself is beset with weaknesses. For this 



THE LETTER TO THE HEBREWS 373 

reason he must bring an offering for his own sins, just as he 
docs for those of the people. And no one takes this honor upon 
himself unless called by God, as Aaron was. So too Christ did 
not take for himself the glory of becoming a high priest, but he 
who said to him, " Thou art my Son, to-day I have become thy 
Father/' and who says in another place, "Thou art a priest 
forever after the order of Mclchizedek." Christ, in the days 
of his flesh, offered prayers and supplications to him who was 
able to save him from death, with strong outcries and tears, 
and was heard and saved from his terrors. Although he was a 
Son' he learned obedience from his sufferings, and being thus 
made perfect he became the author of eternal salvation to all 
who obey him, and was proclaimed by God a high priest after 
the order of Melchizedek. 

Regarding Melchizedek we have much to say that is hard to 
explain, since you have become dull of hearing. For when, con- 
sidering the time, you ought to be teachers you need to have 
some one teach you again the first principles of the revelations 
of God. You have come to need milk and not solid food. For 
every one who takes milk is inexperienced in the doctrine of 
righteousness, for he is a child. But solid food is for adults who 
through practice have their senses exercised in distinguishing 
good and bad. 

VI 

THERBFOHB let us leave elementary teaching about Christ and 
hasten on to what is advanced, not laying again a foundation 
change of heart from dead works, faith in God, the teaching 
about baptisms, the laying on of hands, resurrection of the dead, 
and eternal judgment. This we will do if God permits. For it 
i impossible for those who have been once for all enlightened 
and have tasted the heavenly gift and have become sharers in 
the Holy Spirit and have tasted God's word and the powers of 
the coming world, and then have fallen away, to have again 
a change of heart, since they are crucifying for themselves 
afresh the Son of God and putting him to open shame. For 
ground that drinks the rain that comes often upon it and bears 
plants useful to those for whom it is farmed shares in God's 



374 THE LETTER TO THE HEBREWS 

blessing; but if it bears thorns and thistles it is judged worthless 
and is near to being cursed. In the end it will be burnt over. 

But we are persuaded of better things regarding you, be- 
loved, things that belong with salvation, though we thus 
speak. For God is not so unjust as to forget your work and 
the love that you have shown to his name as you have served 
and are still serving the holy. But we desire to have each one 
of you show to the end the same earnestness for the fufillment 
of our hope, that you may not be dull, but imitators of those 
who through faith and patience are inheriting the promises, 

For God, when making the promise to Abraham, since he 
could swear by no one greater, swore by himself, saying, 
"Surely, I will greatly bless you and greatly multiply you/' 
And so after patient waiting Abraham obtained what was 
promised. For men swear by the greater and an oath for con- 
firmation is to them the end of all dispute. In this case God 
being abundantly willing to show to the heirs of the promise 
the unchangeable purpose of his will gave the surety of an 
oath, that by two unchangeable things, in which it was im- 
possible for God to be false, we might have strong encourage- 
ment, we who have fled to lay hold on the hope that lies before 
us. We have this hope as an anchor of the soul, sure and firm, 
and it enters into the tent within the curtain where Jesus, our 
forerunner, has entered in our behalf, becoming forever a high 
priest after the order of Melchizedek. 

vn 

FOE, this Melchizedek, king of Salem, priest of God Most High, 
who met Abraham when he was returning from the defeat of 
the kings and blessed him, and to whom Abraham gave a tenth 
of all (first, by the translation of his name, "King of Righteous- 
ness/ " and then king of Salem, which means " King of Peace ")? 
without father, without mother, without ancestors, without 
either birthday or end of life, but made like the Son of God, 
remains a priest permanently. But see how great this man was, 
since Abraham the patriarch gave him a tenth of his choicest 
spoils. And even those of the sons of Levi who attain the 
priesthood have command according to the Law to take a. tenth 



THE LETTER TO THE HEBREWS 375 

from the people, their own brethren, although these have 
sprung from the loins of Abraham. But he who had no gene- 
alogy from these took a tenth from Abraham and pronounced 
a blessing on him who had the promises. Without dispute the 
less is blessed by the greater. And here mortal men receive 
tenths, but there one of whom the witness is that he is living. 
And, to put it frankly, Levi, who receives the tenths, was made 
to pay a tenth through Abraham. For he was still in the loins 
of his father when Melchizedek met Abraham. 

If, then, perfection had been through the Levitical priesthood, 
for on the basis of that the people received the Law what 
need was there for another kind of priest to arise and not be 
called of the order of Aaron? For when the priesthood has been 
changed there comes of necessity also a change of law. For he 
of whom these things are said belongs to another tribe, from 
which no one has ever had anything to do with the altar. For 
it is plain that our Lord has arisen from Judah, and in connec- 
tion with that tribe Moses said nothing about priests. And 
this is yet more abundantly evident if after the order of Mel- 
chizedek there arises a priest of a different kind who has be- 
come such, not according to the law of a commandment made 
for the flesh, but according to the power of unending life. For 
it is affirmed of him, "Thou art a priest forever after the order 
of Melchizedek." There is a setting aside of the earlier com- 
mandment because of its weakness and uselessness for the 
Law brought nothing to perfection and there is the bringing 
in of a better hope through which we draw near to God. And 
just as it was not without an oath for those men have be- 
come priests without an oath, but he with an oath from him 
who said to him, "The Lord has sworn and will not change his 
mind: thou art a priest forever" by so much better is the 
covenant of which Jesus has become surety. 

And many of them became priests because they were pre- 
vented by death from continuing, but he, because he continues 
forever, has an unending priesthood* And so he is able to save 
perfectly those who come to God through him, since he is for- 
ever living to intercede for them. 

For such was the High Priest that we needed! holy, innocent, 



376 THE LETTER TO THE HEBREWS 

unstained, separated from sinners, and made higher than the 
heavens. He has not the daily need, like the other priests, 
first to offer sacrifices for his own sins and then for those of the 
people. This latter he did once for all when he offered himself. 
For the Law makes high priests of men who have infirmities, 
but the word of the oath, which comes after the Law, makes 
High Priest of a Son who is perfected forever. 

vni 

THE chief point of what I have been saying is this : we have such 
a High Priest who has taken his seat at the right hand of the 
throne of Majesty in the heavens, and who ministers in the 
holy place and in the true Tent set up by the Lord, not by man. 
Now every high priest is appointed to offer gifts and sacri- 
fices. Whence it is necessary for this one to have something to 
offer. If he were upon the earth he would not be a priest at all, 
since there are those who offer the gifts according to the Law. 
They minister as an example and shadow of the things in 
heaven, just as Moses was divinely instructed when he was 
about to make the Tent. "See," it was said, "that you make 
everything according to the model shown you on the mountain. " 
But now Christ has obtained a ministry as much more excellent 
as the covenant of which he is mediator is better and based 
upon better promises. For if that first covenant had been 
faultless a place would not have been sought for a second. But 
finding fault with it he says, "The days are coming, says the 
Lord, when I will make for the house of Israel and for the house 
of Judah a new covenant, not in the manner of the covenant 
which I made with their fathers, on the day when I took them 
by the hand to lead them out of the land of Egypt. For they 
did not abide by my covenant and I ceased to care for thorn, 
says the Lord. This is the covenant that I will moke with the 
house of Israel after those days, says the Lord; I will put my 
laws into their minds and will write them upon their hearts 
and I will be their God and they will be my people. They shall 
not teach each one his fellow citizen and each one his brother 
saying, 'Know the Lord'; for all shall know me, from the least 
to the greatest of them, and I will be merciful to their wrong- 



THE LETTER TO THE HEBREWS 377 

doings and their sins I will remember no more." In saying 
"new" he has pronounced the first covenant old. But what 
grows old and decadent is near to disappearance. 

IX 

THE first covenant had regulations of worship and its holy 
building in this world. For a Tent was erected, in the first part 
of which were the lampstand and the table and the consecrated 
bread. This was called the Holy Place. Behind the second 
curtain was the part called the Holy of Holies. It had the 
golden altar of incense and the ark of the covenant all covered 
with gold. In this was a golden jar with the manna and Aaron's 
rod that sprouted and the tablets of the covenant. Above it 
were cherubim of glory overshadowing the place of propitiation. 
Regarding these things it is not now possible to speak in detail. 
But these things being thus arranged, the priests go constantly 
into the first part of the Tent, performing their services, but 
into the second part the High Priest alone goes once in the 
year, not without blood, which he offers for himself and for the 
sins ignorantly committed by the people. The Holy Spirit shows 
this, that the way into the holy place has not yet been made 
plain while the first Tent is standing. That is a symbol, for the 
time being, in accordance with which gifts and sacrifices are 
offered, though they cannot make the worshiper perfect in his 
conscience, since they consist only of foods and drinks and 
various baths rules respecting the flesh, imposed until the 
time of reformation. 

But when Christ came as High Priest of the good things that 
have come, he entered once for all through the greater and 
more perfect Tent not made by hands that is, not of this 
creation and not with the blood of goats and calves, but 
with his own blood, into the holy place, and thereby found 
eternal redemption. For if the blood of goats and bulls, and 
the ashes of a heifer sprinkling the defiled, makes them holy 
as regards purity of their flesh, how much more will the blood 
of Christ, who through an eternal Spirit offered himself an un- 
blemished sacrifice to God, cleanse our consciences from dead 
works for the service of the living God. 



378 THE LETTER TO THE HEBREWS 

For this reason he is the mediator of a better covenant that, 
a death having taken place for redemption from sins under the 
first covenant, those who have been called may receive the 
eternal inheritance promised to them. 

For where there is a last will and testament * the death of the 
testator must be put in evidence. For a will is valid in the case 
of the dead: it never has any force while the testator is living. 
Hence the first covenant was not introduced without blood. 
When all the commands of the Law had been spoken by Moses 
to all the people, he took the blood of calves and goats, with 
water and scarlet wool and hyssop, and sprinkled it on the 
book and on all the people, saying, "This is the blood of the 
covenant which God has commanded for you." And the Tent 
and all the things used in worship he likewise sprinkled with 
blood. Almost everything is cleansed with blood, according to 
the Law, and without the shedding of blood there is no for- 
giveness. 

It was necessary, then, that the copies of the things in 
heaven should be cleansed with these sacrifices, but the 
heavenly things themselves with better sacrifices than these. 
. For Christ did not enter into a holy place made by hands, a 
4 copy of the true, but into heaven itself, now to appear before 
the face of God in our behalf. Nor was it to offer himself often, 
as the High Priest enters into the holy place every year with 
blood not his own; then he must have suffered often since the 
foundation of the world. But now, once for all, at the end of 
the ages, he has appeared to do away with sin by his sacrifice. 
And as it is appointed for men once for all to die and after this 
comes judgment, so Christ was once for all offered to bear the 
sins of many and will appear the second time, apart from sin, 
to those who are looking for him, and bring them salvation, 

X 

FOB the Law with a shadow of the good things that are coming, 
but not the very likeness of the things, cannot, by the same 
sacrifices which they offer constantly eveiy year, ever mako 

* The Greek word translated "Covenant" may also mean "iaafc wfll and 
testament." The author here plays upon this double 



THE LETTER TO THE HEBREWS 379 

perfect those who come, since would they not have ceased 
offering them? Because the worshipers, once for all cleansed, 
would have had no consciousness of sins. But in the sacrifices 
sins are called to mind every year. For the blood of bulls and 
goats is powerless to take away sins. Therefore on coming 
into the world he says, "Sacrifice and offering thou dost not 
desire : a body thou hast prepared for me. Whole burnt offerings 
and sin offerings thou dost not delight in. Then I said, 'Here 
I have come in the roll of the book it is written of me to 
do thy will, O God/" He first says, "Sacrifices and offerings 
and whole burnt offerings and sin offerings thou dost not desire 
nor delight in," such as! are offered according to the Law, and 
then he says, "Here I have come to do thy will." He takes 
away the first to establish the second. By this "will" we are 
made holy through the offering of the body of Jesus Christ once 
for all. 

Every priest stands daily doing service and offering many 
times the same sacrifices, although they never can take away 
sins. But this Priest after offering one sacrifice for sins forever, 
took his seat at the right hand of God, for the future only 
waiting until his enemies are made his footstool. For by one 
offering he has forever perfected those who are made holy. 
The Holy Spirit testifies this to us; for after having said, 
"This is the covenant that I will make with them after those 
days, says the Lord: I will put my laws in their hearts and on 
their minds I will write them," he adds, "and their sins and 
their law-breakings I will remember no more." But where 
there is forgiveness of these, there, is no longer any offering 
for sin. 

Since we have, then, brethren, confidence in entering the 
holy place through the blood of Jesus, by the new and living 
way which he has made for us through the curtain, that is, his 
flesh, and since we have a great Priest over the house of God, let 
us come with true hearts in full assurance of faith, having our 
hearts sprinkled from an evil conscience and our bodies bathed 
in pure water. Let us hold fast the confession of our hope with- 
out wavering, for he is faithful who has promised, and let us 
keep watch to incite one another to love and noble deeds, not 



380 THE LETTER TO THE HEBREWS 

neglecting to assemble yourselves, as some' do, but encourag- 
ing one another, and so much the more, as you see the day 
drawing near. For if we go on sinning willfully after receiving 
the knowledge of the truth, there remains no longer any sacri- 
fice for sins, but a dreadful expectation of doom and a fury of 
fire that will devour the opposers. Any one who sets aside a 
law of Moses dies without pity on the testimony of two or three 
witnesses. Of how much worse punishment do you think he 
will be judged worthy who has trampled on the Son of God, 
who has thought the blood of the covenant, by which it was 
made holy, an unholy thing, and who has insulted the Spirit 
of grace? For we know him who said, "Vengeance is mine, I 
will repay," and again, "The Lord will judge his people." It 
is dreadful to fall into the hands of the living God. 

Remember the early days in which, after being enlightened, 
you endured a great struggle with sufferings, at one time made a 
public spectacle by reproaches and distresses, at another time 
making common cause with those who were thus treated. For 
you even suffered with the prisoners and accepted the plunder- 
ing of your property with joy, knowing that you had a better 
and enduring possession. Do not, then, cast away your confi- 
dence, for it will have a great reward. You have need of patience 
so that after doing the will of God you may gain the promised 
blessing. For yet "a little, very little, while, and he who is 
coming will come and will not delay. My righteous man will 
live by faith; but if he shrinks back, my soul has no delight in 
him." But we are not of those who shrink back and perish, 
but of those who have faith and will win their souls. 

XI 

FAITH is an assurance of things hoped for, a conviction of things 
not seen. By this the men of old won their fame. 

By faith we understand that the worlds came into order at 
the word of God, so that what is now seen did not come out of 
things that are visible. 

By faith Abel offered to God a better sacrifice than Cain, for 
which he had witness borne to him that ho was righteous, Cod 
testifying to his gifts, and by it, though dead, he stiU speaks. 



THE LETTER TO THE HEBREWS 381 

By faith Enoch was taken from the earth so that he did not 
see death, and he was not found because God had taken him. 
For before being taken he had this testimony that he had 
pleased God. But without faith it is impossible to please him. 
For he who comes to God must have faith that he exists and 
that he becomes the rewarder of those who seek him. 

By faith Noah, after receiving a divine warning regarding 
things as yet unseen, reverently built an ark for the saving of 
his household. Thus he condemned the world and became an 
heir of the righteousness of faith. 

By faith Abraham when called obeyed and came out into 
the place which he was to obtain for an inheritance. He came 
out not knowing where he was coming. By faith he made his 
home in the promised land as in a foreign country, living in 
tents with Isaac and Jacob, the heirs with him of the same 
promise. For he was looking for the city that has the founda- 
tions, whose architect and builder is God. 

By faith Sarah received power to conceive a child even when 
past the natural time of life, since she thought him trustworthy 
who had given the promise. And so from just one man, already 
dead in that respect, there sprang descendants "as the stars of 
heaven in multitude and as the 'sand on the seashore innumer- 
able." 

These all died in faith, not having obtained the promised 
blessings, but they saw them and greeted them afar and con- 
fessed that they were strangers and foreigners in the land. For 
those who say such things make it plain that they are seeking 
a fatherland. And if they had been thinking of that land from 
which they came they would have had opportunity to return. 
But now they desire a better land, that is, a heavenly one. 
Therefore God is not ashamed of them of being called their 
God; for he has prepared for them a city. 

By faith Abraham when he was tested offered up Isaac/and 
ho who had received tho promises began offering his only son 
regarding whom it had been said, "Those only whose descent 
is through Isaac shall be called your descendants." He rea- 
soned that God was able to raise him even from the dead, and 
figuratively ho did win him back from the dead. 



382 THE LETTER TO THE HEBREWS 

By faith also Isaac blessed Jacob and Esau and spoke of 
things to come. 

By faith Jacob when dying blessed each of the sons of 
Joseph and worshiped leaning on the top of his staff. 

By faith Joseph, when at his end, mentioned the departure 
of the children of Israel and gave orders regarding his own 
bones. 

By faith Moses at his birth was hidden three months by his 
parents, because they saw that the child was beautiful, and 
they did not fear the king's command. 

By faith Moses when he had grown up refused to be called 
a son of Pharaoh's daughter. He chose rather to suffer hard- 
ship with the people of God than to enjoy the brief pleasure of 
sin, and he thought the reproach of Christ greater riches than 
the treasures of Egypt. For he was looking to the final reward. 

By faith he left Egypt, not fearing the king's anger; for he 
endured as if seeing him who is unseen. By faith he kept the 
Passover and the sprinkling of the blood, so that the destroyer 
might not touch their first-born. 

By faith they crossed the Red Sea as on dry land; but the 
Egyptians when they tried to do so were drowned. 

By faith the walls of Jericho fell down after they had been 
encircled seven days. 

By faith Rahab, the prostitute, did not perish with those who 
had refused to believe; because she had welcomed the spies 
with peace. 

And what shall I say further? Time would fail me to tell of 
Gideon, Barak, Samson, Jephthah, and of David and Samuel 
and the prophets, who through faith struggled against king- 
doms and subdued them, did deeds of righteousness, obtained 
promised blessings, shut the mouths of lions, quenched the 
power of fire, escaped the edge of the sword, out of weakness 
grew strong, became mighty in war, turned back armies of 
foreigners. Women received back their dead by a resurrection. 
Others were tortured, refusing to pay for liberation, in order 
to gain a better resurrection. Still others had experience of 
mockings and floggings, yes, of chains and prisons. They were 
stoned, afflicted, sawn in two, murdered with the sword. 



THE LETTER TO THE HEBREWS 383 

They went about in sheepskins, in goatskins, destitute, dis- 
tressed, maltreated. The world was not worthy of them. 
They wandered in deserts and mountains, in caves and in 
holes in the earth. All these won God's approval by their faith. 
Yet they did not obtain the fulfillment of the promise. In 
reference to us God had something better in view, that they 
without us should not reach perfection, 

XII 

THEREFOBB, surrounded as we are by so great a cloud of wit- 
nesses, let tis lay aside every weight and the sin that so easily 
besets us, and let us run with patience the race that lies before 
us, looking to Jesus the beginner and finisher of our faith, who 
for the joy set before him endured a cross, thinking little of the 
shame, and has taken his seat at the right hand of the throne 
of God. Think of him who endured such hostile speaking of 
sinners against him, that you may not grow weary and despond- 
ent in heart. You have not yet resisted to blood in the con- 
test against sin, and you have forgotten the encouragement 
which reasons with you as with sons, "My son, do not think 
slightingly of the discipline of the Lord and be not faint- 
hearted when reproved by him: for whom the Lord loves he 
disciplines and scourges every son whom he receives as his 
own." It is for discipline that you are enduring. God is laying 
it upon you as upon sons. For what son is there whom his 
father does not discipline? But if you are without discipline, 
in which all share, then you are bastards and not sons. Besides, 
we had fathers of our flesh who disciplined us and we used to 
reverence them. Shall we not much more be submissive to the 
Father of our spirits and live? For they for a few days dis- 
ciplined us as seemed good to them, but he for our profit, that 
we may share his holiness. All discipline for the time being 
seems not joyous but grievous, but afterward it yields the 
peaceful fruit of righteousness to those who have passed 
through its training. 

So raise the relaxed hands and straighten the unstrung 
knees and make straight paths for your feet, so that the lame 
limb may not be put out of joint but rather cured. Follow 



384 THE LETTER TO THE HEBREWS 

after peace with all men and holiness, without which no one 
will see the Lord. Be on your guard that no one shall fail of 
the grace of God, that no bitter root shall sprout up and 
trouble you and through it many be stained, that there shall 
be none unchaste, or profane like Esau, who for one meal sold 
his birthright. For you know that afterward when he wished 
to inherit the blessing he was rejected, for he found no place 
for a change in his father's mind though he sought it earnestly 
with tears. 

For you have not come to something that may be touched, 
ablaze with fire, and to blackness and darkness and tempest 
and the blast of a trumpet and the sound of words which those 
who heard begged not to have spoken of them. For they could 
not bear the command, "If even an animal touches the moun- 
tain it must be stoned." And so dreadful was the sight that 
Moses said, "I am terrified and trembling." But you have 
come to Mount Zion and the city of the living God, heavenly 
Jerusalem, to tens of thousands of angels, to the festal assembly 
and congregation of first-born who are enrolled in heaven, and 
to God the Judge of all, and to the spirits of righteous men 
made perfect, and to Jesus the Mediator of the new covenant 
and to the sprinkled blood which tells something better than 
the blood of Abel. 

Beware of rejecting him who is speaking. For if those did not 
escape who rejected him who taught the divine will on earth, 
much less shall we if we reject him who speaks from heaven. 
His voice then shook the earth, but now he has announced, 
"Yet once for all I shall shake not only the earth but also 
heaven." And this expression "yet once for all" shows the 
removal of the things shaken, as of things that have been 
made, that the unshaken things may remain. So then, since* 
we are receiving an unshaken kingdom, let us have grace by 
which we may worship God acceptably with reverence and 
awe. For our God is a consuming fire. 

xnr 

LET brotherly love continue. Do not forget hospitality; for by 
this some have, without knowing it, had angels OB their guests. 



THE LETTER TO THE HEBREWS 385 

Keep in mind the prisoners, as if you were their fellow prison- 
ers, and those who are suffering hardships, since you your- 
selves are also in the body. 

Let marriage be held in honor by all and let the bed be un- 
dcfiled; for unchaste persons and adulterers God will judge. 

Let your lives be free from the love of money. Be content 
with what you have. For he has said, "I will not fail you nor 
will I forsake you." So we may say with courage, "The Lord 
is my helper; I will not fear. What can man do to me?" 

Remember your leaders, those who have spoken to you 
God's message, think how they ended their lives and imitate 
their faith. Jesus Christ is yesterday and to-day the same 
yes, and through the ages. 

Do not be carried away with all sorts of foreign teachings. 
It is well to have the heart strengthened by grace, not by 
special kinds of food. Those who live in that way are not 
profited. We have an altar of which those who worship in the 
Tent have no right to eat. For the bodies of the animals 
whoso blood is brought into the holy place by the High Priest 
are burned outside the camp. For this reason Jesus also, to 
make the people holy by his own blood, suffered outside the 
gate. Let us go out to him outside the camp and bear the 
reproaches cast on him. For we have here no continuing city, 
but we are seeking the coming one. Through him then let us 
offer to God always the sacrifice of praise, that is, the fruit of 
lips that make confession in his name. Do not forget kindness 
and generosity, for with such sacrifices God is well pleased. 

Obey your leaders and yield to their authority; for they 
watch over your souls as those who must give account, that they 
may do it with joy and not with sighing. That would be 
unprofitable for you. 

Pray for us: for we are confident that we have a good con- 
science, wishing to live nobly in every way. I earnestly beg 
you to do this that I may be restored to you the sooner. 

May the God of peace, who brought up from the dead our 
Lord Jesus, the great Shepherd of the sheep through the blood 
of an eternal covenant, equip you with every good thing for 
doing his will, doing in you what is well-pleasing in his sight 



386 THE LETTER TO THE HEBREWS 

through Jesus Christ, to whom be glory for the ages of the 
ages. Amen. 

I beg you, brethren, to bear with my words of exhortation; 
for I have written to you briefly. 

I wish you to know that our brother Timothy has been set 
at liberty. With him, if he comes soon, I will see you. 

Give my greetings to all your leaders and all the holy. Those 
who are from Italy send their greetings to you. 

Grace be with you all. 



THE LETTER OF JAMES 



JAMES, a servant of God and of the Lord Jesus Christ, to the 
Twelve Tribes which are scattered in foreign lands: Greeting. 

Think it all joy, my brethren, when you fall into all sorts of 
trials, since you know that the testing of your faith brings out 
endurance. Let endurance do its complete work, that you may 
be complete and perfect, lacking in nothing. 

If any one of you is lacking in wisdom, let him ask it from 
God, who gives to all freely without reproaching, and it will be 
given to him. But he must ask in faith with never a doubt. 
For he who doubts is like a wave of the sea, driven by the 
wind and tossed. For that man must not think that he will 
obtain anything from the Lord a two-minded man unsteady 
in all his ways. 

Let the lowly brother glory in his high station, and let the 
rich brother glory in his lowly station, for he will pass away lik 
& flower of the grass. For the sun rises with scorching heat 
and dries up the grass, and the flower of it falls and the beauty 
of its face perishes. So shall the rich man wither in his pursuits. 

Blessed is the man who endures trial, for when he has been 
tested he will gain the crown of life which the Lord has prom- 
ised to those who love him. 

No one must say when tempted, " My temptation comes from 
God." For God cannot be tempted by evil, and he tempts no 
one. Every one is tempted when he is drawn away by his own 
passions and enticed. Then when passion has conceived it gives 
birth to sin, and sin, when it is full grown, gives birth to death. 

Make no mistake, my beloved brethren, every good gift and 
every perfect boon is from above; it descends from the Father 
of lights, with whom there is no change or shadow caused by 
turning. Of his own will he made us his children through the 
message of truth, so that we might be a sort of first fruits of 
his creatures* 



388 THE LETTER OF JAMES 

I wish, you to know tliis, my beloved brethren: Every man 
must be quick to hear, but slow to speak, slow to anger. For 
a man's anger does not work out God's righteousness. So lay 
aside all that is vile and all that remains of malice, and receive 
with gentleness the implanted message which can save your 
souls. Become doers of the message and not hearers only, 
deceiving your own selves. For if one is a hearer of the message 
and not a doer, he is like a man who looks at his natural face 
in a mirror. He looks at himself and is gone, and immediately 
forgets what sort of man he was. But he who looks earnestly 
into the perfect law of liberty and continues to do so, and 
becomes not a forgetful hearer but a doer of work that man 
will be blessed in what he does. 

If any one thinks himself religious while he does not bridle 
his tongue, but deceives his own heart, that man's religion is 
worthless. Pure and stainless religion in the sight of God the 
Father is to visit orphans and widows in their trouble and to 
keep one's self unspotted from the world. 

n 

MY brethren, do not hold the faith of our glorious Lord Jesus 
Christ with partiality for persons. For if there comes into your 
assembly a man with gold rings and in fine clothes, and there 
comes in a poor man in soiled clothes, and you look up to the 
man who is wearing the fine clothes and say, "Take this good 
seat," and say to the poor man, "Stand there," or "Sit under 
my footstool/' are you not making distinctions in your own 
minds and have you not become judges with wicked thoughts? 
Listen, my beloved brethren, did not God choose the poor of 
this world to be rich in faith and heirs of the kingdom which he 
has promised to those who lovo him? But you have dishonored 
the poor man. Do not the rich oppress you and drag you before 
courts? Do they not speak profanely of the noble name by 
which you are called? If you keep the royal law according to 
the Scripture, "Thou shalt love thy neighbor as thyself," you 
do well But if you have partiality, you commit sin and are 
convicted by the law as law-breakers. For he who keeps the 
whole law, but stumbles in one point, has become guilty of all. 



THE LETTER OF JAMES 389 

For he who said, "Thou shalt not commit adultery," said 
also, "Thou shalt not commit murder." If you do not commit 
adultery, but do commit murder, you have become a law- 
breaker. So speak and so act as those who are soon to be judged 
by a law of liberty. For judgment is merciless to him who has 
shown no mercy. Mercy triumphs over judgment. 

Of what use is it, my brethren, for any one to say that he has 
faith, if he has not works? Can faith save him? If a brother 
or sister is naked and lacks food for the day and one of you says 
to them, "Go in peace, be warmed and fed," but you do not 
give them what the body needs, what is the good of it? Just so 
faith by itself, if it has no works, is dead. But some one will 
say, " You have faith and I have works. Show me your faith 
without your works and I will show you my faith by my works." 
You have faith that there is one God. You do well. Even the 
demons have that faith, and they shudder. Are you willing to 
learn, O vacant-minded man, that faith without works is use- 
less? Was not Abraham, our father, pronounced righteous be- 
cause of worts when he laid Isaac his son on the altar? You see 
that faith worked with his works, and by works faith was made 
perfect and the Scripture was fulfilled which says, "Abraham 
had faith in God and it was credited to him for righteousness" 
and he was called "God's friend." You see that a man is pro- 
nounced righteous because of works and not because of faith 
alone. In the same way was not Rahab, the prostitute, pro- 
nounced righteous because of works when she had received the 
messengers and sent them out by a different road? For as the 
body without the spirit is dead, so faith without works is dead. 

m 

Do not, many of you, become teachers, my brethren, for you 
know that we will receive severer judgment. For in many ways 
we all stumble. If any one never stumbles in his talk, he is a 
perfect man, able to bridle also the whole body. If we put bits 
into the horses 7 mouths to make them obey us, we turn about 
their whole bodies. See the ships; great as they are and driven 
by violent winds, they are turned about by a very small rudder 
wherever the desire of the helmsman chooses. Just so the 



390 THE LETTER OF JAMES 

tongue is a small member, but boasts of great things. Think 
how small a fire may be and yet how vast the forest that it may 
set ablaze. 

And the tongue is a fire, a world of wickedness. The tongue 
stands among our members as that which spots the whole 
body and sets on fire the wheel of nature and is itself set on fire 
by Gehenna. For every kind of wild beasts and birds and 
reptiles and animals from the sea is tamed and has been tamed 
by human kind, but the tongue no man is able to tame. It is a 
restless evil; it is full of deadly poison. With it we bless the 
Lord our Father and with it we curse the men who are made in 
the image of God. From the same mouth come blessing and 
cursing. This, my brethren, should not be so. Does a spring 
pour out from the same opening sweet water and bitter? Can 
a fig tree, my brethren, bear olives, or a vine figs? No more 
can salt water yield fresh water. 

Who is wise and intelligent among you? Let him show out of 
the noble life that he lives his works in wise gentleness. But if 
you have bitter jealousy and party-spirit in your hearts, do not 
boast and falsely contradict the truth. This wisdom does not 
come down from on high, but is earthly, animal, demoniacal. 
For where jealousy and party-spirit are, there is confusion and 
every base affair. But the wisdom from on high is first pure, 
then peaceable, fair-minded, easily persuaded, full of compas- 
sion and good fruits, impartial, sincere. The fruit of righteous- 
ness is sown in peace by those who make peace. 

IV 

WHENCE come wars and whence come strifes among you? Is it 
not from your pleasures which carry on war in your members? 
You long for something and do not have it. You murder and 
envy and cannot obtain it. You battle and war. You do not 
have, because of your not asking. You ask and do not receive, 
because you ask wickedly to waste it on your pleasures. You 
adulteresses, do you not know that the friendship of the world 
is enmity to God? Whoever chooses to be a friend to the world 
stands as an enemy of God. Do you think that the Scripture 
speaks to no purpose? Does the Spirit which he made dwell 



THE LETTER OF JAMES 391 

in us long enviously? But he gives greater grace. Therefore it 
says, " God opposes the proud, but gives grace to the humble." 
Submit yourselves, then, to God. Resist the Devil and he will 
flee from you. Draw near to God and he will draw near to you. 
Make your hands clean, you sinners, and purify your hearts, 
you double-minded. Be sorrowful and mourn and lament. 
Let your laughter be turned into grief and your gladness into 
gloom. Humble yourselves before the Lord and he will exalt 
you. 

Do not spoak against one another, brethren. He who speaks 
against his brother speaks against the law and judges the law. 
But if you judge the law you are not a doer of the law, but a 
judge. One is the Lawgiver and Judge he who is able to 
save and to destroy. Who are you, to judge your neighbor? 

Come, now, you who say, "To-day or to-morrow we will go 
to such a city and spend a year and do business and make 
money/' though you do not know what your life will be like on 
the morrow. For you are a vapor that appears for a little while 
and then disappears. You should rather say, " If the Lord wills 
it, we shall live and do this or that," But now you glory in 
bragging. All such glorying is evil. If any one, then, knows 
how to do good and is not doing it, he is committing sin. 



COME, now, you rich men, wail and lament over the miseries 
that are coming upon you. Your riches have rotted and your 
garments have become moth-eaten, your gold and silver are 
rusted over and the rust on them will be an evidence against you 
and will eat your flesh like fire. You have laid up treasures 
in the last days. See, the wages of the laborers who reaped 
your fields, fraudulently kept back by you, call aloud, and the 
cries of the harvesters have come into the ears of the Lord of 
armies. You have lived luxuriously in the land and have given, 
yourselves up to pleasure. You have fattened your hearts in a 
day of slaughter. You have condemned, you have murdered, 
the righteous; he does not resist you. 

Therefore be patient, brethren, until the coming of the Lord* 
See how the farmer waits for the precious fruit of the ground 



392 THE LETTER OF JAMES 

and is patient over it until he receives the early and the late 
rains. You too must be patient* Keep your hearts steadfast, 
for the coming of the Lord is near. Do not fret at one another, 
brethren, and then you will not be judged. The Judge is stand- 
ing before your doors. Take, brethren, the prophets who spoke 
in the name of the Lord as an example of patience in suffering 
evil. We call them blessed because they endured. You have 
heard of the patience of Job and have seen the end of the Lord's 
dealings with him, that the Lord is very tender and com- 
passionate. 

Above all things, my brethren, do not swear, either by heaven 
or by the earth or by any other oath. Let your yes be yes and 
your no be no, that you may not fall under condemnation. 

Is any one of you suffering hardship? Let him pray. Is any 
one cheerful? Let him sing with the harp. Is any one of you 
sick? Let him call in the elders of the church and let them pray 
over him and anoint him with olive oil in the name of the Lord. 
The prayer of faith will save the sick and the Lord will raise 
him up, and if he has committed sins they will be forgiven him. 

Confess your sins to one another and pray for one another in 
order to be healed. The effective prayer of a righteous man 
has great power, Elijah was a man of the same weaknesses 
as ours, and he prayed earnestly that it might not rain and it 
did not rain on the land for three years and six months. Then 
he prayed again and heaven gave rain and the land brought 
forth its fruits. 

My brethren, if one of you strays from the truth and any one 
brings him back, I wish you to know that he who brings back 
a sinner from his wanderings will save his soul from death and 
will hide a host of sins* 



THE FIRST LETTER OF PETER 



PETER, an apostle of Jesus Christ, to the Chosen Ones of the 
scattered Jews in foreign lands who are living in Pontus, 
Galatia, Cappadocia, Asia and Bithynia chosen according 
to the foreknowledge of God the Father and made holy by the 
Spirit to obey Jesus Christ and be sprinkled with his blood: 

Grace be to you and peace be multiplied. 

Blessed be the God and Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, who 
according to his great mercy has given us a new birth into a 
living hope through the resurrection of Jesus Christ .from the 
dead a birth into an inheritance immortal, unstained and 
unfading, kept in heaven for you who are guarded by the power 
of God through faith for the salvation which is ready to be 
revealed on the last day. In this you rejoice, though now for a 
little while, if necessary, you are sorrowful in trials of many 
kinds, so that your tested faith, much more precious than 
gold that perishes though tested by fire, may be found to your 
praise and glory and honor when Jesus Christ is revealed, 
whom you love though you have not seen him; in whom you 
have faith though now you do not see him, and you rejoice 
with unspeakable and glorious joy while you receive the re- 
ward of your faith, the salvation of your souls. 

Regarding this salvation the prophets who foretold the grace 
that was to come to you inquired and searched, trying to find 
out what time, or what sort of time, the Spirit of Christ which 
was in them was disclosing when it witnessed beforehand 
regarding the sufferings of Christ and the glories to follow. 
It was revealed to them that they were serving not themselves 
but you, in these things which now have been announced to 
you through those who have told you the good news by the 
Holy Spirit sent forth from heaven things which angels 
earnestly long to look into. 

Therefore brace up your minds, be calm and set your hope 



394 THE FIRST LETTER OF PETER 

perfectly on the grace that is to be brought to you when Jesus 
Christ is revealed. As obedient children, do not shape your 
lives by the passions that ruled you in the former days of 
ignorance, but, like the Holy One who has called you, become 
yourselves holy in all your way of life, for it is written, "You 
shall be holy because I am holy." And if you call upon him as 
Father who impartially judges by each one's work, live out the 
time of your sojourn here in reverence, for you know that you 
were not ransomed with perishable things, silver or gold, from 
your purposeless life handed down from your forefathers, but 
by precious blood, as of a faultless, spotless lamb, the blood of 
Christ, who was foreknown before the foundation of the world, 
but was manifested at the end of time for your sake who through 
HITY> are faithful to God, who raised him from the dead and gave 
Mm glory, so that your faith and hope are in God. 

Now that you have made your souls holy by obedience to 
the truth for sincere brotherly love, you must love one another 
steadily from your hearts, for you have been reborn, not from 
mortal seed but from immortal by the living and enduring 
word of God. For " All flesh is like grass and all its glory is like 
the flower of the grass; the grass withers and the flower falls, 
but the word of the Lord endures forever." And this is the 
word of good news that has been brought to you. 

n 

THEN lay aside all malice and all deceit and hypocrisy and 
envy and every kind of slander, and, like new-born babes, long 
for the reasonable pure milk, that by it you may grow up into 
salvation, if you have tasted that the Lord is kind. Coming to 
him, a living stone, rejected by men but with the Lord chosen 
and precious, you also as living stones are built up, a spiritual 
house, and become a holy priesthood to offer spiritual sacri- 
fices acceptable to God through Jesus Christ. Therefore it is 
contained in Scripture, "See, I am laying in Zion a chosen stone, 
an honored corner stone. He who has faith in him will not be 
put to shame." To you who have faith is the "honor/* but to 
the unbelieving "the stone which the builders rejected that 
has become the corner stone, a stone for the foot to strike, a 



THE FIRST LETTER OF PETER 395 

rock to stumble over." Their feet strike the message because 
of their unbelief, and to this they were destined. 

But you are a chosen race, a kingly priesthood, a holy nation, 
God's own people, that you may proclaim the virtues of him 
who called you from darkness into his wonderful light. Once 
you were not a people, but now you are the people of God: 
once you had not found compassion, but now you have found 
compassion. 

Beloved, I beg you, as foreigners and resident aliens, to shun 
the passions of the flesh which war against the soul. Keep your 
daily life among the Gentiles honorable, so that, although they 
talk against you as if you were wrongdoers, they may, from 
your noble deeds that they see, glorify God on the day of in- 
spection. 

Be submissive to every human institution for the Lord's 
sake, whether to the king as supreme, or to governors as those 
sent by him for the punishment of wrongdoers and the praise 
of those who do good. For this is the will of God that by 
doing good we shall silence the ignorance of thoughtless men. 
Live as free men, yet not using freedom as a cloak for wicked- 
ness, but as God's slaves. Honor all men, love the brotherhood, 
reverence God, honor the king. 

Household servants, be submissive with all reverence to your 
lords, not only to the good and fair, but also to the surly. For 
this is grace if for conscience toward God any one bears pain, 
suffering unjustly. For what credit is it if when you sin and 
are struck with the fist you are patient? But if though doing 
well, you suffer and are patient, that is grace in God's sight. 
For to this you were called, because Christ too suffered for 
you, leaving you an example that you might follow in his foot- 
steps. He had done no sin, nor was deceit found in his mouth. 
When he was reviled he did not revile back; he suffered, but 
made no threat; he committed himself to him who judges 
justly. He bore our sins in his own body on the tree that we 
might die to sins and live to righteousness. For you were going 
astray like sheep, but have now returned to the shepherd and 
guardian of your souls* 



396 THE FIRST LETTER OF PETER 

III 

IN the same way you wives are to be submissive to your own 
husbands, so that if any disbelieve the message they may be 
won over by the lives of their wives without argument, when 
they look at your pure, reverential behavior. Your adornment 
must not be of the external kind braiding the hair and put- 
ting on gold and wearing fine dresses; but the hidden personal- 
ity of the heart must wear the imperishable beauty of a gentle 
and quiet spirit, which is in God's sight most precious. For 
so of old the holy women who hoped in God adorned them- 
selves. They were submissive to their own husbands, as Sarah 
obeyed Abraham and called him Master. You have become 
her children when you do well and feel no terror. 

In the same way, you husbands must live with your wives 
wisely, since woman's sex is weaker, but you must give them 
honor as fellow heirs of the grace of life, so that your prayers 
may not be hindered. 

Finally, all must be like-minded, sympathetic, full of broth- 
erly love, compassionate, humble-minded, not repaying evil for 
evil or abuse for abuse, but rather blessing, for that is what you 
were called for to inherit a blessing. For "He who would 
love life and see good days must keep his tongue from evil and 
his lips from speaking deceit. He must turn away from evil and 
do good; he must seek peace and pursue it. For the eyes of the 
Lord are upon the righteous and his ears are open to their 
prayer, but the face of the Lord is against wrongdoers. 7 ' 

And who is it that will harm you if you become earnest for 
the good? But if you should suffer for being righteous, you are 
blessed. Have no fear of them and do not be disturbed; but 
exalt Christ as Lord in your hearts and be always ready to de- 
fend yourselves to every one who asks you to give account of 
the hope that is in you, yet with gentleness and reverence. 
Keep a good conscience that, although you arc slandered, 
those who misrepresent your good life in Christ may be put to 
shame. For it is better to suffer, if that should be God's will, 
for doing good than for doing wrong. For Christ once for all 
died for sins, a righteous man for unrighteous men, so that he 



THE FIRST LETTER OF PETER 397 

might lead us to God. He was put to death in the flesh, but 
made alive in the spirit, in which he went and made proclama- 
tion to the imprisoned spirits [who were once disobedient, 
when the long-suffering of God waited in the days of Noah 
while the ark was being prepared, into which a few, that is 
eight souls, went and were saved through water. This is a 
type of baptism, which now saves us not the putting off of 
soil from the flesh, but the endeavor for a good conscience 
toward God through the resurrection of Jesus Christ. Now 
that he has gone into heaven he is at the right hand of God, and 
angels and authorities and powers have been made subject to 
him. 

IV 

SINCE, then, Christ suffered in the flesh, you also must arm 
yourselves with the same mind. For he who has suffered in the 
flesh has ceased from sin, so that he does not go on living what 
remains of his time in the flesh according to human passions, 
but according to God's will. The time that has passed was 
enough to spend doing the will of the Gentiles, when you went 
on in indecencies, passions, hard drinking, revelries, carous- 
ings, and lawless idolatries. In these they think it strange 
that you are not running with them to the same excess of 
profligacy, and they slander you. But they will have to give 
account to Mm who holds himself ready to judge the living and 
the dead. And for this purpose the good news was told even to 
the dead, that they might be judged like men in the flesh, but 
live as God does in the spirit. 

The end of all things is near. Therefore be serious and sober 
and give yourselves to prayer. Above all things have earnest 
love to one another, for love hides a host of sins. Be hospitable 
to one another without grumbling. Let each, as he has re- 
ceived a spiritual gift, serve the others in that way, as good 
stewards of the varied grace of God. If any one speaks, let it 
be as uttering the oracles of God. If any one serves, let it be 
from the strength that God supplies. Thus in. all things let 
God be glorified through Jesus Christ. To him be glory and 
strength for the ages of the ages! Amen. 



398 THE FIRST LETTER OF PETER 

Beloved, do not be surprised at the fiery fury that is among 
you, which has come to try you, as if some strange thing were 
happening to you. But rejoice since to this extent you are 
sharing the sufferings of Christ, that when his glory is re- 
vealed you may rejoice and exult. If you are reproached for 
the name of Christ you are blessed, for the spirit of glory and of 
God rests upon you. No one of you must suffer as a murderer 
or as a thief or as a wrongdoer or as a meddler in other men's af- 
fairs. But if he suffers as a Christian he should not be ashamed, 
but should glorify God by that name. For the time has come 
for judgment to begin at the house of God. And if It begins 
first with us, what will be the end of those who disobey the 
good news of God? If the righteous is saved with difficulty, 
where will the godless and sinful appear? So then let those who 
are suffering according to the will of God commit their souls in 
well-doing to a faithful Creator. 



THE elders among you I beg I who am a fellow elder and a 
witness to the sufferings of Christ and a sharer in the glory soon 
to be revealed I beg you to shepherd the flock of God that is 
among you, not because you must, but willingly, not for base 
gain, but eagerly, not lording it over your charges, but becom- 
ing examples to the flock. Then when the chief Shepherd ap- 
pears you will be repaid with the never-fading crown of glory. 

In the same way you younger men must be subject to your 
elders. You all must put on the apron of humble service for 
one another. For God opposes the proud, but gives grace to the 
humble. 

Humble yourselves, then, under the mighty hand of God so 
that he may lift you up at the right time. Cast all your anxiety 
on him, for he cares for you. Be sober, watch. Your enemy the 
Devil, like a roaring lion, goes about seeking some one to 
devour. Resist him firm in the faith and knowing that the 
same experiences of suffering are being completed in your 
brotherhood throughout the world. 

The God of all grace, who called you to his eteraal glory in 
Christ, after you have suffered a little will equip, establish and 



THE FIRST LETTER OF PETER 399 

strengthen you. To him be power for the ages of the ages! 
Amen. 

By Silvanus, your faithful brother, as I esteem him, I am 
writing to you briefly, to encourage you and to testify that 
this is the true grace of God. Take your stand in it. 

She who is in Babylon, chosen with you, sends her greeting 
to you, and so does Mark my son. Salute one another with a 
kiss of love. 

Peace be to you all in Christ. 



THE SECOND LETTER OF PETER 



SIMON PETER, a servant and apostle of Jesus Christ, to those 
who by the righteousness of our God and Savior Jesus Christ 
have been allotted a faith as precious as ours: 

Grace be to you and peace be multiplied in the knowledge 
of God and of Jesus our Lord. 

Since his divine power has given us all things helpful to life 
and piety through the knowledge of him who has called us by 
his own glory and virtue, and thereby great and precious 
promises have been granted to us, that through them you may 
escape the corruption that is in the world through passion and 
become sharers in the divine nature, for this very reason make 
it your whole endeavor to supply to your faith virtue, and to 
your virtue knowledge, and to your knowledge self-control, and 
to your self-control endurance, and to your endurance rever- 
ence, and to your reverence brotherliness, and to your brother- 
liness love. For when you have these in abundance they make 
you to be neither idle nor fruitless regarding the knowledge of 
our Lord Jesus Christ. But he who lacks these is blind, dim- 
sighted, and has forgotten that he was cleansed from his former 
Bins. 

Therefore endeavor more earnestly, brethren, to make sure 
that you have been called and chosen. For while doing these 
things you will never stumble. For so entrance into the eternal 
kingdom of our Lord and Savior Jesus Christ will be richly 
provided for you. 

For this reason I shall always keep reminding you of these 
things, although you know them and are steadfast in the truth 
that you have. I think it right so long as I am in this tent to 
arouse you by reminding you, since I know that the hiying 
aside of my tent will come soon, as our Lord Jesus Christ has 
made plain to me. I will endeavor also on every occasion to 



THE SECOND LETTER OF PETER 401 

make it so that after my going you shall have these things in 
memory. For we were not following cunningly devised myths 
when we told you of the power and coming of our Lord Jesus 
Christ, but we had been eye-witnesses of his majesty. ,For he 
received from God the Father honor and glory when such 
words as these were borne to him from the majestic glory, 
"This is my Son, the Beloved; in him I delight." And this 
voice we heard borne from heaven when we were with him on 
the holy mountain. Thus have we the words of the prophets 
confirmed, and you will do well to give attention to them as 
to a lamp shining in a dark place, until the day dawns and the 
morning star rises in your hearts; since you know this first, 
that no prophecy of Scripture comes from any one's private 
interpretation, for prophecy never came by the will of man, 
but men spoke from God as they were moved by the Holy 
Spirit. 

n 

BUT false prophets also arose among the people, just as there 
will be false teachers among yourselves, and they will craftily 
bring in deadly heresies, even disowning the Lord who bought 
them and bringing on themselves quick ruin. Many will follow 
their shameless ways and by these the path of truth will be 
profanely spoken of* In covetousness they will make gain out 
of you by their cunning words. But their condemnation from 
of old has not been inactive, and their destruction has not been 
sleeping. For if God did not spare angels that had sinned, but 
thrust them down to Tartarus and committed them to pits 
of darkness to be kept for judgment, and did not spare the 
ancient world, but guarded Noah, a herald of righteousness, 
and seven others, when he brought the flood on the world of 
the ungodly; and if reducing to ashes the cities of Sodom and 
Gomorrah he condemned them to destruction, making them 
an example for the godless of what would come upon them, and 
rescued righteous Lot worn out by the indecent lives of the 
lawless, for that righteous man living among them was 
tortured day and night in his righteous soul by the sight and 
hearing of their lawless deeds, the Lord knows how to rescue 



402 THE SECOND LETTER OF PETER 

the pious from trial and how to keep the wicked under punish- 
ment for the day of judgment, especially those who go after 
flesh in polluting passions, and despise lordship. They are 
daring, self-willed; they do not tremble to speak insultingly of 
glorious beings even where angels greater in strength and 
power do not bring against them an insulting charge before 
the Lord. But they, like irrational creatures, born mere animals 
for capture and destruction, while speaking profanely of things 
they are ignorant of, will be corrupted by their own corruption, 
and will suffer unrighteously as the reward of their own unright- 
eousness. They think it pleasure to revel in the daytime. They 
are spots and blots as they revel in their deceptions while they 
feast sumptuously with you. They have eyes engrossed with 
some adulteress, eyes which never cease from sin. They seduce 
unsteady souls. They have hearts practiced in covetousness* 
They are children of a curse. Leaving the straight path they 
have wandered away following the path of Balaam the son of 
Beor, who loved the wages of unrighteousness. But he was 
reproved for his sin; a dumb beast of draught, speaking with 
human voice, checked the madness of the prophet. These men 
are springs without water, storm-driven mists for whonxthe 
blackness of darkness is reserved. For by speaking great empty 
swelling words they entrap in the passions of the flesh 
wanton excesses those who are nearly escaping from those 
who live in error. While they promise them liberty they them- 
selves are the slaves of corruption; for by whatever any one is 
overcome to that he is enslaved. For if, after they have escaped 
the defilement of the world by the knowledge of the Lord and 
Savior Jesus Christ, they have been again entangled and 
overcome, their last state has become worse than the first. 
For it would be better for them not to have known the way of 
righteousness than after knowing it to turn back from the 
holy commandment that has been committed to them. That 
has happened to them which the true proverb says, "The dog 
returns to his own vomit and the sow after bathing returns to 
wallowing in the mire*" 



THE SECOND LETTER OF PETER 403 

in 

THIS second letter, beloved, I am writing you. In both I have 
tried, by awakening your memory, to arouse your honest 
minds to recall the predictions of the holy prophets and the 
commands of your apostles from the Lord and Savior* First 
you should know this, that in the last days scoffers will come 
with their scoffing, living according to their own passions and 
saying, " Where is his promised coming? for since the fathers 
fell asleep all things remain as they have been since the be- 
ginning of the creation?" For they willfully forget that there 
were heavens of old and an earth formed out of water and 
through water by God's word. By these means the world that 
then was was flooded with water and destroyed. But the 
present heavens and the earth are by the same word treasured 
up and kept for fire on the day of judgment and destruction of 
ungodly men. 

Do not forget this one thing, beloved, that one day with the 
Lord is like a thousand years and a thousand years are like one 
day. The Lord is not slow about what he has promised, as some 
think of slowness, but is long-suffering toward us, wishing not 
to have any perish but to have all come to a change of heart. 
But the day of the Lord will come like a thief. On that day the 
heavens will pass away with a loud noise and the burning 
elements will be dissolved and the earth and the things in it 
will not be found. Since all of these things are to be dissolved, 
what sort of persons ought you to be in holy lives and piety, 
you who are looking for and hastening toward the coming of 
the day of God, when the blazing heavens will be dissolved and 
the burning elements melted? 

But according to his promise we are expecting new heavens 
and a new earth in which righteousness will dwell. Therefore, 
beloved, since you expect this, endeavor earnestly to be found 
by him in peace, spotless and f aultless, and regard the long- 
suffering of our Lord as salvation, as also our beloved brother 
Paul has written to you, according to the wisdom given to him. 
So he writes in all his letters when speaking in them of these 
things. In those letters are some things hard to understand, 



404 THE SECOND LETTER OF PETER 

and these the unlearned and unsteady twist, as they do the 
rest of the Scriptures, to their own ruin. 

You, then, beloved, since you know these things beforehand, 
be on your guard not to be led away by the error of the lawless 
and fall from your own steadfastness, but grow in grace and 
in knowledge of our Lord and Savior Jesus Christ. 

To him be glory now and to the day of eternity! 



THE FIRST LETTER OF JOHN 



WHAT was from the beginning, what we have.Tieard, what we 
have seen with our eyes, what we looked upon and our hands 
touched it is about the Word of Life (the Life appeared and 
we saw and testify to it and tell you of the Life eternal which 
was with the Father and appeared to us) what we have seen 
and heard we are telling you also, so that you may have fellow- 
ship with us. And our fellowship is with the Father and with 
his Son Jesus Christ. We are writing this that our joy may be 
complete. 

This is the message which we have heard from him and tell 
to you, God is light and in him is no darkness at all. If we say, 
"We have fellowship with him," and live in darkness, we lie 
and are not acting the truth. If we live in the light, as he is in 
the light, we have fellowship with one another and the blood of 
Jesus his Son cleanses us from all sin. If we say, "We have no 
sin," we deceive ourselves and the truth is not in us. If we 
confess our sins, he is faithful and just to forgive us our sins 
and cleanse us from all unrighteousness. If we say, "We have 
not sinned/ 7 wo make him a liar and his message is not in us. 

II 

MY children, I am writing this to you in order that you may 
not sin. Even if any one sins, we have an advocate with the 
Father, Jesus Christ, who is righteous. And he is an atoning 
sacrifice for our sins, and not for ours only but for those of the 
whole world. By this we know that we have come to know him, 
if we keep his commands- He who says, "I know him," and 
does not keep his commands, is a liar and truth is not in him. 
But whoever keeps his word, truly in him the love of God has 
been made perfect. By this we know that we are in him. He 
who says that he is abiding in him ought himself to live as he 
lived. 



406 THE FIRST LETTER OF JOHN 

Beloved, I am not writing a new command for you, but an 
old command, which you have had from the beginning. The 
old command is the message that you have heard. Again I am 
writing a new command, which is true in him and in you, be- 
cause the darkness is passing away and the true Light is 
already shining. He who says that he is in the light and hates 
his brother is in darkness still. He who loves his brother 
remains in the light and there is no stumbling block in him, 
He who hates his brother is in darkness and walks in darkness 
and knows not where he is going, because the darkness has 
blinded his eyes. 

I am writing to you, little children, because your sins have 
been forgiven for his name's sake. I am writing to you, fathers, 
because you have come to know him who has been from the 
beginning. I am writing to you, young men, because you have 
conquered the Evil One. 

I have written to you, little children, because you have come 
to know the Father. I have written to you, fathers, because 
you have come to know him, who has been from the beginning. 
I have written to you, young men, because you are strong and 
the message of God remains in you and you have conquered 
the Evil One. 

Do not love the world nor the things that are in the world. 
If any one loves the world, the love of the Father is not in him; 
for all that is in the world, the passions of the flesh and the lust 
of the eyes and the show and pride of life, is not from the Father, 
but from the world. And the world is passing away with its 
passions. But he who does the will of God endures forever. 

Little children, it is the last hour, and as you have heard 
that Antichrist is coming, even now many Antichrists have 
arisen. By this we know that it is the last hour. They went 
out from us, but they were not of us, for if they had been of us 
they would have continued with us. But they went out so that 
it might be plainly seen that not all are of us. You have an 
anointing from the Holy One and you all know. I am not writ- 
ing to you because you do not know the truth, but because 
you know it and know that no lie is from the truth. 

Who is a liar but ho who denies that Jesus ia the Christ? 



THE FIRST LETTER OF JOHN 407 

He is the Antichrist who denies the Father and the Son. No 
one who denies the Son has the Father either. He who con- 
fesses the Son has the Father also. Let what you have heard 
from the beginning remain in you. If what you have heard 
from the beginning remains in you, you also will remain in the 
Son and in the Father. And this is the promise that he has 
promised us the life eternal. 

I am writing this to you in regard to those who are mislead- 
ing you. But as for you, the anointing that you have received 
from him remains in you and you have no need for any one to 
teach you, but as his anointing teaches you about all things and 
is true and is no lie and as it has taught you, you must remain 
in him. And now, little children, remain in him so that if he 
appears we may have confidence and not shrink in shame from 
him at his coming. If you know that he is righteous, you know 
that every one who does righteousness has been born of him. 

m 

SEE what love the Father has bestowed on us that we should 
be called children of God. And so we are. The reason why the 
world does not know us is that it did not know him. Beloved, 
we are now children of God and it is not yet plain what we 
shall be. But we know that if he appears we shall be like him, 
for we shall see him as he is. And every one who has this hope 
set upon Christ purifies himself just as Christ is pure. 

Every one who commits sin commits also lawlessness; for 
sin is lawlessness. You know that Christ appeared to take 
away sins and in him there is no sin. Whoever remains in him 
docs not sin; whoever sins has not seen him nor known him. 
Little children, let no one deceive you. He who is doing right- 
eousness is righteous as Christ is righteous. He who is com- 
mitting sin is of the Devil, for the Devil has been sinning from 
the beginning. For this the Son of God appeared to undo 
the works of the Devil. 

No one who has been born of God commits sin, for God's 
life-giving germ remains in him and he cannot continue sinning, 
because he has been born of God. By this the children of God 
arc plain to see, also the children of the Devil. Every one who 



408 THE FIRST LETTER OF JOHN 

is not doing righteousness is not of God, nor is he who does not 
love his brother. For this is the message which you have 
heard from the beginning, that we must love one another. Not 
like Cain, who was of the Wicked One and killed his brother. 
And for what reason did he kill him? Because his own deeds 
were wicked and his brother's righteous. 

Do not be surprised, brethren, if the world hates you. We 
know that we have passed from death into life because we love 
the brethren. Whoever does not love remains in death. Eveiy 
one who hates his brother is a murderer, and you know that no 
murderer has life eternal remaining in him. By this we have 
come to know love that Christ laid down his life for us, and 
we ought to lay down our lives for the brethren. But if any one 
has this world's goods and sees his brother in need and shuts 
away his sympathies from him, how can the love of God 
remain in him? Let us not love in word or in tongue, but in 
deed and in truth. By this we shall know that we are of the 
truth and shall give confidence to our. hearts in his presence, 
because if our hearts condemn us God is greater than our hearts 
and knows all things. Beloved, if our hearts do not condemn 
us we have confidence toward God, and whatever we ask we 
receive from him, because we keep his commands and do what 
is pleasing in his sight. And this is his command to believe 
in the name of his Son Jesus Christ and love one another as ho 
has given us command. He who keeps his commands remains 
in God and God remains in him. By this we know that God 
remains in us by the Spirit which he has given to us. 

IV 

BELOVED, do not trust every spirit, but test the spirits whether 
they are from God. For many false prophet* have come out 
into the world. By this we know the Spirit of God : every pirit 
that" confesses that Jesus Christ has come in the fknh i from 
God, and no spirit that docs not confess Jesus IB from Gael. 
This is the spirit of Antichrist, which you have heard fa com- 
ing into the world and ia already in the world* But you are of 
God, little children, and have conquered them, because he who 
is in us is greater than he who is in the world. They belong 



THE FIRST LETTER OF JOHN 409 

to the world and for that reason they speak as the world 
speaks and the world listens to them. We are of God. Who- 
ever knows God listens to us: whoever is not of God does not 
listen to us. In this way we know the spirit of truth and the 
spirit of error. 

Beloved, let us love one another, for love is from God, and 
every one who loves has been born of God and knows God. He 
who does not love does not know God; for God is love. By this 
the love of God to us was made plain: that God sent his only 
Son into the world so that we may have life through him. In 
this is love not that we loved God, but that he loved us and 
sent his Son to be an atoning sacrifice for our sins. 

Beloved, if God has so loved us, we ought also to love one 
another. No one has ever seen God. If we love one another 
God abides in us and his love is made perfect in us. By this 
we know that we abide in him and he in us, because he has 
imparted to us of his Spirit. We have seen and we bear witness 
that the Father has sent the Son to be the Savior of the world* 
Whoever confesses that Jesus is the Son of God, God abides in 
him and he in God. We have come to know and have put our 
trust in the love which God has for us. 

God is love, and he who remains in love remains in God and 
God remains in him. Thus love has been made perfect with 
us so that we may have confidence on the day of judgment, be- 
cause as God is we also are in this world. There is no fear in 
lovo, but perfect love casts out fear, because fear has pain. 
He who fears has not been made perfect in love. We love be- 
cause ho first loved us. If any one says, "I love God," and 
hates his brother, he is a liar. For he who does not love his 
brother whom he has seen cannot love God whom he has not 
seen. This command we have from him, that he who loves 
God shall love his brother also. 



EVERY one who believes that Jesus is the Christ has been born 
of God, and every one who loves the father who gave him life 
loves every one who has received life from that father. By 
this we know that we love the children of God, when we love 



410 THE FIRST .LETTER OF JOHN 

God and do his commands. For this is the love of God, our 
keeping his commands. And his commands are not burden- 
some, because all that is born of God conquers the world. And 
this is the victory that conquers the world, our faith. Who is 
the conqueror of the world but he who believes that Jesus is 
the Son of God? 

This is he who came through water and blood, Jesus Christ. 
Not with the water only, but with the water and the blood. 
And the Spirit is the witness, because the Spirit is the truth. 
For there are three that bear witness, the Spirit and the water 
and the blood, and the three are in accord. If we accept the 
testimony of men the testimony of God is greater; for this 
is God's testimony, that he has testified regarding his Son. 
He who believes in the Son of God has the testimony within 
himself. He who does not believe God has made him a liar; 
because he has not believed the testimony which God has 
borne regarding his Son. This is the testimony: that God has 
given to us life eternal and this life is in his Son. He who has 
the Son has life; he who has not the Son of God has not life. 

I am writing this to you so that you may know that you 
have life eternal, you who believe in the name of the Son of 
God. This is the confidence that we have toward him: that if 
we ask anything according to his will he hears us. And if we 
know that he hears us when we ask anything, we know that 
we obtain the things that we have asked of him. 

If any one sees his brother committing a sin that is not 
deadly, he must ask and God will give him life for those who 
are committing sin that is not deadly. There is sin that is 
deadly. I do not say that he should pray in behalf of that. 
All unrighteousness is sin, and there is sin that is not deadly. 

We know that every one who has been born of God lives 
without sinning, but he who was born of God keeps him, and 
the Evil One does not lay hold of him. We know that we are* 
of God and the whole world lies in the Evil One- We know 
that the Son of God has come and has given us understanding 
to know him who is true, and we are in him who is true and 
in his Son, Jesus Christ. This is the true God and life eternal* 

Little children ; guard yourselves from idols. 



THE SECOND LETTER OF JOHN 

THE Elder to the chosen Lady and her children, whom I love 
in truth (and not I alone, but also all who have come to know 
the truth) for the sake of the truth which remains in us and 
will be with us forever: 

Grace, mercy, and peace will be with us from God the 
Father and from Jesus Christ, the Son of the Father, in truth 
and love. 

I rejoiced greatly to find some of your children living in 
truth, as we received command from the Father. And no^I 
pray you, Lady, not as if writing a new command for you, but 
one that we have had from the beginning, let us love one an- 
other. This is love: to live by his commands. This is the 
command, as you heard from the beginning that you must 
live by it. 

For many deceivers have come out into the world and they 
do not confess that Jesus Christ has come in the flesh. Such a 
one is the deceiver and the Antichrist. 
> .Guard yourselves so as not to lose what we have worked for, 
but so that you may gain a full reward. Every one who goes 
forward and does not remain in the teaching of Christ is with- 
out God. He who remains in the teaching, he has the Father 
and the Son. If any one comes to you and does not bring this 
teaching, do not take him into your house and do not bid him 
welcome. Ho who bids him welcome becomes a sharer in his 
wicked works. 

I have much to write to you, but I will not do it with paper 
and ink. I hope to be with you soon and to speak face to face 
so that our joy may be complete. The children of your chosen 
sister send greetings to you. 



THE THIRD LETTER OP JOHN 

THE Elder to Gains the beloved, whom I love in truth: 

Beloved, I pray that in everything you may prosper and be 
in health, just as your soul now prospers. For I rejoiced greatly 
when brethren came and testified to your truth that you 
are living in the truth. I have no greater joy than this: to hear 
that my children are living in the truth. 

Beloved, you do faithfully whatever work you do for the 
brethren, even when they are strangers, and they have testified 
to your love before the church. You will do well to help them 
forward on their journey in a manner worthy of God. For it 
was for the Name that they came out, taking nothing from the 
Gentiles. We ought to help such men so as to be fellow workers 
with the truth. 

I wrote something to the church; but Diotrephes, who de- 
sires to be first among them, does not receive us. Therefore, 
if I come I will bring to mind the works that he is doing, accus- 
ing us with wicked words, and not satisfied with that, neither 
does he receive the brethren, and he hinders those who wish to 
do so and expels them from the church. 

Beloved, do not imitate evil, but good. He who does good is 
of God. He who does evil has not seen God. Testimony has 
been borne to Demetrius by all and by the truth itself. We 
too bear testimony, and you know that our testimony is true, 

I had much to write to you, but I will not write to you with 
ink and pen. But I hope to see you shortly, and wo shall speak 
face to face. Peace be to you. The friends send greetings to 
you. Greet the friends by name. 



THE LETTER OF JUDE 

JXJDE, a servant of Jesus Christ and a brother of James, to 
those who are in God the Father, beloved, kept for Jesus Christ 
and called: 

Mercy and peace and love be multiplied to you. 

Beloved, although I have been making every effort to write 
to you regarding our common salvation, I now find it necessary 
to write and urge you to contend vigorously for the faith that 
was once for all delivered to the holy. For certain persons have 
crept in, who of old were written of as predestined to this doom, 
godless, changing the grace of our God into profligacy and dis- 
owning our only Ruler and Lord, Jesus Christ. 

I wish to remind you, although you know all things once 
for all, that the Lord, after saving a people from the land of 
Egypt, then destroyed those who had no faith; and angels who 
did not keep their own rank, but left their own abode, he has 
kept for the judgment of the great day in everlasting chains 
under blackness of darkness. So Sodom and Gomorrah, and 
the cities around them, which in the same way gave themselves 
up to unchastity and the pursuit of unnatural vices, serve as an 
example while they undergo the punishment of eternal fire. 

Just so these dreamers defile the flesh, reject government, 
and speak abusively of glorious beings. But Michael, the arch- 
angel, when in dispute with the Devil he was arguing about 
the body of Moses, did not venture to bring against him an 
abusive judgment, but said, "The Lord rebuke you." But 
these speak profanely of whatever they do not know, and all 
that physically as irrational animals they do understand, in 
these things they corrupt themselves. Alas for them! for they 
have traveled in the path of Cain, and for hire have rushed 
headlong into the error of Balaam, and have perished in the 
rebellious talk of Korah. 

These are the hidden reefs in your love-feasts while they 
feast freely with you without fear, shepherds who care only 



414 THE LETTER OF JUDE 

for themselves, waterless clouds driven by winds, trees In 
autumn fruitless, twice dead, uprooted, wild waves of the sea 
foaming out their own shame, wandering stars for which the 
blackness of darkness is reserved forever, 

Enoch, the seventh from Adam, prophesied of these men 
when he said, "See, the Lord has come with ten thousand of 
his holy ones to do judgment upon all and to convict all the 
irreverent of all their deeds of irreverence which they have 
irreverently done, and of all the hard things which they have 
spoken against him, irreverent sinners that they are," 

These men are complaining grumblers, living according to 
their own passions, and their mouths speak great swelling 
words. They show admiration for persons for the sake of their 
own gain. 

But you, beloved, remember the words which were long ago 
spoken by the apostles of our Lord Jesus Christ, how they told 
you that in the latter time there would be scoffers living accord- 
ing to their own ungodly passions. These are those who cause 
divisions, sensual and unspiritual. 

But you, beloved, building yourselves up in your most holy 
faith and praying in the Holy Spirit, must keep yourselves in 
the love of God, looking for the mercy of our Lord Jesus Christ 
to bring you into life eternal. On some have pity when they 
are in doubt; pull them out of the fire and save them. Others 
pity with fear, hating even the tunic spotted by the flesh. 

To him who is able to guard you from falling and to make 
you stand faultless before his glory in great joy, to the only 
God our Savior, be, through Jesus Christ our Lord, glory, 
majesty, might, and authority, before all time and now and for 
all the ages! Amen. 



TEE REVELATION OF JOHN 

I 

A REVELATION of Jesus Christ which God gave to him, to 
make known to his servants things which must soon take 
place. He sent and made it known through his angel to his 
servant John, who bears witness to the message of God and 
the testimony of Jesus Christ everything that he saw. 

Blessed is he who reads, and blessed are those who hear the 
words of this prophecy and keep in mind what is written in it; 
for the time is near. 

John to the seven Churches in Asia: Grace be to you and 
peace from him who is and who was and who is to come, and 
from the seven Spirits that are before his throne, and from 
Jesus Christ, the faithful witness, the first-born of the dead, 
and the ruler of the kings of the earth. 

To him who loves us and freed us from our sins by his blood, 
and made us a kingdom, priests to God his Father, to him be 
glory and power for the ages of the ages 1 Amen, He is coming 
with clouds and every eye will see him, even of those who 
pierced him, and all the tribes of the earth will beat their 
breasts because of him. Yes, Amen. 

" I am the Alpha and the Omega, " says the Lord God, " who 
is and who was and who shall be, the Almighty. " 

I, John, your brother and fellow sharer in the distresses and 
the kingdom and the endurance in Jesus, came to the island 
called Patmos, for the sake of the message of God and the 
testimony of Jesus. I became in the Spirit on the Lord's day 
and heard behind me a loud voice, as of a trumpet, saying, 
"What you see write in a book, and send it to the seven 
churches, to Ephesus and to Smyrna and to Pergamum and to 
Thyatira and to Sardis and to Philadelphia and to Laodicea." 
I turned to see the voice that was speaking with me, and upon 
turning I saw seven golden lampstands and in the midst of 



416 THE REVELATION OF JOHN 

the lampstands one like a son of man, clothed in a robe that 
reached his feet, and girded across the breast with a golden 
girdle. His head and his hair were white, like white wool, like 
snow, and his eyes were like a flame of fire, and his feet were 
like fine brass when molten in a furnace, and his voice was like 
the sound of many waters. He had in his right hand seven 
stars, and from his mouth there issued a sharp two-edged 
sword. His face was like the sun shining in full strength. \Vhen 
I saw him I fell at his feet as if dead. But he laid his right hand 
on me and said: 

" Do not fear. I am the first and the last and the living one. 
I became dead, but now I am living for the ages of the ages, 
and I have the keys of death and of Hades. Write what you 
have seen, and what is and what is to be hereafter the 
mystery of the seven stars that you saw in my right hand and 
the seven golden lampstands. The seven stars are angels of the 
seven churches, and the seven lampstands are seven churches. 

II 

"To the Angel of the Church in Ephesus write: 

"These things says he who holds the seven stars in his right 
hand, he who walks in the midst of the seven golden lamp- 
stands : I know your works and your labor and your endurance, 
and that you cannot bear wicked people, and you have tried 
those who say that they are apostles though they are not, and 
you have found them liars. You have endurance and you have 
borne for the sake of my name and you have not been dis- 
couraged. But I have this against you, that you have lost your 
first love. Remember then from where you have fallen, and 
repent and do your former works. Otherwise I am coming to 
you and will move your lampstand from its place, if you do not 
repent. But you have this, that you hate the works of the 
Nicolaitans, which I also hate. Let him who has an car hear 
what the Spirit says to the churches. To him who conquers I 
will grant to eat of the tree of life which is in the Paradise of 
God. 

"To the Angel of the Church in Smyrna write: 
"These things saya the First and the Last, who died aad 



THE REVELATION OF JOHN 417 

returned to life: I know your distress and poverty, but you are 
rich, and I know the profane words from those who say that 
they are Jews though they are not, but are a synagogue of 
Satan. Do not fear what you are soon to suffer. The Devil will 
soon cast some of you into prison so that you may be tested, 
and you will have distress ten days. Be faithful to death and 
I will give you the crown of life. Let him who has an ear hear 
what the Spirit says to the churches. He who conquers will 
not be hurt by the second death. 
"To the Angel of the Church in Pergamum write: 
"These things says he who has the sharp two-edged sword: 
I know where you live, where the throne of Satan is. Yet you 
are holding fast my name and did not disown faith in me 
even in the days when Antipas, my faithful witness, was killed 
beside you where Satan lives. But I have a few things against 
you, because you have some who hold the teaching of Balaam 
who taught Balak to cast a stumbling block before the sons 
of Israel: to eat things sacrificed to idols and to commit un- 
chastity. And even you have some who likewise hold the 
teaching of the Nicolaitans. Repent, therefore. Otherwise I 
am coming to you shortly, and I will make war upon them with 
the sword of my mouth. Let him who has an ear hear what the 
Spirit says to the churches. To him who conquers I will give 
some of the hidden manna, and I will give him a white stone, 
and on the stone a new name written, which no one knows but 
he who receives it. 

"To the Angel of the Church in Thyatira write: 
"These things says the Son of God, he who has eyes like a 
flame of fire and feet like fine brass: I know your works and 
your love and your faith and your service and your endurance, 
and that your last works are more than your first. But I have 
against you that you tolerate the woman Jezebel, who calls 
herself a prophetess, and teaches and leads astray my servants 
to commit unchastity and to earthings sacrificed to idols. I 
gave her time to repent, but she will not repent of her un- 
chastity. See, I will cast her into a bed and those who commit 
adultery with her into great distress, unless they repent of their 
deeds, and her children I will surely kill. All the churches 



418 THE REVELATION OF JOHN 

shall know that I am he who searches hearts and will give to 
each of you according to your deeds. But I say to the rest of 
you in Thyatira, as many as do not hold this teaching, who 
have not known the depths of Satan, as they say, I do not lay 
on you any other burden. But hold fast what you have until 
I come. He who conquers and keeps my commands to the end 
I will give him authority over the nations, and he will 
shepherd them with a rod of iron, as earthenware is broken to 
pieces, just as I also have received from my Father. And I 
will give him the morning star. Let him who has an ear hear 
what the Spirit says to the churches, 

III 

"To the Angel of the Church in Sardis write: 

"These things says he who has the seven spirits of God and 
the seven stars: 

"I know your deeds, that you have the name of being alive, 
but are dead. Become watchful and strengthen the things 
that remain, which are about to die. For I have not found any 
works of yours complete before my God. Remember, then, 
how you have received and heard, and give attention and 
repent. Unless you watch, I will come like a thief and you 
will not know at what hour I will come upon you. But you 
have a few names in Sardis which have not stained their gar- 
ments, and they shall walk with me in white, for they are 
worthy. He who conquers shall be thus clothed in white 
garments, and I will not erase his name from the book of life, 
but will confess his name before my Father and before bis 
angels. Let him who has an ear hear what the Spirit says to 
the churches. 

"To the A.ngel of the Church in Philadelphia write: 

"These things says the Holy, the True, he who has the key 
of David, who opens and no one shuts and who shuts and no 
one opens: 

"I know your deeds* See, I have set before you an opened 
door which no one can shut, because you have a little power 
and you have kept my word and have not disowned my name* 
See, I will make those from the synagogue of Satan, men who 



THE REVELATION OF JOHN 419 

call themselves Jews when they are not but are lying I will 
make them come and bow down before your feet and they shall 
know that I have loved you. Because you have kept my com- 
mand of patient endurance, I also will keep you from the hour 
of trial which is about to come on all the world, to try the 
inhabitants of the earth, I am coming soon. Hold fast what 
you have, so that no one may take your crown. He who con- 
quers I will make him a pillar in the Temple of my God and 
he will never go out, and I will write on hin> the name of my 
God and the name of the city of my God, the new Jerusalem, 
which is coming down from heaven from my God, and I will 
write on him my own new name. Let him who has an ear hear 
what the Spirit says to the churches. 
''To the Angel of the Church in Laodicea write: 
"These things says the Amen, the faithful and true Wit- 
ness, the Beginning of the creation of God: 

" I know your deeds that you are neither cold nor hot. 
Would that you were cold or hot! So because you are luke- 
warm, and neither hot nor cold, I shall spew you out of my 
mouth. Because you say, f I am rich and have grown wealthy 
and lack nothing/ and do not know that you are wretched and 
pitiable and poor and blind and naked, I counsel you to buy 
from me gold refined in the fire, so that you may be rich, and 
white garments to put on, so that the shame of your nakedness 
may not be seen, and salve to anoint your eyes, so that you may 
see. All that I love I rebuke and discipline. Be earnest, then, 
and repeat. See, I am standing at the door and knocking. If 
any one listens to my voice and opens his door, I will come in 
with him and will feast with him and he with me. He who 
conquers to him I will grant to sit with me on my throne, 
as I also conquered and sat down with my Father on his 
throne. Let him who has an ear hear what the Spirit says to 
the churches." 



IV 

AFTBR this I looked and there was an open door in heaven and 
the voice that I had heard at first, as if of a trumpet speaking 



420 THE REVELATION OP JOHN 

with me, said, "Come up here and I will show you things that 
must come to pass hereafter." Immediately I became in the 
Spirit. A throne was standing in heaven and on the throne 
One was sitting. He who was sitting there was in appearance 
like a jasper stone and a sardius. A rainbow, in appearance like 
an emerald, encircled the throne. Around the throne I saw 
twenty-four thrones and on these thrones twenty-four elders 
seated, clothed in white garments and with golden crowns 
on their heads. From the throne issued lightnings and voices 
and thunders. There were seven lamps of fire burning before 
the throne. These are the seven Spirits of God. Before the 
throne there was as it were a glassy sea, like crystal. Near the 
throne and around the throne there were four living creatures 
full of eyes before and behind. The first living creature was 
like a lion, the second living creature was like a calf, the third 
living creature had a face like a man's, and the fourth living 
creature was likea flying eagle. The four living creatures have 
each six wings, and around and within they are full of eyes. 
They cease not saying day and night, "Holy, holy, holy is the 
Lord God Almighty, who was and is and is to come." And 
when the living creatures give glory and honor and thanks to 
him who sits on the throne, who lives for the ages of the ages, 
the twenty-four elders fall down before him who sits on the 
throne and worship him who lives for the ages of the ages, and 
they cast their crowns before the throne saying, " Worthy art 
thou, our Lord and God, to receive glory and honor and power, 
for thou didst create all things and because of thy will they 
existed and were created," 

v 

THEN I saw in the right hand of him who was sitting on the 
throne a book with writing inside and outside and cloariy 
sealed with seven Heals. I saw a strong angel proclaiming with 
a loud voice, " Who is worthy to opcan the book and loose its 
seals?" But no one in hcavon or on the* earth or undor the 
earth was able to open the book or to look info it. I wopt much 
because no one was found worthy to open the lxx>k or to look 
into it. Then one of the elders said to me, " Do act weep. The 



THE REVELATION OP JOHN 421 

Lion of the tribe of Judah, the Root of David, has conquered 
and can open the book and its seven seals/ 7 

Then I saw midway between the throne and the four living 
creatures and the elders a Lamb standing. He seemed as if he 
had been slain. He had seven horns and seven eyes which are 
the seven Spirits of God sent forth into all the earth. He came 
and took the book from the right hand of him who was sitting 
on the throne. When he took the book the four living creatures 
and the twenty-four elders fell down before the Lamb, each 
having a harp and a golden bowl full of incense, which is the 
prayers of the holy. 

Then they sang a new song, saying, "Worthy art thou to 
take the book and to open its seals, for thou wast slain and 
didst ransom for God by thy blood men from every tribe and 
tongue and people and nation, and hast made them a king- 
dom of priests to our God, and they shall be kings on the 
earth." 

Then I looked and I heard the voices of many angels encir- 
cling the throne and the voices of the four living creatures and 
of the elders the number of them was myriads of myriads 
and thousands of thousands crying aloud, "Worthy is the 
Lamb who was slain to receive power and riches and wisdom 
and strength and honor and glory and blessing. " And every 
creature that is in heaven and on the earth and under the earth 
and on the sea, and all creatures in them, I heard saying, " To 
him who sits on the throne and to the Lamb be blessing and 
honor and glory and power for the ages of the ages." The four 
living creatures said, "Amen," and the elders fell down and 
worshiped* 

VI 

THEN I saw when the Lamb opened one of the seven seals and 
I heard one of the living creatures say, as if with a voice of 
thunder, " Come. " I looked and there came a white horse, and 
ho who was sitting on it had a bow, and a crown was given to 
Mm and ho went forth conquering and to conquer. 

When he opened the second seal I heard the second living 
creature say, "Come." Then another horse came out- It was 



422 THE REVELATION OF JOHN 

fiery red, and to him who was sitting on it was granted to take 
peace from the earth so that men should kill one another, and 
a great sword was given to him. 

When he opened the third seal I heard the third living 
creature say, " Come." I looked and there came a black horse, 
and he who was sitting on it had a pair of scales in his hand. 
I heard what seemed a voice in the midst of the four living 
creatures saying, "A measure of wheat for a shilling and three 
measures of barley for a shilling. But do no harm to the oil or 
the wine." 

When he opened the fourth seal I heard the voice of the 
fourth living creature say, "Come." I looked and there came 
a pale yellow horse. The name of him who was sitting on it was 
Death, and Hades was following along with him. Authority 
was grafted to them over one fourth of the earth, to kill with 
the sword and with famine and with pestilence and with the 
wild beasts of the earth. 

When he opened the fifth seal, I saw under the altar the 
souls of those who had been slain for the sake of God's message 
and because of the testimony which they had borne. They 
cried with a loud voice, saying, "How long, Ruler holy and 
true, wilt thou delay to judge and take vengeance for our blood 
upon those who dwell on the earth?" To each of them a white 
robe was given, and it was said to them that they must wait 
quietly yet a little while until the number of thoir fellow 
servants and their brethren was complete, who were yet to be 
killed as they had been. 

I saw when he opened the sixth seal and there came n gto&i 
earthquake and the sun became black, like mickdof h of haiir, 
and the moon became all like blood and the utars of heaven 
fell to the ground, as a fig tree drops its unripe fign when phatam 
by a strong wind, and the sky passed away like a wroll when 
it is rolled up, and every mountain and island was moved out 
of its place. Then the kings of the earth and the great men and 
the generals and the rich and the strong and every rfave and 
freeman hid themselves in the caves and the rock** of the 
mountains and said to the mountains and the* rocks, "Fall on 
us and hide us from the face of him who it on the throne and 



THE REVELATION OF JOHN, 423 

from the wrath of the Lamb, for the day, the great day, of their 
wrath has come and who can stand?" 

vn 

AFTER this I saw four angels standing at the four corners of 
the earth, holding the four winds of the earth, so that no wind 
might blow on the land or on the sea or on any tree. Then I 
saw another angel ascending from the east, with the seal of the 
living God. Ho cried with a loud voice to the four angels to 
whom it had been granted to harm the land and the sea and 
said, "Do not harm the land or the sea or any tree until we 
seal the servants of our God on their foreheads." I heard the 
number of those who were sealed, a hundred and forty-four 
thousand, sealed from every tribe of the sons of Israel: 

Of the tribe of Judah, twelve thousand sealed, 
Of the tribe of Reuben, twelve thousand, 
Of the tribe of Gad, twelve thousand, 
Of the tribe of Asher, twelve thousand, 
Of the tribe of Naphtali, twelve thousand, 
Of the tribe of Manasseh, twelve thousand, 
Of the tribe of Simeon, twelve thousand, 
Of the tribe of Levi, twelve thousand, 
Of the tribe of Issachar, twelve thousand, 
Of the tribe of Zebulon, twelve thousand, 
Of the tribe of Joseph, twelve thousand, 
Of the tribe of Benjamin, twelve thousand. 

After this I looked and there was a great multitude which no 
one could count, out of all nations and tribes and peoples and , 
tongues, standing before the throne and before the Lamb 
clothed in white robes and with palms in their hands, and they 
shouted with a loud voice saying, "Salvation to our God who 
site upon the throne and to the Lamb I" And all the angels 
stood around the throne and the elders and the four living 
creatures, and they foil on their faces before the throne and 
worshiped God saying, "Amen. Blessing and glory and wis- 
dom and thanksgiving and honor and power and strength be to 
our God for the ages of the ages! Amen. " 



424 THE REVELATION OP JOHN 

Then one of the elders spoke to me and said, "These who 
wear the white robes who are they and where have they 
come from?" I said to him, "My Lord, you know*" He said 
to me, "These have come out of the great distress and have 
washed their robes and made them white in the blood of the 
Lamb. For this reason they are before the throne of God and 
worship him day and night in his Temple, and he who sits on 
the throne will spread his tent over them. They will not 
hunger any more nor thirst any more, nor will the sun strike 
on them nor any burning heat, for the Lamb who is in the 
center before the throne will be their shepherd and will lead 
them to springs of living water, and God will wipe away every 
tear from their eyes. " 

vm 

WHEN he opened the seventh seal there came a silence in 
heaven for about half an hour. Then I saw the seven angels 
who stand before God, and seven trumpets were given to them. 
Another angel came and stood at the altar with a golden censer, 
and much incense was given to him for him to put with the 
prayers of all the holy on the golden altar before the throne. 
The smoke of the incense from the hand of the angel went up 
with the prayers of the holy before God. Then the angel took 
the censer and filled it from the fire of the altar and cast it to 
the earth, and there were thunders and voices and lightnings 
and an earthquake. Then the seven angels who hud the &even 
trumpets prepared themselves to sound them. 

The first sounded his trumpet and there came hail and fire 
mixed with blood, and it was hurled upon the earth. A third 
of the earth was burned up and a third of the trees WCTO burned 
, up and all green grass was burned up. 

The second angel sounded his trumpet and, w it were, a 
great mountain burning with fire was huriod into the Hta, A 
third of the sea became blood and a third of tho crratunw in 
the sea, those that had life, died, and a third of the ships were 
destroyed. 

The third angel sounded his trumpet and thorn Ml from 
heaven a great star burning like a torch. It fell utxw a third of 



THE REVELATION OF JOHN 425 

the rivers and upon the springs of water. The name of the star 
is called Wormwood. Then a third of the waters became worm- 
wood, and many people died from the waters because they had 
been made bitter. 

The fourth angel sounded his trumpet and a blight fell upon 
a third part of the sun and a third part of the moon and a third 
part of the stars, so that a third part of them was darkened, 
and the day had no light for a third part of it, and the night 
was darkened in the same way. 

Then I looked and I heard an eagle that was flying in mid- 
heaven say with a loud voice, "Woe, woe, woe to those who are 
living on the earth, because of the rest of the trumpet-blasts 
which the three angels are soon to sound!" 

IX 

THE fifth angel sounded his trumpet and I saw a star that had 
fallen from heaven to the earth. There was given to him the 
key of the pit of tho abyss. And ho opened the pit of the abyss 
and smoke came up from the pit like the smoke of a great 
furnace, and the sun was darkened and the air also by the 
smoke of tho pit* Out of the smoke came locusts upon the 
earth, and power was given to them such as earthly scorpions 
have. It was said to them that they should not harm the grass 
of tho earth nor anything greon nor any tree, but only the 
people that did not have the seal of God on their foreheads. 
It was not granted to them to kill such, but to torment them 
five months. Their torture was like tho torture of a scorpion 
when it strikes a man. In those days mon will seek for death 
and will not find it and will long to die, but death will fly from 
them* 

The appearance of tho locusts was like that of horses 
equipped for battle. On their heads were, as it wore, crowns 
like gold, and thoir faces woro like human faces. They had hair 
like tho hair of women. Their teoth were like those of lions. 
They had breastplates liko breastplates of iron. Tho noise of 
their wings was like the noise of many-horsed chariots rushing 
into battle. They have tails as scorpions have, and stings, and 
with thoir tails they havo power to harm mon five months. 



426 THE REVELATION OF JOHN 

They have over them a king, the angel of the abyss, whose 
name (Destroyer) is in Hebrew Abaddon, but in Greek 
Apollyon. 

One woe has passed. Two woes are still to come. 

The sixth angel sounded his trumpet and I heard a voice 
from the horns of the golden altar before God saying to the 
sixth angel with the trumpet, "Loose the four angels that arc 
chained at the great river Euphrates." So the four angels were 
loosed, they who were prepared for the hour and day and 
month and year to kill a third of men. The number of the 
troops of cavalry was twice ten thousand times ten thousand* 
I heard their number. 

This is how the horses and those who sat on them appeared 
to me in the vision: The riders had breastplates, fiery red, 
dark blue, and sulphur yellow. The heads of the horses were 
like the heads of lions, and from their mouths came fire and 
smoke and sulphur. By these three plagues a third of men 
were killed by the fire and the smoke and the sulphur that 
came out of their mouths. For the power of the horses is in 
their mouths and in their tails. For their tails are like serpents 
with heads, and with these they do injury. 

But the rest of men, who were not killed by these plagues, 
neither repented of the deeds of their hands nor ceased wor- 
shiping the demons and their idols of gold and silver and 
brass and stone and wood, which can neither see nor hear nor 
walk, nor did they repent of their murders nor of their magic 
nor of their unchastities nor of their thefts. 

X 

THEN I saw another strong angel descending from heaven. Ho 
was clothed in a cloud and the rainbow was over his hoatL !!& 
face was like the sun and his legs were like pillars of fire. Ho 
had in his hand a little book open. He set his right foot on the 
sea and his left on the land and shouted with a loud voice like 
the roar of a lion. When he had shouted the seven thunders 
spoke, each its own message. When the seven thunders h:ul 
spoken I was about to write. But I heard a voice from heaven 
saying, "Seal up what the seven thunders have spoken and do 



THE REVELATION OP JOHN 427 

not write it." Then the angel whom I had seen standing on the 
sea and on the land lifted his right hand to heaven and swore 
by him who lives for the ages of the ages, who formed heaven 
and all things in it and the earth and all things upon it and the 
sea and all things in it, "There shall be no more delay, but in 
the days of the blast of the seventh angel, when he soon shall 
sound his trumpet, then the mystery of God has been finished, 
according to the good news that he gave to his servants the 
prophets." Then the voice which I had heard from heaven 
spoke again with me and said, "Go, take the little book which 
is open in the hand of the angel who is standing on the sea and 
on the land." So I went to the angel and told him to give me 
the little book. He said to me, "Take it and eat it. It will 
make your stomach bitter, though in your mouth it will be 
sweet like honey." I took the little book from the hand of the 
angel and ate it, and in my mouth it was sweet like honey, but 
after I had eaten it my stomach was made bitter. They said to 
me, "You must prophesy again about many peoples, nations, 
tongues, and kings," 

XI 

THEN a reed like a measuring stick was given to me with the 
words, "Rise and measure the Temple of God and the altar 
and those who are worshiping at it. But the court outside the 
Temple omit and do not measure it, for it has been given over 
to the Gentiles and they will tramplo down the holy city forty- 
two months. I will grant to my two witnesses to prophesy a 
thousand, two hundred and sixty days, clothed in sackcloth. 
They are tho two olive trees and the two lampstands which 
stand before the Lord of tho earth. If any one wishes to harm 
them fire comes from their mouths and consumes their enemies. 
If any one shall wish to harm them, in this way he must be killed. 
They have power to shut up hoavon so that no rain shall fall 
during the days that they are prophesying, and they have 
power over the waters to turn them into blood and power to 
smite the earth with every kind of plague as often as they 
please. When they have completed their testimony, the Beast 
that is coming up out of the abyss will make war with them and 



428 THE REVELATION OF JOHN 

conquer them and kill them. Their corpses will lie in the street 
of the great city, which spiritually is called Sodom and Egypt, 
where also their Lord was crucified. Men of all peoples and 
tribes and tongues and nations will look at their corpses three 
days and a half and will not permit their corpses to be placed 
in a tomb. Those who live on the earth will rejoice over them 
and make merry and send gifts to one another, because the 
two prophets tormented those who live on the earth." After 
the three days and a half the breath of life from God entered 
into them and they stood on their feet. Then great fear fell on 
those who were looking at them. They heard a loud voice from 
heaven saying to them, "Come up here," and they went up 
into heaven in the cloud while their enemies were looking at 
them. At that hour occurred a great earthquake, and a tenth 
of the city fell and seven thousand men were killed by the 
earthquake. The rest were terrified and gave glory to the God 
of heaven. ^ 

The second Woe has passed: the third Woe will come soon. 

The seventh angel sounded his trumpet and there came loud 
voices in heaven saying, "The kingship of the world has 
become our Lord's and his Christ's and he will be king for the 
ages of the ages." Then the twenty-four elders who sit on their 
thrones before God fell on their faces and worshiped God, 
saying, "We thank thee, Lord God Almighty, who art and wast, 
that thou hast taken thy great power and hast become king* 
The Gentiles raged, but thy wrath came and the time to judge 
the dead and to give the reward to thy servants the prophets 
and to the holy who reverence thy name, the small and the 
great, and to destroy those who are destroying the earth/' 

Then the Temple of God in heaven was opened and the ark 
of his covenant in his temple was seen in his temple, and there 
came lightnings and voices and thunders and an earthquake 
and a great hailstorm. 

XII 

A GREAT sign appeared in heaven: a woman clothed with the 
sun. The moon was under her feet and on her head was a 
crown of twelve stars. She was with child and cried out in the 



THE REVELATION OF JOHN 429 

pangs and anguish of chad-birth. There appeared also another 
sign in heaven, a great fiery-red Dragon with seven heads and 
ten horns. On his heads were seven diadems and his tail 
dragged a third of the stars of heaven and hurled them to the 
ground. The Dragon stood before the woman who was about to 
give birth to a child, so that he might devour the child as soon as 
it was born. She gave birth to a son who is to shepherd all the 
nations with a rod of iron. Then the child was caught up to 
God and to his throne. The woman fled into the wilderness 
where she has from God a prepared place, that they may 
nourish her there a thousand two hundred and sixty days. 

War arose in heaven. Michael and his angels fought with 
the Dragon, The Dragon and his angels fought, but they 
failed, and no place was found for them any longer in heaven. 
Then was hurled down the great Dragon, the ancient serpent 
who is called the Devil and Satan, who misleads the whole 
world he was hurled to the earth and hie; angels were hurled 
with him. 

I heard a loud voice in heaven say, "Now has come the 
salvation and power and kingship of our God and the authority 
of his Christ, because the accuser of our brethren has been 
hurled down, he who accuses them before our God day and 
night. But they have conquered him because of the blood of 
the Lamb and because of the word of testimony to him, and 
they loved not their lives even to death. Therefore, rejoice, O 
heavens, and you who tent in them I Alas for the land and the 
sea! For the Devil has gone down to you in great wrath, know- 
ing that ho has but a little time." 

When the Dragon saw that he had been hurled to the earth 
he pursued the woman who had given birth to the man-child. 
Then there were given to the woman two wings of a great 
eagle to fly into the wilderness to her place, where she shall be 
fed for a time and times and half a time, hidden from the view 
of the Serpent. The Serpent poured from his mouth after the 
woman water like a river, to sweep her away with a flood. But 
the earth helped the woman and the earth opened its mouth 
aud drank up the river that the Dragon had poured out of his 
mouth. Then the Dragon was enraged against the woman and 



430 THE REVELATION OF JOHN 

went away to make war with the rest of her offspring who keep 
the commands of God and hold the testimony concerning 
Jesus* 

xm 

THEN I stood on the sand of the sea and I saw rising out of the 
sea a Beast with ten horns and seven heads. On his horns were 
ten diadems and upon his heads were profane names. The 
Beast that I saw was like a leopard, but his feet were like a 
bear's feet and his mouth like the mouth of a lion. The Dragon 
gave to hiyn his own power and his throne and great authority. 
I saw one of his heads, as it were, mortally wounded, but the 
mortal wound was healed. The whole world followed the Beast 
in amazement, and they worshiped the Dragon because he had 
given such power to the Beast, and they worshiped the Beast, 
saying, "Who is like the Beast, and who can battle with him? " 
There was given to him a mouth speaking boasts and profani- 
ties, and there was given to him power to act for forty-two 
months. He opened his mouth to insult God, to speak pro- 
fanely of his name and of his Tent and of those who tent in 
heaven. 

It was granted to the Beast to make war with the holy and 
to conquer them, and power was granted to him over every 
tribe and people and tongue and nation. All the inhabitants 
of the earth will worship him, all whose names have not been 
written from the foundation of the world in the slain Lamb's 
Book of Life. If any one has an ear let him hear. If any one 
is destined to captivity, into captivity he will go. If any one 
is to be killed by the sword, by the sword must he be killed. 
Here is the endurance and the faith of the holy. 

Then I saw another Beast coming up out of the land. It had 
two horns like those of a lamb, but it spoke like a dragon* It 
exercises all the authority of the first Beast in his presence. 
It compels the earth and its inhabitants to worship the first 
Beast whose mortal wound was healed. It does great signs, 
making fire descend from heaven to earth in the sight of men. 
It leads astray the inhabitants of the earth because of the 
signs which it has been granted power to do in the presence 



THE REVELATION OF JOHN 431 

of the Beast. It tells the inhabitants of the earth to make an 
image of the Beast which was wounded by the sword, yet lived. 
Power was granted to it to give breath to the image of the 
Beast, so that the image of the Beast spoke and it caused all 
who did not worship the image of the Beast to be put to death. 
It causes all, small and great, rich and poor, freemen and 
slaves, to have a mark put on their right hands or on their 
foreheads, so that no one can buy or sell unless he has the mark 
the name of the Beast or the number of his name. 

Here wisdom is required. Let him who has understanding 
count the number of the Beast; for it is the number of a man. 
His number is six hundred and sixty-six, 

XIV 

THEN I looked and there was a Lamb standing on Mount 
Zion, and with him a hundred and forty-four thousand who 
had his name and the name of his Father written on their fore- 
heads. I heard a sound from heaven like the sound of many 
waters, like the sound of loud thunder. The sound that I 
heard was as of harpers playing on their harps. They sang a 
new song before the throne and before the four living creatures 
and the ciders. No one could learn the song except the hundred 
and forty-four thousand who had been ransomed from the 
earth* These are they who were not defiled with women; for 
they are virgins* They follow the Lamb wherever he goes. They 
were ransomed from among men as first-fruits for God and the 
Lamb. No He was f ound in their mouths. They are stainless. 
Then I saw another angel flying in mid-heaven having 
eternal good news to proclaim to those who dwell on the earth, 
to every nation and tribe and tongue and people. He said in 
a loud voice^ "Reverence God and give glory to him, for the 
hour of his judgment has come, and worship him who made 
heaven and earth and sea and springs of water." Another 
angel, a second, followed, saying, "Babylon the great has 
fallen, has fallen, she who has made all the nations drink of the 
wine of her passion for imchastity." Another angel, a third, 
followed them, saying in a loud voice, "If any one worships 
the Beast and his image and receives bis mark on his forehead 



432 THE REVELATION OF JOHN 

and on his hand, he also will drink of the wine of God's 
passion which has been mixed undiluted in the cup of his 
wrath, and he will be tortured in fire and brimstone in the 
presence of holy angels and in the presence of the Lamb. And 
the smoke of their torture will ascend for ages of ages and they 
will have no rest day or night those who worship the Beast 
and his image, and any one who receives the mark of his name." 
Here is the endurance of the holy who keep the commands of 
God and the faith of Jesus, 

Then I heard a voice from heaven saying, "Write: Blessed 
are the dead who die in the Lord henceforth." "Yes," says 
the Spirit, "that they may rest from their toils. For their 
works follow with them." 

Then I looked and there was a white cloud, and sitting on 
the cloud was one like a son of man. He had on his head a 
golden crown and in his hand a sharp sickle. Another angel 
came out of the Temple and shouted with a loud voice to him 
who was sitting on the cloud, "Thrust in your sickle and reap, 
for the hour to reap has come, for the harvest of the earth is 
dry." He who was sitting on the cloud swung his sickle over 
the earth and the earth was reaped. 

Then another angel came out from the Temple that is in 
heaven and he too had a sharp sickle. Another angel came out 
from the altar, he who has power over fire, and he called with 
a loud voice to him who had the sharp sickle, "Thrust in your 
sharp sickle and gather the clusters of the vine of the earth, 
for its grapes are fully ripe." Then the angel swung his sickle 
to the earth and gathered the vintage of the earth and flung it 
into the great winepress of the wrath of God. The winepress 
was trodden outside the city and blood came out from the wine- 
press as high as the horses' bridles for a thousand and six 
hundred furlongs. 1 

XV 

THEN I saw another sign in heaven. It was great and wonderful 
seven angels with the seven plagues which are the last, for 
with them the wrath of God is fully executed. 
1 About two hundred miles. 



THE REVELATION OF JOHN 433 

Then I saw what was like a sea of glass mixed with fire, and 
those who had come victorious from the Beast and his image 
and the number of his name standing by the glassy sea with 
harps of God. They were singing the song of Moses the servant 
of God and the song of the Lamb, saying: "Great and wonder- 
ful are thy works, Lord God Almighty. Just and true are thy 
ways, King of the nations. Who will not reverence and 
glorify thy name, O Lord? For thou only art holy. AH the 
nations will come and worship before thee, because thy right- 
eous acts have been made manifest." 

After this I looked and the Temple of the Tent of testimony 
in heaven was opened, and the seven angels with the seven last 
plagues came out of the Temple, clothed in pure shining linen 
and girded around their breasts with golden girdles. One of 
the four living creatures gave to the seven angels seven golden 
bowls filled with the wrath of God who lives for the ages of the 
ages. The Temple was filled with smoke from the glory of 
God and from his power, and no one could enter the Temple 
until the seven plagues of the seven angels were finished. 

XVI 

THEN I heard a loud voice saying from the Temple to the seven 
angels, "Go and pour out the seven bowls of the wrath of God 
upon the earth." 

The first went away and poured his bowl upon the land, and 
there came an evil and malignant ulcer on the men who had 
the mark of the Boast and those who worshiped its image. 

The second angel poured out his bowl upon the sea, and it 
became blood like that of a dead man and every living thing 
that was in the sea died. 

The third angel poured out his bowl upon the rivers and the 
springs of water, and they became blood. Then I heard the 
angel of the waters saying, "Just art thou who art and wast, 
the Holy One, because thou hast so judged, for they poured 
out the blood of thy holy ones and prophets and thou hast 
given them blood to drink. They deserve it." Then I heard 
the altar saying, "Yes, O Lord God Almighty, true and just 
are thy judgments*" 



434 THE REVELATION OF JOHN 

The fourth angel poured out his bowl on the sun, and it was 
granted to him to scorch men with fire. Men were scorched 
with great heat and they insulted the name of God who had 
power over these plagues, but they did not repent and give 
him glory. 

The fifth angel poured out his bowl upon the throne of the 
Beast, and his kingdom became darkened and men bit their 
tongues from pain and insulted the God of heaven for their 
pains and their ulcers, but they did not repent of their deeds. 

The sixth angel poured out his bowl on the great river 
Euphrates, and its water was dried up to make a road ready for 
the kings from the sunrising. Then I saw come out of the 
mouth of the Dragon and out of the mouth of the Beast and 
out of the mouth of the False Prophet three impure spirits 
like frogs. They are the spirits of demons who work miracles, 
and they go forth to the kings of the whole habitable world to 
gather them for the battle of the great day of God the Al- 
mighty. ("I am coming like a thief. Blessed is he who is 
watching and keeping his garments so that he may not go 
naked and people see his shame!") The spirits gathered them 
to the place called in Hebrew Har-Magedon. 

The seventh angel poured out his bowl on the air, and a loud 
voice came from the Temple, from the throne, saying, "It is 
done!" Then came lightnings and voices and thunders and a 
great earthquake. So great an earthquake has not occurred 
since man came upon the earth. The great city was divided 
into three parts and the cities of the Gentiles fell. Then 
Babylon the Great was remembered before God to give to 
her the cup of the wine of his fierce wrath. Every island fled 
and the mountains were not found. And great hailstones each 
weighing about a hundred pounds fell from heaven on men. 
Men insulted God because of the hail, for the plague of it was 
great. 

XVII 

THEN came one of the seven angels that had the seven plagues 
and spoke with me. He said, "Come here. I will show you the 
doom of the great prostitute who sits on many waters and with 



THE REVELATION OF JOHN 435 

whom the kings of the earth have committed lewdness, while 
the inhabitants of the earth have become drunk with the wine 
of her lewdness." He carried me away in the Spirit into a 
wilderness. There I saw a woman sitting upon a scarlet beast 
covered with profane names, and with seven heads and ten 
horns. The woman was clothed in purple and scarlet and 
adorned with gold and precious stones and pearls. She had in 
her hand a golden cup full of abominations and the impurities 
of her lewdness. On her forehead was written a mysterious 
name: "Babylon the Great, the Mother of Prostitutes and of 
the abominations of the earth. " I saw the woman drunk with 
the blood of the holy and with the blood of the witnesses for 
Jesus. 

When I saw her I wondered greatly. The angel said to me, 
"Why do you wonder? I will tell you the mystic meaning of 
the woman and the beast with seven heads and ten horns that 
carries her. The Beast which you saw was and is not and will 
soon come up out of the abyss and go into destruction. And 
the inhabitants of the earth whose names have not been written 
from the foundation of the world in the Book of Life will be 
amazed when they see the Beast that was and is not and will 
be. Hero is need for a mind that has wisdom. 

"The seven heads are seven mountains upon which the 
woman sits. Also they are seven kings. Five have fallen, one 
is, the other has not yet come; but when he comes he must stay 
but a little while. The Boast which was and is not is also him- 
self an eighth, yet is ono of the seven, and will go into destruc- 
tion* The ton horns that you saw are ten kings who have not 
yet received kingly power, but they will receive power as kings 
for one hour with the Boast. They have one mind and they 
give over their powor and authority to the Beast. They will 
make war with the Lamb, but the Lamb will conquer them, 
for he is Lord of lords and King of kings. They who are with 
him, called and chosen and faithful, will also conquer." He 
said to mo, "The waters that you saw where the prostitute 
was ttitting arc peoples and crowds and nations and tongues. 
The ten horns that you saw and the Boast they hato the 
prostitute and will make her desolate and naked and they will 



436 THE REVELATION OF JOHN 

devour her flesh and will burn her up with fire. For God has 
put it in their hearts to carry out his purpose, which is that 
they shall carry out one purpose and give their royal power to 
the Beast until the words of God are fulfilled. The woman that 
you saw is the great city that has kingly power over the kings 
of the earth." 

XVIII 

AFTER this I saw another angel descending from heaven with 
great power, and the earth was lit up with Ms splendor. He 
shouted with a powerful voice, saying, "Babylon the Great has 
fallen, has fallen, and has become a habitation of demons and 
a stronghold of every impure spirit and a stronghold of every 
unclean and detested bird. For all the nations have drunk of 
the wine of her passion for lewdness and the kings of the earth 
have committed lewdness with her and by the excess of her 
luxury the merchants of the earth have grown rich/' 

Then I heard another voice from heaven saying, "Come out 
of her, my people, that you may not take part in her sins nor 
receive a share in her plagues, for her sins have been heaped up 
to heaven and God has remembered her unrighteous deeds. 
Repay to her as she has paid, and make it double for her deeds. 
In the cup she mixed mix double for her. As much as she glori- 
fied herself and played the wanton, so much give her torture 
and woe. For in her heart she says, 'I sit here a queen; no 
widow am I and woe I shall not see. ' For this reason in one 
day her plagues will come, death and woe and famine, and she 
shall be burned up in fire. For strong is the Lord God who has 
judged her. 

"The kings of the earth who have committed lewdness with 
her and have reveled luxuriously, when they see the smoke of 
her burning, will wail and beat their breasts. Standing afar 
because of their dismay at her torture, they will say, 'Alas, 
alas, great city, Babylon the strong city, for in one hour your 
doom has come!' The merchants of the earth will weep and 
wail over her, for no one will any longer buy their cargoes, 
cargoes of gold and silver and precious stones and pearls and 
fine linen and purple and silk and scarlet, all kinds of citrus 



THE REVELATION OF JOHN 437 

wood and their many kinds of articles of ivory and their many 
kinds of articles of costliest wood and brass and iron and 
marble, and cinnamon and spice and incense and ointment and 
frankincense and wine, and olive oil and fine flour and wheat, 
and cattle and sheep and horses and chariots, and bodies and 
souls of men. The ripe fruits for which your soul longed have 
gone from you, and all your dainty and splendid things are lost 
to you and they will never more be found. The traders in 
these things who grew rich from her will stand afar through 
dismay at her torture, weeping and wailing and saying: 'Alas, 
alas, for the great city, clothed in fine linen and purple 
and scarlet and adorned with gold and precious stones and 
pearls! For in one hour this vast wealth has given place to 
desolation/" 

Every ship captain and every one who sails anywhere, and 
sailors and all who gain their living on the sea, stood afar and 
shouted as they saw the smoke of her burning, saying, "What 
city could compare with the great city?" They threw dust 
upon their heads and shouted as they wept and wailed, saying, 
" Alas, alas, for the great city in which all who had ships on the 
sea grew rich from her wealth! For in an hour she has been 
desolated. Rejoice over her, heaven, and you the holy and 
you apostles and prophets! For God has pronounced sentence 
in your behalf against her." 

Then one strong angel took up a stone like a great millstone, 
and hurled it into the sea, saying, "With such violence shall 
Babylon the groat city be hurled down and she will never more 
bo found. The music of harpers and musicians and flute-players 
and trumpeters will never more be hoard in you. No master of 
any art will ever more bo found in you, Tho sound of the mill 
will never more be hoard in you. The light of a lamp will never 
more shine in you. Tho voices of bridegroom and bride will 
never again be heard in you. Your merchants were the great 
on<8 of the earth; for by your magic arts all the nations were 
led astray. In her was found the blood of prophets and of holy 
men and of all who had been slain on the earth." 



438 THE REVELATION OF JOHN 

XIX 

AFTER this I heard what seemed the loud voices of a great 
multitude in heaven saying, "Hallelujah! Salvation and 
glory and power belong to our God, for true and just are his 
judgments. He has judged the great prostitute who was cor- 
rupting the earth with her lewdness and he has avenged on her 
the blood of his servants." Again they shouted; "Hallelujah! 
Her smoke will ascend for the ages of the ages. " 

Then the twenty-four elders fell down and the four living 
creatures worshiped God who sits on the throne, saying, 
"Amen! Hallelujah!" A voice came from the throne saying, 
"Praise our God, all of you his servants who reverence him, 
both small and great." Then I heard what seemed like the 
voices of a great multitude, like the sound of many waters, 
like the sound of mighty thunders, saying, "Hallelujah! For 
the Lord our God the Almighty is king. Let us rejoice and be 
glad and give glory to him; for the marriage of the Lamb has 
come and his bride has prepared herself and it has been granted 
to her to be clothed in fine linen shining and pure. " For the 
fine linen is the righteous acts of the holy. 

Then he said to me, " Write : Blessed are they who are invited 
to the wedding supper of the Lamb!" He said to me, "These 
are the true words of God. " Then I fell down at his feet and 
worshiped him. But he said to me, "No, no. I am a fellow 
servant of yours and of your brethren who hold the testimony 
to Jesus. Worship God. For testimony to Jesus is the spirit 
of prophecy. " 

Then I saw heaven open and there was a white horse, and 
he who was sitting on it was called Faithful and True, and in 
righteousness he judges and makes war. His eyes are a flame 
of fire and on his head are many diadems. He has a name 
written which no one but himself knows, and he is clothed in a 
garment dipped in blood and his name has been called The 
Word of God. The armies that are in -heaven follow frfm on 
white horses clothed in fine linen white and clean. From his 
mouth issues a sharp sword to smite the nations. He will 
shepherd them with a rod of iron, and he treads the winepress 



THE REVELATION OF JOHN 439 

of the fierce wrath of God Almighty. He has on his robe and 
on his thigh a name written, " King of kings and Lord of lords. " 

Then I saw one angel standing on the sun, and he shouted 
with a loud voice, saying to all the birds that fly in mid-heaven, 
"Come, gather for the great feast of God, to eat the flesh of 
kings and the flesh of generals and the flesh of mighty men, and 
the flesh of horses and of those who sit on them, and the flesh 
of freemen and of slaves, of small and great." 

Then I saw the Beast and the kings of the earth and their 
armies gathered to do battle with him who sits on the horse and 
with his army. And the Beast was captured and with him the 
False Prophet who did miracles in his presence and thereby 
misled those who received the mark of the Beast and who wor- 
shiped his image. The two were flung alive into the lake of 
fire that burns with brimstone. The rest were slain with the 
sword of him who sits upon the horse, the sword that issued 
from his mouth, and all the birds were gorged with their flesh. 

XX 

THEN I saw an angel descending from heaven with the key of 
the abyss and a great chain in his hand. He laid hold of the 
Dragon, the ancient Serpent, who is the Devil and Satan, and 
chained him for a thousand years and flung him into the abyss 
and shut it and sealed it over him, so that he should not mislead 
the nations until the thousand years were ended. After that 
he must be loosed for a little while. 

Then I saw thrones, and men took their seats on them and 
the power to judge was granted to them. I saw the souls of 
those who had been beheaded for their testimony to Jesus and 
for God's message, and who had not worshiped the Beast nor 
his image and had not received his mark on their foreheads or 
on their hands. They lived and reigned as kings with Christ a 
thousand years, but the rest of the dead did not return to life 
until the thousand years were finished. This is the first resur- 
rection. Blessed and holy is he who has part in the first resur- 
rection! Over these the second death has no power, but they 
will be priests and kings of God and of Christ, and will reign 
with him tho thousand years. 



440 THE REVELATION OF JOHN 

When the thousand years are ended, Satan will be loosed 
from his prison and will come out to mislead the nations that 
are at the four corners of the earth Gog and Magog and 
gather them to battle in number like the sand of the sea. They 
went up over the breadth of the earth and encircled the camp 
of the holy and the beloved city. But fire fell from heaven 
and consumed them, and the Devil who was misleading them 
was flung into the lake of fire and brimstone, where are also 
the Beast and the False Prophet, and they will be tormented 
day and night for the ages of the ages. 

Then I saw a great white throne and him, who was sitting on 
it, from whose face earth and heaven fled away and no place 
was found for them. And I saw the dead, the great and the 
small, standing before the throne, and books were opened. 
And another book was opened which is the Book of Life. The 
dead were judged out of what was written in the books accord- 
ing to their deeds. The sea gave up the dead that were in it, 
and Death and Hades gave up the dead that were in them, and 
they were judged each according to his deeds. Death and 
Hades were flung into the lake of fire* This is the second 
death the lake of fire. If any one was not found written in 
the Book of Life he was flung into the lake of fire. 

XXI 

THEN I saw a new heaven and a new earth, for the first heaven 
and the first earth had passed away and the sea was no more. 
I saw the holy city, new Jerusalem, descending out of heaven 
from God, prepared as a bride adorned for her husband. And 
I heard a loud voice from the throne saying, "The Tent of God 
is with men. He will tent with them and they will be his 
people and he will be their God. He will wipe every tear from 
their eyes. Death shall be no more; neither shall there any 
longer be sorrow or wailing or painful toil; for the first things 
have passed away." He who was sitting on the throne said, 
"See, I am making all things new." He said, "Write; for 
these words are trustworthy and true." He said to me, "They 
have come to pass. I am the Alpha and the Omega, the begin- 
ning and the end. To him who is thirsting I will give from the 



THE REVELATION OF JOHN 441 

spring of the water of life freely- He who conquers shall 
inherit all things, and I will be his God and he shall be to me a 
son. But the timid and faithless and abominable and murder- 
ers and the unchaste and sorcerers and idolaters and all liars 
will have their lot in the lake that burns with fire and brim- 
stone, which is the second death." 

Then one of the angels that had the seven bowls filled with 
the seven last plagues came and spoke with me. "Come here," 
he said, "and I will show you the Bride, the Lamb's wife." 
Then he carried me in Spirit to the top of a great and high 
mountain and showed me the holy city Jerusalem descending 
out of heaven from God, having the glory of God. Her bril- 
liance was like that of a most precious stone, like crystalline 
jasper. She had a wall great and high, and she had twelve gates 
and at the gates twelve angels, and there were names written 
upon the gates. They are the names of the twelve tribes of the 
sons of Israel. On the east were three gates and on the north 
three gates and on the south three gates and on the west 
three gates. The wall of the city had twelve foundations and 
upon them were twelve names, the names of the twelve apostles 
of the Lamb. 

He who was speaking with me had a golden reed as a meas- 
ure, to measure the city and her gates and her wall. The 
city stands foursquare and the length is the same as the 
breadth. He measured the city with the reed. It extends 
twelve thousand furlongs. 1 The length and the breadth and 
the height of it are equal. He measured the wall of it, a hun- 
dred and forty-four cubits 2 by human measure, which is also 
that of an angel. 

The material of the wall of it was jasper and the city was 
pure gold like clear glass. The foundations of the wall of the 
city were decorated with every kind of precious stone. The 
first foundation was jasper, the second sapphire, the third 
chalcedony, the fourth emerald, the fifth sardonyx, the sixth 
sardius, the seventh chrysolite, the eighth beryl, the ninth 
topaz, the tenth chrysoprase, the eleventh jacinth, the 

1 Nearly fifteen, hundred miles. 

1 About two hundred and sixteen feet. 



442 THE REVELATION OF JOHN 

twelfth amethyst. The twelve gates were twelve pearls. Each 
one of the gates was of one pearl. The street of the city was 
pure gold like transparent glass. 

I saw no temple in it; for its temple is the Lord God the 
Almighty and the Lamb. And the city has no need of the sun 
or of the moon to shine in it; for the glory of God illumines it 
and the Lamb is its light. The nations will walk by its light 
and the kings of the earth will bring their glory into it, and its 
gates will not be closed by day, and there will be no night 
there. They will bring the glory and honor of the nations into 
it. But there will not enter into it anything unholy or any one 
who makes an abomination or a lie, but only those who are 
written in the Lamb's Book of Life. 

XXII 

THEN he showed me a river of water of life bright as crystal, 
issuing from the throne of God and of the Lamb. In the space 
between the street and the river, on this side and on that, grew 
trees of life bearing twelve kinds of fruit, and yielding their 
fruit every month. The leaves of the tree were for the healing 
of the nations. There will no longer be any accursed thing. 
The throne of God and of the Lamb will be in it and his serv- 
ants will worship him with holy rites. They will see his face 
and his name will be on their foreheads. There will not be 
night any more and they will have no need of lamplight or of 
sunlight; for the Lord God will shine upon them and they will 
be kings for the ages of the ages. 

Then he said to me, "These words are trustworthy and true. 
The Lord God of the spirits of the prophets has sent his angel 
to show to his servants what must soon come to pass. I am 
coining soon. Blessed is he who is keeping the words of the 
prophecy of this book." 

I, John, am he who heard and saw these things. And when 
I had heard and seen I fell down to worship at the feet of the 
angel who had shown them to me. But he said to me, "No, no. 
I am a fellow servant of yours and of your brethren and of the 
prophets and of those who are keeping the words of this book. 
Worship God." 



THE REVELATION OF JOHN 443 

Then he said to me, "Do not seal up the words of the proph- 
ecy of this book. For the time is near. Let the wrongdoer 
do wrong still, and let him who is filthy be filthy still, and let 
the righteous do righteousness still, and let the holy be holy 
still. I am coming soon and my reward is with me, to pay each 
in full as his work is. I am the Alpha and the Omega, the First 
and the Last, the Beginning and the End. Blessed will those 
be who wash their robes so that they may have the right to the 
tree of life and may enter by the gates into the city. Outside 
are the dogs and the sorcerers and the unchaste and the 
murderers and the idolaters and every one who loves and 
makes a lie. 

"I, Jesus, have sent my angel to give you this testimony for 
the churches. I am the Root and the Offspring of David, the 
bright morning Star." 

The Spirit and the Bride say, "Come." Let him who hears 
say, "Come." Let him who thirsts come. Let him who will 
take the water of life freely. 

I testify to every one who hears the words of the prophecy 
of this book, if any one adds to these things, God will add to 
him the plagues that are written in this book, and if any one 
takes away anything from the words of the book of this 
prophecy, God will take away his share from the tree of life 
and from the holy city, which are written of in this book. 

He who bears this testimony says, "Yes, I am coining soon." 
Amen, come, Lord Jesus. 

The grace of the Lord Jesus be with all! 



INDEX 



Abraham, 131, 169, 259, 266, 375, 389. 

Adam, 261, 297. 

Adultery, 8, 131. 

Agabus, 218, 238. 

Agrippa, 247. 

Akeldama, 197. 

Alpha and Omega, 415. 

Ananias and Sapphira, 203. 

Ananias of Damascus, 212. 

Andrew, 152, 177. 

Angels, 32, 93, 369, 384, ' 

Anna, 97. 

Annas, 187. 

Annunciation to Mary, 93. 

Anointing of Jesus, 48, 84, 109. 

Antichrist, 406, 407. 

Antioch, 218, 220. 

Antioch, Pisidia, 221. 

Apollos, 233. 

Apostles, 16, 61, 105, 196. 

Aquila, 231. 

Armor of God, 330. 

Artemis, 234. 

Ascension, 150, 196. 

Atoning Sacrifice, 258, 405. - 

Authorities, 271. 

Authority of Jesus, 33, 80, 138. 

Babylon, 435. 

Balaam, 402. 

Baptism, 4, 56, 91, 156, 212, 278, 297. 

Barabbas, 52, 53, 88, 146. 

Bar-Jesus, 220. 

Barnabas, 203, 218, 220, 324, 227. 

Bartimseus, 78. 

Bearing burdens, 322. 

Beast, 430, 439. 

Beatitudes, 6, 106. 

Beautiful Gate, 20CK 

Beelzebul, 21, 62, 119. 

Belief and confession, 268. 

Benedictus, 38, 79. 

Benedictus of Zacharias, 95. 

Bent woman, 125. 

Bercea, 230. 

Bethesda, 159. 

Bethlehem, 2, 3, 96. 

Bethlehem, babes, 3. 



Bethsaida; 19, 117. 
Birds, 10. 

Birth from above, 155. 
Bishop, 354, 364. 
Blind, 37, 72, 78, 170. 
Blind leading blind, 107. 
Body and members, 292. 
Bowls of wrath, 433. 
Bread of life, 163. 
Building of God, 305. 

Csesar, 41, 81, 139. 

Caiaphas, 51, 176, 188. 

Call of four, 6, 103. 

Camel and needle's eye, 35. 

Cana, 153, 158. 

Canaanite woman, 28. 

Capernaum, 5, 19, 117. 

Centurion, 13, 54, 90, 107, 147. 

Cheerful giving, 310. 

Children, 32, 35, 76, 134, 330. 

Chorazin, 19, 117. 

Christ David's son, 41, 82, 140. 

Cities reproached, 19, 117. 

Citizenship, 333. 

City Clerk, 235. 

Claudius Lysias, 243. 

Cleansing Temple courts, 38, 79, 154. 

Cold or hot, 419. 

Collection, 299. 

Coming of Christ, 44. 

Communism, 199. 

Conscience, 290. 

Cornelius, 214. 

Council, 225. 

Counselor, 181, 182, 184. 

Counting cost, 128. 

Covenant, 49, 376, 378. 

Cretans, 364. 

Cross, taking up, 18, 73, 128. 

Crown of thorns, 53, 89, 189. 

Crucifixion, 53, 89, 147, 190. 

Cure by touch, 16; by shadow, 204, 

Curtain of Temple^ 54, 90, 147. 

David's Lord, 41. 
Deacons, 354. 
Dead bury dead, 14. 



446 



INDEX 



Death is gain, 333. 

Defiling, 28, 70. 

Demetrius, 234. 

Demoniacs, 14, 21, 31, 58, 64, 74, 102 

112, 115, 119, 234. 
Destruction of Jerusalem, 44, 83, 14 
Devil, 5, 100. 
Dinner, great, 127. 
Disciple that Jesus loved, 180, 193 

194. 

Disciples, twelve, 16, 35, 61, 105. 
Discipline, 383. 
Disputed questions, 272. 
Divisions, 278. 
Divorce, 8, 34, 76, 131, 285. 
Doing, 12, 107, 388. 
Dorcas, 214. 
Dragon, 429. 
Dumb man, 16. 

Eating with sinners, 60, 104, 129. 

Egypt, 3. 

Elijah, 31, 73, 115. , 

Elizabeth, 93. 

Elymas, 221. 

Emmaus, 148. 

End of the world, 403. 

Enemies, 8, 106, 271. 

Ephesian elders, 236. 

Ephesus, 235. 

Eternal Life, 35. 

Ethiopian, 211. 

Eunuchs, 34. 

Eutychus, 236. 

Exorcists, 234. * 

Faith, 31, 113, 259, 319, 380 f 389. 

Pall of the Jews, 269. 

Pasting, 15, 60, 104. 

Felix, 244. 

Pestus, 246. 

Pew saved, 126. 

Fickleness, 302. 

Pig tree, 38, 45, 79, 84, 125. 

Figures of speech, 62. 

First commandment, 41, 81. 

Pishes, 32, 103, 193. 

Five thousand fed, 26, 69, 114, 161. 

Flesh and spirit, 264. 

Flesh of Jesus eaten, 163. 

Forgiveness, 10, 59, 80, 104, 132, 147. 

Four thousand fed, 29, 71. 

Foxes, 13, 116. 

Freedom in Christ, 321. 



Friend at midnight,' 119. 

Gabriel, 93. 

Galilseans, 125. 

Gallio, 232. 

Gamaliel, 205. 

Gehenna, 32. 

Gethsemane, 50, 86, 144, 187. 

Girl raised to life, 16, 66, 113. 

God is love, 409. 

God is spirit, 157. 

Gods, men called, 173. 

God's thoughts, 30. 

Golden Kule, 11, 106. 

Golgotha, 53. 

Good Samaritan, 118. 

Good Shepherd, 172. 

ovemment, 395. 
Greatest Commandment, 41, 81. 
Greatest in kingdom, 32, 37, 75, 78,' 

116, 143. 
Grief God approves, 308. 

uard at tomb, 55. 

bating father, etc., 128. 

Har-Magedon, 434. 

hemorrhage healed, 15, 66. 
Herod (the Great), 2. 
Herod (Antipas), 25, 67, 99, 113, 126, 
146. 

lerod (Agrippa I), 219. 

lerodias, 26, 68. 

Hidden treasure, 25. 
Holy Spirit, 21, 62, 122, 197, 211, 217, 

233, 238, 292. 
Home with the Lord, 305. 
Horse, white, 421, 438; red, black, 

yellow, 422. 
House on rock, 12. 

"usbands and wives, 329. 

conium, 223. 
dols, 287. 
llustrations, 24. 
importunate widow, 134. 
mpure spirit returns, 120. 
nterpreting crisis, 124. 
Lviting guests, 127. 

acob and Esau, 266. 
ailer at Philippi, 229. 
aims, 65, 112. 

ames and John request, 77. 
annes and Jambres, 361. 



INDEX 



447 



Jericho, 37, 78, 135. 

Jerusalem, 126, 140. 

Jesus, ancestry, 1, 100; birth, 2, 96; 
circumcision, 97; presentation, 97; 
at 12 years, 98; baptism, 4, 57, 99; 
temptation, 5, 57, 100; calms storm, 
14, 64, 111; feeds 5000, 26, 69, 114, 
161; walks water, 27, 162; transfig- 
ured, 30, 73, 115; enters Jerusalem, 

37, 78, 177; cleanses Temple courts, 

38, 154; last supper, 49, 85, 142, 179 ; 
prayer, 185; in Gethsemane, 50, 86, 
144, 187; crucified, 53, 89, 147, 190; 
laid in tomb, 54, 90, 148, 191; ap- 
pears after resurrection, 55, 148, 
193; exalted, 334; second coming, 
44, 84, 133, 140, 347, 349, 443; sub- 
ject to God, 297. 

Jesus' mother and brothers, 22, 62, 

111. 
John the Baptist, birth, 94; preaching, 

4, 57, 98, 151, 156; sends to Jesus, 

18, 108; greatness, 19, 109; death, 

26, 67. 

John, apostle, 6, 75, 77, 116, 200. 
John Mark, 221, 227. 
Jonah, 22, 120. 
Joseph, 2, 96. 

Joseph of Arimatheea, 54, 90, 147, 191. 
Judging, 11, 391. 
Judgment, last, 47, 440. 

Keys, 30. 

Kingdom of God, 24, 63, 76, 133, 273. 

Korban, 70, 77. 

Lake of fire, 439. 
Lamb of God, 152, 421. 
Lame man at Lystra, 223. 
Last Supper, 49, 85, 142, 179. 
Law, 7, 263, 319, 320, 352. 
Lawless One, 350. 
Lazarus, 131, 174. 
Letters to Churches, 416. 
Leper, 12, 59, 103, 133. 
Levi, 60, 104. 

Life eternal, 35, 76, 135, 185. 
Life, losing and finding, 30. 
Lilies, 11. 
Little book, 427. 
Living water, 166. 
Locusts, 425. 
Lord's prayer, 9, 119. 
Lord's supper, 49, 85, 143. 



Lost coin, 129. 
Lost sheep, 129. 
Lot's wife, 133. 
Love, 293. 
Lydia, 228. 

Macedonia, 308. 

Macedonian, 227. 

Magnificat, 94. 

Manager, wicked, 130. 

Maran atha, 300. 

Marriage, 284. 

Mary, Jesus' mother, 2, 93, 98, 190, 

197. 

Mary Magdalene, 55, 90, 91, 148, 191. 
Mary and Martha, 118, 174, 176. 
Matthew, 15. 
Matthias, 197. 
Melchizedek, 373, 374. 
Melita, 252. 
Michael, 413. 
Miletus, 236. 
Millennium, 439. 
Mind of Christ, 333. 
Moses, 30, 73, 304, 382. 
Mustard seed, 24, 126. 

Nain, 108. 
Narrow door, 126. 
Narrow gate, 11. 
Nathanael, 153. 
Net, kingdom like, 25. 
New Jerusalem, 440. 
New Patch, 60, 
Nicodemus, 154, 166. 
Ninety-nine sheep, 32. 
Nobleman and servants, 136. 

Oaths, 8, 42. 

Ointment on Jesus' head, 48, 85; on his 

feet, 109, 176. 
Olive tree, 270. 
Onesimus, 367. 

Palm Sunday, 37, 78, 137, 177. 

Paralytic, 13, 14, 59, 103. 

Passover, 49, 85, 142. 

Patch, new, 15, 60, 104. 

Paul, at Stephen's death, 210; near 
Damascus, 212, 241, 248; at Anti- 
och, 218; journey with Barnabas, 
220; stoned, 224; journey with Silas, 
227; called to Macedonia, 227; 
Philippi, 228; at Athens, 230; 



448 



INDEX 



at Corinth, 232; at Ephesus, 23.. 
at Troas, 236; to Ephesian Elder 
237; at Jerusalem, 239; arrestec 
240; speech on stairs, 240;' befor 
council, 242 ; at Caesarea, 243 ; befor 
Felix, 244; before Agrippa, 24' 
voyage to Italy, 249; shipwreck 
250; bitten by snake, 252; at Rome 
252; trials, 313; visions, 313; thorn 
314; his good news, 316; his rights 
287; with pillar apostles, 317; fore- 
most sinner, 353. 
Peace, Jesus came not to send, 
gives, 182. 

Peace of God, 336. 

Pearl, 25. '. 

Pentecost, 197. ' 

Perfect, be like God, 9, 

Peter, called, 57, 103; confession, 30 
the Bock, 30; rebuked, 73, 114 
walking on water, 27; professe 
faithfulness, 49, 143; denial, 49, 51 
88, 145, 188; warned, 143; cuts off 
ear, 144, 187; Lovest thou me 
194; at Pentecost, 198; at Beautiful 
gate, 200; address, 202; delivered 
from prison, 204; at Lydda, 214 
vision, 215; with Cornelius, 215 
delivered from prison, 219; at 
Antioch, 318; death predicted, 
194. 

Peter's wife's mother, 13, 58, 102. 

Pharisee and tax collector, 134. 

Pharisees, 42, 121. 

Philip, apostle, 153, 177. 

Philip, of the seven, 210, 211. 

Phcebe, 275. 

Pilate, 52, 88, 145, 188. 

Pilate's wife, 52. 

Pillar apostles, 317. 

Plagues, last, 432. 

Plow, putting hand to, 116. 

Plowing servant, 132. 

Poor, the, 177, 388. 

Prayer, 9, 11, 33, 38, 75, 392. 

Prodigal son, 129- 

Prophet in native place, 25, 67. 
Publius, 252. 
Purification of Mary, 97. 



Raising dead, 16, 66, 108, 113, 175. 
Ravens, 123. 
Registration, 96. 
Rejoice, 336. 



Rest, 371, 

Resurrection, 41, 55, 81, 139, 148, 296, 

439. 

Rewards, 18. 
Rhoda, 219. 
Rich fool, 122. 

Rich men, 35, 77, 358, 388, 391. 
Righteousness of faith, 255. 
River of life, 442. 
Robbers crucified, 53, 89. 



Sabbath, 20, 60, 61, 105, 125, 159, 165. 

Sacrifice of Christ, 379. 

Sacrifices to idols, 287. 

Samaria, 210. 

Samaritan, good, 118; thankful, 133. 

Samaritans, 116. 

Samaritan woman, 156. 

Satan; 5, 21, 117, 180, 203, 350, 439. 

Saul. See Paul. 

Second coming, 44, 84, 133, 140, 347, 

349, 443. 

Secrecy in religion, 9. 
Sergius Paulus, 221. 
Sermon on the mount, 6, 106. 
Seven appointed, 206. 
Seventy appointed, 116. 
Sheep and goats, 47. 
Shepherds, 96. 
Shepherd, the good, 172. 
Sign not given, 22, 29, 120; given, 154; 

178. 

Silas, 227. 
iloam, tower, 125. 
imeon, 97. 

imon of Cyrene, 53, 89, 140. 
imon, magician, 210. 
imon Peter. See Peter, 
imon, Pharisee, 109. 
imon, tanner, 215. 
in unpardonable 21, 62, 122, 410* 
inless cast stone, 167. 
laves, 285, 330, 357. 
outh, queen, 22, 120. 
ower, 22, 62, 110. 
peck in eye, 11, 107. 
pints in prison, 397. 
piritual and fleshly, 2$0. 
piritual gifts, 292. 
bar in East, 2, 3. 
torm calmed, 64, 162. 
wearing, 8, 42, 392. 
wine, 65, 112. 
Sword, buy, 144; put up, 50. 



INDEX 



449 



Syrophcenician, 71. 

Tabitha, 214. 

Talents, 46. 

Temple buildings destroyed, 43, 83. 

Temple courts cleansed, 38, 79, 164. 

Temple tax, 32. 

Temptation of Jesus, 5, 57, 100. 

Temptation, 387. 

Ten maidens, 46. 

Theophilus, 92, 196. 

Thorn, Paul's, 314. 

Thousand years, 439. 

Three witnesses, 410. 

Timothy, 227. 

Tongue, the, 390. 

Tongues, and prophecy, 294. 

Tradition, 27, 70. 

Traitor, 49. 

Transfiguration, 30, 73, 115. 

Treasures on earth, 10. 

Tree of life, 442. 

Tree and fruit, 107. 

Trial of Jesus, 51, 88, 145, 188. 

Tribute, 40, 81, 139. 

Triumphal entry, 37, 78, 137* 

Troas, 227, 236. 

Trumpets, seven, 424. 

Truth, 168, 189. 

Twelve appointed, 16, 61, 105, 113. 

Two sons, 39. 

Unchastity at Corinth, 282, 284. 
Unforgiving servant, 33. 
Unknown God, 157, 231. 
Unpardonable sin, 21, 62, 122, 410. 

Vine, 182. 



Vineyard, 36, 39, 80, 138. 
Visit of Mary to Elizabeth, 94. 
Voice from heaven, 5, 57, 99, 177. 

Walking on water, 27, 69, 162. 

Washing feet, 179. 

Way, truth and life, 181. 

Weakness and strength, 314, 315. 

Wedding, 40. 

Wedding at Cana, 153. 

Weeds and wheat, 24. 

Widows, 355. 

Widow's mite, 82, 140. 

Wine, 153, 

Winepress, 432. 

Wineskins, 15, 60, 104. 

Wisdom, 387, 390. 

Wise men, 2, 3. 

Withered hand, 105. 

Wives, 396. 

Woes, 426. 

Wolves, 12. 

Woman, a sinner, 109. 

Woman clothed with sun, 428. 

Woman taken in adultery, 167. 

Woman with hemorrhage, 66. 

Women in church, 290, 296, 353, 

365. 

Women's hair, 291. 
Word, the, 151, 438. 
Writing on ground, 167. 

Yeast, 24, 29, 72, 283. 
Yoke, Jesus', 20. 

Zacclraus, 136. 
Zacharias, 92. 
Zebedee, sons of, 36, 58.